summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/64908-0.txt9300
-rw-r--r--old/64908-0.zipbin185538 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/64908-h.zipbin235138 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/64908-h/64908-h.htm10774
-rw-r--r--old/64908-h/images/cover.jpgbin49696 -> 0 bytes
8 files changed, 17 insertions, 20074 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..cc71a5c
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #64908 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/64908)
diff --git a/old/64908-0.txt b/old/64908-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 695d1ea..0000000
--- a/old/64908-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,9300 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of What Is Art?, by Leo Tolstoy
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: What Is Art?
-
-Author: Leo Tolstoy
-
-Translator: Aylmer Maude
-
-Release Date: March 23, 2021 [eBook #64908]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-Produced by: Tim Lindell, David King, and the Online Distributed
- Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net. (This file was
- produced from images generously made available by The Internet
- Archive/Canadian Archives.)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WHAT IS ART? ***
-
-
-
-
- WHAT IS ART?
-
-
-
-
- WHAT IS ART?
-
- BY
- LEO TOLSTOY
-
- TRANSLATED FROM THE ORIGINAL MS.,
- WITH AN INTRODUCTION BY
- AYLMER MAUDE
-
- NEW YORK
- FUNK & WAGNALLS COMPANY
- 1904
-
-
-
-
- Introduction
-
-
-What thoughtful man has not been perplexed by problems relating to art?
-
-An estimable and charming Russian lady I knew, felt the charm of the
-music and ritual of the services of the Russo-Greek Church so strongly
-that she wished the peasants, in whom she was interested, to retain
-their blind faith, though she herself disbelieved the church doctrines.
-“Their lives are so poor and bare—they have so little art, so little
-poetry and colour in their lives—let them at least enjoy what they have;
-it would be cruel to undeceive them,” said she.
-
-A false and antiquated view of life is supported by means of art, and is
-inseparably linked to some manifestations of art which we enjoy and
-prize. If the false view of life be destroyed this art will cease to
-appear valuable. Is it best to screen the error for the sake of
-preserving the art? Or should the art be sacrificed for the sake of
-truthfulness?
-
-Again and again in history a dominant church has utilised art to
-maintain its sway over men. Reformers (early Christians, Mohammedans,
-Puritans, and others) have perceived that art bound people to the old
-faith, and they were angry with art. They diligently chipped the noses
-from statues and images, and were wroth with ceremonies, decorations,
-stained-glass windows, and processions. They were even ready to banish
-art altogether, for, besides the superstitions it upheld, they saw that
-it depraved and perverted men by dramas, drinking-songs, novels,
-pictures, and dances, of a kind that awakened man’s lower nature. Yet
-art always reasserted her sway, and to-day we are told by many that art
-has nothing to do with morality—that “art should be followed for art’s
-sake.”
-
-I went one day, with a lady artist, to the Bodkin Art Gallery in Moscow.
-In one of the rooms, on a table, lay a book of coloured pictures, issued
-in Paris and supplied, I believe, to private subscribers only. The
-pictures were admirably executed, but represented scenes in the private
-cabinets of a restaurant. Sexual indulgence was the chief subject of
-each picture. Women extravagantly dressed and partly undressed, women
-exposing their legs and breasts to men in evening dress; men and women
-taking liberties with each other, or dancing the “can-can,” etc., etc.
-My companion the artist, a maiden lady of irreproachable conduct and
-reputation, began deliberately to look at these pictures. I could not
-let my attention dwell on them without ill effects. Such things had a
-certain attraction for me, and tended to make me restless and nervous. I
-ventured to suggest that the subject-matter of the pictures was
-objectionable. But my companion (who prided herself on being an artist)
-remarked with conscious superiority, that from an artist’s point of view
-the _subject_ was of no consequence. The pictures being very well
-executed were artistic, and therefore worthy of attention and study.
-Morality had nothing to do with art.
-
-Here again is a problem. One remembers Plato’s advice not to let our
-thoughts run upon women, for if we do we shall think clearly about
-nothing else, and one knows that to neglect this advice is to lose
-tranquillity of mind; but then one does not wish to be considered
-narrow, ascetic, or inartistic, nor to lose artistic pleasures which
-those around us esteem so highly.
-
-Again, the newspapers last year printed proposals to construct a Wagner
-Opera House, to cost, if I recollect rightly, £100,000—about as much as
-a hundred labourers may earn by fifteen or twenty years’ hard work. The
-writers thought it would be a good thing if such an Opera House were
-erected and endowed. But I had a talk lately with a man who, till his
-health failed him, had worked as a builder in London. He told me that
-when he was younger he had been very fond of theatre-going, but, later,
-when he thought things over and considered that in almost every number
-of his weekly paper he read of cases of people whose death was hastened
-by lack of good food, he felt it was not right that so much labour
-should be spent on theatres.
-
-In reply to this view it is urged that food for the mind is as important
-as food for the body. The labouring classes work to produce food and
-necessaries for themselves and for the cultured, while some of the
-cultured class produce plays and operas. It is a division of labour. But
-this again invites the rejoinder that, sure enough, the labourers
-produce food for themselves and also food that the cultured class accept
-and consume, but that the artists seem too often to produce their
-spiritual food for the cultured only—at any rate that a singularly small
-share seems to reach the country labourers who work to supply the bodily
-food! Even were the “division of labour” shown to be a fair one, the
-“division of products” seems remarkably one-sided.
-
-Once again: how is it that often when a new work is produced, neither
-the critics, the artists, the publishers, nor the public, seem to know
-whether it is valuable or worthless? Some of the most famous books in
-English literature could hardly find a publisher, or were savagely
-derided by leading critics; while other works once acclaimed as
-masterpieces are now laughed at or utterly forgotten. A play which
-nobody now reads was once passed off as a newly-discovered masterpiece
-of Shakespear’s, and was produced at a leading London theatre. Are the
-critics playing blind-man’s buff? Are they relying on each other? Is
-each following his own whim and fancy? Or do they possess a criterion
-which they never reveal to those outside the profession?
-
-Such are a few of the many problems relating to art which present
-themselves to us all, and it is the purpose of this book to enable us to
-reach such a comprehension of art, and of the position art should occupy
-in our lives, as will enable us to answer such questions.
-
-The task is one of enormous difficulty. Under the cloak of “art,” so
-much selfish amusement and self-indulgence tries to justify itself, and
-so many mercenary interests are concerned in preventing the light from
-shining in upon the subject, that the clamour raised by this book can
-only be compared to that raised by the silversmiths of Ephesus when they
-shouted, “Great is Diana of the Ephesians!” for about the space of two
-hours.
-
-Elaborate theories blocked the path with subtle sophistries or ponderous
-pseudo-erudition. Merely to master these, and expose them, was by itself
-a colossal labour, but necessary in order to clear the road for a
-statement of any fresh view. To have accomplished this work of exposure
-in a few chapters is a wonderful achievement. To have done it without
-making the book intolerably dry is more wonderful still. In Chapter III.
-(where a rapid summary of some sixty æsthetic writers is given) even
-Tolstoy’s powers fail to make the subject interesting, except to the
-specialist, and he has to plead with his readers “not to be overcome by
-dulness, but to read these extracts through.”
-
-Among the writers mentioned, English readers miss the names of John
-Ruskin and William Morris, especially as so much that Tolstoy says, is
-in accord with their views.
-
-Of Ruskin, Tolstoy has a very high opinion. I have heard him say, “I
-don’t know why you English make such a fuss about Gladstone—you have a
-much greater man in Ruskin.” As a stylist, too, Tolstoy speaks of him
-with high commendation. Ruskin, however, though he has written on art
-with profound insight, and has said many things with which Tolstoy fully
-agrees, has, I think, nowhere so systematised and summarised his view
-that it can be readily quoted in the concise way which has enabled
-Tolstoy to indicate his points of essential agreement with Home, Véron,
-and Kant. Even the attempt to summarise Kant’s æsthetic philosophy in a
-dozen lines will hardly be of much service except to readers who have
-already some acquaintance with the subject. For those to whom the
-difference between “subjective” and “objective” perceptions is fresh, a
-dozen pages would be none too much. And to summarise Ruskin would be
-perhaps more difficult than to condense Kant.
-
-As to William Morris, we are reminded of his dictum that art is the
-workman’s expression of joy in his work, by Tolstoy’s “As soon as the
-author is not producing art for his own satisfaction,—does not himself
-feel what he wishes to express,—a resistance immediately springs up” (p.
-154); and again, “In such transmission to others of the feelings that
-have arisen in him, he (the artist) will find his happiness” (p. 195).
-Tolstoy sweeps over a far wider range of thought, but he and Morris are
-not opposed. Morris was emphasising part of what Tolstoy is implying.
-
-But to return to the difficulties of Tolstoy’s task. There is one, not
-yet mentioned, lurking in the hearts of most of us. We have enjoyed
-works of “art.” We have been interested by the information conveyed in a
-novel, or we have been thrilled by an unexpected “effect”; have admired
-the exactitude with which real life has been reproduced, or have had our
-feelings touched by allusions to, or reproductions of, works—old German
-legends, Greek myths, or Hebrew poetry—which moved us long ago, as they
-moved generations before us. And we thought all this was “art.” Not
-clearly understanding what art is, and wherein its importance lies, we
-were not only attached to these things, but attributed importance to
-them, calling them “artistic” and “beautiful,” without well knowing what
-we meant by those words.
-
-But here is a book that obliges us to clear our minds. It challenges us
-to define “art” and “beauty,” and to say why we consider these things,
-that pleased us, to be specially important. And as to beauty, we find
-that the definition given by æsthetic writers amounts merely to this,
-that “Beauty is a kind of pleasure received by us, not having personal
-advantage for its object.” But it follows from this, that “beauty” is a
-matter of taste, differing among different people, and to attach special
-importance to what pleases _me_ (and others who have had the same sort
-of training that I have had) is merely to repeat the old, old mistake
-which so divides human society; it is like declaring that my race is the
-best race, my nation the best nation, my church the best church, and my
-family the “best” family. It indicates ignorance and selfishness.
-
-But “truth angers those whom it does not convince;”—people do not wish
-to understand these things. It seems, at first, as though Tolstoy were
-obliging us to sacrifice something valuable. We do not realise that we
-are being helped to select the best art, but we do feel that we are
-being deprived of our sense of satisfaction in Rudyard Kipling.
-
-Both the magnitude and the difficulty of the task were therefore very
-great, but they have been surmounted in a marvellous manner. Of the
-effect this book has had on me personally, I can only say that “whereas
-I was blind, now I see.” Though sensitive to some forms of art, I was,
-when I took it up, much in the dark on questions of æsthetic philosophy;
-when I had done with it, I had grasped the main solution of the problem
-so clearly that—though I waded through nearly all that the critics and
-reviewers had to say about the book—I never again became perplexed upon
-the central issues.
-
-Tolstoy was indeed peculiarly qualified for the task he has
-accomplished. It was after many years of work as a writer of fiction,
-and when he was already standing in the very foremost rank of European
-novelists, that he found himself compelled to face, in deadly earnest,
-the deepest problems of human life. He not only could not go on writing
-books, but he felt he could not live, unless he found clear guidance, so
-that he might walk sure-footedly and know the purpose and meaning of his
-life. Not as a mere question of speculative curiosity, but as a matter
-of vital necessity, he devoted years to rediscover the truths which
-underlie all religion.
-
-To fit him for this task he possessed great knowledge of men and books,
-a wide experience of life, a knowledge of languages, and a freedom from
-bondage to any authority but that of reason and conscience. He was
-pinned to no Thirty-nine Articles, and was in receipt of no retaining
-fee which he was not prepared to sacrifice. Another gift, rare among men
-of his position, was his wonderful sincerity and (due, I think, to that
-sincerity) an amazing power of looking at the phenomena of our complex
-and artificial life with the eyes of a little child; going straight to
-the real, obvious facts of the case, and brushing aside the sophistries,
-the conventionalities, and the “authorities” by which they are obscured.
-
-He commenced the task when he was about fifty years of age, and since
-then (_i.e._, during the last twenty years) he has produced nine
-philosophical or scientific works of first-rate importance, besides a
-great many stories and short articles. These works, in chronological
-order, are—
-
- _My Confession._
-
- _A Criticism of Dogmatic Theology_, which has never been translated.
-
- _The Four Gospels Harmonised and Translated_, of which only two
- parts, out of three, have as yet appeared in English.
-
- _What I Believe_, sometimes called _My Religion_.
-
- _The Gospel in Brief._
-
- _What are we to do then?_ sometimes called in English _What to do?_
-
- _On Life_, which is not an easy work in the original, and has not
- been satisfactorily translated.[1]
-
- _The Kingdom of God is within you_; and
-
- _The Christian Teaching_, which appeared after _What is Art?_ though
- it was written before it.
-
-To these scientific works I am inclined to add _The Kreutzer Sonata_,
-with the _Sequel_ or _Postscript_ explaining its purpose; for though
-_The Kreutzer Sonata_ is a story, the understanding of sexual problems,
-dealt with explicitly in the _Sequel_, is an integral part of that
-comprehension of life which causes Tolstoy to admire Christ, Buddha, or
-Francis of Assisi.
-
-These ten works treat of the meaning of our life; of the problems raised
-by the fact that we approve of some things and disapprove of others, and
-find ourselves deciding which of two courses to pursue.
-
-Religion, Government, Property, Sex, War, and all the relations in which
-man stands to man, to his own consciousness, and to the ultimate source
-(which we call God) from whence that consciousness proceeds—are examined
-with the utmost frankness.
-
-And all this time the problems of Art: What is Art? What importance is
-due to it? How is it related to the rest of life?—were working in his
-mind. He was a great artist, often upbraided for having abandoned his
-art. He, of all men, was bound to clear his thoughts on this perplexing
-subject, and to express them. His whole philosophy of life—the
-“religious perception” to which, with such tremendous labour and effort,
-he had attained, forbade him to detach art from life, and place it in a
-water-tight compartment where it should not act on life or be re-acted
-upon by life.
-
-Life to him is rational. It has a clear aim and purpose, discernible by
-the aid of reason and conscience. And no human activity can be fully
-understood or rightly appreciated until the central purpose of life is
-perceived.
-
-You cannot piece together a puzzle-map as long as you keep one bit in a
-wrong place, but when the pieces all fit together, then you have a
-demonstration that they are all in their right places. Tolstoy used that
-simile years ago when explaining how the comprehension of the text,
-“resist not him that is evil,” enabled him to perceive the
-reasonableness of Christ’s teaching, which had long baffled him. So it
-is with the problem of Art. Wrongly understood, it will tend to confuse
-and perplex your whole comprehension of life. But given the clue
-supplied by true “religious perception,” and you can place art so that
-it shall fit in with a right understanding of politics, economics,
-sex-relationships, science, and all other phases of human activity.
-
-The basis on which this work rests, is a perception of the meaning of
-human life. This has been quite lost sight of by some of the reviewers,
-who have merely misrepresented what Tolstoy says, and then demonstrated
-how very stupid he would have been had he said what they attributed to
-him. Leaving his premises and arguments untouched, they dissent from
-various conclusions—as though it were all a mere question of taste. They
-say that they are very fond of things which Tolstoy ridicules, and that
-they can’t understand why he does not like what they like—which is quite
-possible, especially if they have not understood the position from which
-he starts. But such criticism can lead to nothing. Discussions as to why
-one man likes pears and another prefers meat, do not help towards
-finding a definition of what is essential in nourishment; and just so,
-“the solution of questions of taste in art does not help to make clear
-what this particular human activity which we call art really consists
-in.”
-
-The object of the following brief summary of a few main points is to
-help the reader to avoid pitfalls into which many reviewers have fallen.
-It aims at being no more than a bare statement of the positions—for more
-than that, the reader must turn to the book itself.
-
-Let it be granted at the outset, that Tolstoy writes for those who have
-“ears to hear.” He seldom pauses to safeguard himself against the
-captious critic, and cares little for minute verbal accuracy. For
-instance, on page 144, he mentions “Paris,” where an English writer
-(even one who knew to what an extent Paris is the art centre of France,
-and how many artists flock thither from Russia, America, and all ends of
-the earth) would have been almost sure to have said “France,” for fear
-of being thought to exaggerate. One needs some alertness of mind to
-follow Tolstoy in his task of compressing so large a subject into so
-small a space. Moreover, he is an emphatic writer who says what he
-means, and even, I think, sometimes rather overemphasizes it. With this
-much warning let us proceed to a brief summary of Tolstoy’s view of art.
-
-“Art is a human activity,” and consequently does not exist for its own
-sake, but is valuable or objectionable in proportion as it is
-serviceable or harmful to mankind. The object of this activity is to
-transmit to others feeling the artist has experienced. Such
-feelings—intentionally re-evoked and successfully transmitted to
-others—are the subject-matter of all art. By certain external
-signs—movements, lines, colours, sounds, or arrangements of words—an
-artist infects other people so that they share his feelings. Thus “art
-is a means of union among men, joining them together in the same
-feelings.”
-
-Chapters II. to V. contain an examination of various theories which have
-taken art to be something other than this, and step by step we are
-brought to the conclusion that art is this, and nothing but this.
-
-Having got our definition of art, let us first consider art
-independently of its subject-matter, _i.e._, without asking whether the
-feelings transmitted are good, bad, or indifferent. Without adequate
-expression there is no art, for there is no infection, no transference
-to others of the author’s feeling. The test of art is infection. If an
-author has moved you so that you feel as he felt, if you are so united
-to him in feeling that it seems to you that he has expressed just what
-you have long wished to express, the work that has so infected you is a
-work of art.
-
-In this sense, it is true that art has nothing to do with morality; for
-the test lies in the “infection,” and not in any consideration of the
-goodness or badness of the emotions conveyed. Thus the test of art is an
-_internal_ one. The activity of art is based on the fact that a man,
-receiving, through his sense of hearing or sight, another man’s
-expression of feeling, is capable of experiencing the emotion that moved
-the man who expressed it. We all share the same common human nature, and
-in this sense, at least, are sons of one Father. To take the simplest
-example: a man laughs, and another, who hears, becomes merry; or a man
-weeps, and another, who hears, feels sorrow. Note in passing that it
-does not amount to art “if a man infects others directly, immediately,
-at the very time he experiences the feeling; if he causes another man to
-yawn when he himself cannot help yawning,” etc. Art begins when some
-one, _with the object of making others share his feeling_, expresses his
-feeling by certain external indications.
-
-Normal human beings possess this faculty to be infected by the
-expression of another man’s emotions. For a plain man of unperverted
-taste, living in contact with nature, with animals, and with his
-fellow-men—say, for “a country peasant of unperverted taste, this is
-as easy as it is for an animal of unspoilt scent to follow the trace
-he needs.” And he will know indubitably whether a work presented to
-him does, or does not, unite him in feeling with the author. But
-very many people “of our circle” (upper and middle class society)
-live such unnatural lives, in such conventional relations to the
-people around them, and in such artificial surroundings, that they
-have lost “that simple feeling, that sense of infection with
-another’s feeling—compelling us to joy in another’s gladness, to
-sorrow in another’s grief, and to mingle souls with another—which is
-the essence of art.” Such people, therefore, have no inner test by
-which to recognise a work of art; and they will always be mistaking
-other things for art, and seeking for external guides, such as the
-opinions of “recognised authorities.” Or they will mistake for art
-something that produces a merely physiological effect—lulling or
-exciting them; or some intellectual puzzle that gives them something
-to think about.
-
-But if most people of the “cultured crowd” are impervious to true art,
-is it really possible that a common Russian country peasant, for
-instance, whose work-days are filled with agricultural labour, and whose
-brief leisure is largely taken up by his family life and by his
-participation in the affairs of the village commune—is it possible that
-_he_ can recognise and be touched by works of art? Certainly it is! Just
-as in ancient Greece crowds assembled to hear the poems of Homer, so
-to-day in Russia, as in many countries and many ages, the Gospel
-parables, and much else of the highest art, are gladly heard by the
-common people. And this does not refer to any superstitious use of the
-Bible, but to its use as literature.
-
-Not only do normal, labouring country people possess the capacity to be
-infected by good art—“the epic of Genesis, folk-legends, fairy-tales,
-folk-songs, etc.,” but they themselves produce songs, stories, dances,
-decorations, etc., which are works of true art. Take as examples the
-works of Burns or Bunyan, and the peasant women’s song mentioned by
-Tolstoy in Chapter XIV., or some of those melodies produced by the negro
-slaves on the southern plantations, which have touched, and still touch,
-many of us with the emotions felt by their unknown and unpaid composers.
-
-The one great quality which makes a work of art truly contagious is its
-_sincerity_. If an artist is really actuated by a feeling, and is
-strongly impelled to communicate that feeling to other people—not for
-money or fame, or anything else, but because he feels he must share
-it—then he will not be satisfied till he has found a _clear_ way of
-expressing it. And the man who is not borrowing his feelings, but has
-drawn what he expresses from the depths of his nature, is sure to be
-_original_, for in the same way that no two people have exactly similar
-faces or forms, no two people have exactly similar minds or souls.
-
-That in briefest outline is what Tolstoy says about art, considered
-apart from its subject-matter. And this is how certain critics have met
-it. They say that when Tolstoy says the test of art is _internal_, he
-must mean that it is _external_. When he says that country peasants have
-in the past appreciated, and do still appreciate, works of the highest
-art, he means that the way to detect a work of art is to see what is
-apparently most popular among the masses. Go into the streets or
-music-halls of the cities in any particular country and year, and
-observe what is most frequently sung, shouted, or played on the
-barrel-organs. It may happen to be
-
- “Tarara-boom-deay,”
-
-or,
-
- “We don’t want to fight,
- But, by Jingo, if we do.”
-
-But whatever it is, you may at once declare these songs to be the
-highest musical art, without even pausing to ask to what they owe their
-vogue—what actress, or singer, or politician, or wave of patriotic
-passion has conduced to their popularity. Nor need you consider whether
-that popularity is not merely temporary and local. Tolstoy has said that
-works of the highest art are understood by unperverted country
-peasants—and here are things which are popular with the mob, _ergo_,
-these things must be the highest art.
-
-The critics then proceed to say that such a test is utterly absurd. And
-on this point I am able to agree with the critics.
-
-Some of these writers commence their articles by saying that Tolstoy is
-a most profound thinker, a great prophet, an intellectual force, etc.
-Yet when Tolstoy, in his emphatic way, makes the sweeping remark that
-“good art always pleases every one,” the critics do not read on to find
-out what he means, but reply: “No! good art does not please every one;
-some people are colour-blind, and some are deaf, or have no ear for
-music.”
-
-It is as though a man strenuously arguing a point were to say, “Every
-one knows that two and two make four,” and a boy who did not at all see
-what the speaker was driving at, were to reply: “No, our new-born baby
-doesn’t know it!” It would distract attention from the subject in hand,
-but it would not elucidate matters.
-
-There is, of course, a verbal contradiction between the statements that
-“good art always pleases every one” (p. 100), and the remark concerning
-“people of our circle,” who, “with very few exceptions, artists and
-public and critics, ... cannot distinguish true works of art from
-counterfeits, but continually mistake for real art the worst and most
-artificial” (p. 151). But I venture to think that any one of
-intelligence, and free from prejudice, reading this book carefully, need
-not fail to reach the author’s meaning.
-
-A point to be carefully noted is the distinction between science and
-art. “Science investigates and brings to human perception such truths
-and such knowledge as the people of a given time and society consider
-most important. Art transmits these truths from the region of perception
-to the region of emotion” (p. 102). Science is an “activity of the
-understanding which demands preparation and a certain sequence of
-knowledge, so that one cannot learn trigonometry before knowing
-geometry.” “The business of art,” on the other hand, “lies just in
-this—to make that understood and felt which, in the form of an argument,
-might be incomprehensible and inaccessible” (p. 102). It “infects any
-man whatever his plane of development,” and “the hindrance to
-understanding the best and highest _feelings_ (as is said in the gospel)
-does not at all lie in deficiency of development or learning, but, on
-the contrary, in false development and false learning” (pp. 102, 103).
-Science and art are frequently blended in one work—_e.g._, in the gospel
-elucidation of Christ’s comprehension of life, or, to take a modern
-instance, in Henry George’s elucidation of the land question in
-_Progress and Poverty_.
-
-The class distinction to which Tolstoy repeatedly alludes needs some
-explanation. The position of the lower classes in England and in Russia
-is different. In Russia a much larger number of people live on the verge
-of starvation; the condition of the factory-hands is much worse than in
-England, and there are many glaring cases of brutal cruelty inflicted on
-the peasants by the officials, the police, or the military,—but in
-Russia a far greater proportion of the population live in the country,
-and a peasant usually has his own house, and tills his share of the
-communal lands. The “unperverted country peasant” of whom Tolstoy speaks
-is a man who perhaps suffers grievous want when there is a bad harvest
-in his province, but he is a man accustomed to the experiences of a
-natural life, to the management of his own affairs, and to a real voice
-in the arrangements of the village commune. The Government interferes,
-from time to time, to collect its taxes by force, to take the young men
-for soldiers, or to maintain the “rights” of the upper classes; but
-otherwise the peasant is free to do what he sees to be necessary and
-reasonable. On the other hand, English labourers are, for the most part,
-not so poor, they have more legal rights, and they have votes; but a far
-larger number of them live in towns and are engaged in unnatural
-occupations, while even those that do live in touch with nature are
-usually mere wage-earners, tilling other men’s land, and living often in
-abject submission to the farmer, the parson, or the lady-bountiful. They
-are dependent on an employer for daily bread, and the condition of a
-wage-labourer is as unnatural as that of a landlord.
-
-The tyranny of the St. Petersburg bureaucracy is more dramatic, but less
-omnipresent—and probably far less fatal to the capacity to enjoy
-art—than the tyranny of our respectable, self-satisfied, and
-property-loving middle-class. I am therefore afraid that we have no
-great number of “unperverted” country labourers to compare with those of
-whom Tolstoy speaks—and some of whom I have known personally. But the
-truth Tolstoy elucidates lies far too deep in human nature to be
-infringed by such differences of local circumstance. Whatever those
-circumstances may be, the fact remains that in proportion as a man
-approaches towards the condition not only of “earning his subsistence by
-some kind of labour,” but of “living on all its sides the life natural
-and proper to mankind,” his capacity to appreciate true art tends to
-increase. On the other hand, when a class settles down into an
-artificial way of life,—loses touch with nature, becomes confused in its
-perceptions of what is good and what is bad, and prefers the condition
-of a parasite to that of a producer,—its capacity to appreciate true art
-must diminish. Having lost all clear perception of the meaning of life,
-such people are necessarily left without any criterion which will enable
-them to distinguish good from bad art, and they are sure to follow
-eagerly after beauty, or “that which pleases them.”
-
-The artists of our society can usually only reach people of the upper
-and middle classes. But who is the great artist?—he who delights a
-select audience of his own day and class, or he whose works link
-generation to generation and race to race in a common bond of feeling?
-Surely art should fulfil its purpose as completely as possible. A work
-of art that united every one with the author, and with one another,
-would be perfect art. Tolstoy, in his emphatic way, speaks of works of
-“universal” art, and (though the profound critics hasten to inform us
-that no work of art ever reached everybody) certainly the more nearly a
-work of art approaches to such expression of feeling that every one may
-be infected by it—the nearer (apart from all question of subject-matter)
-it approaches perfection.
-
-But now as to subject-matter. The subject-matter of art consists of
-feelings which can be spread from man to man, feelings which are
-“contagious” or “infectious.” Is it of no importance _what_ feelings
-increase and multiply among men?
-
-One man feels that submission to the authority of _his_ church, and
-belief in all that it teaches him, is good; another is embued by a sense
-of each man’s duty to think with his own head—to use for his guidance in
-life the reason and conscience given to him. One man feels that his
-nation _ought to_ wipe out in blood the shame of a defeat inflicted on
-her; another feels that we are brothers, sons of one spirit, and that
-the slaughter of man by man is always wrong. One man feels that the most
-desirable thing in life is the satisfaction obtainable by the love of
-women; another man feels that sex-love is an entanglement and a snare,
-hindering his real work in life. And each of these, if he possess an
-artist’s gift of expression, and if the feeling be really his own and
-sincere, may infect other men. But some of these feelings will benefit
-and some will harm mankind, and the more widely they are spread the
-greater will be their effect.
-
-Art unites men. Surely it is desirable that the feelings in which it
-unites them should be “the best and highest to which men have risen,” or
-at least should not run contrary to our perception of what makes for the
-well-being of ourselves and of others. And our perception of what makes
-for the well-being of ourselves and of others is what Tolstoy calls our
-“religious perception.”
-
-Therefore the subject-matter of what we, in our day, can esteem as being
-the best art, can be of two kinds only—
-
-(1) Feelings flowing from the highest perception now attainable by man
-of our right relation to our neighbour and to the Source from which we
-come. Dickens’ “Christmas Carol,” uniting us in a more vivid sense of
-compassion and love, is a ready example of such art.
-
-(2) The simple feelings of common life, accessible to every one—provided
-that they are such as do not hinder progress towards well-being. Art of
-this kind makes us realise to how great an extent we already are members
-one of another—sharing the feelings of one common human nature.
-
-The success of a very primitive novel—the story of Joseph, which made
-its way into the sacred books of the Jews, spread from land to land and
-from age to age, and continues to be read to-day among people quite free
-from bibliolatry—shows how nearly “universal” may be the appeal of this
-kind of art. This branch includes all harmless jokes, folk-stories,
-nursery rhymes, and even dolls, if only the author or designer has
-expressed a feeling (tenderness, pleasure, humour, or what not) so as to
-infect others.
-
-But how are we to know what _are_ the “best” feelings? What is good? and
-what is evil? This is decided by “religious perception.” Some such
-perception exists in every human being; there is always something he
-approves of, and something he disapproves of. Reason and conscience are
-always present, active or latent, as long as man lives. Miss Flora Shaw
-tells that the most degraded cannibal she ever met, drew the line at
-eating his own mother—nothing would induce him to entertain the thought,
-his moral sense was revolted by the suggestion. In most societies the
-“religious perception,” to which they have advanced,—the foremost stage
-in mankind’s long march towards perfection, which has been
-discerned,—has been clearly expressed by some one, and more or less
-consciously accepted as an ideal by the many. But there are transition
-periods in history when the worn-out formularies of a past age have
-ceased to satisfy men, or have become so incrusted with superstitions
-that their original brightness is lost. The “religious perception” that
-is dawning may not yet have found such expression as to be generally
-understood, but for all that it exists, and shows itself by compelling
-men to repudiate beliefs that satisfied their forefathers, the outward
-and visible signs of which are still endowed and dominant long after
-their spirit has taken refuge in temples not made with hands.
-
-At such times it is difficult for men to understand each other, for the
-very _words_ needed to express the deepest experiences of men’s
-consciousness mean different things to different men. So among us
-to-day, to many minds _faith_ means _credulity_, and _God_ suggests a
-person of the male sex, father of one only-begotten son, and creator of
-the universe.
-
-This is why Tolstoy’s clear and rational “religious perception,”
-expressed in the books named on a previous page, is frequently spoken of
-by people who have not grasped it, as “mysticism.”
-
-The narrow materialist is shocked to find that Tolstoy will not confine
-himself to the “objective” view of life. Encountering in himself that
-“inner voice” which compels us all to choose between good and evil,
-Tolstoy refuses to be diverted from a matter which is of immediate and
-vital importance to him, by discussions as to the derivation of the
-external manifestations of conscience which biologists are able to
-detect in remote forms of life. The real mystic, on the other hand,
-shrinks from Tolstoy’s desire to try all things by the light of reason,
-to depend on nothing vague, and to accept nothing on authority. The man
-who does not trust his own reason, fears that life thus squarely faced
-will prove less worth having than it is when clothed in mist.
-
-In this work, however, Tolstoy does not recapitulate at length what he
-has said before. He does not pause to re-explain why he condemns
-Patriotism—_i.e._, each man’s preference for the predominance of _his
-own_ country, which leads to the murder of man by man in war; or
-Churches, which are sectarian—_i.e._, which striving to assert that your
-doxy is heterodoxy, but that _our_ doxy is orthodoxy, make external
-authorities (Popes, Bibles, Councils) supreme, and cling to
-superstitions (_their own_ miracles, legends, and myths), thus
-separating themselves from communion with the rest of mankind. Nor does
-he re-explain why he (like Christ) says “pitiable is your plight—ye
-rich,” who live artificial lives, maintainable only by the unbrotherly
-use of force (police and soldiers), but blessed are ye poor—who, by your
-way of life, are within easier reach of brotherly conditions, if you
-will but trust to reason and conscience, and change the direction of
-your hearts and of your labour,—working no more primarily from fear or
-greed, but seeking _first_ the kingdom of righteousness, in which all
-good things will be added unto you. He merely summarises it all in a few
-sentences, defining the “religious perception” of to-day, which alone
-can decide for us “the degree of importance both of the feelings
-transmitted by art and of the information transmitted by science.”
-
-“The religious perception of our time, in its widest and most practical
-application, is the consciousness that our well-being, both material and
-spiritual, individual and collective, temporal and eternal, lies in the
-growth of brotherhood among men—in their loving harmony with one
-another” (p. 159).
-
-And again:
-
-“However differently in form people belonging to our Christian world may
-define the destiny of man; whether they see it in human progress in
-whatever sense of the words, in the union of all men in a socialistic
-realm, or in the establishment of a commune; whether they look forward
-to the union of mankind under the guidance of one universal Church, or
-to the federation of the world,—however various in form their
-definitions of the destination of human life may be, all men in our
-times already admit that the highest well-being attainable by men is to
-be reached by their union with one another” (p. 188).
-
-This is the foundation on which the whole work is based. It follows
-necessarily from this perception that we should consider as most
-important in science “investigations into the results of good and bad
-actions, considerations of the reasonableness or unreasonableness of
-human institutions and beliefs, considerations of how human life should
-be lived in order to obtain the greatest well-being for each; as to what
-one may and ought, and what one cannot and should not believe; how to
-subdue one’s passions, and how to acquire the habit of virtue.” This is
-the science that “occupied Moses, Solon, Socrates, Epictetus, Confucius,
-Mencius, Marcus Aurelius, Spinoza, and all those who have taught men to
-live a moral life,” and it is precisely the kind of scientific
-investigation to which Tolstoy has devoted most of the last twenty
-years, and for the sake of which he is often said to have “abandoned
-art.”
-
-Since science, like art, is a “human activity,” _that_ science best
-deserves our esteem, best deserves to be “chosen, tolerated, approved,
-and diffused,” which treats of what is supremely important to man; which
-deals with urgent, vital, inevitable problems of actual life. Such
-science as this brings “to the consciousness of men the truths that flow
-from the religious perception of our times,” and “indicates the various
-methods of applying this consciousness to life.” “Art should transform
-this perception into feeling.”
-
-The “science” which is occupied in “pouring liquids from one jar into
-another, or analysing the spectrum, or cutting up frogs and porpoises,”
-is no use for rendering such guidance to art, though capable of
-practical applications which, under a more righteous system of society,
-might greatly have lightened the sufferings of mankind.
-
-Naturally enough, the last chapter of the book deals with the relation
-between science and art. And the conclusion is that:
-
-“The destiny of art in our time is to transmit from the realm of reason
-to the realm of feeling the truth that well-being for men consists in
-being united together, and to set up, in place of the existing reign of
-force, that kingdom of God, _i.e._ of love, which we all recognise to be
-the highest aim of human life.”
-
-And this art of the future will not be poorer, but far richer, in
-subject-matter than the art of to-day. From the lullaby—that will
-delight millions of people, generation after generation—to the highest
-religious art, dealing with strong, rich, and varied emotions flowing
-from a fresh outlook upon life and all its problems—the field open for
-good art is enormous. With so much to say that is urgently important to
-all, the art of the future will, in matter of form also, be far superior
-to our art in “clearness, beauty, simplicity, and compression” (p. 194).
-
-For beauty (_i.e._, “that which pleases”)—though it depends on taste,
-and can furnish no _criterion_ for art—will be a natural characteristic
-of work done, not for hire, nor even for fame, but because men, living a
-natural and healthy life, wish to share the “highest spiritual strength
-which passes through them” with the greatest possible number of others.
-The feelings such an artist wishes to share, he will transmit in a way
-that will please him, and will please other men who share his nature.
-
-Morality is in the nature of things—we cannot escape it.
-
-In a society where each man sets himself to obtain wealth, the
-difficulty of obtaining an honest living tends to become greater and
-greater. The more keenly a society pants to obtain “that which pleases,”
-and puts this forward as the first and great consideration, the more
-puerile and worthless will their art become. But in a society which
-sought, primarily, for right relations between its members, an abundance
-would easily be obtainable for all; and when “religious perception”
-guides a people’s art—beauty inevitably results, as has always been the
-case when men have seized a fresh perception of life and of its purpose.
-
- * * * * *
-
-An illustration which Tolstoy struck out of the work while it was being
-printed, may serve to illustrate how, with the aid of the principles
-explained above, we may judge of the merits of any work professing to be
-art.
-
-Take _Romeo and Juliet_. The conventional view is that Shakespear is the
-greatest of artists, and that _Romeo and Juliet_ is one of his good
-plays. Why this is so nobody can tell you. It is so: that is the way
-certain people feel about it. They are “the authorities,” and to doubt
-their dictum is to show that you know nothing about art. Tolstoy does
-not agree with them in their estimate of Shakespear, therefore Tolstoy
-is wrong!
-
-But now let us apply Tolstoy’s view of art to _Romeo and Juliet_. He
-does not deny that it infects. “Let us admit that it is a work of art,
-that it infects (though it is so artificial that it can infect only
-those who have been carefully educated thereunto); but what are the
-feelings it transmits?”
-
-That is to say, judging by the _internal_ test, Tolstoy admits that
-_Romeo and Juliet_ unites him to its author and to other people in
-feeling. But the work is very far from being one of “universal” art—only
-a small minority of people ever have cared, or ever will care, for it.
-Even in England, or even in the layer of European society it is best
-adapted to reach, it only touches a minority, and does not approach the
-universality attained by the story of Joseph and many pieces of
-folk-lore.
-
-But perhaps the subject-matter, the _feeling_ with which _Romeo and
-Juliet_ infects those whom it does reach, lifts it into the class of the
-highest religious art? Not so. The feeling is one of the attractiveness
-of “love at first sight.” A girl fourteen years old and a young man meet
-at an aristocratic party, where there is feasting and pleasure and
-idleness, and, without knowing each other’s minds, they fall in love as
-the birds and beasts do. If any feeling is transmitted to us, it is the
-feeling that there _is_ a pleasure in these things. Somewhere, in most
-natures, there dwells, dominant or dormant, an inclination to let such
-physical sexual attraction guide our course in life. To give it a plain
-name, it is “sensuality.” “How can I, father or mother of a daughter of
-Juliet’s age, wish that those foul feelings which the play transmits
-should be communicated to my daughter? And if the feelings transmitted
-by the play are bad, how can I call it good in subject-matter?”
-
-But, objects a friend, the _moral_ of _Romeo and Juliet_ is excellent.
-See what disasters followed from the physical “love at first sight.” But
-that is quite another matter. It is the feelings with which you are
-infected when reading, and not any moral you can deduce, that is
-subject-matter of art. Pondering upon the consequences that flow from
-Romeo and Juliet’s behaviour may belong to the domain of moral science,
-but not to that of art.
-
-I have hesitated to use an illustration Tolstoy had struck out, but I
-think it serves its purpose. No doubt there are other, subordinate,
-feelings (_e.g._ humour) to be found in _Romeo and Juliet_; but many
-quaint conceits that are ingenious, and have been much admired, are not,
-I think, infectious.
-
-Tried by such tests, the enormous majority of the things we have been
-taught to consider great works of art are found wanting. Either they
-fail to infect (and attract merely by being interesting, realistic,
-effectful, or by borrowing from others), and are therefore not works of
-art at all; or they are works of “exclusive art,” bad in form and
-capable of infecting only a select audience trained and habituated to
-such inferior art; or they are bad in subject-matter, transmitting
-feelings harmful to mankind.
-
-Tolstoy does not shrink from condemning his own artistic productions;
-with the exception of two short stories, he tells us they are works of
-bad art. Take, for instance, the novel _Resurrection_, which is now
-appearing, and of which he has, somewhere, spoken disparagingly, as
-being “written in my former style,” and being therefore bad art. What
-does this mean? The book is a masterpiece in its own line; it is eagerly
-read in many languages; it undoubtedly infects its readers, and the
-feelings transmitted are, in the main, such as Tolstoy approves of—in
-fact, they are the feelings to which his religious perception has
-brought him. If lust is felt in one chapter, the reaction follows as
-inevitably as in real life, and is transmitted with great artistic
-power. Why a work of such rare merit does not satisfy Tolstoy, is
-because it is a work of “exclusive art,” laden with details of time and
-place. It has not the “simplicity and compression” necessary in works of
-“universal” art. Things are mentioned which might apparently be quite
-well omitted. The style, also, is not one of great simplicity; the
-sentences are often long and involved, as is commonly the case in
-Tolstoy’s writings. It is a novel appealing mainly to the class that has
-leisure for novel reading because it neglects to produce its own food,
-make its own clothes, or build its own houses. If Tolstoy is stringent
-in his judgment of other artists, he is more stringent still in his
-judgment of his own artistic works. Had _Resurrection_ been written by
-Dickens, or by Hugo, Tolstoy would, I think, have found a place for it
-(with whatever reservations) among the examples of religious art. For
-indeed, strive as we may to be clear and explicit, our approval and
-disapproval is a matter of degree. The thought which underlay the
-remark: “Why callest thou me good? none is good, save one, even God,”
-applies not to man only, but to all things human.
-
-_What is Art?_ itself is a work of science—though many passages, and
-even some whole chapters, appeal to us as works of art, and we feel the
-contagion of the author’s hope, his anxiety to serve the cause of truth
-and love, his indignation (sometimes rather sharply expressed) with what
-blocks the path of advance, and his contempt for much that the “cultured
-crowd,” in our erudite, perverted society, have persuaded themselves,
-and would fain persuade others, is the highest art.
-
-One result which follows inevitably from Tolstoy’s view (and which
-illustrates how widely his views differ from the fashionable æsthetic
-mysticism), is that art is not stationary but progressive. It is true
-that our highest religious perception found expression eighteen hundred
-years ago, and then served as the basis of an art which is still
-unmatched; and similar cases can be instanced from the East. But
-allowing for such great exceptions,—to which, not inaptly, the term of
-“inspiration” has been specially applied,—the subject-matter of art
-improves, though long periods of time may have to be considered in order
-to make this obvious. Our power of verbal expression, for instance, may
-now be no better than it was in the days of David, but we must no longer
-esteem as good _in subject-matter_ poems which appeal to the Eternal to
-destroy a man’s private or national foes; for we have reached a
-“religious perception” which bids us have no foes, and the ultimate
-source (undefinable by us) from which this consciousness has come, is
-what we mean when we speak of God.
-
-AYLMER MAUDE.
-
-Wickham’s Farm,
-Near Danbury, Essex,
-_23rd March 1899_.
-
-Footnote 1:
-
- Bolton Hall has recently published a little work, _Life, and Love, and
- Death_, with the object of making the philosophy contained in _On
- Life_ more easily accessible in English.
-
-
-
-
- The Author’s Preface
-
-
-This book of mine, “What is Art?” appears now for the first time in its
-true form. More than one edition has already been issued in Russia, but
-in each case it has been so mutilated by the “Censor,” that I request
-all who are interested in my views on art only to judge of them by the
-work in its present shape. The causes which led to the publication of
-the book—with my name attached to it—in a mutilated form, were the
-following:—In accordance with a decision I arrived at long ago,—not to
-submit my writings to the “Censorship” (which I consider to be an
-immoral and irrational institution), but to print them only in the shape
-in which they were written,—I intended not to attempt to print this work
-in Russia. However, my good acquaintance Professor Grote, editor of a
-Moscow psychological magazine, having heard of the contents of my work,
-asked me to print it in his magazine, and promised me that he would get
-the book through the “Censor’s” office unmutilated if I would but agree
-to a few very unimportant alterations, merely toning down certain
-expressions. I was weak enough to agree to this, and it has resulted in
-a book appearing, under my name, from which not only have some essential
-thoughts been excluded, but into which the thoughts of other men—even
-thoughts utterly opposed to my own convictions—have been introduced.
-
-The thing occurred in this way. First, Grote softened my expressions,
-and in some cases weakened them. For instance, he replaced the words:
-_always_ by _sometimes_, _all_ by _some_, _Church_ religion by _Roman
-Catholic_ religion, “_Mother of God_” by _Madonna_, _patriotism_ by
-_pseudo-patriotism_, _palaces_ by _palatii_,[2] etc., and I did not
-consider it necessary to protest. But when the book was already in type,
-the Censor required that whole sentences should be altered, and that
-instead of what I said about the evil of landed property, a remark
-should be substituted on the evils of a landless proletariat.[3] I
-agreed to this also and to some further alterations. It seemed not worth
-while to upset the whole affair for the sake of one sentence, and when
-one alteration had been agreed to it seemed not worth while to protest
-against a second and a third. So, little by little, expressions crept
-into the book which altered the sense and attributed things to me that I
-could not have wished to say. So that by the time the book was printed
-it had been deprived of some part of its integrity and sincerity. But
-there was consolation in the thought that the book, even in this form,
-if it contains something that is good, would be of use to Russian
-readers whom it would otherwise not have reached. Things, however,
-turned out otherwise. _Nous comptions sans notre hôte._ After the legal
-term of four days had already elapsed, the book was seized, and, on
-instructions received from Petersburg, it was handed over to the
-“Spiritual Censor.” Then Grote declined all further participation in the
-affair, and the “Spiritual Censor” proceeded to do what he would with
-the book. The “Spiritual Censorship” is one of the most ignorant, venal,
-stupid, and despotic institutions in Russia. Books which disagree in any
-way with the recognised state religion of Russia, if once it gets hold
-of them, are almost always totally suppressed and burnt; which is what
-happened to all my religious works when attempts were made to print them
-in Russia. Probably a similar fate would have overtaken this work also,
-had not the editors of the magazine employed all means to save it. The
-result of their efforts was that the “Spiritual Censor,” a priest who
-probably understands art and is interested in art as much as I
-understand or am interested in church services, but who gets a good
-salary for destroying whatever is likely to displease his superiors,
-struck out all that seemed to him to endanger his position, and
-substituted his thoughts for mine wherever he considered it necessary to
-do so. For instance, where I speak of Christ going to the Cross for the
-sake of the truth He professed, the “Censor” substituted a statement
-that Christ died for mankind, _i.e._ he attributed to me an assertion of
-the dogma of the Redemption, which I consider to be one of the most
-untrue and harmful of Church dogmas. After correcting the book in this
-way, the “Spiritual Censor” allowed it to be printed.
-
-To protest in Russia is impossible, no newspaper would publish such a
-protest, and to withdraw my book from the magazine and place the editor
-in an awkward position with the public was also not possible.
-
-So the matter has remained. A book has appeared under my name containing
-thoughts attributed to me which are not mine.
-
-I was persuaded to give my article to a Russian magazine, in order that
-my thoughts, which may be useful, should become the possession of
-Russian readers; and the result has been that my name is affixed to a
-work from which it might be assumed that I quite arbitrarily assert
-things contrary to the general opinion, without adducing my reasons;
-that I only consider false patriotism bad, but patriotism in general a
-very good feeling; that I merely deny the absurdities of the Roman
-Catholic Church and disbelieve in the Madonna, but that I believe in the
-Orthodox Eastern faith and in the “Mother of God”; that I consider all
-the writings collected in the Bible to be holy books, and see the chief
-importance of Christ’s life in the Redemption of mankind by his death.
-
-I have narrated all this in such detail because it strikingly
-illustrates the indubitable truth, that all compromise with institutions
-of which your conscience disapproves,—compromises which are usually made
-for the sake of the general good,—instead of producing the good you
-expected, inevitably lead you not only to acknowledge the institution
-you disapprove of, but also to participate in the evil that institution
-produces.
-
-I am glad to be able by this statement at least to do something to
-correct the error into which I was led by my compromise.
-
-I have also to mention that besides reinstating the parts excluded by
-the Censor from the Russian editions, other corrections and additions of
-importance have been made in this edition.
-
-LEO TOLSTOY.
-
-_29th March 1898._
-
-Footnote 2:
-
- Tolstoy’s remarks on Church religion were re-worded so as to seem to
- relate only to the Western Church, and his disapproval of luxurious
- life was made to apply not, say, to Queen Victoria or Nicholas II.,
- but to the Cæsars or the Pharaohs.—Trans.
-
-Footnote 3:
-
- The Russian peasant is usually a member of a village commune, and has
- therefore a right to a share in the land belonging to the village.
- Tolstoy disapproves of the order of society which allows less land for
- the support of a whole village full of people than is sometimes owned
- by a single landed proprietor. The “Censor” will not allow disapproval
- of this state of things to be expressed, but is prepared to admit that
- the laws and customs, say, of England—where a yet more extreme form of
- landed property exists, and the men who actually labour on the land
- usually possess none of it—deserve criticism.—Trans.
-
-
-
-
- Contents
-
-
-INTRODUCTION v
-
-AUTHOR’S PREFACE xxxiii
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-Time and labour spent on art—Lives stunted in its service—Morality
-sacrificed to and anger justified by art—The rehearsal of an opera
-described 1
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-Does art compensate for so much evil?—What is art?—Confusion of
-opinions—Is it “that which produces beauty”?—The word “beauty” in
-Russian—Chaos in æsthetics 9
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-Summary of various æsthetic theories and definitions, from Baumgarten to
-to-day 20
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-Definitions of art founded on beauty—Taste not definable—A clear
-definition needed to enable us to recognise works of art 38
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-Definitions not founded on beauty—Tolstoy’s definition—The extent and
-necessity of art—How people in the past have distinguished good from bad
-in art 46
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-How art for pleasure has come into esteem—Religions indicate what is
-considered good and bad—Church Christianity—The Renaissance—Scepticism
-of the upper classes—They confound beauty with goodness 53
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-An æsthetic theory framed to suit this view of life 61
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-Who have adopted it?—Real art needful for all men—Our art too expensive,
-too unintelligible, and too harmful for the masses—The theory of “the
-elect” in art 67
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-Perversion of our art—It has lost its natural subject-matter—Has no flow
-of fresh feeling—Transmits chiefly three base emotions 73
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-Loss of comprehensibility—Decadent art—Recent French art—Have we a right
-to say it is bad and that what we like is good art?—The highest art has
-always been comprehensible to normal people—What fails to infect normal
-people is not art 79
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-Counterfeits of art produced by: Borrowing; Imitating; Striking;
-Interesting—Qualifications needful for production of real works of art,
-and those sufficient for production of counterfeits 106
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-Causes of production of counterfeits—Professionalism—Criticism—Schools
-of art 118
-
-CHAPTER XIII
-
-Wagner’s “Nibelung’s Ring” a type of counterfeit art—Its success, and
-the reasons thereof 128
-
-CHAPTER XIV
-
-Truths fatal to preconceived views are not readily recognised—Proportion
-of works of art to counterfeits—Perversion of taste and incapacity to
-recognise art—Examples 143
-
-CHAPTER XV
-
-=The quality of art, considered apart from its subject-matter=—The sign
-of art: infectiousness—Incomprehensible to those whose taste is
-perverted—Conditions of infection: Individuality; Clearness; Sincerity
-152
-
-CHAPTER XVI
-
-=The quality of art, considered according to its subject-matter=—The
-better the feeling the better the art—The cultured crowd—The religious
-perception of our age—The new ideals put fresh demands to art—Art
-unites—Religious art—Universal art—Both co-operate to one result—The new
-appraisement of art—Bad art—Examples of art—How to test a work claiming
-to be art 156
-
-CHAPTER XVII
-
-Results of absence of true art—Results of perversion of art: Labour and
-lives spent on what is useless and harmful—The abnormal life of the
-rich—Perplexity of children and plain folk—Confusion of right and
-wrong—Nietzsche and Redbeard—Superstition, Patriotism, and Sensuality
-175
-
-CHAPTER XVIII
-
-The purpose of human life is the brotherly union of man—Art must be
-guided by this perception 187
-
-CHAPTER XIX
-
-The art of the future not a possession of a select minority, but a means
-towards perfection and unity 192
-
-CHAPTER XX
-
-The connection between science and art—The mendacious sciences; the
-trivial sciences—Science should deal with the great problems of human
-life, and serve as a basis for art 200
-
-
-
-
- APPENDICES
-
-Appendix I 215
-
-Appendix II 218
-
-Appendix III 226
-
-Appendix IV 232
-
-
-
-
- What is Art?
-
-
-Take up any one of our ordinary newspapers, and you will find a part
-devoted to the theatre and music. In almost every number you will find a
-description of some art exhibition, or of some particular picture, and
-you will always find reviews of new works of art that have appeared, of
-volumes of poems, of short stories, or of novels.
-
-Promptly, and in detail, as soon as it has occurred, an account is
-published of how such and such an actress or actor played this or that
-rôle in such and such a drama, comedy, or opera; and of the merits of
-the performance, as well as of the contents of the new drama, comedy, or
-opera, with its defects and merits. With as much care and detail, or
-even more, we are told how such and such an artist has sung a certain
-piece, or has played it on the piano or violin, and what were the merits
-and defects of the piece and of the performance. In every large town
-there is sure to be at least one, if not more than one, exhibition of
-new pictures, the merits and defects of which are discussed in the
-utmost detail by critics and connoisseurs.
-
-New novels and poems, in separate volumes or in the magazines, appear
-almost every day, and the newspapers consider it their duty to give
-their readers detailed accounts of these artistic productions.
-
-For the support of art in Russia (where for the education of the people
-only a hundredth part is spent of what would be required to give
-everyone the opportunity of instruction) the Government grants millions
-of roubles in subsidies to academies, conservatoires and theatres. In
-France twenty million francs are assigned for art, and similar grants
-are made in Germany and England.
-
-In every large town enormous buildings are erected for museums,
-academies, conservatoires, dramatic schools, and for performances and
-concerts. Hundreds of thousands of workmen,—carpenters, masons,
-painters, joiners, paperhangers, tailors, hairdressers, jewellers,
-moulders, type-setters,—spend their whole lives in hard labour to
-satisfy the demands of art, so that hardly any other department of human
-activity, except the military, consumes so much energy as this.
-
-Not only is enormous labour spent on this activity, but in it, as in
-war, the very lives of men are sacrificed. Hundreds of thousands of
-people devote their lives from childhood to learning to twirl their legs
-rapidly (dancers), or to touch notes and strings very rapidly
-(musicians), or to draw with paint and represent what they see
-(artists), or to turn every phrase inside out and find a rhyme to every
-word. And these people, often very kind and clever, and capable of all
-sorts of useful labour, grow savage over their specialised and
-stupefying occupations, and become one-sided and self-complacent
-specialists, dull to all the serious phenomena of life, and skilful only
-at rapidly twisting their legs, their tongues, or their fingers.
-
-But even this stunting of human life is not the worst. I remember being
-once at the rehearsal of one of the most ordinary of the new operas
-which are produced at all the opera houses of Europe and America.
-
-I arrived when the first act had already commenced. To reach the
-auditorium I had to pass through the stage entrance. By dark entrances
-and passages, I was led through the vaults of an enormous building past
-immense machines for changing the scenery and for illuminating; and
-there in the gloom and dust I saw workmen busily engaged. One of these
-men, pale, haggard, in a dirty blouse, with dirty, work-worn hands and
-cramped fingers, evidently tired and out of humour, went past me,
-angrily scolding another man. Ascending by a dark stair, I came out on
-the boards behind the scenes. Amid various poles and rings and scattered
-scenery, decorations and curtains, stood and moved dozens, if not
-hundreds, of painted and dressed-up men, in costumes fitting tight to
-their thighs and calves, and also women, as usual, as nearly nude as
-might be. These were all singers, or members of the chorus, or
-ballet-dancers, awaiting their turns. My guide led me across the stage
-and, by means of a bridge of boards, across the orchestra (in which
-perhaps a hundred musicians of all kinds, from kettle-drum to flute and
-harp, were seated), to the dark pit-stalls.
-
-On an elevation, between two lamps with reflectors, and in an arm-chair
-placed before a music-stand, sat the director of the musical part,
-_bâton_ in hand, managing the orchestra and singers, and, in general,
-the production of the whole opera.
-
-The performance had already commenced, and on the stage a procession of
-Indians who had brought home a bride was being represented. Besides men
-and women in costume, two other men in ordinary clothes bustled and ran
-about on the stage; one was the director of the dramatic part, and the
-other, who stepped about in soft shoes and ran from place to place with
-unusual agility, was the dancing-master, whose salary per month exceeded
-what ten labourers earn in a year.
-
-These three directors arranged the singing, the orchestra, and the
-procession. The procession, as usual, was enacted by couples, with
-tinfoil halberds on their shoulders. They all came from one place, and
-walked round and round again, and then stopped. The procession took a
-long time to arrange: first the Indians with halberds came on too late;
-then too soon; then at the right time, but crowded together at the exit;
-then they did not crowd, but arranged themselves badly at the sides of
-the stage; and each time the whole performance was stopped and
-recommenced from the beginning. The procession was introduced by a
-recitative, delivered by a man dressed up like some variety of Turk,
-who, opening his mouth in a curious way, sang, “Home I bring the
-bri-i-ide.” He sings and waves his arm (which is of course bare) from
-under his mantle. The procession commences, but here the French horn, in
-the accompaniment of the recitative, does something wrong; and the
-director, with a shudder as if some catastrophe had occurred, raps with
-his stick on the stand. All is stopped, and the director, turning to the
-orchestra, attacks the French horn, scolding him in the rudest terms, as
-cabmen abuse each other, for taking the wrong note. And again the whole
-thing recommences. The Indians with their halberds again come on,
-treading softly in their extraordinary boots; again the singer sings,
-“Home I bring the bri-i-ide.” But here the pairs get too close together.
-More raps with the stick, more scolding, and a recommencement. Again,
-“Home I bring the bri-i-ide,” again the same gesticulation with the bare
-arm from under the mantle, and again the couples, treading softly with
-halberds on their shoulders, some with sad and serious faces, some
-talking and smiling, arrange themselves in a circle and begin to sing.
-All seems to be going well, but again the stick raps, and the director,
-in a distressed and angry voice, begins to scold the men and women of
-the chorus. It appears that when singing they had omitted to raise their
-hands from time to time in sign of animation. “Are you all dead, or
-what? Cows that you are! Are you corpses, that you can’t move?” Again
-they re-commence, “Home I bring the bri-i-ide,” and again, with
-sorrowful faces, the chorus women sing, first one and then another of
-them raising their hands. But two chorus-girls speak to each
-other,—again a more vehement rapping with the stick. “Have you come here
-to talk? Can’t you gossip at home? You there in red breeches, come
-nearer. Look towards me! Recommence!” Again, “Home I bring the
-bri-i-ide.” And so it goes on for one, two, three hours. The whole of
-such a rehearsal lasts six hours on end. Raps with the stick,
-repetitions, placings, corrections of the singers, of the orchestra, of
-the procession, of the dancers,—all seasoned with angry scolding. I
-heard the words, “asses,” “fools,” “idiots,” “swine,” addressed to the
-musicians and singers at least forty times in the course of one hour.
-And the unhappy individual to whom the abuse is addressed,—flautist,
-horn-blower, or singer,—physically and mentally demoralised, does not
-reply, and does what is demanded of him. Twenty times is repeated the
-one phrase, “Home I bring the bri-i-ide,” and twenty times the striding
-about in yellow shoes with a halberd over the shoulder. The conductor
-knows that these people are so demoralised that they are no longer fit
-for anything but to blow trumpets and walk about with halberds and in
-yellow shoes, and that they are also accustomed to dainty, easy living,
-so that they will put up with anything rather than lose their luxurious
-life. He therefore gives free vent to his churlishness, especially as he
-has seen the same thing done in Paris and Vienna, and knows that this is
-the way the best conductors behave, and that it is a musical tradition
-of great artists to be so carried away by the great business of their
-art that they cannot pause to consider the feelings of other artists.
-
-It would be difficult to find a more repulsive sight. I have seen one
-workman abuse another for not supporting the weight piled upon him when
-goods were being unloaded, or, at hay-stacking, the village elder scold
-a peasant for not making the rick right, and the man submitted in
-silence. And, however unpleasant it was to witness the scene, the
-unpleasantness was lessened by the consciousness that the business in
-hand was needful and important, and that the fault for which the
-head-man scolded the labourer was one which might spoil a needful
-undertaking.
-
-But what was being done here? For what, and for whom? Very likely the
-conductor was tired out, like the workman I passed in the vaults; it was
-even evident that he was; but who made him tire himself? And for what
-was he tiring himself? The opera he was rehearsing was one of the most
-ordinary of operas for people who are accustomed to them, but also one
-of the most gigantic absurdities that could possibly be devised. An
-Indian king wants to marry; they bring him a bride; he disguises himself
-as a minstrel; the bride falls in love with the minstrel and is in
-despair, but afterwards discovers that the minstrel is the king, and
-everyone is highly delighted.
-
-That there never were, or could be, such Indians, and that they were not
-only unlike Indians, but that what they were doing was unlike anything
-on earth except other operas, was beyond all manner of doubt; that
-people do not converse in such a way as recitative, and do not place
-themselves at fixed distances, in a quartet, waving their arms to
-express their emotions; that nowhere, except in theatres, do people walk
-about in such a manner, in pairs, with tinfoil halberds and in slippers;
-that no one ever gets angry in such a way, or is affected in such a way,
-or laughs in such a way, or cries in such a way; and that no one on
-earth can be moved by such performances; all this is beyond the
-possibility of doubt.
-
-Instinctively the question presents itself—For whom is this being done?
-Whom _can_ it please? If there are, occasionally, good melodies in the
-opera, to which it is pleasant to listen, they could have been sung
-simply, without these stupid costumes and all the processions and
-recitatives and hand-wavings.
-
-The ballet, in which half-naked women make voluptuous movements,
-twisting themselves into various sensual wreathings, is simply a lewd
-performance.
-
-So one is quite at a loss as to whom these things are done for. The man
-of culture is heartily sick of them, while to a real working man they
-are utterly incomprehensible. If anyone can be pleased by these things
-(which is doubtful), it can only be some young footman or depraved
-artisan, who has contracted the spirit of the upper classes but is not
-yet satiated with their amusements, and wishes to show his breeding.
-
-And all this nasty folly is prepared, not simply, nor with kindly
-merriment, but with anger and brutal cruelty.
-
-It is said that it is all done for the sake of art, and that art is a
-very important thing. But is it true that art is so important that such
-sacrifices should be made for its sake? This question is especially
-urgent, because art, for the sake of which the labour of millions, the
-lives of men, and above all, love between man and man, are being
-sacrificed,—this very art is becoming something more and more vague and
-uncertain to human perception.
-
-Criticism, in which the lovers of art used to find support for their
-opinions, has latterly become so self-contradictory, that, if we exclude
-from the domain of art all that to which the critics of various schools
-themselves deny the title, there is scarcely any art left.
-
-The artists of various sects, like the theologians of the various sects,
-mutually exclude and destroy themselves. Listen to the artists of the
-schools of our times, and you will find, in all branches, each set of
-artists disowning others. In poetry the old romanticists deny the
-parnassians and the decadents; the parnassians disown the romanticists
-and the decadents; the decadents disown all their predecessors and the
-symbolists; the symbolists disown all their predecessors and _les
-mages_; and _les mages_ disown all, all their predecessors. Among
-novelists we have naturalists, psychologists, and “nature-ists,” all
-rejecting each other. And it is the same in dramatic art, in painting
-and in music. So that art, which demands such tremendous
-labour-sacrifices from the people, which stunts human lives and
-transgresses against human love, is not only _not_ a thing clearly and
-firmly defined, but is understood in such contradictory ways by its own
-devotees that it is difficult to say what is meant by art, and
-especially what is good, useful art,—art for the sake of which we might
-condone such sacrifices as are being offered at its shrine.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II
-
-
-For the production of every ballet, circus, opera, operetta, exhibition,
-picture, concert, or printed book, the intense and unwilling labour of
-thousands and thousands of people is needed at what is often harmful and
-humiliating work. It were well if artists made all they require for
-themselves, but, as it is, they all need the help of workmen, not only
-to produce art, but also for their own usually luxurious maintenance.
-And, one way or other, they get it; either through payments from rich
-people, or through subsidies given by Government (in Russia, for
-instance, in grants of millions of roubles to theatres, conservatoires
-and academies). This money is collected from the people, some of whom
-have to sell their only cow to pay the tax, and who never get those
-æsthetic pleasures which art gives.
-
-It was all very well for a Greek or Roman artist, or even for a Russian
-artist of the first half of our century (when there were still slaves,
-and it was considered right that there should be), with a quiet mind to
-make people serve him and his art; but in our day, when in all men there
-is at least some dim perception of the equal rights of all, it is
-impossible to constrain people to labour unwillingly for art, without
-first deciding the question whether it is true that art is so good and
-so important an affair as to redeem this evil.
-
-If not, we have the terrible probability to consider, that while fearful
-sacrifices of the labour and lives of men, and of morality itself, are
-being made to art, that same art may be not only useless but even
-harmful.
-
-And therefore it is necessary for a society in which works of art arise
-and are supported, to find out whether all that professes to be art is
-really art; whether (as is presupposed in our society) all that which is
-art is good; and whether it is important and worth those sacrifices
-which it necessitates. It is still more necessary for every
-conscientious artist to know this, that he may be sure that all he does
-has a valid meaning; that it is not merely an infatuation of the small
-circle of people among whom he lives which excites in him the false
-assurance that he is doing a good work; and that what he takes from
-others for the support of his often very luxurious life, will be
-compensated for by those productions at which he works. And that is why
-answers to the above questions are especially important in our time.
-
-What is this art, which is considered so important and necessary for
-humanity that for its sake these sacrifices of labour, of human life,
-and even of goodness may be made?
-
-“What is art? What a question! Art is architecture, sculpture, painting,
-music, and poetry in all its forms,” usually replies the ordinary man,
-the art amateur, or even the artist himself, imagining the matter about
-which he is talking to be perfectly clear, and uniformly understood by
-everybody. But in architecture, one inquires further, are there not
-simple buildings which are not objects of art, and buildings with
-artistic pretensions which are unsuccessful and ugly and therefore
-cannot be considered as works of art? wherein lies the characteristic
-sign of a work of art?
-
-It is the same in sculpture, in music, and in poetry. Art, in all its
-forms, is bounded on one side by the practically useful and on the other
-by unsuccessful attempts at art. How is art to be marked off from each
-of these? The ordinary educated man of our circle, and even the artist
-who has not occupied himself especially with æsthetics, will not
-hesitate at this question either. He thinks the solution has been found
-long ago, and is well known to everyone.
-
-“Art is such activity as produces beauty,” says such a man.
-
-If art consists in that, then is a ballet or an operetta art? you
-inquire.
-
-“Yes,” says the ordinary man, though with some hesitation, “a good
-ballet or a graceful operetta is also art, in so far as it manifests
-beauty.”
-
-But without even asking the ordinary man what differentiates the “good”
-ballet and the “graceful” operetta from their opposites (a question he
-would have much difficulty in answering), if you ask him whether the
-activity of costumiers and hairdressers, who ornament the figures and
-faces of the women for the ballet and the operetta, is art; or the
-activity of Worth, the dressmaker; of scent-makers and men-cooks, then
-he will, in most cases, deny that their activity belongs to the sphere
-of art. But in this the ordinary man makes a mistake, just because he is
-an ordinary man and not a specialist, and because he has not occupied
-himself with æsthetic questions. Had he looked into these matters, he
-would have seen in the great Renan’s book, _Marc Aurele_, a dissertation
-showing that the tailor’s work is art, and that those who do not see in
-the adornment of woman an affair of the highest art are very
-small-minded and dull. “_C’est le grand art_” says Renan. Moreover, he
-would have known that in many æsthetic systems—for instance, in the
-æsthetics of the learned Professor Kralik, _Weltschönheit_, _Versuch
-einer allgemeinen Æsthetik_, _von Richard Kralik_, and in _Les problèmes
-de l’Esthétique Contemporaine_, by Guyau—the arts of costume, of taste,
-and of touch are included.
-
-“_Es Folgt nun ein Fünfblatt von Künsten, die der subjectiven
-Sinnlichkeit entkeimen_” (There results then a pentafoliate of arts,
-growing out of the subjective perceptions), says Kralik (p. 175). “_Sie
-sind die ästhetische Behandlung der fünf Sinne._” (They are the æsthetic
-treatment of the five senses.)
-
-These five arts are the following:—
-
-_Die Kunst des Geschmacksinns_—The art of the sense of taste (p. 175).
-
-_Die Kunst des Geruchsinns_—The art of the sense of smell (p. 177).
-
-_Die Kunst des Tastsinns_—The art of the sense of touch (p. 180).
-
-_Die Kunst des Gehörsinns_—The art of the sense of hearing (p. 182).
-
-_Die Kunst des Gesichtsinns_—The art of the sense of sight (p. 184).
-
-Of the first of these—_die Kunst des Geschmacksinns_—he says: “_Man hält
-zwar gewöhnlich nur zwei oder höchstens drei Sinne für würdig, den Stoff
-künstlerischer Behandlung abzugeben, aber ich glaube nur mit bedingtem
-Recht. Ich will kein allzugrosses Gewicht darauf legen, dass der gemeine
-Sprachgebrauch manch andere Künste, wie zum Beispiel die Kochkunst
-kennt._”[4]
-
-And further: “_Und es ist doch gewiss eine ästhetische Leistung, wenn es
-der Kochkunst gelingt aus einem thierischen Kadaver einen Gegenstand des
-Geschmacks in jedem Sinne zu machen. Der Grundsatz der Kunst des
-Geschmacksinns (die weiter ist als die sogenannte Kochkunst) ist also
-dieser: Es soll alles Geniessbare als Sinnbild einer Idee behandelt
-werden und in jedesmaligem Einklang zur auszudrückenden Idee._”[5]
-
-This author, like Renan, acknowledges a _Kostümkunst_ (Art of Costume)
-(p. 200), etc.
-
-Such is also the opinion of the French writer, Guyau, who is highly
-esteemed by some authors of our day. In his book, _Les problèmes de
-l’esthétique contemporaine_, he speaks seriously of touch, taste, and
-smell as giving, or being capable of giving, aesthetic impressions: “_Si
-la couleur manque au toucher, il nous fournit en revanche une notion que
-l’œil seul ne peut nous donner, et qui a une valeur esthétique
-considérable, celle du doux, du soyeux du poli. Ce qui caractérise la
-beauté du velours, c’est sa douceur au toucher non moins que son
-brillant. Dans l’idée que nous nous faisons de la beauté d’une femme, le
-velouté de sa peau entre comme élément essentiel._”
-
-“_Chacun de nous probablement avec un peu d’attention se rappellera des
-jouissances du goût, qui out été de véritables jouissances
-esthétiques._”[6] And he recounts how a glass of milk drunk by him in
-the mountains gave him æsthetic enjoyment.
-
-So it turns out that the conception of art as consisting in making
-beauty manifest is not at all so simple as it seemed, especially now,
-when in this conception of beauty are included our sensations of touch
-and taste and smell, as they are by the latest æsthetic writers.
-
-But the ordinary man either does not know, or does not wish to know, all
-this, and is firmly convinced that all questions about art may be simply
-and clearly solved by acknowledging beauty to be the subject-matter of
-art. To him it seems clear and comprehensible that art consists in
-manifesting beauty, and that a reference to beauty will serve to explain
-all questions about art.
-
-But what is this beauty which forms the subject-matter of art? How is it
-defined? What is it?
-
-As is always the case, the more cloudy and confused the conception
-conveyed by a word, with the more _aplomb_ and self-assurance do people
-use that word, pretending that what is understood by it is so simple and
-clear that it is not worth while even to discuss what it actually means.
-
-This is how matters of orthodox religion are usually dealt with, and
-this is how people now deal with the conception of beauty. It is taken
-for granted that what is meant by the word beauty is known and
-understood by everyone. And yet not only is this not known, but, after
-whole mountains of books have been written on the subject by the most
-learned and profound thinkers during one hundred and fifty years (ever
-since Baumgarten founded æsthetics in the year 1750), the question, What
-is beauty? remains to this day quite unsolved, and in each new work on
-æsthetics it is answered in a new way. One of the last books I read on
-æsthetics is a not ill-written booklet by Julius Mithalter, called
-_Rätsel des Schönen_ (The Enigma of the Beautiful). And that title
-precisely expresses the position of the question, What is beauty? After
-thousands of learned men have discussed it during one hundred and fifty
-years, the meaning of the word beauty remains an enigma still. The
-Germans answer the question in their manner, though in a hundred
-different ways. The physiologist-æstheticians, especially the
-Englishmen: Herbert Spencer, Grant Allen and his school, answer it, each
-in his own way; the French eclectics, and the followers of Guyau and
-Taine, also each in his own way; and all these people know all the
-preceding solutions given by Baumgarten, and Kant, and Schelling, and
-Schiller, and Fichte, and Winckelmann, and Lessing, and Hegel, and
-Schopenhauer, and Hartmann, and Schasler, and Cousin, and Lévêque and
-others.
-
-What is this strange conception “beauty,” which seems so simple to those
-who talk without thinking, but in defining which all the philosophers of
-various tendencies and different nationalities can come to no agreement
-during a century and a half? What is this conception of beauty, on which
-the dominant doctrine of art rests?
-
-In Russian, by the word _krasota_ (beauty) we mean only that which
-pleases the sight. And though latterly people have begun to speak of “an
-ugly deed,” or of “beautiful music,” it is not good Russian.
-
-A Russian of the common folk, not knowing foreign languages, will not
-understand you if you tell him that a man who has given his last coat to
-another, or done anything similar, has acted “beautifully,” that a man
-who has cheated another has done an “ugly” action, or that a song is
-“beautiful.”
-
-In Russian a deed may be kind and good, or unkind and bad. Music may be
-pleasant and good, or unpleasant and bad; but there can be no such thing
-as “beautiful” or “ugly” music.
-
-Beautiful may relate to a man, a horse, a house, a view, or a movement.
-Of actions, thoughts, character, or music, if they please us, we may say
-that they are good, or, if they do not please us, that they are not
-good. But beautiful can be used only concerning that which pleases the
-sight. So that the word and conception “good” includes the conception of
-“beautiful,” but the reverse is not the case; the conception “beauty”
-does not include the conception “good.” If we say “good” of an article
-which we value for its appearance, we thereby say that the article is
-beautiful; but if we say it is “beautiful,” it does not at all mean that
-the article is a good one.
-
-Such is the meaning ascribed by the Russian language, and therefore by
-the sense of the people, to the words and conceptions “good” and
-“beautiful.”
-
-In all the European languages, _i.e._ the languages of those nations
-among whom the doctrine has spread that beauty is the essential thing in
-art, the words “beau,” “schön,” “beautiful,” “bello,” etc., while
-keeping their meaning of beautiful in form, have come to also express
-“goodness,” “kindness,” _i.e._ have come to act as substitutes for the
-word “good.”
-
-So that it has become quite natural in those languages to use such
-expressions as “belle ame,” “schöne Gedanken,” of “beautiful deed.”
-Those languages no longer have a suitable word wherewith expressly to
-indicate beauty of form, and have to use a combination of words such as
-“beau par la forme,” “beautiful to look at,” etc., to convey that idea.
-
-Observation of the divergent meanings which the words “beauty” and
-“beautiful” have in Russian on the one hand, and in those European
-languages now permeated by this æsthetic theory on the other hand, shows
-us that the word “beauty” has, among the latter, acquired a special
-meaning, namely, that of “good.”
-
-What is remarkable, moreover, is that since we Russians have begun more
-and more to adopt the European view of art, the same evolution has begun
-to show itself in our language also, and some people speak and write
-quite confidently, and without causing surprise, of beautiful music and
-ugly actions, or even thoughts; whereas forty years ago, when I was
-young, the expressions “beautiful music” and “ugly actions” were not
-only unusual but incomprehensible. Evidently this new meaning given to
-beauty by European thought begins to be assimilated by Russian society.
-
-And what really is this meaning? What is this “beauty” as it is
-understood by the European peoples?
-
-In order to answer this question, I must here quote at least a small
-selection of those definitions of beauty most generally adopted in
-existing æsthetic systems. I especially beg the reader not to be
-overcome by dulness, but to read these extracts through, or, still
-better, to read some one of the erudite æsthetic authors. Not to mention
-the voluminous German æstheticians, a very good book for this purpose
-would be either the German book by Kralik, the English work by Knight,
-or the French one by Lévêque. It is necessary to read one of the learned
-æsthetic writers in order to form at first-hand a conception of the
-variety in opinion and the frightful obscurity which reigns in this
-region of speculation; not, in this important matter, trusting to
-another’s report.
-
-This, for instance, is what the German æsthetician Schasler says in the
-preface to his famous, voluminous, and detailed work on æsthetics:—
-
-“Hardly in any sphere of philosophic science can we find such divergent
-methods of investigation and exposition, amounting even to
-self-contradiction, as in the sphere of æsthetics. On the one hand we
-have elegant phraseology without any substance, characterised in great
-part by most one-sided superficiality; and on the other hand,
-accompanying undeniable profundity of investigation and richness of
-subject-matter, we get a revolting awkwardness of philosophic
-terminology, enfolding the simplest thoughts in an apparel of abstract
-science as though to render them worthy to enter the consecrated palace
-of the system; and finally, between these two methods of investigation
-and exposition, there is a third, forming, as it were, the transition
-from one to the other, a method consisting of eclecticism, now flaunting
-an elegant phraseology and now a pedantic erudition.... A style of
-exposition that falls into none of these three defects but it is truly
-concrete, and, having important matter, expresses it in clear and
-popular philosophic language, can nowhere be found less frequently than
-in the domain of æsthetics.”[7]
-
-It is only necessary, for instance, to read Schasler’s own book to
-convince oneself of the justice of this observation of his.
-
-On the same subject the French writer Véron, in the preface to his very
-good work on æsthetics, says, “_Il n’y a pas de science, qui ait été
-plus que l’esthétique livrée aux rêveries des métaphysiciens. Depuis
-Platon jusqu’ aux doctrines officielles de nos jours, on a fait de l’art
-je ne sais quel amalgame de fantaisies quintessenciées, et de mystères
-transcendantaux qui trouvent leur expression suprême dans la conception
-absolue du Beau idéal, prototype immuable et divin des choses réelles_”
-(_L’esthétique_, 1878, p. 5).[8]
-
-If the reader will only be at the pains to peruse the following
-extracts, defining beauty, taken from the chief writers on æsthetics, he
-may convince himself that this censure is thoroughly deserved.
-
-I shall not quote the definitions of beauty attributed to the
-ancients,—Socrates, Plato, Aristotle, etc., down to Plotinus,—because,
-in reality, the ancients had not that conception of beauty separated
-from goodness which forms the basis and aim of æsthetics in our time. By
-referring the judgments of the ancients on beauty to our conception of
-it, as is usually done in æsthetics, we give the words of the ancients a
-meaning which is not theirs.[9]
-
-Footnote 4:
-
- Only two, or at most three, senses are generally held worthy to supply
- matter for artistic treatment, but I think this opinion is only
- conditionally correct. I will not lay too much stress on the fact that
- our common speech recognises many other arts, as, for instance, the
- art of cookery.
-
-Footnote 5:
-
- And yet it is certainly an æsthetic achievement when the art of
- cooking succeeds in making of an animal’s corpse an object in all
- respects tasteful. The principle of the Art of Taste (which goes
- beyond the so-called Art of Cookery) is therefore this: All that is
- eatable should be treated as the symbol of some Idea, and always in
- harmony with the Idea to be expressed.
-
-Footnote 6:
-
- If the sense of touch lacks colour, it gives us, on the other hand, a
- notion which the eye alone cannot afford, and one of considerable
- æsthetic value, namely, that of _softness_, _silkiness_, _polish_. The
- beauty of velvet is characterised not less by its softness to the
- touch than by its lustre. In the idea we form of a woman’s beauty, the
- softness of her skin enters as an essential element.
-
- Each of us probably, with a little attention, can recall pleasures of
- taste which have been real æsthetic pleasures.
-
-Footnote 7:
-
- M. Schasler, _Kritische Geschichte der Aesthetik_, 1872, vol. i. p.
- 13.
-
-Footnote 8:
-
- There is no science which more than æsthetics has been handed over to
- the reveries of the metaphysicians. From Plato down to the received
- doctrines of our day, people have made of art a strange amalgam of
- quintessential fancies and transcendental mysteries, which find their
- supreme expression in the conception of an absolute ideal Beauty,
- immutable and divine prototype of actual things.
-
-Footnote 9:
-
- See on this matter Benard’s admirable book, _L’esthétique d’Aristote_,
- also Walter’s _Geschichte der Aesthetik im Altertum_.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III
-
-
-I begin with the founder of æsthetics, Baumgarten (1714-1762).
-
-According to Baumgarten,[10] the object of logical knowledge is Truth,
-the object of æsthetic (_i.e._ sensuous) knowledge is Beauty. Beauty is
-the Perfect (the Absolute), recognised through the senses; Truth is the
-Perfect perceived through reason; Goodness is the Perfect reached by
-moral will.
-
-Beauty is defined by Baumgarten as a correspondence, _i.e._ an order of
-the parts in their mutual relations to each other and in their relation
-to the whole. The aim of beauty itself is to please and excite a desire,
-“_Wohlgefallen und Erregung eines Verlangens._” (A position precisely
-the opposite of Kant’s definition of the nature and sign of beauty.)
-
-With reference to the manifestations of beauty, Baumgarten considers
-that the highest embodiment of beauty is seen by us in nature, and he
-therefore thinks that the highest aim of art is to copy nature. (This
-position also is directly contradicted by the conclusions of the latest
-æstheticians.)
-
-Passing over the unimportant followers of Baumgarten,—Maier, Eschenburg,
-and Eberhard,—who only slightly modified the doctrine of their teacher
-by dividing the pleasant from the beautiful, I will quote the
-definitions given by writers who came immediately after Baumgarten, and
-defined beauty quite in another way. These writers were Sulzer,
-Mendelssohn, and Moritz. They, in contradiction to Baumgarten’s main
-position, recognise as the aim of art, not beauty, but goodness. Thus
-Sulzer (1720-1777) says that only that can be considered beautiful which
-contains goodness. According to his theory, the aim of the whole life of
-humanity is welfare in social life. This is attained by the education of
-the moral feelings, to which end art should be subservient. Beauty is
-that which evokes and educates this feeling.
-
-Beauty is understood almost in the same way by Mendelssohn (1729-1786).
-According to him, art is the carrying forward of the beautiful,
-obscurely recognised by feeling, till it becomes the true and good. The
-aim of art is moral perfection.[11]
-
-For the æstheticians of this school, the ideal of beauty is a beautiful
-soul in a beautiful body. So that these æstheticians completely wipe out
-Baumgarten’s division of the Perfect (the Absolute), into the three
-forms of Truth, Goodness, and Beauty; and Beauty is again united with
-the Good and the True.
-
-But this conception is not only not maintained by the later
-æstheticians, but the æsthetic doctrine of Winckelmann arises, again in
-complete opposition. This divides the mission of art from the aim of
-goodness in the sharpest and most positive manner, makes external beauty
-the aim of art, and even limits it to visible beauty.
-
-According to the celebrated work of Winckelmann (1717-1767), the law and
-aim of all art is beauty only, beauty quite separated from and
-independent of goodness. There are three kinds of beauty:—(1) beauty of
-form, (2) beauty of idea, expressing itself in the position of the
-figure (in plastic art), (3) beauty of expression, attainable only when
-the two first conditions are present. This beauty of expression is the
-highest aim of art, and is attained in antique art; modern art should
-therefore aim at imitating ancient art.[12]
-
-Art is similarly understood by Lessing, Herder, and afterwards by Goethe
-and by all the distinguished æstheticians of Germany till Kant, from
-whose day, again, a different conception of art commences.
-
-Native æsthetic theories arose during this period in England, France,
-Italy, and Holland, and they, though not taken from the German, were
-equally cloudy and contradictory. And all these writers, just like the
-German æstheticians, founded their theories on a conception of the
-Beautiful, understanding beauty in the sense of a something existing
-absolutely, and more or less intermingled with Goodness or having one
-and the same root. In England, almost simultaneously with Baumgarten,
-even a little earlier, Shaftesbury, Hutcheson, Home, Burke, Hogarth, and
-others, wrote on art.
-
-According to Shaftesbury (1670-1713), “That which is beautiful is
-harmonious and proportionable, what is harmonious and proportionable is
-true, and what is at once both beautiful and true is of consequence
-agreeable and good.”[13] Beauty, he taught, is recognised by the mind
-only. God is fundamental beauty; beauty and goodness proceed from the
-same fount.
-
-So that, although Shaftesbury regards beauty as being something separate
-from goodness, they again merge into something inseparable.
-
-According to Hutcheson (1694-1747—“Inquiry into the Original of our
-Ideas of Beauty and Virtue”), the aim of art is beauty, the essence of
-which consists in evoking in us the perception of uniformity amid
-variety. In the recognition of what is art we are guided by “an internal
-sense.” This internal sense may be in contradiction to the ethical one.
-So that, according to Hutcheson, beauty does not always correspond with
-goodness, but separates from it and is sometimes contrary to it.[14]
-
-According to Home, Lord Kames (1696-1782), beauty is that which is
-pleasant. Therefore beauty is defined by taste alone. The standard of
-true taste is that the maximum of richness, fulness, strength, and
-variety of impression should be contained in the narrowest limits. That
-is the ideal of a perfect work of art.
-
-According to Burke (1729-1797—“Philosophical Inquiry into the Origin of
-our Ideas of the Sublime and Beautiful”), the sublime and beautiful,
-which are the aim of art, have their origin in the promptings of
-self-preservation and of society. These feelings, examined in their
-source, are means for the maintenance of the race through the
-individual. The first (self-preservation) is attained by nourishment,
-defence, and war; the second (society) by intercourse and propagation.
-Therefore self-defence, and war, which is bound up with it, is the
-source of the sublime; sociability, and the sex-instinct, which is bound
-up with it, is the source of beauty.[15]
-
-Such were the chief English definitions of art and beauty in the
-eighteenth century.
-
-During that period, in France, the writers on art were Père André and
-Batteux, with Diderot, D’Alembert, and, to some extent, Voltaire,
-following later.
-
-According to Père André (“Essai sur le Beau,” 1741), there are three
-kinds of beauty—divine beauty, natural beauty, and artificial
-beauty.[16]
-
-According to Batteux (1713-1780), art consists in imitating the beauty
-of nature, its aim being enjoyment.[17] Such is also Diderot’s
-definition of art.
-
-The French writers, like the English, consider that it is taste that
-decides what is beautiful. And the laws of taste are not only not laid
-down, but it is granted that they cannot be settled. The same view was
-held by D’Alembert and Voltaire.[18]
-
-According to the Italian æsthetician of that period, Pagano, art
-consists in uniting the beauties’ dispersed in nature. The capacity to
-perceive these beauties is taste, the capacity to bring them into one
-whole is artistic genius. Beauty commingles with goodness, so that
-beauty is goodness made visible, and goodness is inner beauty.[19]
-
-According to the opinion of other Italians: Muratori
-(1672-1750),—“_Riflessioni sopra il buon gusto intorno le science e le
-arti_,”—and especially Spaletti,[20]—“_Saggio sopra la bellezza_”
-(1765),—art amounts to an egotistical sensation, founded (as with Burke)
-on the desire for self-preservation and society.
-
-Among Dutch writers, Hemsterhuis (1720-1790), who had an influence on
-the German æstheticians and on Goethe, is remarkable. According to him,
-beauty is that which gives most pleasure, and that gives most pleasure
-which gives us the greatest number of ideas in the shortest time.
-Enjoyment of the beautiful, because it gives the greatest quantity of
-perceptions in the shortest time, is the highest notion to which man can
-attain.[21]
-
-Such were the æsthetic theories outside Germany during the last century.
-In Germany, after Winckelmann, there again arose a completely new
-æsthetic theory, that of Kant (1724-1804), which more than all others
-clears up what this conception of beauty, and consequently of art,
-really amounts to.
-
-The æsthetic teaching of Kant is founded as follows:—Man has a knowledge
-of nature outside him and of himself in nature. In nature, outside
-himself, he seeks for truth; in himself he seeks for goodness. The first
-is an affair of pure reason, the other of practical reason (free-will).
-Besides these two means of perception, there is yet the judging capacity
-(_Urteilskraft_), which forms judgments without reasonings and produces
-pleasure without desire (_Urtheil ohne Begriff und Vergnügen ohne
-Begehren_). This capacity is the basis of æsthetic feeling. Beauty,
-according to Kant, in its subjective meaning is that which, in general
-and necessarily, without reasonings and without practical advantage,
-pleases. In its objective meaning it is the form of a suitable object in
-so far as that object is perceived without any conception of its
-utility.[22]
-
-Beauty is defined in the same way by the followers of Kant, among whom
-was Schiller (1759-1805). According to Schiller, who wrote much on
-æsthetics, the aim of art is, as with Kant, beauty, the source of which
-is pleasure without practical advantage. So that art may be called a
-game, not in the sense of an unimportant occupation, but in the sense of
-a manifestation of the beauties of life itself without other aim than
-that of beauty.[23]
-
-Besides Schiller, the most remarkable of Kant’s followers in the sphere
-of æsthetics was Wilhelm Humboldt, who, though he added nothing to the
-definition of beauty, explained various forms of it,—the drama, music,
-the comic, etc.[24]
-
-After Kant, besides the second-rate philosophers, the writers on
-æsthetics were Fichte, Schelling, Hegel, and their followers. Fichte
-(1762-1814) says that perception of the beautiful proceeds from this:
-the world—_i.e._ nature—has two sides: it is the sum of our limitations,
-and it is the sum of our free idealistic activity. In the first aspect
-the world is limited, in the second aspect it is free. In the first
-aspect every object is limited, distorted, compressed, confined—and we
-see deformity; in the second we perceive its inner completeness,
-vitality, regeneration—and we see beauty. So that the deformity or
-beauty of an object, according to Fichte, depends on the point of view
-of the observer. Beauty therefore exists, not in the world, but in the
-beautiful soul (_schöner Geist_). Art is the manifestation of this
-beautiful soul, and its aim is the education, not only of the mind—that
-is the business of the _savant_; not only of the heart—that is the
-affair of the moral preacher; but of the whole man. And so the
-characteristic of beauty lies, not in anything external, but in the
-presence of a beautiful soul in the artist.[25]
-
-Following Fichte, and in the same direction, Friedrich Schlegel and Adam
-Müller also defined beauty. According to Schlegel (1772—1829), beauty in
-art is understood too incompletely, one-sidedly, and disconnectedly.
-Beauty exists not only in art, but also in nature and in love; so that
-the truly beautiful is expressed by the union of art, nature, and love.
-Therefore, as inseparably one with aesthetic art, Schlegel acknowledges
-moral and philosophic art.[26]
-
-According to Adam Muller (1779-1829), there are two kinds of beauty; the
-one, general beauty, which attracts people as the sun attracts the
-planet—this is found chiefly in antique art—and the other, individual
-beauty, which results from the observer himself becoming a sun
-attracting beauty,—this is the beauty of modern art. A world in which
-all contradictions are harmonised is the highest beauty. Every work of
-art is a reproduction of this universal harmony.[27] The highest art is
-the art of life.[28]
-
-Next after Fichte and his followers came a contemporary of his, the
-philosopher Schelling (1775-1854), who has had a great influence on the
-æsthetic conceptions of our times. According to Schelling’s philosophy,
-art is the production or result of that conception of things by which
-the subject becomes its own object, or the object its own subject.
-Beauty is the perception of the infinite in the finite. And the chief
-characteristic of works of art is unconscious infinity. Art is the
-uniting of the subjective with the objective, of nature with reason, of
-the unconscious with the conscious, and therefore art is the highest
-means of knowledge. Beauty is the contemplation of things in themselves
-as they exist in the prototype (_In den Urbildern_). It is not the
-artist who by his knowledge or skill produces the beautiful, but the
-idea of beauty in him itself produces it.[29]
-
-Of Schelling’s followers the most noticeable was Solger
-(1780-1819—_Vorlesungen über Aesthetik_). According to him, the idea of
-beauty is the fundamental idea of everything. In the world we see only
-distortions of the fundamental idea, but art, by imagination, may lift
-itself to the height of this idea. Art is therefore akin to
-creation.[30]
-
-According to another follower of Schelling, Krause (1781-1832), true,
-positive beauty is the manifestation of the Idea in an individual form;
-art is the actualisation of the beauty existing in the sphere of man’s
-free spirit. The highest stage of art is the art of life, which directs
-its activity towards the adornment of life so that it may be a beautiful
-abode for a beautiful man.[31]
-
-After Schelling and his followers came the new æsthetic doctrine of
-Hegel, which is held to this day, consciously by many, but by the
-majority unconsciously. This teaching is not only no clearer or better
-defined than the preceding ones, but is, if possible, even more cloudy
-and mystical.
-
-According to Hegel (1770-1831), God manifests himself in nature and in
-art in the form of beauty. God expresses himself in two ways: in the
-object and in the subject, in nature and in spirit. Beauty is the
-shining of the Idea through matter. Only the soul, and what pertains to
-it, is truly beautiful; and therefore the beauty of nature is only the
-reflection of the natural beauty of the spirit—the beautiful has only a
-spiritual content. But the spiritual must appear in sensuous form. The
-sensuous manifestation of spirit is only appearance (_schein_), and this
-appearance is the only reality of the beautiful. Art is thus the
-production of this appearance of the Idea, and is a means, together with
-religion and philosophy, of bringing to consciousness and of expressing
-the deepest problems of humanity and the highest truths of the spirit.
-
-Truth and beauty, according to Hegel, are one and the same thing; the
-difference being only that truth is the Idea itself as it exists in
-itself, and is thinkable. The Idea, manifested externally, becomes to
-the apprehension not only true but beautiful. The beautiful is the
-manifestation of the Idea.[32]
-
-Following Hegel came his many adherents, Weisse, Arnold Ruge,
-Rosenkrantz, Theodor Vischer and others.
-
-According to Weisse (1801-1867), art is the introduction (_Einbildung_)
-of the absolute spiritual reality of beauty into external, dead,
-indifferent matter, the perception of which latter apart from the beauty
-brought into it presents the negation of all existence in itself
-(_Negation alles Fürsichseins_).
-
-In the idea of truth, Weisse explains, lies a contradiction between the
-subjective and the objective sides of knowledge, in that an individual
-_I_ discerns the Universal. This contradiction can be removed by a
-conception that should unite into one the universal and the individual,
-which fall asunder in our conceptions of truth. Such a conception would
-be reconciled (_aufgehoben_) truth. Beauty is such a reconciled
-truth.[33]
-
-According to Ruge (1802-1880), a strict follower of Hegel, beauty is the
-Idea expressing itself. The spirit, contemplating itself, either finds
-itself expressed completely, and then that full expression of itself is
-beauty; or incompletely, and then it feels the need to alter this
-imperfect expression of itself, and becomes creative art.[34]
-
-According to Vischer (1807-1887), beauty is the Idea in the form of a
-finite phenomenon. The Idea itself is not indivisible, but forms a
-system of ideas, which may be represented by ascending and descending
-lines. The higher the idea the more beauty it contains; but even the
-lowest contains beauty, because it forms an essential link of the
-system. The highest form of the Idea is personality, and therefore the
-highest art is that which has for its subject-matter the highest
-personality.[35]
-
-Such were the theories of the German æstheticians in the Hegelian
-direction, but they did not monopolise æsthetic dissertations. In
-Germany, side by side and simultaneously with the Hegelian theories,
-there appeared theories of beauty not only independent of Hegel’s
-position (that beauty is the manifestation of the Idea), but directly
-contrary to this view, denying and ridiculing it. Such was the line
-taken by Herbart and, more particularly, by Schopenhauer.
-
-According to Herbart (1776-1841), there is not, and cannot be, any such
-thing as beauty existing in itself. What does exist is only our opinion,
-and it is necessary to find the base of this opinion (_Ästhetisches
-Elementarurtheil_). Such bases are connected with our impressions. There
-are certain relations which we term beautiful; and art consists in
-finding these relations, which are simultaneous in painting, the plastic
-art, and architecture, successive and simultaneous in music, and purely
-successive in poetry. In contradiction to the former æstheticians,
-Herbart holds that objects are often beautiful which express nothing at
-all, as, for instance, the rainbow, which is beautiful for its lines and
-colours, and not for its mythological connection with Iris or Noah’s
-rainbow.[36]
-
-Another opponent of Hegel was Schopenhauer, who denied Hegel’s whole
-system, his æsthetics included.
-
-According to Schopenhauer (1788-1860), Will objectivizes itself in the
-world on various planes; and although the higher the plane on which it
-is objectivized the more beautiful it is, yet each plane has its own
-beauty. Renunciation of one’s individuality and contemplation of one of
-these planes of manifestation of Will gives us a perception of beauty.
-All men, says Schopenhauer, possess the capacity to objectivize the Idea
-on different planes. The genius of the artist has this capacity in a
-higher degree, and therefore makes a higher beauty manifest.[37]
-
-After these more eminent writers there followed, in Germany, less
-original and less influential ones, such as Hartmann, Kirkmann,
-Schnasse, and, to some extent, Helmholtz (as an æsthetician), Bergmann,
-Jungmann, and an innumerable host of others.
-
-According to Hartmann (1842), beauty lies, not in the external world,
-nor in “the thing in itself,” neither does it reside in the soul of man,
-but it lies in the “seeming” (_Schein_) produced by the artist. The
-thing in itself is not beautiful, but is transformed into beauty by the
-artist.[38]
-
-According to Schnasse (1798-1875), there is no perfect beauty in the
-world. In nature there is only an approach towards it. Art gives what
-nature cannot give. In the energy of the free _ego_, conscious of
-harmony not found in nature, beauty is disclosed.[39]
-
-Kirkmann wrote on experimental aesthetics. All aspects of history in his
-system are joined by pure chance. Thus, according to Kirkmann
-(1802-1884), there are six realms of history:—The realm of Knowledge, of
-Wealth, of Morality, of Faith, of Politics, and of Beauty; and activity
-in the last-named realm is art.[40]
-
-According to Helmholtz (1821), who wrote on beauty as it relates to
-music, beauty in musical productions is attained only by following
-unalterable laws. These laws are not known to the artist; so that beauty
-is manifested by the artist unconsciously, and cannot be subjected to
-analysis.[41]
-
-According to Bergmann (1840) (_Ueber das Schöne_, 1887), to define
-beauty objectively is impossible. Beauty is only perceived subjectively,
-and therefore the problem of æsthetics is to define what pleases
-whom.[42]
-
-According to Jungmann (d. 1885), firstly, beauty is a suprasensible
-quality of things; secondly, beauty produces in us pleasure by merely
-being contemplated; and, thirdly, beauty is the foundation of love.[43]
-
-The æsthetic theories of the chief representatives of France, England,
-and other nations in recent times have been the following:—
-
-In France, during this period, the prominent writers on æsthetics were
-Cousin, Jouffroy, Pictet, Ravaisson, Lévêque.
-
-Cousin (1792-1867) was an eclectic, and a follower of the German
-idealists. According to his theory, beauty always has a moral
-foundation. He disputes the doctrine that art is imitation and that the
-beautiful is what pleases. He affirms that beauty may be defined
-objectively, and that it essentially consists in variety in unity.[44]
-
-After Cousin came Jouffroy (1796-1842), who was a pupil of Cousin’s and
-also a follower of the German æstheticians. According to his definition,
-beauty is the expression of the invisible by those natural signs which
-manifest it. The visible world is the garment by means of which we see
-beauty.[45]
-
-The Swiss writer Pictet repeated Hegel and Plato, supposing beauty to
-exist in the direct and free manifestation of the divine Idea revealing
-itself in sense forms.[46]
-
-Lévêque was a follower of Schelling and Hegel. He holds that beauty is
-something invisible behind nature—a force or spirit revealing itself in
-ordered energy.[47]
-
-Similar vague opinions about the nature of beauty were expressed by the
-French metaphysician Ravaisson, who considered beauty to be the ultimate
-aim and purpose of the world. “_La beauté la plus divine et
-principalement la plus parfaite contient le secret du monde._”[48] And
-again:—_“Le monde entier est l’œuvre d’une beauté absolue, qui n’est la
-cause des choses que par l’amour qu’elle met en elles_.”
-
-I purposely abstain from translating these metaphysical expressions,
-because, however cloudy the Germans may be, the French, once they absorb
-the theories of the Germans and take to imitating them, far surpass them
-in uniting heterogeneous conceptions into one expression, and putting
-forward one meaning or another indiscriminately. For instance, the
-French philosopher Renouvier, when discussing beauty, says:—“_Ne
-craignons pas de dire qu’une vérité qui ne serait pas belle, ne serait
-qu’un jeu logique de notre esprit et que la seule vérité solide et digne
-de ce nom c’est la beauté._”[49]
-
-Besides the æsthetic idealists who wrote and still write under the
-influence of German philosophy, the following recent writers have also
-influenced the comprehension of art and beauty in France: Taine, Guyau,
-Cherbuliez, Coster, and Véron.
-
-According to Taine (1828-1893), beauty is the manifestation of the
-essential characteristic of any important idea more completely than it
-is expressed in reality.[50]
-
-Guyau (1854-1888) taught that beauty is not something exterior to the
-object itself,—is not, as it were, a parasitic growth on it,—but is
-itself the very blossoming forth of that on which it appears. Art is the
-expression of reasonable and conscious life, evoking in us both the
-deepest consciousness of existence and the highest feelings and loftiest
-thoughts. Art lifts man from his personal life into the universal life,
-by means, not only of participation in the same ideas and beliefs, but
-also by means of similarity in feeling.[51]
-
-According to Cherbuliez, art is an activity, (1) satisfying our innate
-love of forms (_apparences_), (2) endowing these forms with ideas, (3)
-affording pleasure alike to our senses, heart, and reason. Beauty is not
-inherent in objects, but is an act of our souls. Beauty is an illusion;
-there is no absolute beauty. But what we consider characteristic and
-harmonious appears beautiful to us.
-
-Coster held that the ideas of the beautiful, the good, and the true are
-innate. These ideas illuminate our minds and are identical with God, who
-is Goodness, Truth, and Beauty. The idea of Beauty includes unity of
-essence, variety of constitutive elements, and order, which brings unity
-into the various manifestations of life.[52]
-
-For the sake of completeness, I will further cite some of the very
-latest writings upon art.
-
-_La psychologie du Beau et de l’Art, par Mario Pilo_ (1895), says that
-beauty is a product of our physical feelings. The aim of art is
-pleasure, but this pleasure (for some reason) he considers to be
-necessarily highly moral.
-
-The _Essai sur l’art contemporain, par Fierens Gevaert_ (1897), says
-that art rests on its connection with the past, and on the religious
-ideal of the present which the artist holds when giving to his work the
-form of his individuality.
-
-Then again, Sar Peladan’s _L’art idéaliste et mystique_ (1894) says that
-beauty is one of the manifestations of God. “_Il n’y a pas d’autre
-Réalité que Dieu, n’y a pas d’autre Vérité que Dieu, il n’y a pas
-d’autre Beauté, que Dieu_” (p. 33). This book is very fantastic and very
-illiterate, but is characteristic in the positions it takes up, and
-noticeable on account of a certain success it is having with the younger
-generation in France.
-
-All the æsthetics diffused in France up to the present time are similar
-in kind, but among them Véron’s _L’esthétique_ (1878) forms an
-exception, being reasonable and clear. That work, though it does not
-give an exact definition of art, at least rids æsthetics of the cloudy
-conception of an absolute beauty.
-
-According to Véron (1825-1889), art is the manifestation of emotion
-transmitted externally by a combination of lines, forms, colours, or by
-a succession of movements, sounds, or words subjected to certain
-rhythms.[53]
-
-In England, during this period, the writers on æsthetics define beauty
-more and more frequently, not by its own qualities, but by taste, and
-the discussion about beauty is superseded by a discussion on taste.
-
-After Reid (1704-1796), who acknowledged beauty as being entirely
-dependent on the spectator, Alison, in his _Essay on the Nature and
-Principles of Taste_ (1790), proved the same thing. From another side
-this was also asserted by Erasmus Darwin (1731-1802), the grandfather of
-the celebrated Charles Darwin.
-
-He says that we consider beautiful that which is connected in our
-conception with what we love. Richard Knight’s work, _An Analytical
-Inquiry into the Principles of Taste_, also tends in the same direction.
-
-Most of the English theories of æsthetics are on the same lines. The
-prominent writers on æsthetics in England during the present century
-have been Charles Darwin, (to some extent), Herbert Spencer, Grant
-Allen, Ker, and Knight.
-
-According to Charles Darwin (1809-1882—_Descent of Man_, 1871), beauty
-is a feeling natural not only to man but also to animals, and
-consequently to the ancestors of man. Birds adorn their nests and esteem
-beauty in their mates. Beauty has an influence on marriages. Beauty
-includes a variety of diverse conceptions. The origin of the art of
-music is the call of the males to the females.[54]
-
-According to Herbert Spencer (b. 1820), the origin of art is play, a
-thought previously expressed by Schiller. In the lower animals all the
-energy of life is expended in life-maintenance and race-maintenance; in
-man, however, there remains, after these needs are satisfied, some
-superfluous strength. This excess is used in play, which passes over
-into art. Play is an imitation of real activity, so is art. The sources
-of æsthetic pleasure are threefold:—(1) That “which exercises the
-faculties affected in the most complete ways, with the fewest drawbacks
-from excess of exercise,” (2) “the difference of a stimulus in large
-amount, which awakens a glow of agreeable feeling,” (3) the partial
-revival of the same, with special combinations.[55]
-
-In Todhunter’s _Theory of the Beautiful_ (1872), beauty is infinite
-loveliness, which we apprehend both by reason and by the enthusiasm of
-love. The recognition of beauty as being such depends on taste; there
-can be no criterion for it. The only approach to a definition is found
-in culture. (What culture is, is not defined.) Intrinsically, art—that
-which affects us through lines, colours, sounds, or words—is not the
-product of blind forces, but of reasonable ones, working, with mutual
-helpfulness, towards a reasonable aim. Beauty is the reconciliation of
-contradictions.[56]
-
-Grant Allen is a follower of Spencer, and in his _Physiological
-Æsthetics_ (1877) he says that beauty has a physical origin. Æsthetic
-pleasures come from the contemplation of the beautiful, but the
-conception of beauty is obtained by a physiological process. The origin
-of art is play; when there is a superfluity of physical strength man
-gives himself to play; when there is a superfluity of receptive power
-man gives himself to art. The beautiful is that which affords the
-maximum of stimulation with the minimum of waste. Differences in the
-estimation of beauty proceed from taste. Taste can be educated. We must
-have faith in the judgments “of the finest-nurtured and most
-discriminative” men. These people form the taste of the next
-generation.[57]
-
-According to Ker’s _Essay on the Philosophy of Art_ (1883), beauty
-enables us to make part of the objective world intelligible to ourselves
-without being troubled by reference to other parts of it, as is
-inevitable for science. So that art destroys the opposition between the
-one and the many, between the law and its manifestation, between the
-subject and its object, by uniting them. Art is the revelation and
-vindication of freedom, because it is free from the darkness and
-incomprehensibility of finite things.[58]
-
-According to Knight’s _Philosophy of the Beautiful_, Part II. (1893),
-beauty is (as with Schelling) the union of object and subject, the
-drawing forth from nature of that which is cognate to man, and the
-recognition in oneself of that which is common to all nature.
-
-The opinions on beauty and on Art here mentioned are far from exhausting
-what has been written on the subject. And every day fresh writers on
-æsthetics arise, in whose disquisitions appear the same enchanted
-confusion and contradictoriness in defining beauty. Some, by inertia,
-continue the mystical æsthetics of Baumgarten and Hegel with sundry
-variations; others transfer the question to the region of subjectivity,
-and seek for the foundation of the beautiful in questions of taste;
-others—the æstheticians of the very latest formation—seek the origin of
-beauty in the laws of physiology; and finally, others again investigate
-the question quite independently of the conception of beauty. Thus,
-Sully in his _Sensation and Intuition: Studies in Psychology and
-Æsthetics_ (1874), dismisses the conception of beauty altogether, art,
-by his definition, being the production of some permanent object or
-passing action fitted to supply active enjoyment to the producer, and a
-pleasurable impression to a number of spectators or listeners, quite
-apart from any personal advantage derived from it.[59]
-
-Footnote 10:
-
- Schasler, p. 361.
-
-Footnote 11:
-
- Schasler, p. 369.
-
-Footnote 12:
-
- Schasler, pp. 388-390.
-
-Footnote 13:
-
- Knight, _Philosophy of the Beautiful_, i. pp. 165, 166.
-
-Footnote 14:
-
- Schasler, p. 289. Knight, pp. 168, 169.
-
-Footnote 15:
-
- R. Kralik, _Weltschönheit, Versuch einer allgemeinen Aesthetik_, pp.
- 304-306.
-
-Footnote 16:
-
- Knight, p. 101.
-
-Footnote 17:
-
- Schasler, p. 316.
-
-Footnote 18:
-
- Knight, pp. 102-104.
-
-Footnote 19:
-
- R. Kralik, p. 124.
-
-Footnote 20:
-
- Spaletti, Schasler, p. 328.
-
-Footnote 21:
-
- Schasler, pp. 331-333.
-
-Footnote 22:
-
- Schasler, pp. 525-528.
-
-Footnote 23:
-
- Knight, pp. 61-63.
-
-Footnote 24:
-
- Schasler, pp. 740-743.
-
-Footnote 25:
-
- Schasler, pp. 769-771.
-
-Footnote 26:
-
- Schasler, pp. 786, 787.
-
-Footnote 27:
-
- Kralik, p. 148.
-
-Footnote 28:
-
- Kralik, p. 820.
-
-Footnote 29:
-
- Schasler, pp. 828, 829, 834-841.
-
-Footnote 30:
-
- Schasler, p. 891.
-
-Footnote 31:
-
- Schasler, p. 917.
-
-Footnote 32:
-
- Schasler, pp. 946, 1085, 984, 985, 990.
-
-Footnote 33:
-
- Schasler, pp. 966, 655, 956.
-
-Footnote 34:
-
- Schasler, p. 1017.
-
-Footnote 35:
-
- Schasler, pp. 1065, 1066.
-
-Footnote 36:
-
- Schasler, pp. 1097-1100.
-
-Footnote 37:
-
- Schasler, pp. 1124, 1107.
-
-Footnote 38:
-
- Knight, pp. 81, 82.
-
-Footnote 39:
-
- Knight, p. 83.
-
-Footnote 40:
-
- Schasler, p. 1121.
-
-Footnote 41:
-
- Knight, pp. 85, 86.
-
-Footnote 42:
-
- Knight, p. 88.
-
-Footnote 43:
-
- Knight, p. 88.
-
-Footnote 44:
-
- Knight, p. 112.
-
-Footnote 45:
-
- Knight, p. 116.
-
-Footnote 46:
-
- Knight, pp. 118, 119.
-
-Footnote 47:
-
- Knight, pp. 123, 124.
-
-Footnote 48:
-
- _La philosophie en France_, p. 232.
-
-Footnote 49:
-
- _Du fondement de l’induction._
-
-Footnote 50:
-
- _Philosophie de l’art_, vol. i. 1893, p. 47.
-
-Footnote 51:
-
- Knight, p. 139-141.
-
-Footnote 52:
-
- Knight, pp. 134.
-
-Footnote 53:
-
- _L’esthétique_, p. 106.
-
-Footnote 54:
-
- Knight, p. 238.
-
-Footnote 55:
-
- Knight, pp. 239, 240.
-
-Footnote 56:
-
- Knight, pp. 240-243.
-
-Footnote 57:
-
- Knight, pp. 250-252.
-
-Footnote 58:
-
- Knight, pp. 258, 259.
-
-Footnote 59:
-
- Knight, p. 243.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV
-
-
-To what do these definitions of beauty amount? Not reckoning the
-thoroughly inaccurate definitions of beauty which fail to cover the
-conception of art, and which suppose beauty to consist either in
-utility, or in adjustment to a purpose, or in symmetry, or in order, or
-in proportion, or in smoothness, or in harmony of the parts, or in unity
-amid variety, or in various combinations of these,—not reckoning these
-unsatisfactory attempts at objective definition, all the æsthetic
-definitions of beauty lead to two fundamental conceptions. The first is
-that beauty is something having an independent existence (existing in
-itself), that it is one of the manifestations of the absolutely Perfect,
-of the Idea, of the Spirit, of Will, or of God; the other is that beauty
-is a kind of pleasure received by us, not having personal advantage for
-its object.
-
-The first of these definitions was accepted by Fichte, Schelling, Hegel,
-Schopenhauer, and the philosophising Frenchmen, Cousin, Jouffroy,
-Ravaisson, and others, not to enumerate the second-rate æsthetic
-philosophers. And this same objective-mystical definition of beauty is
-held by a majority of the educated people of our day. It is a conception
-very widely spread, especially among the elder generation.
-
-The second view, that beauty is a certain kind of pleasure received by
-us, not having personal advantage for its aim, finds favour chiefly
-among the English æsthetic writers, and is shared by the other part of
-our society, principally by the younger generation.
-
-So there are (and it could not be otherwise) only two definitions of
-beauty: the one objective, mystical, merging this conception into that
-of the highest perfection, God—a fantastic definition, founded on
-nothing; the other, on the contrary, a very simple and intelligible
-subjective one, which considers beauty to be that which pleases (I do
-not add to the word “pleases” the words “without the aim of advantage,”
-because “pleases” naturally presupposes the absence of the idea of
-profit).
-
-On the one hand, beauty is viewed as something mystical and very
-elevated, but unfortunately at the same time very indefinite, and
-consequently embracing philosophy, religion, and life itself (as in the
-theories of Schelling and Hegel, and their German and French followers);
-or, on the other hand (as necessarily follows from the definition of
-Kant and his adherents), beauty is simply a certain kind of
-disinterested pleasure received by us. And this conception of beauty,
-although it seems very clear, is, unfortunately, again inexact; for it
-widens out on the other side, _i.e._ it includes the pleasure derived
-from drink, from food, from touching a delicate skin, etc., as is
-acknowledged by Guyau, Kralik, and others.
-
-It is true that, following the development of the æsthetic doctrines on
-beauty, we may notice that, though at first (in the times when the
-foundations of the science of æsthetics were being laid) the
-metaphysical definition of beauty prevailed, yet the nearer we get to
-our own times the more does an experimental definition (recently
-assuming a physiological form) come to the front, so that at last we
-even meet with such æstheticians as Véron and Sully, who try to escape
-entirely from the conception of beauty. But such æstheticians have very
-little success, and with the majority of the public, as well as of
-artists and the learned, a conception of beauty is firmly held which
-agrees with the definitions contained in most of the æsthetic treatises,
-_i.e._ which regards beauty either as something mystical or
-metaphysical, or as a special kind of enjoyment.
-
-What then is this conception of beauty, so stubbornly held to by people
-of our circle and day as furnishing a definition of art?
-
-In the subjective aspect, we call beauty that which supplies us with a
-particular kind of pleasure.
-
-In the objective aspect, we call beauty something absolutely perfect,
-and we acknowledge it to be so only because we receive, from the
-manifestation of this absolute perfection, a certain kind of pleasure;
-so that this objective definition is nothing but the subjective
-conception differently expressed. In reality both conceptions of beauty
-amount to one and the same thing, namely, the reception by us of a
-certain kind of pleasure, _i.e._ we call “beauty” that which pleases us
-without evoking in us desire.
-
-Such being the position of affairs, it would seem only natural that the
-science of art should decline to content itself with a definition of art
-based on beauty (_i.e._ on that which pleases), and seek a general
-definition, which should apply to all artistic productions, and by
-reference to which we might decide whether a certain article belonged to
-the realm of art or not. But no such definition is supplied, as the
-reader may see from those summaries of the æsthetic theories which I
-have given, and as he may discover even more clearly from the original
-æsthetic works, if he will be at the pains to read them. All attempts to
-define absolute beauty in itself—whether as an imitation of nature, or
-as suitability to its object, or as a correspondence of parts, or as
-symmetry, or as harmony, or as unity in variety, etc.—either define
-nothing at all, or define only some traits of some artistic productions,
-and are far from including all that everybody has always held, and still
-holds, to be art.
-
-There is no objective definition of beauty. The existing definitions,
-(both the metaphysical and the experimental), amount only to one and the
-same subjective definition which (strange as it seems to say so) is,
-that art is that which makes beauty manifest, and beauty is that which
-pleases (without exciting desire). Many æstheticians have felt the
-insufficiency and instability of such a definition, and, in order to
-give it a firm basis, have asked themselves why a thing pleases. And
-they have converted the discussion on beauty into a question concerning
-taste, as did Hutcheson, Voltaire, Diderot, and others. But all attempts
-to define what taste is must lead to nothing, as the reader may see both
-from the history of æsthetics and experimentally. There is and can be no
-explanation of why one thing pleases one man and displeases another, or
-_vice versâ_. So that the whole existing science of æsthetics fails to
-do what we might expect from it, being a mental activity calling itself
-a science, namely, it does not define the qualities and laws of art, or
-of the beautiful (if that be the content of art), or the nature of taste
-(if taste decides the question of art and its merit), and then, on the
-basis of such definitions, acknowledge as art those productions which
-correspond to these laws, and reject those which do not come under them.
-But this science of æsthetics consists in first acknowledging a certain
-set of productions to be art (because they please us), and then framing
-such a theory of art that all those productions which please a certain
-circle of people should fit into it. There exists an art canon,
-according to which certain productions favoured by our circle are
-acknowledged as being art,—Phidias, Sophocles, Homer, Titian, Raphael,
-Bach, Beethoven, Dante, Shakespear, Goethe, and others,—and the æsthetic
-laws must be such as to embrace all these productions. In æsthetic
-literature you will incessantly meet with opinions on the merit and
-importance of art, founded not on any certain laws by which this or that
-is held to be good or bad, but merely on the consideration whether this
-art tallies with the art canon we have drawn up.
-
-The other day I was reading a far from ill-written book by Folgeldt.
-Discussing the demand for morality in works of art, the author plainly
-says that we must not demand morality in art. And in proof of this he
-advances the fact that if we admit such a demand, Shakespear’s _Romeo
-and Juliet_ and Goethe’s _Wilhelm Meister_ would not fit into the
-definition of good art; but since both these books are included in our
-canon of art, he concludes that the demand is unjust. And therefore it
-is necessary to find a definition of art which shall fit the works; and
-instead of a demand for morality, Folgeldt postulates as the basis of
-art a demand for the important (_Bedeutungsvolles_).
-
-All the existing æsthetic standards are built on this plan. Instead of
-giving a definition of true art, and then deciding what is and what is
-not good art by judging whether a work conforms or does not conform to
-the definition, a certain class of works, which for some reason please a
-certain circle of people, is accepted as being art, and a definition of
-art is then devised to cover all these productions. I recently came upon
-a remarkable instance of this method in a very good German work, _The
-History of Art in the Nineteenth Century_, by Muther. Describing the
-pre-Raphaelites, the Decadents and the Symbolists (who are already
-included in the canon of art), he not only does not venture to blame
-their tendency, but earnestly endeavours to widen his standard so that
-it may include them all, they appearing to him to represent a legitimate
-reaction from the excesses of realism. No matter what insanities appear
-in art, when once they find acceptance among the upper classes of our
-society a theory is quickly invented to explain and sanction them; just
-as if there had never been periods in history when certain special
-circles of people recognised and approved false, deformed, and insensate
-art which subsequently left no trace and has been utterly forgotten. And
-to what lengths the insanity and deformity of art may go, especially
-when, as in our days, it knows that it is considered infallible, may be
-seen by what is being done in the art of our circle to-day.
-
-So that the theory of art, founded on beauty, expounded by æsthetics,
-and, in dim outline, professed by the public, is nothing but the setting
-up as good, of that which has pleased and pleases us, _i.e._ pleases a
-certain class of people.
-
-In order to define any human activity, it is necessary to understand its
-sense and importance. And, in order to do that, it is primarily
-necessary to examine that activity in itself, in its dependence on its
-causes, and in connection with its effects, and not merely in relation
-to the pleasure we can get from it.
-
-If we say that the aim of any activity is merely our pleasure, and
-define it solely by that pleasure, our definition will evidently be a
-false one. But this is precisely what has occurred in the efforts to
-define art. Now, if we consider the food question, it will not occur to
-anyone to affirm that the importance of food consists in the pleasure we
-receive when eating it. Everyone understands that the satisfaction of
-our taste cannot serve as a basis for our definition of the merits of
-food, and that we have therefore no right to presuppose that the dinners
-with cayenne pepper, Limburg cheese, alcohol, etc., to which we are
-accustomed and which please us, form the very best human food.
-
-And in the same way, beauty, or that which pleases us, can in no sense
-serve as the basis for the definition of art; nor can a series of
-objects which afford us pleasure serve as the model of what art should
-be.
-
-To see the aim and purpose of art in the pleasure we get from it, is
-like assuming (as is done by people of the lowest moral development,
-_e.g._ by savages) that the purpose and aim of food is the pleasure
-derived when consuming it.
-
-Just as people who conceive the aim and purpose of food to be pleasure
-cannot recognise the real meaning of eating, so people who consider the
-aim of art to be pleasure cannot realise its true meaning and purpose,
-because they attribute to an activity, the meaning of which lies in its
-connection with other phenomena of life, the false and exceptional aim
-of pleasure. People come to understand that the meaning of eating lies
-in the nourishment of the body only when they cease to consider that the
-object of that activity is pleasure. And it is the same with regard to
-art. People will come to understand the meaning of art only when they
-cease to consider that the aim of that activity is beauty, _i.e._
-pleasure. The acknowledgment of beauty (_i.e._ of a certain kind of
-pleasure received from art) as being the aim of art, not only fails to
-assist us in finding a definition of what art is, but, on the contrary,
-by transferring the question into a region quite foreign to art (into
-metaphysical, psychological, physiological, and even historical
-discussions as to why such a production pleases one person, and such
-another displeases or pleases someone else), it renders such definition
-impossible. And since discussions as to why one man likes pears and
-another prefers meat do not help towards finding a definition of what is
-essential in nourishment, so the solution of questions of taste in art
-(to which the discussions on art involuntarily come) not only does not
-help to make clear what this particular human activity which we call art
-really consists in, but renders such elucidation quite impossible, until
-we rid ourselves of a conception which justifies every kind of art, at
-the cost of confusing the whole matter.
-
-To the question, What is this art, to which is offered up the labour of
-millions, the very lives of men, and even morality itself? we have
-extracted replies from the existing æsthetics, which all amount to this:
-that the aim of art is beauty, that beauty is recognised by the
-enjoyment it gives, and that artistic enjoyment is a good and important
-thing, because it _is_ enjoyment. In a word, that enjoyment is good
-because it is enjoyment. Thus, what is considered the definition of art
-is no definition at all, but only a shuffle to justify existing art.
-Therefore, however strange it may seem to say so, in spite of the
-mountains of books written about art, no exact definition of art has
-been constructed. And the reason of this is that the conception of art
-has been based on the conception of beauty.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V
-
-
-What is art, if we put aside the conception of beauty, which confuses
-the whole matter? The latest and most comprehensible definitions of art,
-apart from the conception of beauty, are the following:—(1 _a_) Art is
-an activity arising even in the animal kingdom, and springing from
-sexual desire and the propensity to play (Schiller, Darwin, Spencer),
-and (1 _b_) accompanied by a pleasurable excitement of the nervous
-system (Grant Allen). This is the physiological-evolutionary definition.
-(2) Art is the external manifestation, by means of lines, colours,
-movements, sounds, or words, of emotions felt by man (Véron). This is
-the experimental definition. According to the very latest definition
-(Sully), (3) Art is “the production of some permanent object, or passing
-action, which is fitted not only to supply an active enjoyment to the
-producer, but to convey a pleasurable impression to a number of
-spectators or listeners, quite apart from any personal advantage to be
-derived from it.”
-
-Notwithstanding the superiority of these definitions to the metaphysical
-definitions which depended on the conception of beauty, they are yet far
-from exact. (1 _a_) The first, the physiological-evolutionary
-definition, is inexact, because, instead of speaking about the artistic
-activity itself, which is the real matter in hand, it treats of the
-derivation of art. The modification of it (1 _b_), based on the
-physiological effects on the human organism, is inexact, because within
-the limits of such definition many other human activities can be
-included, as has occurred in the neo-æsthetic theories, which reckon as
-art the preparation of handsome clothes, pleasant scents, and even of
-victuals.
-
-The experimental definition (2), which makes art consist in the
-expression of emotions, is inexact, because a man may express his
-emotions by means of lines, colours, sounds, or words, and yet may not
-act on others by such expression; and then the manifestation of his
-emotions is not art.
-
-The third definition (that of Sully) is inexact, because in the
-production of objects or actions affording pleasure to the producer and
-a pleasant emotion to the spectators or hearers apart from personal
-advantage, may be included the showing of conjuring tricks or gymnastic
-exercises, and other activities which are not art. And, further, many
-things, the production of which does not afford pleasure to the
-producer, and the sensation received from which is unpleasant, such as
-gloomy, heart-rending scenes in a poetic description or a play, may
-nevertheless be undoubted works of art.
-
-The inaccuracy of all these definitions arises from the fact that in
-them all (as also in the metaphysical definitions) the object considered
-is the pleasure art may give, and not the purpose it may serve in the
-life of man and of humanity.
-
-In order correctly to define art, it is necessary, first of all, to
-cease to consider it as a means to pleasure, and to consider it as one
-of the conditions of human life. Viewing it in this way, we cannot fail
-to observe that art is one of the means of intercourse between man and
-man.
-
-Every work of art causes the receiver to enter into a certain kind of
-relationship both with him who produced, or is producing, the art, and
-with all those who, simultaneously, previously or subsequently, receive
-the same artistic impression.
-
-Speech, transmitting the thoughts and experiences of men, serves as a
-means of union among them, and art acts in a similar manner. The
-peculiarity of this latter means of intercourse, distinguishing it from
-intercourse by means of words, consists in this, that whereas by words a
-man transmits his thoughts to another, by means of art he transmits his
-feelings.
-
-The activity of art is based on the fact that a man, receiving through
-his sense of hearing or sight another man’s expression of feeling, is
-capable of experiencing the emotion which moved the man who expressed
-it. To take the simplest example: one man laughs, and another, who
-hears, becomes merry; or a man weeps, and another, who hears, feels
-sorrow. A man is excited or irritated, and another man, seeing him,
-comes to a similar state of mind. By his movements, or by the sounds of
-his voice, a man expresses courage and determination, or sadness and
-calmness, and this state of mind passes on to others. A man suffers,
-expressing his sufferings by groans and spasms, and this suffering
-transmits itself to other people; a man expresses his feeling of
-admiration, devotion, fear, respect, or love to certain objects,
-persons, or phenomena, and others are infected by the same feelings of
-admiration, devotion, fear, respect, or love to the same objects,
-persons, and phenomena.
-
-And it is on this capacity of man to receive another man’s expression of
-feeling, and experience those feelings himself, that the activity of art
-is based.
-
-If a man infects another or others, directly, immediately, by his
-appearance, or by the sounds he gives vent to at the very time he
-experiences the feeling; if he causes another man to yawn when he
-himself cannot help yawning, or to laugh or cry when he himself is
-obliged to laugh or cry, or to suffer when he himself is suffering—that
-does not amount to art.
-
-Art begins when one person, with the object of joining another or others
-to himself in one and the same feeling, expresses that feeling by
-certain external indications. To take the simplest example: a boy,
-having experienced, let us say, fear on encountering a wolf, relates
-that encounter; and, in order to evoke in others the feeling he has
-experienced, describes himself, his condition before the encounter, the
-surroundings, the wood, his own lightheartedness, and then the wolf’s
-appearance, its movements, the distance between himself and the wolf,
-etc. All this, if only the boy when telling the story, again experiences
-the feelings he had lived through and infects the hearers and compels
-them to feel what the narrator had experienced, is art. If even the boy
-had not seen a wolf but had frequently been afraid of one, and if,
-wishing to evoke in others the fear he had felt, he invented an
-encounter with a wolf, and recounted it so as to make his hearers share
-the feelings he experienced when he feared the wolf, that also would be
-art. And just in the same way it is art if a man, having experienced
-either the fear of suffering or the attraction of enjoyment (whether in
-reality or in imagination), expresses these feelings on canvas or in
-marble so that others are infected by them. And it is also art if a man
-feels or imagines to himself feelings of delight, gladness, sorrow,
-despair, courage, or despondency, and the transition from one to another
-of these feelings, and expresses these feelings by sounds, so that the
-hearers are infected by them, and experience them as they were
-experienced by the composer.
-
-The feelings with which the artist infects others may be most
-various—very strong or very weak, very important or very insignificant,
-very bad or very good: feelings of love for native land, self-devotion
-and submission to fate or to God expressed in a drama, raptures of
-lovers described in a novel, feelings of voluptuousness expressed in a
-picture, courage expressed in a triumphal march, merriment evoked by a
-dance, humour evoked by a funny story, the feeling of quietness
-transmitted by an evening landscape or by a lullaby, or the feeling of
-admiration evoked by a beautiful arabesque—it is all art.
-
-If only the spectators or auditors are infected by the feelings which
-the author has felt, it is art.
-
-_To evoke in oneself a feeling one has once experienced, and having
-evoked it in oneself then, by means of movements, lines, colours,
-sounds, or forms expressed in words, so to transmit that feeling that
-others may experience the same feeling—this is the activity of art._
-
-_Art is a human activity, consisting in this, that one man consciously,
-by means of certain external signs, hands on to others feelings he has
-lived through, and that other people are infected by these feelings, and
-also experience them._
-
-Art is not, as the metaphysicians say, the manifestation of some
-mysterious Idea of beauty, or God; it is not, as the æsthetical
-physiologists say, a game in which man lets off his excess of stored-up
-energy; it is not the expression of man’s emotions by external signs; it
-is not the production of pleasing objects; and, above all, it is not
-pleasure; but it is a means of union among men, joining them together in
-the same feelings, and indispensable for the life and progress towards
-well-being of individuals and of humanity.
-
-As, thanks to man’s capacity to express thoughts by words, every man may
-know all that has been done for him in the realms of thought by all
-humanity before his day, and can, in the present, thanks to this
-capacity to understand the thoughts of others, become a sharer in their
-activity, and can himself hand on to his contemporaries and descendants
-the thoughts he has assimilated from others, as well as those which have
-arisen within himself; so, thanks to man’s capacity to be infected with
-the feelings of others by means of art, all that is being lived through
-by his contemporaries is accessible to him, as well as the feelings
-experienced by men thousands of years ago, and he has also the
-possibility of transmitting his own feelings to others.
-
-If people lacked this capacity to receive the thoughts conceived by the
-men who preceded them, and to pass on to others their own thoughts, men
-would be like wild beasts, or like Kaspar Hauser.[60]
-
-And if men lacked this other capacity of being infected by art, people
-might be almost more savage still, and, above all, more separated from,
-and more hostile to, one another.
-
-And therefore the activity of art is a most important one, as important
-as the activity of speech itself, and as generally diffused.
-
-We are accustomed to understand art to be only what we hear and see in
-theatres, concerts, and exhibitions; together with buildings, statues,
-poems, novels.... But all this is but the smallest part of the art by
-which we communicate with each other in life. All human life is filled
-with works of art of every kind—from cradle-song, jest, mimicry, the
-ornamentation of houses, dress and utensils, up to church services,
-buildings, monuments, and triumphal processions. It is all artistic
-activity. So that by art, in the limited sense of the word, we do not
-mean all human activity transmitting feelings, but only that part which
-we for some reason select from it and to which we attach special
-importance.
-
-This special importance has always been given by all men to that part of
-this activity which transmits feelings flowing from their religious
-perception, and this small part of art they have specifically called
-art, attaching to it the full meaning of the word.
-
-That was how men of old—Socrates, Plato, and Aristotle—looked on art.
-Thus did the Hebrew prophets and the ancient Christians regard art; thus
-it was, and still is, understood by the Mahommedans, and thus is it
-still understood by religious folk among our own peasantry.
-
-Some teachers of mankind—as Plato in his _Republic_, and people such as
-the primitive Christians, the strict Mahommedans, and the Buddhists—have
-gone so far as to repudiate all art.
-
-People viewing art in this way (in contradiction to the prevalent view
-of to-day, which regards any art as good if only it affords pleasure)
-considered, and consider, that art (as contrasted with speech, which
-need not be listened to) is so highly dangerous in its power to infect
-people against their wills, that mankind will lose far less by banishing
-all art than by tolerating each and every art.
-
-Evidently such people were wrong in repudiating all art, for they denied
-that which cannot be denied—one of the indispensable means of
-communication, without which mankind could not exist. But not less wrong
-are the people of civilised European society of our class and day, in
-favouring any art if it but serves beauty, _i.e._ gives people pleasure.
-
-Formerly, people feared lest among the works of art there might chance
-to be some causing corruption, and they prohibited art altogether. Now,
-they only fear lest they should be deprived of any enjoyment art can
-afford, and patronise any art. And I think the last error is much
-grosser than the first, and that its consequences are far more harmful.
-
-Footnote 60:
-
- “The foundling of Nuremberg,” found in the market-place of that town
- on 26th May 1828, apparently some sixteen years old. He spoke little,
- and was almost totally ignorant even of common objects. He
- subsequently explained that he had been brought up in confinement
- underground, and visited by only one man, whom he saw but
- seldom.—Trans.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI
-
-
-But how could it happen that that very art, which in ancient times was
-merely tolerated (if tolerated at all), should have come, in our times,
-to be invariably considered a good thing if only it affords pleasure?
-
-It has resulted from the following causes. The estimation of the value
-of art (_i.e._ of the feelings it transmits) depends on men’s perception
-of the meaning of life; depends on what they consider to be the good and
-the evil of life. And what is good and what is evil is defined by what
-are termed religions.
-
-Humanity unceasingly moves forward from a lower, more partial, and
-obscure understanding of life, to one more general and more lucid. And
-in this, as in every movement, there are leaders,—those who have
-understood the meaning of life more clearly than others,—and of these
-advanced men there is always one who has, in his words and by his life,
-expressed this meaning more clearly, accessibly, and strongly than
-others. This man’s expression of the meaning of life, together with
-those superstitions, traditions, and ceremonies which usually form
-themselves round the memory of such a man, is what is called a religion.
-Religions are the exponents of the highest comprehension of life
-accessible to the best and foremost men at a given time in a given
-society; a comprehension towards which, inevitably and irresistibly, all
-the rest of that society must advance. And therefore only religions have
-always served, and still serve, as bases for the valuation of human
-sentiments. If feelings bring men nearer the ideal their religion
-indicates, if they are in harmony with it and do not contradict it, they
-are good; if they estrange men from it and oppose it, they are bad.
-
-If the religion places the meaning of life in worshipping one God and
-fulfilling what is regarded as His will, as was the case among the Jews,
-then the feelings flowing from love to that God, and to His law,
-successfully transmitted through the art of poetry by the prophets, by
-the psalms, or by the epic of the book of Genesis, is good, high art.
-All opposing that, as for instance the transmission of feelings of
-devotion to strange gods, or of feelings incompatible with the law of
-God, would be considered bad art. Or if, as was the case among the
-Greeks, the religion places the meaning of life in earthly happiness, in
-beauty and in strength, then art successfully transmitting the joy and
-energy of life would be considered good art, but art which transmitted
-feelings of effeminacy or despondency would be bad art. If the meaning
-of life is seen in the well-being of one’s nation, or in honouring one’s
-ancestors and continuing the mode of life led by them, as was the case
-among the Romans and the Chinese respectively, then art transmitting
-feelings of joy at sacrificing one’s personal well-being for the common
-weal, or at exalting one’s ancestors and maintaining their traditions,
-would be considered good art; but art expressing feelings contrary to
-this would be regarded as bad. If the meaning of life is seen in freeing
-oneself from the yoke of animalism, as is the case among the Buddhists,
-then art successfully transmitting feelings that elevate the soul and
-humble the flesh will be good art, and all that transmits feelings
-strengthening the bodily passions will be bad art.
-
-In every age, and in every human society, there exists a religious
-sense, common to that whole society, of what is good and what is bad,
-and it is this religious conception that decides the value of the
-feelings transmitted by art. And therefore, among all nations, art which
-transmitted feelings considered to be good by this general religious
-sense was recognised as being good and was encouraged; but art which
-transmitted feelings considered to be bad by this general religious
-conception, was recognised as being bad, and was rejected. All the rest
-of the immense field of art by means of which people communicate one
-with another, was not esteemed at all, and was only noticed when it ran
-counter to the religious conception of its age, and then merely to be
-repudiated. Thus it was among all nations,—Greeks, Jews, Indians,
-Egyptians, and Chinese,—and so it was when Christianity appeared.
-
-The Christianity of the first centuries recognised as productions of
-good art, only legends, lives of saints, sermons, prayers and
-hymn-singing, evoking love of Christ, emotion at his life, desire to
-follow his example, renunciation of worldly life, humility, and the love
-of others; all productions transmitting feelings of personal enjoyment
-they considered to be bad, and therefore rejected: for instance,
-tolerating plastic representations only when they were symbolical, they
-rejected all the pagan sculptures.
-
-This was so among the Christians of the first centuries, who accepted
-Christ’s teaching, if not quite in its true form, at least not in the
-perverted, paganised form in which it was accepted subsequently.
-
-But besides this Christianity, from the time of the wholesale conversion
-of nations by order of the authorities, as in the days of Constantine,
-Charlemagne, and Vladimir, there appeared another, a Church
-Christianity, which was nearer to paganism than to Christ’s teaching.
-And this Church Christianity, in accordance with its own teaching,
-estimated quite otherwise the feelings of people and the productions of
-art which transmitted those feelings.
-
-This Church Christianity not only did not acknowledge the fundamental
-and essential positions of true Christianity,—the immediate relationship
-of each man to the Father, the consequent brotherhood and equality of
-all men, and the substitution of humility and love in place of every
-kind of violence—but, on the contrary, having set up a heavenly
-hierarchy similar to the pagan mythology, and having introduced the
-worship of Christ, of the Virgin, of angels, of apostles, of saints, and
-of martyrs, and not only of these divinities themselves, but also of
-their images, it made blind faith in the Church and its ordinances the
-essential point of its teaching.
-
-However foreign this teaching may have been to true Christianity,
-however degraded, not only in comparison with true Christianity, but
-even with the life-conception of Romans such as Julian and others; it
-was, for all that, to the barbarians who accepted it, a higher doctrine
-than their former adoration of gods, heroes, and good and bad spirits.
-And therefore this teaching was a religion to them, and on the basis of
-that religion the art of the time was assessed. And art transmitting
-pious adoration of the Virgin, Jesus, the saints and the angels, a blind
-faith in and submission to the Church, fear of torments and hope of
-blessedness in a life beyond the grave, was considered good; all art
-opposed to this was considered bad.
-
-The teaching on the basis of which this art arose was a perversion of
-Christ’s teaching, but the art which sprang up on this perverted
-teaching was nevertheless a true art, because it corresponded to the
-religious view of life held by the people among whom it arose.
-
-The artists of the Middle Ages, vitalised by the same source of
-feeling—religion—as the mass of the people, and transmitting, in
-architecture, sculpture, painting, music, poetry or drama, the feelings
-and states of mind they experienced, were true artists; and their
-activity, founded on the highest conceptions accessible to their age and
-common to the entire people, though, for our times a mean art, was,
-nevertheless a true one, shared by the whole community.
-
-And this was the state of things until, in the upper, rich, more
-educated classes of European society, doubt arose as to the truth of
-that understanding of life which was expressed by Church Christianity.
-When, after the Crusades and the maximum development of papal power and
-its abuses, people of the rich classes became acquainted with the wisdom
-of the classics, and saw, on the one hand, the reasonable lucidity of
-the teaching of the ancient sages, and, on the other hand, the
-incompatibility of the Church doctrine with the teaching of Christ, they
-lost all possibility of continuing to believe the Church teaching.
-
-If, in externals, they still kept to the forms of Church teaching, they
-could no longer believe in it, and held to it only by inertia and for
-the sake of influencing the masses, who continued to believe blindly in
-Church doctrine, and whom the upper classes, for their own advantage,
-considered it necessary to support in those beliefs.
-
-So that a time came when Church Christianity ceased to be the general
-religious doctrine of all Christian people; some—the masses—continued
-blindly to believe in it, but the upper classes—those in whose hands lay
-the power and wealth, and therefore the leisure to produce art and the
-means to stimulate it—ceased to believe in that teaching.
-
-In respect to religion, the upper circles of the Middle Ages found
-themselves in the same position in which the educated Romans were before
-Christianity arose, _i.e._ they no longer believed in the religion of
-the masses, but had no beliefs to put in place of the worn-out Church
-doctrine which for them had lost its meaning.
-
-There was only this difference, that whereas for the Romans who lost
-faith in their emperor-gods and household-gods it was impossible to
-extract anything further from all the complex mythology they had
-borrowed from all the conquered nations, and it was consequently
-necessary to find a completely new conception of life, the people of the
-Middle Ages, when they doubted the truth of the Church teaching, had no
-need to seek a fresh one. That Christian teaching which they professed
-in a perverted form as Church doctrine, had mapped out the path of human
-progress so far ahead, that they had but to rid themselves of those
-perversions which hid the teaching announced by Christ, and to adopt its
-real meaning—if not completely, then at least in some greater degree
-than that in which the Church had held it.
-
-And this was partially done, not only in the reformations of Wyclif,
-Huss, Luther, and Calvin, but by all that current of non-Church
-Christianity, represented in earlier times by the Paulicians, the
-Bogomili,[61] and, afterwards, by the Waldenses and the other non-Church
-Christians who were called heretics. But this could be, and was, done
-chiefly by poor people—who did not rule. A few of the rich and strong,
-like Francis of Assisi and others, accepted the Christian teaching in
-its full significance, even though it undermined their privileged
-positions. But most people of the upper classes (though in the depth of
-their souls they had lost faith in the Church teaching) could not or
-would not act thus, because the essence of that Christian view of life,
-which stood ready to be adopted when once they rejected the Church
-faith, was a teaching of the brotherhood (and therefore the equality) of
-man, and this negatived those privileges on which they lived, in which
-they had grown up and been educated, and to which they were accustomed.
-Not, in the depth of their hearts, believing in the Church
-teaching,—which had outlived its age and had no longer any true meaning
-for them,—and not being strong enough to accept true Christianity, men
-of these rich, governing classes—popes, kings, dukes, and all the great
-ones of the earth—were left without any religion, with but the external
-forms of one, which they supported as being profitable and even
-necessary for themselves, since these forms screened a teaching which
-justified those privileges which they made use of. In reality, these
-people believed in nothing, just as the Romans of the first centuries of
-our era believed in nothing. But at the same time these were the people
-who had the power and the wealth, and these were the people who rewarded
-art and directed it.
-
-And, let it be noticed, it was just among these people that there grew
-up an art esteemed not according to its success in expressing men’s
-religious feelings, but in proportion to its beauty,—in other words,
-according to the enjoyment it gave.
-
-No longer able to believe in the Church religion whose falsehood they
-had detected, and incapable of accepting true Christian teaching, which
-denounced their whole manner of life, these rich and powerful people,
-stranded without any religious conception of life, involuntarily
-returned to that pagan view of things which places life’s meaning in
-personal enjoyment. And then took place among the upper classes what is
-called the “Renaissance of science and art,” and which was really not
-only a denial of every religion but also an assertion that religion is
-unnecessary.
-
-The Church doctrine is so coherent a system that it cannot be altered or
-corrected without destroying it altogether. As soon as doubt arose with
-regard to the infallibility of the pope (and this doubt was then in the
-minds of all educated people), doubt inevitably followed as to the truth
-of tradition. But doubt as to the truth of tradition is fatal not only
-to popery and Catholicism, but also to the whole Church creed with all
-its dogmas: the divinity of Christ, the resurrection, and the Trinity;
-and it destroys the authority of the Scriptures, since they were
-considered to be inspired only because the tradition of the Church
-decided it so.
-
-So that the majority of the highest classes of that age, even the popes
-and the ecclesiastics, really believed in nothing at all. In the Church
-doctrine these people did not believe, for they saw its insolvency; but
-neither could they follow Francis of Assisi, Keltchitsky,[62] and most
-of the heretics, in acknowledging the moral, social teaching of Christ,
-for that teaching undermined their social position. And so these people
-remained without any religious view of life. And, having none, they
-could have no standard wherewith to estimate what was good and what was
-bad art but that of personal enjoyment. And, having acknowledged their
-criterion of what was good to be pleasure, _i.e._, beauty, these people
-of the upper classes of European society went back in their
-comprehension of art to the gross conception of the primitive Greeks
-which Plato had already condemned. And conformably to this understanding
-of life a theory of art was formulated.
-
-Footnote 61:
-
- Eastern sects well known in early Church history, who rejected the
- Church’s rendering of Christ’s teaching and were cruelly
- persecuted.—Trans.
-
-Footnote 62:
-
- Keltchitsky, a Bohemian of the fifteenth century, was the author of a
- remarkable book, _The Net of Faith_, directed against Church and
- State. It is mentioned in Tolstoy’s _The Kingdom of God is Within
- You_.—Trans.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII
-
-
-From the time that people of the upper classes lost faith in Church
-Christianity, beauty (_i.e._ the pleasure received from art) became
-their standard of good and bad art. And, in accordance with that view,
-an æsthetic theory naturally sprang up among those upper classes
-justifying such a conception,—a theory according to which the aim of art
-is to exhibit beauty. The partisans of this æsthetic theory, in
-confirmation of its truth, affirmed that it was no invention of their
-own, but that it existed in the nature of things, and was recognised
-even by the ancient Greeks. But this assertion was quite arbitrary, and
-has no foundation other than the fact that among the ancient Greeks, in
-consequence of the low grade of their moral ideal (as compared with the
-Christian), their conception of the good, τὸ ἀγαθόν, was not yet sharply
-divided from their conception of the beautiful, τὸ καλόν.
-
-That highest perfection of goodness (not only not identical with beauty,
-but, for the most part, contrasting with it) which was discerned by the
-Jews even in the times of Isaiah, and fully expressed by Christianity,
-was quite unknown to the Greeks. They supposed that the beautiful must
-necessarily also be the good. It is true that their foremost
-thinkers—Socrates, Plato, Aristotle—felt that goodness may happen not to
-coincide with beauty. Socrates expressly subordinated beauty to
-goodness; Plato, to unite the two conceptions, spoke of spiritual
-beauty; while Aristotle demanded from art that it should have a moral
-influence on people (κάθαρσις). But, notwithstanding all this, they
-could not quite dismiss the notion that beauty and goodness coincide.
-
-And consequently, in the language of that period, a compound word
-(καλο-κἀγαθία, beauty-goodness), came into use to express that notion.
-
-Evidently the Greek sages began to draw near to that perception of
-goodness which is expressed in Buddhism and in Christianity, and they
-got entangled in defining the relation between goodness and beauty.
-Plato’s reasonings about beauty and goodness are full of contradictions.
-And it was just this confusion of ideas that those Europeans of a later
-age, who had lost all faith, tried to elevate into a law. They tried to
-prove that this union of beauty and goodness is inherent in the very
-essence of things; that beauty and goodness must coincide; and that the
-word and conception καλο-κἀγαθία (which had a meaning for Greeks but has
-none at all for Christians) represents the highest ideal of humanity. On
-this misunderstanding the new science of æsthetics was built up. And, to
-justify its existence, the teachings of the ancients on art were so
-twisted as to make it appear that this invented science of æsthetics had
-existed among the Greeks.
-
-In reality, the reasoning of the ancients on art was quite unlike ours.
-As Benard, in his book on the æsthetics of Aristotle, quite justly
-remarks: “_Pour qui veut y regarder de près, la théorie du beau et celle
-de l’art sont tout à fait séparées dans Aristote, comme elles le sont
-dans Platon et chez tous leurs successeurs_” (_L’esthétique d’Aristote
-et de ses successeurs_, Paris, 1889, p. 28).[63] And indeed the
-reasoning of the ancients on art not only does not confirm our science
-of æsthetics, but rather contradicts its doctrine of beauty. But
-nevertheless all the æsthetic guides, from Schasler to Knight, declare
-that the science of the beautiful—æsthetic science—was commenced by the
-ancients, by Socrates, Plato, Aristotle; and was continued, they say,
-partially by the Epicureans and Stoics: by Seneca and Plutarch, down to
-Plotinus. But it is supposed that this science, by some unfortunate
-accident, suddenly vanished in the fourth century, and stayed away for
-about 1500 years, and only after these 1500 years had passed did it
-revive in Germany, A.D. 1750, in Baumgarten’s doctrine.
-
-After Plotinus, says Schasler, fifteen centuries passed away during
-which there was not the slightest scientific interest felt for the world
-of beauty and art. These one and a half thousand years, says he, have
-been lost to æsthetics and have contributed nothing towards the erection
-of the learned edifice of this science.[64]
-
-In reality nothing of the kind happened. The science of æsthetics, the
-science of the beautiful, neither did nor could vanish because it never
-existed. Simply, the Greeks (just like everybody else, always and
-everywhere) considered art (like everything else) good only when it
-served goodness (as they understood goodness), and bad when it was in
-opposition to that goodness. And the Greeks themselves were so little
-developed morally, that goodness and beauty seemed to them to coincide.
-On that obsolete Greek view of life was erected the science of
-æsthetics, invented by men of the eighteenth century, and especially
-shaped and mounted in Baumgarten’s theory. The Greeks (as anyone may see
-who will read Benard’s admirable book on Aristotle and his successors,
-and Walter’s work on Plato) never had a science of æsthetics.
-
-Æsthetic theories arose about one hundred and fifty years ago among the
-wealthy classes of the Christian European world, and arose
-simultaneously among different nations,—German, Italian, Dutch, French,
-and English. The founder and organiser of it, who gave it a scientific,
-theoretic form, was Baumgarten.
-
-With a characteristically German, external exactitude, pedantry and
-symmetry, he devised and expounded this extraordinary theory. And,
-notwithstanding its obvious insolidity, nobody else’s theory so pleased
-the cultured crowd, or was accepted so readily and with such an absence
-of criticism. It so suited the people of the upper classes, that to this
-day, notwithstanding its entirely fantastic character and the arbitrary
-nature of its assertions, it is repeated by learned and unlearned as
-though it were something indubitable and self-evident.
-
-_Habent sua fata libelli pro capite lectoris_, and so, or even more so,
-theories _habent sua fata_ according to the condition of error in which
-that society is living, among whom and for whom the theories are
-invented. If a theory justifies the false position in which a certain
-part of a society is living, then, however unfounded or even obviously
-false the theory may be, it is accepted, and becomes an article of faith
-to that section of society. Such, for instance, was the celebrated and
-unfounded theory expounded by Malthus, of the tendency of the population
-of the world to increase in geometrical progression, but of the means of
-sustenance to increase only in arithmetical progression, and of the
-consequent overpopulation of the world; such, also, was the theory (an
-outgrowth of the Malthusian) of selection and struggle for existence as
-the basis of human progress. Such, again, is Marx’s theory, which
-regards the gradual destruction of small private production by large
-capitalistic production now going on around us, as an inevitable decree
-of fate. However unfounded such theories are, however contrary to all
-that is known and confessed by humanity, and however obviously immoral
-they may be, they are accepted with credulity, pass uncriticised, and
-are preached, perchance for centuries, until the conditions are
-destroyed which they served to justify, or until their absurdity has
-become too evident. To this class belongs this astonishing theory of the
-Baumgartenian Trinity—Goodness, Beauty, and Truth, according to which it
-appears that the very best that can be done by the art of nations after
-1900 years of Christian teaching, is to choose as the ideal of their
-life the ideal that was held by a small, semi-savage, slave-holding
-people who lived 2000 years ago, who imitated the nude human body
-extremely well, and erected buildings pleasant to look at. All these
-incompatibilities pass completely unnoticed. Learned people write long,
-cloudy treatises on beauty as a member of the æsthetic trinity of
-Beauty, Truth, and Goodness; _das Schöne, das Wahre, das Gute_; _le
-Beau, le Vrai, le Bon_, are repeated, with capital letters, by
-philosophers, æstheticians and artists, by private individuals, by
-novelists and by _feuilletonistes_, and they all think, when pronouncing
-these sacrosanct words, that they speak of something quite definite and
-solid—something on which they can base their opinions. In reality, these
-words not only have no definite meaning, but they hinder us in attaching
-any definite meaning to existing art; they are wanted only for the
-purpose of justifying the false importance we attribute to an art that
-transmits every kind of feeling if only those feelings afford us
-pleasure.
-
-Footnote 63:
-
- Any one examining closely may see that the theory of beauty and that
- of art are quite separated in Aristotle as they are in Plato and in
- all their successors.
-
-Footnote 64:
-
- Die Lücke von fünf Jahrhunderten, welche zwischen den
- Kunstphilosophischen Betrachtungen des Plato und Aristoteles und die
- des Plotins fällt, kann zwar auffällig erscheinen; dennoch kann man
- eigentlich nicht sagen, dass in dieser Zwischenzeit überhaupt von
- ästhetischen Dingen nicht die Rede gewesen; oder dass gar ein völliger
- Mangel an Zusammenhang zwischen den Kunst-anscliauungen des
- letztgenannten Philosophen und denen der ersteren existire. Freilich
- wurde die von Aristoteles begründete Wissenschaft in Nichts dadurch
- gefördert; immerhin aber zeigt sich in jener Zwischenzeit noch ein
- gewisses Interesse für ästhetische Fragen. Nach Plotin aber, die
- wenigen, ihm in der Zeit nahestehenden Philosophen, wie Longin,
- Augustin, u. s. f. kommen, wie wir gesehen, kaum in Betracht und
- schliessen sich übrigens in ihrer Anschauungsweise an ihn an,—vergehen
- nicht fünf, sondern _fünfzehn Jahrhunderte_, in denen von irgend einer
- wissenschaftlichen Interesse für die Welt des Schönen und der Kunst
- nichts zu spüren ist.
-
- Diese anderthalbtausend Jahre, innerhalb deren der Weltgeist durch die
- mannigfachsten Kämpfe hindurch zu einer völlig neuen Gestaltung des
- Lebens sich durcharbeitete, sind für die Aesthetik, hinsichtlich des
- weiteren Ausbaus dieser Wissenschaft verloren.—Max Schasler.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII
-
-
-But if art is a human activity having for its purpose the transmission
-to others of the highest and best feelings to which men have risen, how
-could it be that humanity for a certain rather considerable period of
-its existence (from the time people ceased to believe in Church doctrine
-down to the present day) should exist without this important activity,
-and, instead of it, should put up with an insignificant artistic
-activity only affording pleasure?
-
-In order to answer this question, it is necessary, first of all, to
-correct the current error people make in attributing to our art the
-significance of true, universal art. We are so accustomed, not only
-naïvely to consider the Circassian family the best stock of people, but
-also the Anglo-Saxon race the best race if we are Englishmen or
-Americans, or the Teutonic if we are Germans, or the Gallo-Latin if we
-are French, or the Slavonic if we are Russians, that when speaking of
-our own art we feel fully convinced, not only that our art is true art,
-but even that it is the best and only true art. But in reality our art
-is not only not the only art (as the Bible once was held to be the only
-book), but it is not even the art of the whole of Christendom,—only of a
-small section of that part of humanity. It was correct to speak of a
-national Jewish, Grecian, or Egyptian art, and one may speak of a
-now-existing Chinese, Japanese, or Indian art shared in by a whole
-people. Such art, common to a whole nation, existed in Russia till Peter
-the First’s time, and existed in the rest of Europe until the thirteenth
-or fourteenth century; but since the upper classes of European society,
-having lost faith in the Church teaching, did not accept real
-Christianity but remained without any faith, one can no longer speak of
-an art of the Christian nations in the sense of the whole of art. Since
-the upper classes of the Christian nations lost faith in Church
-Christianity, the art of those upper classes has separated itself from
-the art of the rest of the people, and there have been two arts—the art
-of the people and genteel art. And therefore the answer to the question
-how it could occur that humanity lived for a certain period without real
-art, replacing it by art which served enjoyment only, is, that not all
-humanity, nor even any considerable portion of it, lived without real
-art, but only the highest classes of European Christian society, and
-even they only for a comparatively short time—from the commencement of
-the Renaissance down to our own day.
-
-And the consequence of this absence of true art showed itself,
-inevitably, in the corruption of that class which nourished itself on
-the false art. All the confused, unintelligible theories of art, all the
-false and contradictory judgments on art, and particularly the
-self-confident stagnation of our art in its false path, all arise from
-the assertion, which has come into common use and is accepted as an
-unquestioned truth, but is yet amazingly and palpably false, the
-assertion, namely, that the art of our upper classes[65] is the whole of
-art, the true, the only, the universal art. And although this assertion
-(which is precisely similar to the assertion made by religious people of
-the various Churches who consider that theirs is the only true religion)
-is quite arbitrary and obviously unjust, yet it is calmly repeated by
-all the people of our circle with full faith in its infallibility.
-
-The art we have is the whole of art, the real, the only art, and yet
-two-thirds of the human race (all the peoples of Asia and Africa) live
-and die knowing nothing of this sole and supreme art. And even in our
-Christian society hardly one per cent. of the people make use of this
-art which we speak of as being the _whole_ of art; the remaining
-ninety-nine per cent. live and die, generation after generation, crushed
-by toil and never tasting this art, which moreover is of such a nature
-that, if they could get it, they would not understand anything of it.
-We, according to the current æsthetic theory, acknowledge art either as
-one of the highest manifestations of the Idea, God, Beauty, or as the
-highest spiritual enjoyment; furthermore, we hold that all people have
-equal rights, if not to material, at any rate to spiritual well-being;
-and yet ninety-nine per cent. of our European population live and die,
-generation after generation, crushed by toil, much of which toil is
-necessary for the production of our art which they never use, and we,
-nevertheless, calmly assert that the art which we produce is the real,
-true, only art—all of art!
-
-To the remark that if our art is the true art everyone should have the
-benefit of it, the usual reply is that if not everybody at present makes
-use of existing art, the fault lies, not in the art, but in the false
-organisation of society; that one can imagine to oneself, in the future,
-a state of things in which physical labour will be partly superseded by
-machinery, partly lightened by its just distribution, and that labour
-for the production of art will be taken in turns; that there is no need
-for some people always to sit below the stage moving the decorations,
-winding up the machinery, working at the piano or French horn, and
-setting type and printing books, but that the people who do all this
-work might be engaged only a few hours per day, and in their leisure
-time might enjoy all the blessings of art.
-
-That is what the defenders of our exclusive art say. But I think they do
-not themselves believe it. They cannot help knowing that fine art can
-arise only on the slavery of the masses of the people, and can continue
-only as long as that slavery lasts, and they cannot help knowing that
-only under conditions of intense labour for the workers, can
-specialists—writers, musicians, dancers, and actors—arrive at that fine
-degree of perfection to which they do attain, or produce their refined
-works of art; and only under the same conditions can there be a fine
-public to esteem such productions. Free the slaves of capital, and it
-will be impossible to produce such refined art.
-
-But even were we to admit the inadmissible, and say that means may be
-found by which art (that art which among us is considered to be art) may
-be accessible to the whole people, another consideration presents itself
-showing that fashionable art cannot be the whole of art, viz. the fact
-that it is completely unintelligible to the people. Formerly men wrote
-poems in Latin, but now their artistic productions are as unintelligible
-to the common folk as if they were written in Sanskrit. The usual reply
-to this is, that if the people do not now understand this art of ours,
-it only proves that they are undeveloped, and that this has been so at
-each fresh step forward made by art. First it was not understood, but
-afterwards people got accustomed to it.
-
-“It will be the same with our present art; it will be understood when
-everybody is as well educated as are we—the people of the upper
-classes—who produce this art,” say the defenders of our art. But this
-assertion is evidently even more unjust than the former; for we know
-that the majority of the productions of the art of the upper classes,
-such as various odes, poems, dramas, cantatas, pastorals, pictures,
-etc., which delighted the people of the upper classes when they were
-produced, never were afterwards either understood or valued by the great
-masses of mankind, but have remained, what they were at first, a mere
-pastime for rich people of their time, for whom alone they ever were of
-any importance. It is also often urged in proof of the assertion that
-the people will some day understand our art, that some productions of
-so-called “classical” poetry, music, or painting, which formerly did not
-please the masses, do—now that they have been offered to them from all
-sides—begin to please these same masses; but this only shows that the
-crowd, especially the half-spoilt town crowd, can easily (its taste
-having been perverted) be accustomed to any sort of art. Moreover, this
-art is not produced by these masses, nor even chosen by them, but is
-energetically thrust upon them in those public places in which art is
-accessible to the people. For the great majority of working people, our
-art, besides being inaccessible on account of its costliness, is strange
-in its very nature, transmitting as it does the feelings of people far
-removed from those conditions of laborious life which are natural to the
-great body of humanity. That which is enjoyment to a man of the rich
-classes, is incomprehensible, as a pleasure, to a working man, and
-evokes in him either no feeling at all, or only a feeling quite contrary
-to that which it evokes in an idle and satiated man. Such feelings as
-form the chief subjects of present-day art—say, for instance,
-honour,[66] patriotism and amorousness, evoke in a working man only
-bewilderment and contempt, or indignation. So that even if a possibility
-were given to the labouring classes, in their free time, to see, to
-read, and to hear all that forms the flower of contemporary art (as is
-done to some extent in towns, by means of picture galleries, popular
-concerts, and libraries), the working man (to the extent to which he is
-a labourer, and has not begun to pass into the ranks of those perverted
-by idleness) would be able to make nothing of our fine art, and if he
-did understand it, that which he understood would not elevate his soul,
-but would certainly, in most cases, pervert it. To thoughtful and
-sincere people there can therefore be no doubt that the art of our upper
-classes never can be the art of the whole people. But if art is an
-important matter, a spiritual blessing, essential for all men (“like
-religion,” as the devotees of art are fond of saying), then it should be
-accessible to everyone. And if, as in our day, it is not accessible to
-all men, then one of two things: either art is not the vital matter it
-is represented to be, or that art which we call art is not the real
-thing.
-
-The dilemma is inevitable, and therefore clever and immoral people avoid
-it by denying one side of it, viz. denying that the common people have a
-right to art. These people simply and boldly speak out (what lies at the
-heart of the matter), and say that the participators in and utilisers of
-what in their esteem is highly beautiful art, _i.e._ art furnishing the
-greatest enjoyment, can only be “schöne Geister,” “the elect,” as the
-romanticists called them, the “Uebermenschen,” as they are called by the
-followers of Nietzsche; the remaining vulgar herd, incapable of
-experiencing these pleasures, must serve the exalted pleasures of this
-superior breed of people. The people who express these views at least do
-not pretend and do not try to combine the incombinable, but frankly
-admit, what is the case, that our art is an art of the upper classes
-only. So, essentially, art has been, and is, understood by everyone
-engaged on it in our society.
-
-Footnote 65:
-
- The contrast made is between the classes and the masses: between those
- who do not and those who do earn their bread by productive manual
- labour; the middle classes being taken as an offshoot of the upper
- classes.—Trans.
-
-Footnote 66:
-
- Duelling is still customary among the higher circles in Russia, as in
- other Continental countries.—Trans.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX
-
-
-The unbelief of the upper classes of the European world had this effect,
-that instead of an artistic activity aiming at transmitting the highest
-feelings to which humanity has attained,—those flowing from religious
-perception,—we have an activity which aims at affording the greatest
-enjoyment to a certain class of society. And of all the immense domain
-of art, that part has been fenced off, and is alone called art, which
-affords enjoyment to the people of this particular circle.
-
-Apart from the moral effects on European society of such a selection
-from the whole sphere of art of what did not deserve such a valuation,
-and the acknowledgment of it as important art, this perversion of art
-has weakened art itself, and well-nigh destroyed it. The first great
-result was that art was deprived of the infinite, varied, and profound
-religious subject-matter proper to it. The second result was that having
-only a small circle of people in view, it lost its beauty of form and
-became affected and obscure; and the third and chief result was that it
-ceased to be either natural or even sincere, and became thoroughly
-artificial and brain-spun.
-
-The first result—the impoverishment of subject-matter—followed because
-only that is a true work of art which transmits fresh feelings not
-before experienced by man. As thought-product is only then real
-thought-product when it transmits new conceptions and thoughts, and does
-not merely repeat what was known before, so also an art-product is only
-then a genuine art-product when it brings a new feeling (however
-insignificant) into the current of human life. This explains why
-children and youths are so strongly impressed by those works of art
-which first transmit to them feelings they had not before experienced.
-
-The same powerful impression is made on people by feelings which are
-quite new, and have never before been expressed by man. And it is the
-source from which such feelings flow of which the art of the upper
-classes has deprived itself by estimating feelings, not in conformity
-with religious perception, but according to the degree of enjoyment they
-afford. There is nothing older and more hackneyed than enjoyment, and
-there is nothing fresher than the feelings springing from the religious
-consciousness of each age. It could not be otherwise: man’s enjoyment
-has limits established by his nature, but the movement forward of
-humanity, that which is voiced by religious perception, has no limits.
-At every forward step taken by humanity—and such steps are taken in
-consequence of the greater and greater elucidation of religious
-perception—men experience new and fresh feelings. And therefore only on
-the basis of religious perception (which shows the highest level of
-life-comprehension reached by the men of a certain period) can fresh
-emotion, never before felt by man, arise. From the religious perception
-of the ancient Greeks flowed the really new, important, and endlessly
-varied feelings expressed by Homer and the tragic writers. It was the
-same among the Jews, who attained the religious conception of a single
-God,—from that perception flowed all those new and important emotions
-expressed by the prophets. It was the same for the poets of the Middle
-Ages, who, if they believed in a heavenly hierarchy, believed also in
-the Catholic commune; and it is the same for a man of to-day who has
-grasped the religious conception of true Christianity—the brotherhood of
-man.
-
-The variety of fresh feelings flowing from religious perception is
-endless, and they are all new, for religious perception is nothing else
-than the first indication of that which is coming into existence, viz.
-the new relation of man to the world around him. But the feelings
-flowing from the desire for enjoyment are, on the contrary, not only
-limited, but were long ago experienced and expressed. And therefore the
-lack of belief of the upper classes of Europe has left them with an art
-fed on the poorest subject-matter.
-
-The impoverishment of the subject-matter of upper-class art was further
-increased by the fact that, ceasing to be religious, it ceased also to
-be popular, and this again diminished the range of feelings which it
-transmitted. For the range of feelings experienced by the powerful and
-the rich, who have no experience of labour for the support of life, is
-far poorer, more limited, and more insignificant than the range of
-feelings natural to working people.
-
-People of our circle, æstheticians, usually think and say just the
-contrary of this. I remember how Gontchareff, the author, a very clever
-and educated man but a thorough townsman and an æsthetician, said to me
-that after Tourgenieff’s _Memoirs of a Sportsman_ there was nothing left
-to write about in peasant life. It was all used up. The life of working
-people seemed to him so simple that Tourgenieff’s peasant stories had
-used up all there was to describe. The life of our wealthy people, with
-their love affairs and dissatisfaction with themselves, seemed to him
-full of inexhaustible subject-matter. One hero kissed his lady on her
-palm, another on her elbow, and a third somewhere else. One man is
-discontented through idleness, and another because people don’t love
-him. And Gontchareff thought that in this sphere there is no end of
-variety. And this opinion—that the life of working people is poor in
-subject-matter, but that our life, the life of the idle, is full of
-interest—is shared by very many people in our society. The life of a
-labouring man, with its endlessly varied forms of labour, and the
-dangers connected with this labour on sea and underground; his
-migrations, the intercourse with his employers, overseers, and
-companions and with men of other religions and other nationalities; his
-struggles with nature and with wild beasts, the associations with
-domestic animals, the work in the forest, on the steppe, in the field,
-the garden, the orchard; his intercourse with wife and children, not
-only as with people near and dear to him, but as with co-workers and
-helpers in labour, replacing him in time of need; his concern in all
-economic questions, not as matters of display or discussion, but as
-problems of life for himself and his family; his pride in
-self-suppression and service to others, his pleasures of refreshment;
-and with all these interests permeated by a religious attitude towards
-these occurrences—all this to us, who have not these interests and
-possess no religious perception, seems monotonous in comparison with
-those small enjoyments and insignificant cares of our life,—a life, not
-of labour nor of production, but of consumption and destruction of that
-which others have produced for us. We think the feelings experienced by
-people of our day and our class are very important and varied; but in
-reality almost all the feelings of people of our class amount to but
-three very insignificant and simple feelings—the feeling of pride, the
-feeling of sexual desire, and the feeling of weariness of life. These
-three feelings, with their outgrowths, form almost the only
-subject-matter of the art of the rich classes.
-
-At first, at the very beginning of the separation of the exclusive art
-of the upper classes from universal art, its chief subject-matter was
-the feeling of pride. It was so at the time of the Renaissance and after
-it, when the chief subject of works of art was the laudation of the
-strong—popes, kings, and dukes: odes and madrigals were written in their
-honour, and they were extolled in cantatas and hymns; their portraits
-were painted, and their statues carved, in various adulatory ways. Next,
-the element of sexual desire began more and more to enter into art, and
-(with very few exceptions, and in novels and dramas almost without
-exception) it has now become an essential feature of every art product
-of the rich classes.
-
-The third feeling transmitted by the art of the rich—that of discontent
-with life—appeared yet later in modern art. This feeling, which, at the
-commencement of the present century, was expressed only by exceptional
-men; by Byron, by Leopardi, and afterwards by Heine, has latterly become
-fashionable and is expressed by most ordinary and empty people. Most
-justly does the French critic Doumic characterise the works of the new
-writers—“_c’est la lassitude de vivre, le mépris de l’époque présente,
-le regret d’un autre temps aperçu à travers l’illusion de l’art, le goût
-du paradoxe, le besoin de se singulariser, une aspiration de raffinés
-vers la simplicité, l’adoration enfantine du merveilleux, la séduction
-maladive de la rêverie, l’ébranlement des nerfs,—surtout l’appel
-exaspéré de la sensualité_” (_Les Jeunes_, René Doumic).[67] And, as a
-matter of fact, of these three feelings it is sensuality, the lowest
-(accessible not only to all men but even to all animals) which forms the
-chief subject-matter of works of art of recent times.
-
-From Boccaccio to Marcel Prévost, all the novels, poems, and verses
-invariably transmit the feeling of sexual love in its different forms.
-Adultery is not only the favourite, but almost the only theme of all the
-novels. A performance is not a performance unless, under some pretence,
-women appear with naked busts and limbs. Songs and _romances_—all are
-expressions of lust, idealised in various degrees.
-
-A majority of the pictures by French artists represent female nakedness
-in various forms. In recent French literature there is hardly a page or
-a poem in which nakedness is not described, and in which, relevantly or
-irrelevantly, their favourite thought and word _nu_ is not repeated a
-couple of times. There is a certain writer, René de Gourmond, who gets
-printed, and is considered talented. To get an idea of the new writers,
-I read his novel, _Les Chevaux de Diomède_. It is a consecutive and
-detailed account of the sexual connections some gentleman had with
-various women. Every page contains lust-kindling descriptions. It is the
-same in Pierre Louÿs’ book, _Aphrodite_, which met with success; it is
-the same in a book I lately chanced upon—Huysmans’ _Certains_, and, with
-but few exceptions, it is the same in all the French novels. They are
-all the productions of people suffering from erotic mania. And these
-people are evidently convinced that as their whole life, in consequence
-of their diseased condition, is concentrated on amplifying various
-sexual abominations, therefore the life of all the world is similarly
-concentrated. And these people, suffering from erotic mania, are
-imitated throughout the whole artistic world of Europe and America.
-
-Thus in consequence of the lack of belief and the exceptional manner of
-life of the wealthy classes, the art of those classes became
-impoverished in its subject-matter, and has sunk to the transmission of
-the feelings of pride, discontent with life, and, above all, of sexual
-desire.
-
-Footnote 67:
-
- It is the weariness of life, contempt for the present epoch, regret
- for another age seen through the illusion of art, a taste for paradox,
- a desire to be singular, a sentimental aspiration after simplicity, an
- infantine adoration of the marvellous, a sickly tendency towards
- reverie, a shattered condition of nerves, and, above all, the
- exasperated demand of sensuality.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X
-
-
-In consequence of their unbelief the art of the upper classes became
-poor in subject-matter. But besides that, becoming continually more and
-more exclusive, it became at the same time continually more and more
-involved, affected, and obscure.
-
-When a universal artist (such as were some of the Grecian artists or the
-Jewish prophets) composed his work, he naturally strove to say what he
-had to say in such a manner that his production should be intelligible
-to all men. But when an artist composed for a small circle of people
-placed in exceptional conditions, or even for a single individual and
-his courtiers,—for popes, cardinals, kings, dukes, queens, or for a
-king’s mistress,—he naturally only aimed at influencing these people,
-who were well known to him, and lived in exceptional conditions familiar
-to him. And this was an easier task, and the artist was involuntarily
-drawn to express himself by allusions comprehensible only to the
-initiated, and obscure to everyone else. In the first place, more could
-be said in this way; and secondly, there is (for the initiated) even a
-certain charm in the cloudiness of such a manner of expression. This
-method, which showed itself both in euphemism and in mythological and
-historical allusions, came more and more into use, until it has,
-apparently, at last reached its utmost limits in the so-called art of
-the Decadents. It has come, finally, to this: that not only is haziness,
-mysteriousness, obscurity, and exclusiveness (shutting out the masses)
-elevated to the rank of a merit and a condition of poetic art, but even
-incorrectness, indefiniteness, and lack of eloquence are held in esteem.
-
-Théophile Gautier, in his preface to the celebrated _Fleurs du Mal_,
-says that Baudelaire, as far as possible, banished from poetry
-eloquence, passion, and truth too strictly copied (“_l’éloquence, la
-passion, et la vérité calquée trop exactement_”).
-
-And Baudelaire not only expressed this, but maintained his thesis in his
-verses, and yet more strikingly in the prose of his _Petits Poèmes en
-Prose_, the meanings of which have to be guessed like a rebus, and
-remain for the most part undiscovered.
-
-The poet Verlaine (who followed next after Baudelaire, and was also
-esteemed great) even wrote an “_Art poétique_,” in which he advises this
-style of composition:—
-
- _De la musique avant toute chose,
- Et pour cela préfère l’Impair
- Plus vague et plus soluble dans l’air,
- Sans rien en lui qui pèse ou qui pose._
-
- _Il faut aussi que tu n’ailles point
- Choisir tes mots sans quelque méprise:
- Rien de plus cher que la chanson grise
- Où l’Indécis au Précis se joint._
-
-And again:—
-
- _De la musique encore et toujours!
- Que ton vers soit la chose envolée
- Qu’on sent qui fuit d’une âme en allée
- Vers d’autres cieux à d’autres amours._
-
- _Que ton vers soit la bonne aventure
- Éparse au vent crispé du matin,
- Qui va fleurant la menthe et le thym ...
- Et tout le reste est littérature._[68]
-
-After these two comes Mallarmé, considered the most important of the
-young poets, and he plainly says that the charm of poetry lies in our
-having to guess its meaning—that in poetry there should always be a
-puzzle:—
-
-_Je pense qu’il faut qu’il n’y ait qu’allusion_, says he. _La
-contemplation des objets, l’image s’envolant des rêveries suscitées par
-eux, sont le chant: les Parnassiens, eux, prennent la chose entièrement
-et la montrent; par là ils manquent de mystère; ils retirent aux esprits
-cette joie délicieuse de croire qu’ils créent. Nommer un objet, c’est
-supprimer les trois quarts de la jouissance du poème, qui est faite du
-bonheur de deviner peu à peu: le suggérer, voilà le rêve. C’est le
-parfait usage de ce mystère qui constitue le symbole: évoquer petit à
-petit un objet pour montrer un état d’âme, ou, inversement, choisir un
-objet et en dégager un état d’âme, par une sèrie de déchiffrements._
-
-... _Si un être d’une intelligence moyenne, et d’une préparation
-littéraire insuffisante, ouvre par hasard un livre ainsi fait et prétend
-en jouir, il y a malentendu, il faut remettre les choses à leur place.
-Il doit y avoir toujours énigme en poèsie, et c’est le but de la
-littérature, il n’y en a pas d’autre,—d’évoquer les objets._—“_Enquête
-sur l’évolution littéraire_,” Jules Huret, pp. 60, 61.[69]
-
-Thus is obscurity elevated into a dogma among the new poets. As the
-French critic Doumic (who has not yet accepted the dogma) quite
-correctly says:—
-
-“_Il serait temps aussi d’en finir avec cette fameuse ‘théorie de
-l’obscurité’ que la nouvelle école a élevée, en effet, à la hauteur d’un
-dogme._”—_Les Jeunes_, par René Doumic.[70]
-
-But it is not French writers only who think thus. The poets of all other
-countries think and act in the same way: German, and Scandinavian, and
-Italian, and Russian, and English. So also do the artists of the new
-period in all branches of art: in painting, in sculpture, and in music.
-Relying on Nietzsche and Wagner, the artists of the new age conclude
-that it is unnecessary for them to be intelligible to the vulgar crowd;
-it is enough for them to evoke poetic emotion in “the finest nurtured,”
-to borrow a phrase from an English æsthetician.
-
-In order that what I am saying may not seem to be mere assertion, I will
-quote at least a few examples from the French poets who have led this
-movement. The name of these poets is legion. I have taken French
-writers, because they, more decidedly than any others, indicate the new
-direction of art, and are imitated by most European writers.
-
-Besides those whose names are already considered famous, such as
-Baudelaire and Verlaine, here are the names of a few of them: Jean
-Moréas, Charles Morice, Henri de Régnier, Charles Vignier, Adrien
-Remacle, René Ghil, Maurice Maeterlinck, G. Albert Aurier, Rémy de
-Gourmont, Saint-Pol-Roux-le-Magnifique, Georges Rodenbach, le comte
-Robert de Montesquiou-Fezensac. These are Symbolists and Decadents. Next
-we have the “Magi”: Joséphin Péladan, Paul Adam, Jules Bois, M. Papus,
-and others.
-
-Besides these, there are yet one hundred and forty-one others, whom
-Doumic mentions in the book referred to above.
-
-Here are some examples from the work of those of them who are considered
-to be the best, beginning with that most celebrated man, acknowledged to
-be a great artist worthy of a monument—Baudelaire. This is a poem from
-his celebrated _Fleurs du Mal_:—
-
- No. XXIV.
-
- _Je t’adore à l’égal de la voûte nocturne,
- O vase de tristesse, ô grande taciturne,
- Et t’aime d’autant plus, belle, que tu me fuis,
- Et que tu me parais, ornement de mes nuits,
- Plus ironiquement accumuler les lieues
- Qui séparent mes bras des immensités bleues._
-
- _Je m’avance à l’attaque, et je grimpe aux assauts,
- Comme après un cadavre un chœur de vermisseaux,
- Et je chéris, ô bête implacable et cruelle,
- Jusqu’à cette froideur par où tu m’es plus belle!_[71]
-
-And this is another by the same writer:—
-
- No. XXXVI.
-
- _DUELLUM._
-
- _Deux guerriers ont couru l’un sur l’autre; leurs armes
- Ont éclaboussé l’air de lueurs et de sang.
- Ces jeux, ces cliquetis du fer sont les vacarmes
- D’une jeunesse en proie à l’amour vagissant._
-
-
- _Les glaives sont brisés! comme notre jeunesse,
- Ma chère! Mais les dents, les ongles acérés,
- Vengent bientôt l’épée et la dague traîtresse.
- O fureur des cœurs mûrs par l’amour ulcérés!_
-
-
- _Dans le ravin hanté des chats-pards et des onces
- Nos héros, s’étreignant méchamment, ont roulé,
- Et leur peau fleurira l’aridité des ronces._
-
- _Ce gouffre, c’est l’enfer, de nos amis peuplé!
- Roulons-y sans remords, amazone inhumaine,
- Afin d’éterniser l’ardeur de notre haine!_[72]
-
-To be exact, I should mention that the collection contains verses less
-comprehensible than these, but not one poem which is plain and can be
-understood without a certain effort—an effort seldom rewarded, for the
-feelings which the poet transmits are evil and very low ones. And these
-feelings are always, and purposely, expressed by him with eccentricity
-and lack of clearness. This premeditated obscurity is especially
-noticeable in his prose, where the author could, if he liked, speak
-plainly.
-
-Take, for instance, the first piece from his _Petits Poèmes_:—
-
- _L’ÉTRANGER._
-
- _Qui aimes-tu le mieux, homme énigmatique, dis? ton père, ta mère,
- ta sœur, ou ton frère?_
-
- _Je n’ai ni père, ni mère, ni sœur, ni frère._
-
- _Tes amis?_
-
- _Vous vous servez là d’une parole dont le sens m’est resté jusqu’ à
- ce jour inconnu._
-
- _Ta patrie?_
-
- _J’ignore sous quelle latitude elle est située._
-
- _La beauté?_
-
- _Je l’aimerais volontiers, déesse et immortelle._
-
- _L’or?_
-
- _Je le hais comme vous haïssez Dieu._
-
- _Et qu ’aimes-tu donc, extraordinaire étranger?_
-
- _J’aime les nuages ... les nuages qui passent ... là bas, ... les
- merveilleux nuages!_
-
-The piece called _La Soupe et les Nuages_ is probably intended to
-express the unintelligibility of the poet even to her whom he loves.
-This is the piece in question:—
-
- _Ma petite folle bien-aimée me donnait à dîner, et par la fenêtre
- ouverte de la salle à manger je contemplais les mouvantes
- architectures que Dieu fait avec les vapeurs, les merveilleuses
- constructions de l’impalpable. Et je me disais, à travers ma
- contemplation: “Toutes ces fantasmagories sont presque aussi belles
- que les yeux de ma belle bien-aimée, la petite folle monstrueuse aux
- yeux verts.”_
-
- _Et tout à coup je reçus un violent coup de poing dans le dos, et
- j’entendis une voix rauque et charmante, une voix hystérique et
- comme enrouée par l’eau-de-vie, la voix de ma chère petite
- bien-aimée, qui me disait, “Allez-vous bientôt manger votre soupe, s
- ... b ... de marchand de nuages?”_[73]
-
-However artificial these two pieces may be, it is still possible, with
-some effort, to guess at what the author meant them to express, but some
-of the pieces are absolutely incomprehensible—at least to me. _Le Galant
-Tireur_ is a piece I was quite unable to understand.
-
- _LE GALANT TIREUR._
-
- _Comme la voiture traversait le bois, il la fit arrêter dans le
- voisinage d’un tir, disant qu’il lui serait agréable de tirer
- quelques balles pour tuer le Temps. Tuer ce monstre-là, n’est-ce pas
- l’occupation la plus ordinaire et la plus légitime de chacun?—Et il
- offrit galamment la main à sa chère, délicieuse et exécrable femme,
- à cette mystérieuse femme à laquelle il doit tant de plaisirs, tant
- de douleurs, et peut-être aussi une grande partie de son génie._
-
- _Plusieurs balles frappèrent loin du but proposé, l’une d’elles
- s’enfonça même dans le plafond; et comme la charmante créature riait
- follement, se moquant de la maladresse de son époux, celui-ci se
- tourna brusquement vers elle, et lui dit: “Observez cette poupée,
- là-bas, à droite, qui porte le nez en l’air et qui a la mine si
- hautaine. Eh bien! cher ange, je me figure que c’est vous.” Et il
- ferma les yeux et il lâcha la détente. La poupée fut nettement
- décapitée._
-
- _Alors s’ inclinant vers sa chère, sa délicieuse, son exécrable
- femme, son inévitable et impitoyable Muse, et lui baisant
- respectueusement la main, il ajouta: “Ah! mon cher ange, combien je
- vous remercie de mon adresse!”_[74]
-
-The productions of another celebrity, Verlaine, are not less affected
-and unintelligible. This, for instance, is the first poem in the section
-called _Ariettes Oubliées_.
-
- “_Le vent dans la plaine
- Suspend son haleine_.”—FAVART.
-
- _C’est l’extase langoureuse,
- C’est la fatigue amoureuse,
- C’est tous les frissons des bois
- Parmi l’étreinte des brises,
- C’est, vers les ramures grises,
- Le chœur des petites voix._
-
- _O le frêle et frais murmure!
- Cela gazouille et susurre,
- Cela ressemble au cri doux
- Que l’herbe agitée expire ...
- Tu dirais, sous l’eau qui vire,
- Le roulis sourd des cailloux._
-
- _Cette âme qui se lamente
- En cette plainte dormante
- C’est la nôtre, n’est-ce pas?
- La mienne, dis, et la tienne,
- Dont s’exhale l’humble antienne
- Par ce tiède soir, tout has?_[75]
-
-What “_chœur des petites voix_”? and what “_cri doux que l’herbe agitée
-expire_”? and what it all means, remains altogether unintelligible to
-me.
-
-And here is another _Ariette_:—
-
- _VIII._
-
- _Dans l’interminable
- Ennui de la plaine,
- La neige incertaine
- Luit comme du sable._
-
- _Le ciel est de cuivre,
- Sans lueur aucune.
- On croirait voir vivre
- Et mourir la lune._
-
- _Comme des nuées
- Flottent gris les chênes
- Des forêts prochaines
- Parmi les buées._
-
- _Le ciel est de cuivre,
- Sans lueur aucune.
- On croirait voir vivre
- Et mourir la lune._
-
- _Corneille poussive
- Et vous, les loups maigres,
- Par ces bises aigres
- Quoi donc vous arrive?_
-
- _Dans l’interminable
- Ennui de la plaine,
- La neige incertaine
- Luit comme du sable._[76]
-
-How does the moon seem to live and die in a copper heaven? And how can
-snow shine like sand? The whole thing is not merely unintelligible, but,
-under pretence of conveying an impression, it passes off a string of
-incorrect comparisons and words.
-
-Besides these artificial and obscure poems, there are others which are
-intelligible, but which make up for it by being altogether bad, both in
-form and in subject. Such are all the poems under the heading _La
-Sagesse_. The chief place in these verses is occupied by a very poor
-expression of the most commonplace Roman Catholic and patriotic
-sentiments. For instance, one meets with verses such as this:—
-
- _Je ne veux plus penser qu’ à ma mère Marie,
- Siège de la sagesse et source de pardons,
- Mère de France aussi de qui nous attendons
- Inébranlablement l’honneur de la patrie._[77]
-
-Before citing examples from other poets, I must pause to note the
-amazing celebrity of these two versifiers, Baudelaire and Verlaine, who
-are now accepted as being great poets. How the French, who had Chénier,
-Musset, Lamartine, and, above all, Hugo,—and among whom quite recently
-flourished the so-called Parnassiens: Leconte de Lisle, Sully-Prudhomme,
-etc.,—could attribute such importance to these two versifiers, who were
-far from skilful in form and most contemptible and commonplace in
-subject-matter, is to me incomprehensible. The conception-of-life of one
-of them, Baudelaire, consisted in elevating gross egotism into a theory,
-and replacing morality by a cloudy conception of beauty, and especially
-artificial beauty. Baudelaire had a preference, which he expressed, for
-a woman’s face painted rather than showing its natural colour, and for
-metal trees and a theatrical imitation of water rather than real trees
-and real water.
-
-The life-conception of the other, Verlaine, consisted in weak
-profligacy, confession of his moral impotence, and, as an antidote to
-that impotence, in the grossest Roman Catholic idolatry. Both, moreover,
-were quite lacking in naïveté, sincerity, and simplicity, and both
-overflowed with artificiality, forced originality, and self-assurance.
-So that in their least bad productions one sees more of M. Baudelaire or
-M. Verlaine than of what they were describing. But these two indifferent
-versifiers form a school, and lead hundreds of followers after them.
-
-There is only one explanation of this fact: it is that the art of the
-society in which these versifiers lived is not a serious, important
-matter of life, but is a mere amusement. And all amusements grow
-wearisome by repetition. And, in order to make wearisome amusement again
-tolerable, it is necessary to find some means to freshen it up. When, at
-cards, ombre grows stale, whist is introduced; when whist grows stale,
-écarté is substituted; when écarté grows stale, some other novelty is
-invented, and so on. The substance of the matter remains the same, only
-its form is changed. And so it is with this kind of art. The
-subject-matter of the art of the upper classes growing continually more
-and more limited, it has come at last to this, that to the artists of
-these exclusive classes it seems as if everything has already been said,
-and that to find anything new to say is impossible. And therefore, to
-freshen up this art, they look out for fresh forms.
-
-Baudelaire and Verlaine invent such a new form, furbish it up, moreover,
-with hitherto unused pornographic details, and—the critics and the
-public of the upper classes hail them as great writers.
-
-This is the only explanation of the success, not of Baudelaire and
-Verlaine only, but of all the Decadents.
-
-For instance, there are poems by Mallarmé and Maeterlinck which have no
-meaning, and yet for all that, or perhaps on that very account, are
-printed by tens of thousands, not only in various publications, but even
-in collections of the best works of the younger poets.
-
-This, for example, is a sonnet by Mallarmé:—
-
- _A la nue accablante tu
- Basse de basalte et de laves
- A même les échos esclaves
- Par une trompe sans vertu._
-
- _Quel sépulcral naufrage (tu
- Le soir, écume, mais y baves)
- Suprême une entre les épaves
- Abolit le mât dévêtu._
-
- _Ou cela que furibond faute
- De quelque perdition haute
- Tout l’abîme vain éployé_
-
- _Dans le si blanc cheveu qui traîne
- Avarement aura noyé
- Le flanc enfant d’une sirène._[78]
-
- (“Pan,” 1895, No. 1.)
-
-This poem is not exceptional in its incomprehensibility. I have read
-several poems by Mallarmé, and they also had no meaning whatever. I give
-a sample of his prose in Appendix I. There is a whole volume of this
-prose, called “_Divagations_.” It is impossible to understand any of it.
-And that is evidently what the author intended.
-
-And here is a song by Maeterlinck, another celebrated author of to-day:—
-
- _Quand il est sorti,
- (J’entendis la porte)
- Quand il est sorti
- Elle avait souri ..._
-
- _Mais quand il entra
- (J’entendis la lampe)
- Mais quand il entra
- Une autre était là ..._
-
- _Et j’ai vu la mort,
- (J’entendis son âme)
- Et j’ai vu la mort
- Qui l’attend encore ..._
-
- _On est venu dire,
- (Mon enfant j’ai peur)
- On est venu dire
- Qu’il allait partir ..._
-
- _Ma lampe allumée,
- (Mon enfant j’ai peur)
- Ma lampe allumée
- Me suis approchée ..._
-
- _A la première porte,
- (Mon enfant j’ai peur)
- A la première porte,
- La flamme a tremblé ..._
-
- _A la seconde porte,
- (Mon enfant j’ai peur)
- A la seconde porte,
- La flamme a parlé ..._
-
- _A la troisième porte,
- (Mon enfant j’ai peur)
- A la troisième porte,
- La lumière est morte ..._
-
- _Et s’il revenait un jour
- Que faut-il lui dire?
- Dites-lui qu’on l’attendit
- Jusqu’à s’en mourir ..._
-
- _Et s’il demande où vous êtes
- Que faut-il répondre?
- Donnez-lui mon anneau d’or
- Sans rien lui répondre ..._
-
- _Et s’il m’interroge alors
- Sur la dernière heure?
- Dites lui que fai souri
- De peur qu’il ne pleure ..._
-
- _Et s’il m’interroge encore
- Sans me reconnaître?
- Parlez-lui comme une sœur,
- Il souffre peut-être ..._
-
- _Et s’il veut savoir pourquoi
- La salle est déserte?
- Montrez lui la lampe éteinte
- Et la porte ouverte ..._[79]
-
- (“Pan,” 1895, No. 2.)
-
-Who went out? Who came in? Who is speaking? Who died?
-
-I beg the reader to be at the pains of reading through the samples I
-cite in Appendix II. of the celebrated and esteemed young poets—Griffin,
-Verhaeren, Moréas, and Montesquiou. It is important to do so in order to
-form a clear conception of the present position of art, and not to
-suppose, as many do, that Decadentism is an accidental and transitory
-phenomenon. To avoid the reproach of having selected the worst verses, I
-have copied out of each volume the poem which happened to stand on page
-28.
-
-All the other productions of these poets are equally unintelligible, or
-can only be understood with great difficulty, and then not fully. All
-the productions of those hundreds of poets, of whom I have named a few,
-are the same in kind. And among the Germans, Swedes, Norwegians,
-Italians, and us Russians, similar verses are printed. And such
-productions are printed and made up into book form, if not by the
-million, then by the hundred thousand (some of these works sell in tens
-of thousands). For type-setting, paging, printing, and binding these
-books, millions and millions of working days are spent—not less, I
-think, than went to build the great pyramid. And this is not all. The
-same is going on in all the other arts: millions and millions of working
-days are being spent on the production of equally incomprehensible works
-in painting, in music, and in the drama.
-
-Painting not only does not lag behind poetry in this matter, but rather
-outstrips it. Here is an extract from the diary of an amateur of art,
-written when visiting the Paris exhibitions in 1894:—
-
-“I was to-day at three exhibitions: the Symbolists’, the
-Impressionists’, and the Neo-Impressionists’. I looked at the pictures
-conscientiously and carefully, but again felt the same stupefaction and
-ultimate indignation. The first exhibition, that of Camille Pissarro,
-was comparatively the most comprehensible, though the pictures were out
-of drawing, had no subject, and the colourings were most improbable. The
-drawing was so indefinite that you were sometimes unable to make out
-which way an arm or a head was turned. The subject was generally,
-‘_effets_’—_Effet de brouillard_, _Effet du soir_, _Soleil couchant_.
-There were some pictures with figures, but without subjects.
-
-“In the colouring, bright blue and bright green predominated. And each
-picture had its special colour, with which the whole picture was, as it
-were, splashed. For instance in ‘A Girl guarding Geese’ the special
-colour is _vert de gris_, and dots of it were splashed about everywhere:
-on the face, the hair, the hands, and the clothes. In the same
-gallery—‘Durand Ruel’—were other pictures, by Puvis de Chavannes, Manet,
-Monet, Renoir, Sisley—who are all Impressionists. One of them, whose
-name I could not make out,—it was something like Redon,—had painted a
-blue face in profile. On the whole face there is only this blue tone,
-with white-of-lead. Pissarro has a water-colour all done in dots. In the
-foreground is a cow entirely painted with various-coloured dots. The
-general colour cannot be distinguished, however much one stands back
-from, or draws near to, the picture. From there I went to see the
-Symbolists. I looked at them long without asking anyone for an
-explanation, trying to guess the meaning; but it is beyond human
-comprehension. One of the first things to catch my eye was a wooden
-_haut-relief_, wretchedly executed, representing a woman (naked) who
-with both hands is squeezing from her two breasts streams of blood. The
-blood flows down, becoming lilac in colour. Her hair first descends and
-then rises again and turns into trees. The figure is all coloured
-yellow, and the hair is brown.
-
-“Next—a picture: a yellow sea, on which swims something which is neither
-a ship nor a heart; on the horizon is a profile with a halo and yellow
-hair, which changes into a sea, in which it is lost. Some of the
-painters lay on their colours so thickly that the effect is something
-between painting and sculpture. A third exhibit was even less
-comprehensible: a man’s profile; before him a flame and black
-stripes—leeches, as I was afterwards told. At last I asked a gentleman
-who was there what it meant, and he explained to me that the
-_haut-relief_ was a symbol, and that it represented ‘_La Terre_.’ The
-heart swimming in a yellow sea was ‘_Illusion perdue_,’ and the
-gentleman with the leeches was ‘_Le Mal_.’ There were also some
-Impressionist pictures: elementary profiles, holding some sort of
-flowers in their hands: in monotone, out of drawing, and either quite
-blurred or else marked out with wide black outlines.”
-
-This was in 1894; the same tendency is now even more strongly defined,
-and we have Böcklin, Stuck, Klinger, Sasha Schneider, and others.
-
-The same thing is taking place in the drama. The play-writers give us an
-architect who, for some reason, has not fulfilled his former high
-intentions, and who consequently climbs on to the roof of a house he has
-erected and tumbles down head foremost; or an incomprehensible old woman
-(who exterminates rats), and who, for an unintelligible reason, takes a
-poetic child to the sea and there drowns him; or some blind men, who,
-sitting on the seashore, for some reason always repeat one and the same
-thing; or a bell of some kind, which flies into a lake and there rings.
-
-And the same is happening in music—in that art which, more than any
-other, one would have thought, should be intelligible to everybody.
-
-An acquaintance of yours, a musician of repute, sits down to the piano
-and plays you what he says is a new composition of his own, or of one of
-the new composers. You hear the strange, loud sounds, and admire the
-gymnastic exercises performed by his fingers; and you see that the
-performer wishes to impress upon you that the sounds he is producing
-express various poetic strivings of the soul. You see his intention, but
-no feeling whatever is transmitted to you except weariness. The
-execution lasts long, or at least it seems very long to you, because you
-do not receive any clear impression, and involuntarily you remember the
-words of Alphonse Karr, “_Plus ça va vite, plus ça dure longtemps._”[80]
-And it occurs to you that perhaps it is all a mystification; perhaps the
-performer is trying you—just throwing his hands and fingers wildly about
-the key-board in the hope that you will fall into the trap and praise
-him, and then he will laugh and confess that he only wanted to see if he
-could hoax you. But when at last the piece does finish, and the
-perspiring and agitated musician rises from the piano evidently
-anticipating praise, you see that it was all done in earnest.
-
-The same thing takes place at all the concerts with pieces by Liszt,
-Wagner, Berlioz, Brahms, and (newest of all) Richard Strauss, and the
-numberless other composers of the new school, who unceasingly produce
-opera after opera, symphony after symphony, piece after piece.
-
-The same is occurring in a domain in which it seemed hard to be
-unintelligible—in the sphere of novels and short stories.
-
-Read _Là-Bas_ by Huysmans, or some of Kipling’s short stories, or
-_L’annonciateur_ by Villiers de l’Isle Adam in his _Contes Cruels_,
-etc., and you will find them not only “abscons” (to use a word adopted
-by the new writers), but absolutely unintelligible both in form and in
-substance. Such, again, is the work by E. Morel, _Terre Promise_, now
-appearing in the _Revue Blanche_, and such are most of the new novels.
-The style is very high-flown, the feelings seem to be most elevated, but
-you can’t make out what is happening, to whom it is happening, and where
-it is happening. And such is the bulk of the young art of our time.
-
-People who grew up in the first half of this century, admiring Goethe,
-Schiller, Musset, Hugo, Dickens, Beethoven, Chopin, Raphael, da Vinci,
-Michael Angelo, Delaroche, being unable to make head or tail of this new
-art, simply attribute its productions to tasteless insanity and wish to
-ignore them. But such an attitude towards this new art is quite
-unjustifiable, because, in the first place, that art is spreading more
-and more, and has already conquered for itself a firm position in
-society, similar to the one occupied by the Romanticists in the third
-decade of this century; and secondly and chiefly, because, if it is
-permissible to judge in this way of the productions of the latest form
-of art, called by us Decadent art, merely because we do not understand
-it, then remember, there are an enormous number of people,—all the
-labourers and many of the non-labouring folk,—who, in just the same way,
-do not comprehend those productions of art which we consider admirable:
-the verses of our favourite artists—Goethe, Schiller, and Hugo; the
-novels of Dickens, the music of Beethoven and Chopin, the pictures of
-Raphael, Michael Angelo, da Vinci, etc.
-
-If I have a right to think that great masses of people do not understand
-and do not like what I consider undoubtedly good because they are not
-sufficiently developed, then I have no right to deny that perhaps the
-reason why I cannot understand and cannot like the new productions of
-art, is merely that I am still insufficiently developed to understand
-them. If I have a right to say that I, and the majority of people who
-are in sympathy, with me, do not understand the productions of the new
-art simply because there is nothing in it to understand and because it
-is bad art, then, with just the same right, the still larger majority,
-the whole labouring mass, who do not understand what I consider
-admirable art, can say that what I reckon as good art is bad art, and
-there is nothing in it to understand.
-
-I once saw the injustice of such condemnation of the new art with
-especial clearness, when, in my presence, a certain poet, who writes
-incomprehensible verses, ridiculed incomprehensible music with gay
-self-assurance; and, shortly afterwards, a certain musician, who
-composes incomprehensible symphonies, laughed at incomprehensible poetry
-with equal self-confidence. I have no right, and no authority, to
-condemn the new art on the ground that I (a man educated in the first
-half of the century) do not understand it; I can only say that it is
-incomprehensible to me. The only advantage the art I acknowledge has
-over the Decadent art, lies in the fact that the art I recognise is
-comprehensible to a somewhat larger number of people than the
-present-day art.
-
-The fact that I am accustomed to a certain exclusive art, and can
-understand it, but am unable to understand another still more exclusive
-art, does not give me a right to conclude that my art is the real true
-art, and that the other one, which I do not understand, is an unreal, a
-bad art. I can only conclude that art, becoming ever more and more
-exclusive, has become more and more incomprehensible to an
-ever-increasing number of people, and that, in this its progress towards
-greater and greater incomprehensibility (on one level of which I am
-standing, with the art familiar to me), it has reached a point where it
-is understood by a very small number of the elect, and the number of
-these chosen people is ever becoming smaller and smaller.
-
-As soon as ever the art of the upper classes separated itself from
-universal art, a conviction arose that art may be art and yet be
-incomprehensible to the masses. And as soon as this position was
-admitted, it had inevitably to be admitted also that art may be
-intelligible only to the very smallest number of the elect, and,
-eventually, to two, or to one, of our nearest friends, or to oneself
-alone. Which is practically what is being said by modern artists:—“I
-create and understand myself, and if anyone does not understand me, so
-much the worse for him.”
-
-The assertion that art may be good art, and at the same time
-incomprehensible to a great number of people, is extremely unjust, and
-its consequences are ruinous to art itself; but at the same time it is
-so common and has so eaten into our conceptions, that it is impossible
-sufficiently to elucidate all the absurdity of it.
-
-Nothing is more common than to hear it said of reputed works of art,
-that they are very good but very difficult to understand. We are quite
-used to such assertions, and yet to say that a work of art is good, but
-incomprehensible to the majority of men, is the same as saying of some
-kind of food that it is very good but that most people can’t eat it. The
-majority of men may not like rotten cheese or putrefying grouse—dishes
-esteemed by people with perverted tastes; but bread and fruit are only
-good when they please the majority of men. And it is the same with art.
-Perverted art may not please the majority of men, but good art always
-pleases everyone.
-
-It is said that the very best works of art are such that they cannot be
-understood by the mass, but are accessible only to the elect who are
-prepared to understand these great works. But if the majority of men do
-not understand, the knowledge necessary to enable them to understand
-should be taught and explained to them. But it turns out that there is
-no such knowledge, that the works cannot be explained, and that those
-who say the majority do not understand good works of art, still do not
-explain those works, but only tell us that, in order to understand them,
-one must read, and see, and hear these same works over and over again.
-But this is not to explain, it is only to habituate! And people may
-habituate themselves to anything, even to the very worst things. As
-people may habituate themselves to bad food, to spirits, tobacco, and
-opium, just in the same way they may habituate themselves to bad art—and
-that is exactly what is being done.
-
-Moreover, it cannot be said that the majority of people lack the taste
-to esteem the highest works of art. The majority always have understood,
-and still understand, what we also recognise as being the very best art:
-the epic of Genesis, the Gospel parables, folk-legends, fairy-tales, and
-folk-songs are understood by all. How can it be that the majority has
-suddenly lost its capacity to understand what is high in our art?
-
-Of a speech it may be said that it is admirable, but incomprehensible to
-those who do not know the language in which it is delivered. A speech
-delivered in Chinese may be excellent, and may yet remain
-incomprehensible to me if I do not know Chinese; but what distinguishes
-a work of art from all other mental activity is just the fact that its
-language is understood by all, and that it infects all without
-distinction. The tears and laughter of a Chinese infect me just as the
-laughter and tears of a Russian; and it is the same with painting and
-music and poetry, when it is translated into a language I understand.
-The songs of a Kirghiz or of a Japanese touch me, though in a lesser
-degree than they touch a Kirghiz or a Japanese. I am also touched by
-Japanese painting, Indian architecture, and Arabian stories. If I am but
-little touched by a Japanese song and a Chinese novel, it is not that I
-do not understand these productions, but that I know and am accustomed
-to higher works of art. It is not because their art is above me. Great
-works of art are only great because they are accessible and
-comprehensible to everyone. The story of Joseph, translated into the
-Chinese language, touches a Chinese. The story of Sakya Muni touches us.
-And there are, and must be, buildings, pictures, statues, and music of
-similar power. So that, if art fails to move men, it cannot be said that
-this is due to the spectators’ or hearers’ lack of understanding; but
-the conclusion to be drawn may, and should be, that such art is either
-bad art, or is not art at all.
-
-Art is differentiated from activity of the understanding, which demands
-preparation and a certain sequence of knowledge (so that one cannot
-learn trigonometry before knowing geometry), by the fact that it acts on
-people independently of their state of development and education, that
-the charm of a picture, of sounds, or of forms, infects any man whatever
-his plane of development.
-
-The business of art lies just in this—to make that understood and felt
-which, in the form of an argument, might be incomprehensible and
-inaccessible. Usually it seems to the recipient of a truly artistic
-impression that he knew the thing before but had been unable to express
-it.
-
-And such has always been the nature of good, supreme art; the _Iliad_,
-the _Odyssey_, the stories of Isaac, Jacob, and Joseph, the Hebrew
-prophets, the psalms, the Gospel parables, the story of Sakya Muni, and
-the hymns of the Vedas: all transmit very elevated feelings, and are
-nevertheless quite comprehensible now to us, educated or uneducated, as
-they were comprehensible to the men of those times, long ago, who were
-even less educated than our labourers. People talk about
-incomprehensibility; but if art is the transmission of feelings flowing
-from man’s religious perception, how can a feeling be incomprehensible
-which is founded on religion, _i.e._ on man’s relation to God? Such art
-should be, and has actually, always been, comprehensible to everybody,
-because every man’s relation to God is one and the same. And therefore
-the churches and the images in them were always comprehensible to
-everyone. The hindrance to understanding the best and highest feelings
-(as is said in the gospel) does not at all lie in deficiency of
-development or learning, but, on the contrary, in false development and
-false learning. A good and lofty work of art may be incomprehensible,
-but not to simple, unperverted peasant labourers (all that is highest is
-understood by them)—it may be, and often is, unintelligible to erudite,
-perverted people destitute of religion. And this continually occurs in
-our society, in which the highest feelings are simply not understood.
-For instance, I know people who consider themselves most refined, and
-who say that they do not understand the poetry of love to one’s
-neighbour, of self-sacrifice, or of chastity.
-
-So that good, great, universal, religious art may be incomprehensible to
-a small circle of spoilt people, but certainly not to any large number
-of plain men.
-
-Art cannot be incomprehensible to the great masses only because it is
-very good,—as artists of our day are fond of telling us. Rather we are
-bound to conclude that this art is unintelligible to the great masses
-only because it is very bad art, or even is not art at all. So that the
-favourite argument (naïvely accepted by the cultured crowd), that in
-order to feel art one has first to understand it (which really only
-means habituate oneself to it), is the truest indication that what we
-are asked to understand by such a method is either very bad, exclusive
-art, or is not art at all.
-
-People say that works of art do not please the people because they are
-incapable of understanding them. But if the aim of works of art is to
-infect people with the emotion the artist has experienced, how can one
-talk about not understanding?
-
-A man of the people reads a book, sees a picture, hears a play or a
-symphony, and is touched by no feeling. He is told that this is because
-he cannot understand. People promise to let a man see a certain show; he
-enters and sees nothing. He is told that this is because his sight is
-not prepared for this show. But the man well knows that he sees quite
-well, and if he does not see what people promised to show him, he only
-concludes (as is quite just) that those who undertook to show him the
-spectacle have not fulfilled their engagement. And it is perfectly just
-for a man who does feel the influence of some works of art to come to
-this conclusion concerning artists who do not, by their works, evoke
-feeling in him. To say that the reason a man is not touched by my art is
-because he is still too stupid, besides being very self-conceited and
-also rude, is to reverse the rôles, and for the sick to send the hale to
-bed.
-
-Voltaire said that “_Tous les genres sont bons, hors le genre
-ennuyeux_”;[81] but with even more right one may say of art that _Tous
-les genres sons bons, hors celui qu’on ne comprend pas_, or _qui ne
-produit pas son effet_,[82] for of what value is an article which fails
-to do that for which it was intended?
-
-Mark this above all: if only it be admitted that art may be art and yet
-be unintelligible to anyone of sound mind, there is no reason why any
-circle of perverted people should not compose works tickling their own
-perverted feelings and comprehensible to no one but themselves, and call
-it “art,” as is actually being done by the so-called Decadents.
-
-The direction art has taken may be compared to placing on a large circle
-other circles, smaller and smaller, until a cone is formed, the apex of
-which is no longer a circle at all. That is what has happened to the art
-of our times.
-
-Footnote 68:
-
- Music, music before all things
- The eccentric still prefer,
- Vague in air, and nothing weighty,
- Soluble. Yet do not err,
-
- Choosing words; still do it lightly,
- Do it too with some contempt;
- Dearest is the song that’s tipsy,
- Clearness, dimness not exempt.
-
-
- Music always, now and ever
- Be thy verse the thing that flies
- From a soul that’s gone, escaping,
- Gone to other loves and skies.
-
- Gone to other loves and regions,
- Following fortunes that allure,
- Mint and thyme and morning crispness ...
- All the rest’s mere literature.
-
-Footnote 69:
-
- I think there should be nothing but allusions. The contemplation of
- objects, the flying image of reveries evoked by them, are the song.
- The Parnassiens state the thing completely, and show it, and thereby
- lack mystery; they deprive the mind of that delicious joy of imagining
- that it creates. To _name an object is to take three-quarters from the
- enjoyment of the poem, which consists in the happiness of guessing
- little by little: to suggest, that is the dream_. It is the perfect
- use of this mystery that constitutes the symbol: little by little, to
- evoke an object in order to show a state of the soul; or inversely, to
- choose an object, and from it to disengage a state of the soul by a
- series of decipherings.
-
- ... If a being of mediocre intelligence and insufficient literary
- preparation chance to open a book made in this way and pretends to
- enjoy it, there is a misunderstanding—things must be returned to their
- places. _There should always be an enigma in poetry_, and the aim of
- literature—it has no other—is to evoke objects.
-
-Footnote 70:
-
- It were time also to have done with this famous “theory of obscurity,”
- which the new school have practically raised to the height of a dogma.
-
-Footnote 71:
-
- For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-Footnote 72:
-
- For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-Footnote 73:
-
- For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-Footnote 74:
-
- For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-Footnote 75:
-
- For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-Footnote 76:
-
- For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-Footnote 77:
-
- I do not wish to think any more, except about my mother Mary,
- Seat of wisdom and source of pardon,
- Also Mother of France, _from whom we
- Steadfastly expect the honour of our country_.
-
-Footnote 78:
-
- This sonnet seems too unintelligible for translation.—Trans.
-
-Footnote 79:
-
- For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-Footnote 80:
-
- The quicker it goes the longer it lasts.
-
-Footnote 81:
-
- All styles are good except the wearisome style.
-
-Footnote 82:
-
- All styles are good except that which is not understood, _or_ which
- fails to produce its effect.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI
-
-
-Becoming ever poorer and poorer in subject-matter and more and more
-unintelligible in form, the art of the upper classes, in its latest
-productions, has even lost all the characteristics of art, and has been
-replaced by imitations of art. Not only has upper-class art, in
-consequence of its separation from universal art, become poor in
-subject-matter and bad in form, _i.e._ ever more and more
-unintelligible, it has, in course of time, ceased even to be art at all,
-and has been replaced by counterfeits.
-
-This has resulted from the following causes. Universal art arises only
-when some one of the people, having experienced a strong emotion, feels
-the necessity of transmitting it to others. The art of the rich classes,
-on the other hand, arises not from the artist’s inner impulse, but
-chiefly because people of the upper classes demand amusement and pay
-well for it. They demand from art the transmission of feelings that
-please them, and this demand artists try to meet. But it is a very
-difficult task, for people of the wealthy classes, spending their lives
-in idleness and luxury, desire to be continually diverted by art; and
-art, even the lowest, cannot be produced at will, but has to generate
-spontaneously in the artist’s inner self. And therefore, to satisfy the
-demands of people of the upper classes, artists have had to devise
-methods of producing imitations of art. And such methods have been
-devised.
-
-These methods are those of (1) borrowing, (2) imitating, (3) striking
-(effects), and (4) interesting.
-
-The first method consists in borrowing whole subjects, or merely
-separate features, from former works recognised by everyone as being
-poetical, and in so re-shaping them, with sundry additions, that they
-should have an appearance of novelty.
-
-Such works, evoking in people of a certain class memories of artistic
-feelings formerly experienced, produce an impression similar to art,
-and, provided only that they conform to other needful conditions, they
-pass for art among those who seek for pleasure from art. Subjects
-borrowed from previous works of art are usually called poetical
-subjects. Objects and people thus borrowed are called poetical objects
-and people. Thus, in our circle, all sorts of legends, sagas, and
-ancient traditions are considered poetical subjects. Among poetical
-people and objects we reckon maidens, warriors, shepherds, hermits,
-angels, devils of all sorts, moonlight, thunder, mountains, the sea,
-precipices, flowers, long hair, lions, lambs, doves, and nightingales.
-In general, all those objects are considered poetical which have been
-most frequently used by former artists in their productions.
-
-Some forty years ago a stupid but highly cultured—_ayant beaucoup
-d’acquis_—lady (since deceased) asked me to listen to a novel written by
-herself. It began with a heroine who, in a poetic white dress, and with
-poetically flowing hair, was reading poetry near some water in a poetic
-wood. The scene was in Russia, but suddenly from behind the bushes the
-hero appears, wearing a hat with a feather _à la Guillaume Tell_ (the
-book specially mentioned this) and accompanied by two poetical white
-dogs. The authoress deemed all this highly poetical, and it might have
-passed muster if only it had not been necessary for the hero to speak.
-But as soon as the gentleman in the hat _à la Guillaume Tell_ began to
-converse with the maiden in the white dress, it became obvious that the
-authoress had nothing to say, but had merely been moved by poetic
-memories of other works, and imagined that by ringing the changes on
-those memories she could produce an artistic impression. But an artistic
-impression, _i.e._ infection, is only received when an author has, in
-the manner peculiar to himself, experienced the feeling which he
-transmits, and not when he passes on another man’s feeling previously
-transmitted to him. Such poetry from poetry cannot infect people, it can
-only simulate a work of art, and even that only to people of perverted
-æsthetic taste. The lady in question being very stupid and devoid of
-talent, it was at once apparent how the case stood; but when such
-borrowing is resorted to by people who are erudite and talented and have
-cultivated the technique of their art, we get those borrowings from the
-Greek, the antique, the Christian or mythological world which have
-become so numerous, and which, particularly in our day, continue to
-increase and multiply, and are accepted by the public as works of art,
-if only the borrowings are well mounted by means of the technique of the
-particular art to which they belong.
-
-As a characteristic example of such counterfeits of art in the realm of
-poetry, take Rostand’s _Princesse Lointaine_, in which there is not a
-spark of art, but which seems very poetical to many people, and probably
-also to its author.
-
-The second method of imparting a semblance of art is that which I have
-called imitating. The essence of this method consists in supplying
-details accompanying the thing described or depicted. In literary art
-this method consists in describing, in the minutest details, the
-external appearance, the faces, the clothes, the gestures, the tones,
-and the habitations of the characters represented, with all the
-occurrences met with in life. For instance, in novels and stories, when
-one of the characters speaks we are told in what voice he spoke, and
-what he was doing at the time. And the things said are not given so that
-they should have as much sense as possible, but, as they are in life,
-disconnectedly, and with interruptions and omissions. In dramatic art,
-besides such imitation of real speech, this method consists in having
-all the accessories and all the people just like those in real life. In
-painting this method assimilates painting to photography and destroys
-the difference between them. And, strange to say, this method is used
-also in music: music tries to imitate not only by its rhythm but also by
-its very sounds, the sounds which in real life accompany the thing it
-wishes to represent.
-
-The third method is by action, often purely physical, on the outer
-senses. Work of this kind is said to be “striking,” “effectful.” In all
-arts these effects consist chiefly in contrasts; in bringing together
-the terrible and the tender, the beautiful and the hideous, the loud and
-the soft, darkness and light, the most ordinary and the most
-extraordinary. In verbal art, besides effects of contrast, there are
-also effects consisting in the description of things that have never
-before been described. These are usually pornographic details evoking
-sexual desire, or details of suffering and death evoking feelings of
-horror, as, for instance, when describing a murder, to give a detailed
-medical account of the lacerated tissues, of the swellings, of the
-smell, quantity and appearance of the blood. It is the same in painting:
-besides all kinds of other contrasts, one is coming into vogue which
-consists in giving careful finish to one object and being careless about
-all the rest. The chief and usual effects in painting are effects of
-light and the depiction of the horrible. In the drama, the most common
-effects, besides contrasts, are tempests, thunder, moonlight, scenes at
-sea or by the sea-shore, changes of costume, exposure of the female
-body, madness, murders, and death generally: the dying person exhibiting
-in detail all the phases of agony. In music the most usual effects are a
-_crescendo_, passing from the softest and simplest sounds to the loudest
-and most complex crash of the full orchestra; a repetition of the same
-sounds _arpeggio_ in all the octaves and on various instruments; or that
-the harmony, tone, and rhythm be not at all those naturally flowing from
-the course of the musical thought, but such as strike one by their
-unexpectedness. Besides these, the commonest effects in music are
-produced in a purely physical manner by strength of sound, especially in
-an orchestra.
-
-Such are some of the most usual effects in the various arts, but there
-yet remains one common to them all, namely, to convey by means of one
-art what it would be natural to convey by another: for instance, to make
-music describe (as is done by the programme music of Wagner and his
-followers), or to make painting, the drama, or poetry, induce a frame of
-mind (as is aimed at by all the Decadent art).
-
-The fourth method is that of interesting (that is, absorbing the mind)
-in connection with works of art. The interest may lie in an intricate
-plot—a method till quite recently much employed in English novels and
-French plays, but now going out of fashion and being replaced by
-authenticity, _i.e._ by detailed description of some historical period
-or some branch of contemporary life. For example, in a novel,
-interestingness may consist in a description of Egyptian or Roman life,
-the life of miners, or that of the clerks in a large shop. The reader
-becomes interested and mistakes this interest for an artistic
-impression. The interest may also depend on the very method of
-expression; a kind of interest that has now come much into use. Both
-verse and prose, as well as pictures, plays, and music, are constructed
-so that they must be guessed like riddles, and this process of guessing
-again affords pleasure and gives a semblance of the feeling received
-from art.
-
-It is very often said that a work of art is very good because it is
-poetic, or realistic, or striking, or interesting; whereas not only can
-neither the first, nor the second, nor the third, nor the fourth of
-these attributes supply a standard of excellence in art, but they have
-not even anything in common with art.
-
-Poetic—means borrowed. All borrowing merely recalls to the reader,
-spectator, or listener some dim recollection of artistic impressions
-they have received from previous works of art, and does not infect them
-with feeling which the artist has himself experienced. A work founded on
-something borrowed, like Goethe’s _Faust_ for instance, may be very well
-executed and be full of mind and every beauty, but because it lacks the
-chief characteristic of a work of art—completeness, oneness, the
-inseparable unity of form and contents expressing the feeling the artist
-has experienced—it cannot produce a really artistic impression. In
-availing himself of this method, the artist only transmits the feeling
-received by him from a previous work of art; therefore every borrowing,
-whether it be of whole subjects, or of various scenes, situations, or
-descriptions, is but a reflection of art, a simulation of it, but not
-art itself. And therefore, to say that a certain production is good
-because it is poetic,—_i.e._ resembles a work of art,—is like saying of
-a coin that it is good because it resembles real money.
-
-Equally little can imitation, realism, serve, as many people think, as a
-measure of the quality of art. Imitation cannot be such a measure, for
-the chief characteristic of art is the infection of others with the
-feelings the artist has experienced, and infection with a feeling is not
-only not identical with description of the accessories of what is
-transmitted, but is usually hindered by superfluous details. The
-attention of the receiver of the artistic impression is diverted by all
-these well-observed details, and they hinder the transmission of feeling
-even when it exists.
-
-To value a work of art by the degree of its realism, by the accuracy of
-the details reproduced, is as strange as to judge of the nutritive
-quality of food by its external appearance. When we appraise a work
-according to its realism, we only show that we are talking, not of a
-work of art, but of its counterfeit.
-
-Neither does the third method of imitating art—by the use of what is
-striking or effectful—coincide with real art any better than the two
-former methods, for in effectfulness—the effects of novelty, of the
-unexpected, of contrasts, of the horrible—there is no transmission of
-feeling, but only an action on the nerves. If an artist were to paint a
-bloody wound admirably, the sight of the wound would strike me, but it
-would not be art. One prolonged note on a powerful organ will produce a
-striking impression, will often even cause tears, but there is no music
-in it, because no feeling is transmitted. Yet such physiological effects
-are constantly mistaken for art by people of our circle, and this not
-only in music, but also in poetry, painting, and the drama. It is said
-that art has become refined. On the contrary, thanks to the pursuit of
-effectfulness, it has become very coarse. A new piece is brought out and
-accepted all over Europe, such, for instance, as _Hannele_, in which
-play the author wishes to transmit to the spectators pity for a
-persecuted girl. To evoke this feeling in the audience by means of art,
-the author should either make one of the characters express this pity in
-such a way as to infect everyone, or he should describe the girl’s
-feelings correctly. But he cannot, or will not, do this, and chooses
-another way, more complicated in stage management but easier for the
-author. He makes the girl die on the stage; and, still further to
-increase the physiological effect on the spectators, he extinguishes the
-lights in the theatre, leaving the audience in the dark, and to the
-sound of dismal music he shows how the girl is pursued and beaten by her
-drunken father. The girl shrinks—screams—groans—and falls. Angels appear
-and carry her away. And the audience, experiencing some excitement while
-this is going on, are fully convinced that this is true æsthetic
-feeling. But there is nothing æsthetic in such excitement, for there is
-no infecting of man by man, but only a mingled feeling of pity for
-another, and of self-congratulation that it is not I who am suffering:
-it is like what we feel at the sight of an execution, or what the Romans
-felt in their circuses.
-
-The substitution of effectfulness for æsthetic feeling is particularly
-noticeable in musical art—that art which by its nature has an immediate
-physiological action on the nerves. Instead of transmitting by means of
-a melody the feelings he has experienced, a composer of the new school
-accumulates and complicates sounds, and by now strengthening, now
-weakening them, he produces on the audience a physiological effect of a
-kind that can be measured by an apparatus invented for the purpose.[83]
-And the public mistake this physiological effect for the effect of art.
-
-As to the fourth method—that of interesting—it also is frequently
-confounded with art. One often hears it said, not only of a poem, a
-novel, or a picture, but even of a musical work, that it is interesting.
-What does this mean? To speak of an interesting work of art means either
-that we receive from a work of art information new to us, or that the
-work is not fully intelligible, and that little by little, and with
-effort, we arrive at its meaning, and experience a certain pleasure in
-this process of guessing it. In neither case has the interest anything
-in common with artistic impression. Art aims at infecting people with
-feeling experienced by the artist. But the mental effort necessary to
-enable the spectator, listener, or reader to assimilate the new
-information contained in the work, or to guess the puzzles propounded,
-by distracting him, hinders the infection. And therefore the
-interestingness of a work not only has nothing to do with its excellence
-as a work of art, but rather hinders than assists artistic impression.
-
-We may, in a work of art, meet with what is poetic, and realistic, and
-striking, and interesting, but these things cannot replace the essential
-of art—feeling experienced by the artist. Latterly, in upper-class art,
-most of the objects given out as being works of art are of the kind
-which only resemble art, and are devoid of its essential quality—feeling
-experienced by the artist. And, for the diversion of the rich, such
-objects are continually being produced in enormous quantities by the
-artisans of art.
-
-Many conditions must be fulfilled to enable a man to produce a real work
-of art. It is necessary that he should stand on the level of the highest
-life-conception of his time, that he should experience feeling and have
-the desire and capacity to transmit it, and that he should, moreover,
-have a talent for some one of the forms of art. It is very seldom that
-all these conditions necessary to the production of true art are
-combined. But in order—aided by the customary methods of borrowing,
-imitating, introducing effects, and interesting—unceasingly to produce
-counterfeits of art which pass for art in our society and are well paid
-for, it is only necessary to have a talent for some branch of art; and
-this is very often to be met with. By talent I mean ability: in literary
-art, the ability to express one’s thoughts and impressions easily and to
-notice and remember characteristic details; in the depictive arts, to
-distinguish and remember lines, forms, and colours; in music, to
-distinguish the intervals, and to remember and transmit the sequence of
-sounds. And a man, in our times, if only he possesses such a talent and
-selects some specialty, may, after learning the methods of
-counterfeiting used in his branch of art,—if he has patience and if his
-æsthetic feeling (which would render such productions revolting to him)
-be atrophied,—unceasingly, till the end of his life, turn out works
-which will pass for art in our society.
-
-To produce such counterfeits, definite rules or recipes exist in each
-branch of art. So that the talented man, having assimilated them, may
-produce such works _à froid_, cold drawn, without any feeling.
-
-In order to write poems a man of literary talent needs only these
-qualifications: to acquire the knack, conformably with the requirements
-of rhyme and rhythm, of using, instead of the one really suitable word,
-ten others meaning approximately the same; to learn how to take any
-phrase which, to be clear, has but one natural order of words, and
-despite all possible dislocations still to retain some sense in it; and
-lastly, to be able, guided by the words required for the rhymes, to
-devise some semblance of thoughts, feelings, or descriptions to suit
-these words. Having acquired these qualifications, he may unceasingly
-produce poems—short or long, religious, amatory or patriotic, according
-to the demand.
-
-If a man of literary talent wishes to write a story or novel, he need
-only form his style—_i.e._ learn how to describe all that he sees—and
-accustom himself to remember or note down details. When he has
-accustomed himself to this, he can, according to his inclination or the
-demand, unceasingly produce novels or stories—historical, naturalistic,
-social, erotic, psychological, or even religious, for which latter kind
-a demand and fashion begins to show itself. He can take subjects from
-books or from the events of life, and can copy the characters of the
-people in his book from his acquaintances.
-
-And such novels and stories, if only they are decked out with well
-observed and carefully noted details, preferably erotic ones, will be
-considered works of art, even though they may not contain a spark of
-feeling experienced.
-
-To produce art in dramatic form, a talented man, in addition to all that
-is required for novels and stories, must also learn to furnish his
-characters with as many smart and witty sentences as possible, must know
-how to utilise theatrical effects, and how to entwine the action of his
-characters so that there should not be any long conversations, but as
-much bustle and movement on the stage as possible. If the writer is able
-to do this, he may produce dramatic works one after another without
-stopping, selecting his subjects from the reports of the law courts, or
-from the latest society topic, such as hypnotism, heredity, etc., or
-from deep antiquity, or even from the realms of fancy.
-
-In the sphere of painting and sculpture it is still easier for the
-talented man to produce imitations of art. He need only learn to draw,
-paint, and model—especially naked bodies. Thus equipped he can continue
-to paint pictures, or model statues, one after another, choosing
-subjects according to his bent—mythological, or religious, or fantastic,
-or symbolical; or he may depict what is written about in the papers—a
-coronation, a strike, the Turko-Grecian war, famine scenes; or,
-commonest of all, he may just copy anything he thinks beautiful—from
-naked women to copper basins.
-
-For the production of musical art the talented man needs still less of
-what constitutes the essence of art, _i.e._ feeling wherewith to infect
-others; but, on the other hand, he requires more physical, gymnastic
-labour than for any other art, unless it be dancing. To produce works of
-musical art, he must first learn to move his fingers on some instrument
-as rapidly as those who have reached the highest perfection; next he
-must know how in former times polyphonic music was written, must study
-what are called counterpoint and fugue; and furthermore, he must learn
-orchestration, _i.e._ how to utilise the effects of the instruments. But
-once he has learned all this, the composer may unceasingly produce one
-work after another; whether programme-music, opera, or song (devising
-sounds more or less corresponding to the words), or chamber music,
-_i.e._ he may take another man’s themes and work them up into definite
-forms by means of counterpoint and fugue; or, what is commonest of all,
-he may compose fantastic music, _i.e._ he may take a conjunction of
-sounds which happens to come to hand, and pile every sort of
-complication and ornamentation on to this chance combination.
-
-Thus, in all realms of art, counterfeits of art are manufactured to a
-ready-made, prearranged recipe, and these counterfeits the public of our
-upper classes accept for real art.
-
-And this substitution of counterfeits for real works of art was the
-third and most important consequence of the separation of the art of the
-upper classes from universal art.
-
-Footnote 83:
-
- An apparatus exists by means of which a very sensitive arrow, in
- dependence on the tension of a muscle of the arm, will indicate the
- physiological action of music on the nerves and muscles.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII
-
-
-In our society three conditions co-operate to cause the production of
-objects of counterfeit art. They are—(1) the considerable remuneration
-of artists for their productions and the professionalisation of artists
-which this has produced, (2) art criticism, and (3) schools of art.
-
-While art was as yet undivided, and only religious art was valued and
-rewarded while indiscriminate art was left unrewarded, there were no
-counterfeits of art, or, if any existed, being exposed to the criticism
-of the whole people, they quickly disappeared. But as soon as that
-division occurred, and the upper classes acclaimed every kind of art as
-good if only it afforded them pleasure, and began to reward such art
-more highly than any other social activity, immediately a large number
-of people devoted themselves to this activity, and art assumed quite a
-different character and became a profession.
-
-And as soon as this occurred, the chief and most precious quality of
-art—its sincerity—was at once greatly weakened and eventually quite
-destroyed.
-
-The professional artist lives by his art, and has continually to invent
-subjects for his works, and does invent them. And it is obvious how
-great a difference must exist between works of art produced on the one
-hand by men such as the Jewish prophets, the authors of the Psalms,
-Francis of Assisi, the authors of the _Iliad_ and _Odyssey_, of
-folk-stories, legends, and folk-songs, many of whom not only received no
-remuneration for their work, but did not even attach their names to it;
-and, on the other hand, works produced by court poets, dramatists and
-musicians receiving honours and remuneration; and later on by
-professional artists, who lived by the trade, receiving remuneration
-from newspaper editors, publishers, impresarios, and in general from
-those agents who come between the artists and the town public—the
-consumers of art.
-
-Professionalism is the first condition of the diffusion of false,
-counterfeit art.
-
-The second condition is the growth, in recent times, of artistic
-criticism, _i.e._ the valuation of art not by everybody, and, above all,
-not by plain men, but by erudite, that is, by perverted and at the same
-time self-confident individuals.
-
-A friend of mine, speaking of the relation of critics to artists,
-half-jokingly defined it thus: “Critics are the stupid who discuss the
-wise.” However partial, inexact, and rude this definition may be, it is
-yet partly true, and is incomparably juster than the definition which
-considers critics to be men who can explain works of art.
-
-“Critics explain!” What do they explain?
-
-The artist, if a real artist, has by his work transmitted to others the
-feeling he experienced. What is there, then, to explain?
-
-If a work be good as art, then the feeling expressed by the artist—be it
-moral or immoral—transmits itself to other people. If transmitted to
-others, then they feel it, and all interpretations are superfluous. If
-the work does not infect people, no explanation can make it contagious.
-An artist’s work cannot be interpreted. Had it been possible to explain
-in words what he wished to convey, the artist would have expressed
-himself in words. He expressed it by his art, only because the feeling
-he experienced could not be otherwise transmitted. The interpretation of
-works of art by words only indicates that the interpreter is himself
-incapable of feeling the infection of art. And this is actually the
-case, for, however strange it may seem to say so, critics have always
-been people less susceptible than other men to the contagion of art. For
-the most part they are able writers, educated and clever, but with their
-capacity of being infected by art quite perverted or atrophied. And
-therefore their writings have always largely contributed, and still
-contribute, to the perversion of the taste of that public which reads
-them and trusts them.
-
-Artistic criticism did not exist—could not and cannot exist—in societies
-where art is undivided, and where, consequently, it is appraised by the
-religious understanding-of-life common to the whole people. Art
-criticism grew, and could grow, only on the art of the upper classes,
-who did not acknowledge the religious perception of their time.
-
-Universal art has a definite and indubitable internal
-criterion—religious perception; upper-class art lacks this, and
-therefore the appreciators of that art are obliged to cling to some
-external criterion. And they find it in “the judgments of the
-finest-nurtured,” as an English æsthetician has phrased it, that is, in
-the authority of the people who are considered educated, nor in this
-alone, but also in a tradition of such authorities. This tradition is
-extremely misleading, both because the opinions of “the finest-nurtured”
-are often mistaken, and also because judgments which were valid once
-cease to be so with the lapse of time. But the critics, having no basis
-for their judgments, never cease to repeat their traditions. The
-classical tragedians were once considered good, and therefore criticism
-considers them to be so still. Dante was esteemed a great poet, Raphael
-a great painter, Bach a great musician—and the critics, lacking a
-standard by which to separate good art from bad, not only consider these
-artists great, but regard all their productions as admirable and worthy
-of imitation. Nothing has contributed, and still contributes, so much to
-the perversion of art as these authorities set up by criticism. A man
-produces a work of art, like every true artist expressing in his own
-peculiar manner a feeling he has experienced. Most people are infected
-by the artist’s feeling; and his work becomes known. Then criticism,
-discussing the artist, says that the work is not bad, but all the same
-the artist is not a Dante, nor a Shakespear, nor a Goethe, nor a
-Raphael, nor what Beethoven was in his last period. And the young artist
-sets to work to copy those who are held up for his imitation, and he
-produces not only feeble works, but false works, counterfeits of art.
-
-Thus, for instance, our Pushkin writes his short poems, _Evgeniy
-Onegin_, _The Gipsies_, and his stories—works all varying in quality,
-but all true art. But then, under the influence of false criticism
-extolling Shakespear, he writes _Boris Godunoff_, a cold, brain-spun
-work, and this production is lauded by the critics, set up as a model,
-and imitations of it appear: _Minin_ by Ostrovsky, and _Tsar Boris_ by
-Alexée Tolstoy, and such imitations of imitations as crowd all
-literatures with insignificant productions. The chief harm done by the
-critics is this, that themselves lacking the capacity to be infected by
-art (and that is the characteristic of all critics; for did they not
-lack this they could not attempt the impossible—the interpretation of
-works of art), they pay most attention to, and eulogise, brain-spun,
-invented works, and set these up as models worthy of imitation. That is
-the reason they so confidently extol, in literature, the Greek
-tragedians, Dante, Tasso, Milton, Shakespear, Goethe (almost all he
-wrote), and, among recent writers, Zola and Ibsen; in music, Beethoven’s
-last period, and Wagner. To justify their praise of these brain-spun,
-invented works, they devise entire theories (of which the famous theory
-of beauty is one); and not only dull but also talented people compose
-works in strict deference to these theories; and often even real
-artists, doing violence to their genius, submit to them.
-
-Every false work extolled by the critics serves as a door through which
-the hypocrites of art at once crowd in.
-
-It is solely due to the critics, who in our times still praise rude,
-savage, and, for us, often meaningless works of the ancient Greeks:
-Sophocles, Euripides, Æschylus, and especially Aristophanes; or, of
-modern writers, Dante, Tasso, Milton, Shakespear; in painting, all of
-Raphael, all of Michael Angelo, including his absurd “Last Judgment”; in
-music, the whole of Bach, and the whole of Beethoven, including his last
-period,—thanks only to them, have the Ibsens, Maeterlincks, Verlaines,
-Mallarmés, Puvis de Chavannes, Klingers, Böcklins, Stucks, Schneiders;
-in music, the Wagners, Liszts, Berliozes, Brahmses, and Richard
-Strausses, etc., and all that immense mass of good-for-nothing imitators
-of these imitators, become possible in our day.
-
-As a good illustration of the harmful influence of criticism, take its
-relation to Beethoven. Among his innumerable hasty productions written
-to order, there are, notwithstanding their artificiality of form, works
-of true art. But he grows deaf, cannot hear, and begins to write
-invented, unfinished works, which are consequently often meaningless and
-musically unintelligible. I know that musicians can imagine sounds
-vividly enough, and can almost hear what they read, but imaginary sounds
-can never replace real ones, and every composer must hear his production
-in order to perfect it. Beethoven, however, could not hear, could not
-perfect his work, and consequently published productions which are
-artistic ravings. But criticism, having once acknowledged him to be a
-great composer, seizes on just these abnormal works with special gusto,
-and searches for extraordinary beauties in them. And, to justify its
-laudations (perverting the very meaning of musical art), it attributed
-to music the property of describing what it cannot describe. And
-imitators appear—an innumerable host of imitators of these abnormal
-attempts at artistic productions which Beethoven wrote when he was deaf.
-
-Then Wagner appears, who at first in critical articles praises just
-Beethoven’s last period, and connects this music with Schopenhauer’s
-mystical theory that music is the expression of Will—not of separate
-manifestations of will objectivised on various planes, but of its very
-essence—which is in itself as absurd as this music of Beethoven. And
-afterwards he composes music of his own on this theory, in conjunction
-with another still more erroneous system of the union of all the arts.
-After Wagner yet new imitators appear, diverging yet further from art:
-Brahms, Richard Strauss, and others.
-
-Such are the results of criticism. But the third condition of the
-perversion of art, namely, art schools, is almost more harmful still.
-
-As soon as art became, not art for the whole people but for a rich
-class, it became a profession; as soon as it became a profession,
-methods were devised to teach it; people who chose this profession of
-art began to learn these methods, and thus professional schools sprang
-up: classes of rhetoric or literature in the public schools, academies
-for painting, conservatoires for music, schools for dramatic art.
-
-In these schools art is taught! But art is the transmission to others of
-a special feeling experienced by the artist. How can this be taught in
-schools?
-
-No school can evoke feeling in a man, and still less can it teach him
-how to manifest it in the one particular manner natural to him alone.
-But the essence of art lies in these things.
-
-The one thing these schools can teach is how to transmit feelings
-experienced by other artists in the way those other artists transmitted
-them. And this is just what the professional schools do teach; and such
-instruction not only does not assist the spread of true art, but, on the
-contrary, by diffusing counterfeits of art, does more than anything else
-to deprive people of the capacity to understand true art.
-
-In literary art people are taught how, without having anything they wish
-to say, to write a many-paged composition on a theme about which they
-have never thought, and, moreover, to write it so that it should
-resemble the work of an author admitted to be celebrated. This is taught
-in schools.
-
-In painting the chief training consists in learning to draw and paint
-from copies and models, the naked body chiefly (the very thing that is
-never seen, and which a man occupied with real art hardly ever has to
-depict), and to draw and paint as former masters drew and painted. The
-composition of pictures is taught by giving out themes similar to those
-which have been treated by former acknowledged celebrities.
-
-So also in dramatic schools, the pupils are taught to recite monologues
-just as tragedians, considered celebrated, declaimed them.
-
-It is the same in music. The whole theory of music is nothing but a
-disconnected repetition of those methods which the acknowledged? masters
-of composition made use of.
-
-I have elsewhere quoted the profound remark of the Russian artist
-Bruloff on art, but I cannot here refrain from repeating it, because
-nothing better illustrates what can and what can not be taught in the
-schools. Once when correcting a pupil’s study, Bruloff just touched it
-in a few places, and the poor dead study immediately became animated.
-“Why, you only touched it a _wee bit_, and it is quite another thing!”
-said one of the pupils. “Art begins where the _wee bit_ begins,” replied
-Bruloff, indicating by these words just what is most characteristic of
-art. The remark is true of all the arts, but its justice is particularly
-noticeable in the performance of music. That musical execution should be
-artistic, should be art, _i.e._ should infect, three chief conditions
-must be observed,—there are many others needed for musical perfection;
-the transition from one sound to another must be interrupted or
-continuous; the sound must increase or diminish steadily; it must be
-blended with one and not with another sound; the sound must have this or
-that timbre, and much besides,—but take the three chief conditions: the
-pitch, the time, and the strength of the sound. Musical execution is
-only then art, only then infects, when the sound is neither higher nor
-lower than it should be, that is, when exactly the infinitely small
-centre of the required note is taken; when that note is continued
-exactly as long as is needed; and when the strength of the sound is
-neither more nor less than is required. The slightest deviation of pitch
-in either direction, the slightest increase or decrease in time, or the
-slightest strengthening or weakening of the sound beyond what is needed,
-destroys the perfection and, consequently, the infectiousness of the
-work. So that the feeling of infection by the art of music, which seems
-so simple and so easily obtained, is a thing we receive only when the
-performer finds those infinitely minute degrees which are necessary to
-perfection in music. It is the same in all arts: a wee bit lighter, a
-wee bit darker, a wee bit higher, lower, to the right or the left—in
-painting; a wee bit weaker or stronger in intonation, or a wee bit
-sooner or later—in dramatic art; a wee bit omitted, over-emphasised, or
-exaggerated—in poetry, and there is no contagion. Infection is only
-obtained when an artist finds those infinitely minute degrees of which a
-work of art consists, and only to the extent to which he finds them. And
-it is quite impossible to teach people by external means to find these
-minute degrees: they can only be found when a man yields to his feeling.
-No instruction can make a dancer catch just the tact of the music, or a
-singer or a fiddler take exactly the infinitely minute centre of his
-note, or a sketcher draw of all possible lines the only right one, or a
-poet find the only meet arrangement of the only suitable words. All this
-is found only by feeling. And therefore schools may teach what is
-necessary in order to produce something resembling art, but not art
-itself.
-
-The teaching of the schools stops there where the _wee bit_
-begins—consequently where art begins.
-
-Accustoming people to something resembling art, disaccustoms them to the
-comprehension of real art. And that is how it comes about that none are
-more dull to art than those who have passed through the professional
-schools and been most successful in them. Professional schools produce
-an hypocrisy of art precisely akin to that hypocrisy of religion which
-is produced by theological colleges for training priests, pastors, and
-religious teachers generally. As it is impossible in a school to train a
-man so as to make a religious teacher of him, so it is impossible to
-teach a man how to become an artist.
-
-Art schools are thus doubly destructive of art: first, in that they
-destroy the capacity to produce real art in those who have the
-misfortune to enter them and go through a 7 or 8 years’ course;
-secondly, in that they generate enormous quantities of that counterfeit
-art which perverts the taste of the masses and overflows our world. In
-order that born artists may know the methods of the various arts
-elaborated by former artists, there should exist in all elementary
-schools such classes for drawing and music (singing) that, after passing
-through them, every talented scholar may, by using existing models
-accessible to all, be able to perfect himself in his art independently.
-
-These three conditions—the professionalisation of artists, art
-criticism, and art schools—have had this effect that most people in our
-times are quite unable even to understand what art is, and accept as art
-the grossest counterfeits of it.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII
-
-
-To what an extent people of our circle and time have lost the capacity
-to receive real art, and have become accustomed to accept as art things
-that have nothing in common with it, is best seen from the works of
-Richard Wagner, which have latterly come to be more and more esteemed,
-not only by the Germans but also by the French and the English, as the
-very highest art, revealing new horizons to us.
-
-The peculiarity of Wagner’s music, as is known, consists in this, that
-he considered that music should serve poetry, expressing all the shades
-of a poetical work.
-
-The union of the drama with music, devised in the fifteenth century in
-Italy for the revival of what they imagined to have been the ancient
-Greek drama with music, is an artificial form which had, and has,
-success only among the upper classes, and that only when gifted
-composers, such as Mozart, Weber, Rossini, and others, drawing
-inspiration from a dramatic subject, yielded freely to the inspiration
-and subordinated the text to the music, so that in their operas the
-important thing to the audience was merely the music on a certain text,
-and not the text at all, which latter, even when it was utterly absurd,
-as, for instance, in the _Magic Flute_, still did not prevent the music
-from producing an artistic impression.
-
-Wagner wishes to correct the opera by letting music submit to the
-demands of poetry and unite with it. But each art has its own definite
-realm, which is not identical with the realm of other arts, but merely
-comes in contact with them; and therefore, if the manifestation of, I
-will not say several, but even of two arts—the dramatic and the
-musical—be united in one complete production, then the demands of the
-one art will make it impossible to fulfil the demands of the other, as
-has always occurred in the ordinary operas, where the dramatic art has
-submitted to, or rather yielded place to, the musical. Wagner wishes
-that musical art should submit to dramatic art, and that both should
-appear in full strength. But this is impossible, for every work of art,
-if it be a true one, is an expression of intimate feelings of the
-artist, which are quite exceptional, and not like anything else. Such is
-a musical production, and such is a dramatic work, if they be true art.
-And therefore, in order that a production in the one branch of art
-should coincide with a production in the other branch, it is necessary
-that the impossible should happen: that two works from different realms
-of art should be absolutely exceptional, unlike anything that existed
-before, and yet should coincide, and be exactly alike.
-
-And this cannot be, just as there cannot be two men, or even two leaves
-on a tree, exactly alike. Still less can two works from different realms
-of art, the musical and the literary, be absolutely alike. If they
-coincide, then either one is a work of art and the other a counterfeit,
-or both are counterfeits. Two live leaves cannot be exactly alike, but
-two artificial leaves may be. And so it is with works of art. They can
-only coincide completely when neither the one nor the other is art, but
-only cunningly devised semblances of it.
-
-If poetry and music may be joined, as occurs in hymns, songs, and
-_romances_—(though even in these the music does not follow the changes
-of each verse of the text, as Wagner wants to, but the song and the
-music merely produce a coincident effect on the mind)—this occurs only
-because lyrical poetry and music have, to some extent, one and the same
-aim: to produce a mental condition, and the conditions produced by
-lyrical poetry and by music can, more or less, coincide. But even in
-these conjunctions the centre of gravity always lies in one of the two
-productions, so that it is one of them that produces the artistic
-impression while the other remains unregarded. And still less is it
-possible for such union to exist between epic or dramatic poetry and
-music.
-
-Moreover, one of the chief conditions of artistic creation is the
-complete freedom of the artist from every kind of preconceived demand.
-And the necessity of adjusting his musical work to a work from another
-realm of art is a preconceived demand of such a kind as to destroy all
-possibility of creative power; and therefore works of this kind,
-adjusted to one another, are, and must be, as has always happened, not
-works of art but only imitations of art, like the music of a melodrama,
-signatures to pictures, illustrations, and librettos to operas.
-
-And such are Wagner’s productions. And a confirmation of this is to be
-seen in the fact that Wagner’s new music lacks the chief characteristic
-of every true work of art, namely, such entirety and completeness that
-the smallest alteration in its form would disturb the meaning of the
-whole work. In a true work of art—poem, drama, picture, song, or
-symphony—it is impossible to extract one line, one scene, one figure, or
-one bar from its place and put it in another, without infringing the
-significance of the whole work; just as it is impossible, without
-infringing the life of an organic being, to extract an organ from one
-place and insert it in another. But in the music of Wagner’s last
-period, with the exception of certain parts of little importance which
-have an independent musical meaning, it is possible to make all kinds of
-transpositions, putting what was in front behind, and _vice, versâ_,
-without altering the musical sense. And the reason why these
-transpositions do not alter the sense of Wagner’s music is because the
-sense lies in the words and not in the music.
-
-The musical score of Wagner’s later operas is like what the result would
-be should one of those versifiers—of whom there are now many, with
-tongues so broken that they can write verses on any theme to any rhymes
-in any rhythm, which sound as if they had a meaning—conceive the idea of
-illustrating by his verses some symphony or sonata of Beethoven, or some
-ballade of Chopin, in the following manner. To the first bars, of one
-character, he writes verses corresponding in his opinion to those first
-bars. Next come some bars of a different character, and he also writes
-verses corresponding in his opinion to them, but with no internal
-connection with the first verses, and, moreover, without rhymes and
-without rhythm. Such a production, without the music, would be exactly
-parallel in poetry to what Wagner’s operas are in music, if heard
-without the words.
-
-But Wagner is not only a musician, he is also a poet, or both together;
-and therefore, to judge of Wagner, one must know his poetry also—that
-same poetry which the music has to subserve. The chief poetical
-production of Wagner is _The Nibelung’s Ring_. This work has attained
-such enormous importance in our time, and has such influence on all that
-now professes to be art, that it is necessary for everyone to-day to
-have some idea of it. I have carefully read through the four booklets
-which contain this work, and have drawn up a brief summary of it, which
-I give in Appendix III. I would strongly advise the reader (if he has
-not perused the poem itself, which would be the best thing to do) at
-least to read my account of it, so as to have an idea of this
-extraordinary work. It is a model work of counterfeit art, so gross as
-to be even ridiculous.
-
-But we are told that it is impossible to judge of Wagner’s works without
-seeing them on the stage. The Second Day of this drama, which, as I was
-told, is the best part of the whole work, was given in Moscow last
-winter, and I went to see the performance.
-
-When I arrived the enormous theatre was already filled from top to
-bottom. There were Grand-Dukes, and the flower of the aristocracy, of
-the merchant class, of the learned, and of the middle-class official
-public. Most of them held the libretto, fathoming its meaning.
-Musicians—some of them elderly, grey-haired men—followed the music,
-score in hand. Evidently the performance of this work was an event of
-importance.
-
-I was rather late, but I was told that the short prelude, with which the
-act begins, was of little importance, and that it did not matter having
-missed it. When I arrived, an actor sat on the stage amid decorations
-intended to represent a cave, and before something which was meant to
-represent a smith’s forge. He was dressed in trico-tights, with a cloak
-of skins, wore a wig and an artificial beard, and with white, weak,
-genteel hands (his easy movements, and especially the shape of his
-stomach and his lack of muscle revealed the actor) beat an impossible
-sword with an unnatural hammer in a way in which no one ever uses a
-hammer; and at the same time, opening his mouth in a strange way, he
-sang something incomprehensible. The music of various instruments
-accompanied the strange sounds which he emitted. From the libretto one
-was able to gather that the actor had to represent a powerful gnome, who
-lived in the cave, and who was forging a sword for Siegfried, whom he
-had reared. One could tell he was a gnome by the fact that the actor
-walked all the time bending the knees of his trico-covered legs. This
-gnome, still opening his mouth in the same strange way, long continued
-to sing or shout. The music meanwhile runs over something strange, like
-beginnings which are not continued and do not get finished. From the
-libretto one could learn that the gnome is telling himself about a ring
-which a giant had obtained, and which the gnome wishes to procure
-through Siegfried’s aid, while Siegfried wants a good sword, on the
-forging of which the gnome is occupied. After this conversation or
-singing to himself has gone on rather a long time, other sounds are
-heard in the orchestra, also like something beginning and not finishing,
-and another actor appears, with a horn slung over his shoulder, and
-accompanied by a man running on all fours dressed up as a bear, whom he
-sets at the smith-gnome. The latter runs away without unbending the
-knees of his trico-covered legs. This actor with the horn represented
-the hero, Siegfried. The sounds which were emitted in the orchestra on
-the entrance of this actor were intended to represent Siegfried’s
-character and are called Siegfried’s _leit-motiv_. And these sounds are
-repeated each time Siegfried appears. There is one fixed combination of
-sounds, or _leit-motiv_, for each character, and this _leit-motiv_ is
-repeated every time the person whom it represents appears; and when
-anyone is mentioned the _motiv_ is heard which relates to that person.
-Moreover, each article also has its own _leit-motiv_ or chord. There is
-a _motiv_ of the ring, a _motiv_ of the helmet, a _motiv_ of the apple,
-a _motiv_ of fire, spear, sword, water, etc.; and as soon as the ring,
-helmet, or apple is mentioned, the _motiv_ or chord of the ring, helmet,
-or apple is heard. The actor with the horn opens his mouth as
-unnaturally as the gnome, and long continues in a chanting voice to
-shout some words, and in a similar chant Mime (that is the gnome’s name)
-answers something or other to him. The meaning of this conversation can
-only be discovered from the libretto; and it is that Siegfried was
-brought up by the gnome, and therefore, for some reason, hates him and
-always wishes to kill him. The gnome has forged a sword for Siegfried,
-but Siegfried is dissatisfied with it. From a ten-page conversation (by
-the libretto), lasting half an hour and conducted with the same strange
-openings of the mouth and chantings, it appears that Siegfried’s mother
-gave birth to him in the wood, and that concerning his father all that
-is known is that he had a sword which was broken, the pieces of which
-are in Mime’s possession, and that Siegfried does not know fear and
-wishes to go out of the wood. Mime, however, does not want to let him
-go. During the conversation the music never omits, at the mention of
-father, sword, etc., to sound the _motive_ of these people and things.
-After these conversations fresh sounds are heard—those of the god
-Wotan—and a wanderer appears. This wanderer is the god Wotan. Also
-dressed up in a wig, and also in tights, this god Wotan, standing in a
-stupid pose with a spear, thinks proper to recount what Mime must have
-known before, but what it is necessary to tell the audience. He does not
-tell it simply, but in the form of riddles which he orders himself to
-guess, staking his head (one does not know why) that he will guess
-right. Moreover, whenever the wanderer strikes his spear on the ground,
-fire comes out of the ground, and in the orchestra the sounds of spear
-and of fire are heard. The orchestra accompanies the conversation, and
-the _motive_ of the people and things spoken of are always artfully
-intermingled. Besides this the music expresses feelings in the most
-naïve manner: the terrible by sounds in the bass, the frivolous by rapid
-touches in the treble, etc.
-
-The riddles have no meaning except to tell the audience what the
-_nibelungs_ are, what the giants are, what the gods are, and what has
-happened before. This conversation also is chanted with strangely opened
-mouths and continues for eight libretto pages, and correspondingly long
-on the stage. After this the wanderer departs, and Siegfried returns and
-talks with Mime for thirteen pages more. There is not a single melody
-the whole of this time, but merely intertwinings of the _leit-motive_ of
-the people and things mentioned. The conversation tells that Mime wishes
-to teach Siegfried fear, and that Siegfried does not know what fear is.
-Having finished this conversation, Siegfried seizes one of the pieces of
-what is meant to represent the broken sword, saws it up, puts it on what
-is meant to represent the forge, melts it, and then forges it and sings:
-Heiho! heiho! heiho! Ho! ho! Aha! oho! aha! Heiaho! heiaho! heiaho! Ho!
-ho! Hahei! hoho! hahei! and Act I. finishes.
-
-As far as the question I had come to the theatre to decide was
-concerned, my mind was fully made up, as surely as on the question of
-the merits of my lady acquaintance’s novel when she read me the scene
-between the loose-haired maiden in the white dress and the hero with two
-white dogs and a hat with a feather _à la Guillaume Tell_.
-
-From an author who could compose such spurious scenes, outraging all
-æsthetic feeling, as those which I had witnessed, there was nothing to
-be hoped; it may safely be decided that all that such an author can
-write will be bad, because he evidently does not know what a true work
-of art is. I wished to leave, but the friends I was with asked me to
-remain, declaring that one could not form an opinion by that one act,
-and that the second would be better. So I stopped for the second act.
-
-Act II., night. Afterwards dawn. In general the whole piece is crammed
-with lights, clouds, moonlight, darkness, magic fires, thunder, etc.
-
-The scene represents a wood, and in the wood there is a cave. At the
-entrance of the cave sits a third actor in tights, representing another
-gnome. It dawns. Enter the god Wotan, again with a spear, and again in
-the guise of a wanderer. Again his sounds, together with fresh sounds of
-the deepest bass that can be produced. These latter indicate that the
-dragon is speaking. Wotan awakens the dragon. The same bass sounds are
-repeated, growing yet deeper and deeper. First the dragon says, “I want
-to sleep,” but afterwards he crawls out of the cave. The dragon is
-represented by two men; it is dressed in a green, scaly skin, waves a
-tail at one end, while at the other it opens a kind of crocodile’s jaw
-that is fastened on, and from which flames appear. The dragon (who is
-meant to be dreadful, and may appear so to five-year-old children)
-speaks some words in a terribly bass voice. This is all so stupid, so
-like what is done in a booth at a fair, that it is surprising that
-people over seven years of age can witness it seriously; yet thousands
-of quasi-cultured people sit and attentively hear and see it, and are
-delighted.
-
-Siegfried, with his horn, reappears, as does Mime also. In the orchestra
-the sounds denoting them are emitted, and they talk about whether
-Siegfried does or does not know what fear is. Mime goes away, and a
-scene commences which is intended to be most poetical. Siegfried, in his
-tights, lies down in a would-be beautiful pose, and alternately keeps
-silent and talks to himself. He ponders, listens to the song of birds,
-and wishes to imitate them. For this purpose he cuts a reed with his
-sword and makes a pipe. The dawn grows brighter and brighter; the birds
-sing. Siegfried tries to imitate the birds. In the orchestra is heard
-the imitation of birds, alternating with sounds corresponding to the
-words he speaks. But Siegfried does not succeed with his pipe-playing,
-so he plays on his horn instead. This scene is unendurable. Of music,
-_i.e._ of art serving as a means to transmit a state of mind experienced
-by the author, there is not even a suggestion. There is something that
-is absolutely unintelligible musically. In a musical sense a hope is
-continually experienced, followed by disappointment, as if a musical
-thought were commenced only to be broken off. If there are something
-like musical commencements, these commencements are so short, so
-encumbered with complications of harmony and orchestration and with
-effects of contrast, are so obscure and unfinished, and what is
-happening on the stage meanwhile is so abominably false, that it is
-difficult even to perceive these musical snatches, let alone to be
-infected by them. Above all, from the very beginning to the very end,
-and in each note, the author’s purpose is so audible and visible, that
-one sees and hears neither Siegfried nor the birds, but only a limited,
-self-opinionated German of bad taste and bad style, who has a most false
-conception of poetry, and who, in the rudest and most primitive manner,
-wishes to transmit to me these false and mistaken conceptions of his.
-
-Everyone knows the feeling of distrust and resistance which is always
-evoked by an author’s evident predetermination. A narrator need only say
-in advance, Prepare to cry or to laugh, and you are sure neither to cry
-nor to laugh. But when you see that an author prescribes emotion at what
-is not touching but only laughable or disgusting, and when you see,
-moreover, that the author is fully assured that he has captivated you, a
-painfully tormenting feeling results, similar to what one would feel if
-an old, deformed woman put on a ball-dress and smilingly coquetted
-before you, confident of your approbation. This impression was
-strengthened by the fact that around me I saw a crowd of three thousand
-people, who not only patiently witnessed all this absurd nonsense, but
-even considered it their duty to be delighted with it.
-
-I somehow managed to sit out the next scene also, in which the monster
-appears, to the accompaniment of his bass notes intermingled with the
-_motiv_ of Siegfried; but after the fight with the monster, and all the
-roars, fires, and sword-wavings, I could stand no more of it, and
-escaped from the theatre with a feeling of repulsion which, even now, I
-cannot forget.
-
-Listening to this opera, I involuntarily thought of a respected, wise,
-educated country labourer,—one, for instance, of those wise and truly
-religious men whom I know among the peasants,—and I pictured to myself
-the terrible perplexity such a man would be in were he to witness what I
-was seeing that evening.
-
-What would he think if he knew of all the labour spent on such a
-performance, and saw that audience, those great ones of the earth,—old,
-bald-headed, grey-bearded men, whom he had been accustomed to
-respect,—sit silent and attentive, listening to and looking at all these
-stupidities for five hours on end? Not to speak of an adult labourer,
-one can hardly imagine even a child of over seven occupying himself with
-such a stupid, incoherent fairy tale.
-
-And yet an enormous audience, the cream of the cultured upper classes,
-sits out five hours of this insane performance, and goes away imagining
-that by paying tribute to this nonsense it has acquired a fresh right to
-esteem itself advanced and enlightened.
-
-I speak of the Moscow public. But what is the Moscow public? It is but a
-hundredth part of that public which, while considering itself most
-highly enlightened, esteems it a merit to have so lost the capacity of
-being infected by art, that not only can it witness this stupid sham
-without being revolted, but can even take delight in it.
-
-In Bayreuth, where these performances were first given, people who
-consider themselves finely cultured assembled from the ends of the
-earth, spent, say £100 each, to see this performance, and for four days
-running they went to see and hear this nonsensical rubbish, sitting it
-out for six hours each day.
-
-But why did people go, and why do they still go to these performances,
-and why do they admire them? The question naturally presents itself: How
-is the success of Wagner’s works to be explained?
-
-That success I explain to myself in this way: thanks to his exceptional
-position in having at his disposal the resources of a king, Wagner was
-able to command all the methods for counterfeiting art which have been
-developed by long usage, and, employing these methods with great
-ability, he produced a model work of counterfeit art. The reason why I
-have selected his work for my illustration is, that in no other
-counterfeit of art known to me are all the methods by which art is
-counterfeited—namely, borrowings, imitation, effects, and
-interestingness—so ably and powerfully united.
-
-From the subject, borrowed from antiquity, to the clouds and the risings
-of the sun and moon, Wagner, in this work, has made use of all that is
-considered poetical. We have here the sleeping beauty, and nymphs, and
-subterranean fires, and gnomes, and battles, and swords, and love, and
-incest, and a monster, and singing-birds: the whole arsenal of the
-poetical is brought into action.
-
-Moreover, everything is imitative: the decorations are imitated and the
-costumes are imitated. All is just as, according to the data supplied by
-archæology, they would have been in antiquity. The very sounds are
-imitative, for Wagner, who was not destitute of musical talent, invented
-just such sounds as imitate the strokes of a hammer, the hissing of
-molten iron, the singing of birds, etc.
-
-Furthermore, in this work everything is in the highest degree striking
-in its effects and in its peculiarities: its monsters, its magic fires,
-and its scenes under water; the darkness in which the audience sit, the
-invisibility of the orchestra, and the hitherto unemployed combinations
-of harmony.
-
-And besides, it is all interesting. The interest lies not only in the
-question who will kill whom, and who will marry whom, and who is whose
-son, and what will happen next?—the interest lies also in the relation
-of the music to the text. The rolling waves of the Rhine—now how is that
-to be expressed in music? An evil gnome appears—how is the music to
-express an evil gnome?—and how is it to express the sensuality of this
-gnome? How will bravery, fire, or apples be expressed in music? How are
-the _leit-motive_ of the people speaking to be interwoven with the
-_leit-motive_ of the people and objects about whom they speak? Besides,
-the music has a further interest. It diverges from all formerly accepted
-laws, and most unexpected and totally new modulations crop up (as is not
-only possible but even easy in music having no inner law of its being);
-the dissonances are new, and are allowed in a new way—and this, too, is
-interesting.
-
-And it is this poeticality, imitativeness, effectfulness, and
-interestingness which, thanks to the peculiarities of Wagner’s talent
-and to the advantageous position in which he was placed, are in these
-productions carried to the highest pitch of perfection, that so act on
-the spectator, hypnotising him as one would be hypnotised who should
-listen for several consecutive hours to the ravings of a maniac
-pronounced with great oratorical power.
-
-People say, “You cannot judge without having seen Wagner performed at
-Bayreuth: in the dark, where the orchestra is out of sight concealed
-under the stage, and where the performance is brought to the highest
-perfection.” And this just proves that we have here no question of art,
-but one of hypnotism. It is just what the spiritualists say. To convince
-you of the reality of their apparitions, they usually say, “You cannot
-judge; you must try it, be present at several séances,” _i.e._ come and
-sit silent in the dark for hours together in the same room with
-semi-sane people, and repeat this some ten times over, and you shall see
-all that we see.
-
-Yes, naturally! Only place yourself in such conditions, and you may see
-what you will. But this can be still more quickly attained by getting
-drunk or smoking opium. It is the same when listening to an opera of
-Wagner’s. Sit in the dark for four days in company with people who are
-not quite normal, and, through the auditory nerves, subject your brain
-to the strongest action of the sounds best adapted to excite it, and you
-will no doubt be reduced to an abnormal condition and be enchanted by
-absurdities. But to attain this end you do not even need four days; the
-five hours during which one “day” is enacted, as in Moscow, are quite
-enough. Nor are five hours needed; even one hour is enough for people
-who have no clear conception of what art should be, and who have come to
-the conclusion in advance that what they are going to see is excellent,
-and that indifference or dissatisfaction with this work will serve as a
-proof of their inferiority and lack of culture.
-
-I observed the audience present at this representation. The people who
-led the whole audience and gave the tone to it were those who had
-previously been hypnotised, and who again succumbed to the hypnotic
-influence to which they were accustomed. These hypnotised people, being
-in an abnormal condition, were perfectly enraptured. Moreover, all the
-art critics, who lack the capacity to be infected by art and therefore
-always especially prize works like Wagner’s opera where it is all an
-affair of the intellect, also, with much profundity, expressed their
-approval of a work affording such ample material for ratiocination. And
-following these two groups went that large city crowd (indifferent to
-art, with their capacity to be infected by it perverted and partly
-atrophied), headed by the princes, millionaires, and art patrons, who,
-like sorry harriers, keep close to those who most loudly and decidedly
-express their opinion.
-
-“Oh yes, certainly! What poetry! Marvellous! Especially the birds!”
-“Yes, yes! I am quite vanquished!” exclaim these people, repeating in
-various tones what they have just heard from men whose opinion appears
-to them authoritative.
-
-If some people do feel insulted by the absurdity and spuriousness of the
-whole thing, they are timidly silent, as sober men are timid and silent
-when surrounded by tipsy ones.
-
-And thus, thanks to the masterly skill with which it counterfeits art
-while having nothing in common with it, a meaningless, coarse, spurious
-production finds acceptance all over the world, costs millions of
-roubles to produce, and assists more and more to pervert the taste of
-people of the upper classes and their conception of what is art.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV
-
-
-I know that most men—not only those considered clever, but even those
-who are very clever and capable of understanding most difficult
-scientific, mathematical or philosophic problems—can very seldom discern
-even the simplest and most obvious truth if it be such as to oblige them
-to admit the falsity of conclusions they have formed, perhaps with much
-difficulty—conclusions of which they are proud, which they have taught
-to others, and on which they have built their lives. And therefore I
-have little hope that what I adduce as to the perversion of art and
-taste in our society will be accepted or even seriously considered.
-Nevertheless, I must state fully the inevitable conclusion to which my
-investigation into the question of art has brought me. This
-investigation has brought me to the conviction that almost all that our
-society considers to be art, good art, and the whole of art, far from
-being real and good art, and the whole of art, is not even art at all,
-but only a counterfeit of it. This position, I know, will seem very
-strange and paradoxical; but if we once acknowledge art to be a human
-activity by means of which some people transmit their feelings to others
-(and not a service of Beauty, nor a manifestation of the Idea, and so
-forth), we shall inevitably have to admit this further conclusion also.
-If it is true that art is an activity by means of which one man having
-experienced a feeling intentionally transmits it to others, then we have
-inevitably to admit further, that of all that among us is termed the art
-of the upper classes—of all those novels, stories, dramas, comedies,
-pictures, sculptures, symphonies, operas, operettas, ballets, etc.,
-which profess to be works of art—scarcely one in a hundred thousand
-proceeds from an emotion felt by its author, all the rest being but
-manufactured counterfeits of art in which borrowing, imitating, effects,
-and interestingness replace the contagion of feeling. That the
-proportion of real productions of art is to the counterfeits as one to
-some hundreds of thousands or even more, may be seen by the following
-calculation. I have read somewhere that the artist painters in Paris
-alone number 30,000; there will probably be as many in England, as many
-in Germany, and as many in Russia, Italy, and the smaller states
-combined. So that in all there will be in Europe, say, 120,000 painters;
-and there are probably as many musicians and as many literary artists.
-If these 360,000 individuals produce three works a year each (and many
-of them produce ten or more), then each year yields over a million
-so-called works of art. How many, then, must have been produced in the
-last ten years, and how many in the whole time since upper-class art
-broke off from the art of the whole people? Evidently millions. Yet who
-of all the connoisseurs of art has received impressions from all these
-pseudo works of art? Not to mention all the labouring classes who have
-no conception of these productions, even people of the upper classes
-cannot know one in a thousand of them all, and cannot remember those
-they have known. These works all appear under the guise of art, produce
-no impression on anyone (except when they serve as pastimes for the idle
-crowd of rich people), and vanish utterly.
-
-In reply to this it is usually said that without this enormous number of
-unsuccessful attempts we should not have the real works of art. But such
-reasoning is as though a baker, in reply to a reproach that his bread
-was bad, were to say that if it were not for the hundreds of spoiled
-loaves there would not be any well-baked ones. It is true that where
-there is gold there is also much sand; but that can not serve as a
-reason for talking a lot of nonsense in order to say something wise.
-
-We are surrounded by productions considered artistic. Thousands of
-verses, thousands of poems, thousands of novels, thousands of dramas,
-thousands of pictures, thousands of musical pieces, follow one after
-another. All the verses describe love, or nature, or the author’s state
-of mind, and in all of them rhyme and rhythm are observed. All the
-dramas and comedies are splendidly mounted and are performed by
-admirably trained actors. All the novels are divided into chapters; all
-of them describe love, contain effective situations, and correctly
-describe the details of life. All the symphonies contain _allegro_,
-_andante_, _scherzo_, and _finale_; all consist of modulations and
-chords, and are played by highly-trained musicians. All the pictures, in
-gold frames, saliently depict faces and sundry accessories. But among
-these productions in the various branches of art there is in each branch
-one among hundreds of thousands, not only somewhat better than the rest,
-but differing from them as a diamond differs from paste. The one is
-priceless, the others not only have no value but are worse than
-valueless, for they deceive and pervert taste. And yet, externally, they
-are, to a man of perverted or atrophied artistic perception, precisely
-alike.
-
-In our society the difficulty of recognising real works of art is
-further increased by the fact that the external quality of the work in
-false productions is not only no worse, but often better, than in real
-ones; the counterfeit is often more effective than the real, and its
-subject more interesting. How is one to discriminate? How is one to find
-a production in no way distinguished in externals from hundreds of
-thousands of others intentionally made to imitate it precisely?
-
-For a country peasant of unperverted taste this is as easy as it is for
-an animal of unspoilt scent to follow the trace he needs among a
-thousand others in wood or forest. The animal unerringly finds what he
-needs. So also the man, if only his natural qualities have not been
-perverted, will, without fail, select from among thousands of objects
-the real work of art he requires—that infecting him with the feeling
-experienced by the artist. But it is not so with those whose taste has
-been perverted by their education and life. The receptive feeling for
-art of these people is atrophied, and in valuing artistic productions
-they must be guided by discussion and study, which discussion and study
-completely confuse them. So that most people in our society are quite
-unable to distinguish a work of art from the grossest counterfeit.
-People sit for whole hours in concert-rooms and theatres listening to
-the new composers, consider it a duty to read the novels of the famous
-modern novelists and to look at pictures representing either something
-incomprehensible or just the very things they see much better in real
-life; and, above all, they consider it incumbent on them to be
-enraptured by all this, imagining it all to be art, while at the same
-time they will pass real works of art by, not only without attention,
-but even with contempt, merely because, in their circle, these works are
-not included in the list of works of art.
-
-A few days ago I was returning home from a walk feeling depressed, as
-occurs sometimes. On nearing the house I heard the loud singing of a
-large choir of peasant women. They were welcoming my daughter,
-celebrating her return home after her marriage. In this singing, with
-its cries and clanging of scythes, such a definite feeling of joy,
-cheerfulness, and energy was expressed, that, without noticing how it
-infected me, I continued my way towards the house in a better mood, and
-reached home smiling and quite in good spirits. That same evening, a
-visitor, an admirable musician, famed for his execution of classical
-music, and particularly of Beethoven, played us Beethoven’s sonata, Opus
-101. For the benefit of those who might otherwise attribute my judgment
-of that sonata of Beethoven to non-comprehension of it, I should mention
-that whatever other people understand of that sonata and of other
-productions of Beethoven’s later period, I, being very susceptible to
-music, equally understood. For a long time I used to atune myself so as
-to delight in those shapeless improvisations which form the
-subject-matter of the works of Beethoven’s later period, but I had only
-to consider the question of art seriously, and to compare the impression
-I received from Beethoven’s later works with those pleasant, clear, and
-strong musical impressions which are transmitted, for instance, by the
-melodies of Bach (his arias), Haydn, Mozart, Chopin (when his melodies
-are not overloaded with complications and ornamention), and of Beethoven
-himself in his earlier period, and above all, with the impressions
-produced by folk-songs,—Italian, Norwegian, or Russian,—by the Hungarian
-_tzardas_, and other such simple, clear, and powerful music, and the
-obscure, almost unhealthy excitement from Beethoven’s later pieces that
-I had artificially evoked in myself was immediately destroyed.
-
-On the completion of the performance (though it was noticeable that
-everyone had become dull) those present, in the accepted manner, warmly
-praised Beethoven’s profound production, and did not forget to add that
-formerly they had not been able to understand that last period of his,
-but that they now saw that he was really then at his very best. And when
-I ventured to compare the impression made on me by the singing of the
-peasant women—an impression which had been shared by all who heard
-it—with the effect of this sonata, the admirers of Beethoven only smiled
-contemptuously, not considering it necessary to reply to such strange
-remarks.
-
-But, for all that, the song of the peasant women was real art,
-transmitting a definite and strong feeling; while the 101st sonata of
-Beethoven was only an unsuccessful attempt at art, containing no
-definite feeling and therefore not infectious.
-
-For my work on art I have this winter read diligently, though with great
-effort, the celebrated novels and stories, praised by all Europe,
-written by Zola, Bourget, Huysmans, and Kipling. At the same time I
-chanced on a story in a child’s magazine, and by a quite unknown writer,
-which told of the Easter preparations in a poor widow’s family. The
-story tells how the mother managed with difficulty to obtain some
-wheat-flour, which she poured on the table ready to knead. She then went
-out to procure some yeast, telling the children not to leave the hut,
-and to take care of the flour. When the mother had gone, some other
-children ran shouting near the window, calling those in the hut to come
-to play. The children forgot their mother’s warning, ran into the
-street, and were soon engrossed in the game. The mother, on her return
-with the yeast, finds a hen on the table throwing the last of the flour
-to her chickens, who were busily picking it out of the dust of the
-earthen floor. The mother, in despair, scolds the children, who cry
-bitterly. And the mother begins to feel pity for them—but the white
-flour has all gone. So to mend matters she decides to make the Easter
-cake with sifted rye-flour, brushing it over with white of egg and
-surrounding it with eggs. “Rye-bread which we bake is akin to any cake,”
-says the mother, using a rhyming proverb to console the children for not
-having an Easter cake made with white flour. And the children, quickly
-passing from despair to rapture, repeat the proverb and await the Easter
-cake more merrily even than before.
-
-Well! the reading of the novels and stories by Zola, Bourget, Huysmans,
-Kipling, and others, handling the most harrowing subjects, did not touch
-me for one moment, and I was provoked with the authors all the while, as
-one is provoked with a man who considers you so naïve that he does not
-even conceal the trick by which he intends to take you in. From the
-first lines you see the intention with which the book is written, and
-the details all become superfluous, and one feels dull. Above all, one
-knows that the author had no other feeling all the time than a desire to
-write a story or a novel, and so one receives no artistic impression. On
-the other hand, I could not tear myself away from the unknown author’s
-tale of the children and the chickens, because I was at once infected by
-the feeling which the author had evidently experienced, re-evoked in
-himself, and transmitted.
-
-Vasnetsoff is one of our Russian painters. He has painted ecclesiastical
-pictures in Kieff Cathedral, and everyone praises him as the founder of
-some new, elevated kind of Christian art. He worked at those pictures
-for ten years, was paid tens of thousands of roubles for them, and they
-are all simply bad imitations of imitations of imitations, destitute of
-any spark of feeling. And this same Vasnetsoff drew a picture for
-Tourgenieff’s story “The Quail” (in which it is told how, in his son’s
-presence, a father killed a quail and felt pity for it), showing the boy
-asleep with pouting upper lip, and above him, as a dream, the quail. And
-this picture is a true work of art.
-
-In the English Academy of 1897 two pictures were exhibited together; one
-of which, by J. C. Dolman, was the temptation of St. Anthony. The Saint
-is on his knees praying. Behind him stands a naked woman and animals of
-some kind. It is apparent that the naked woman pleased the artist very
-much, but that Anthony did not concern him at all; and that, so far from
-the temptation being terrible to him (the artist) it is highly
-agreeable. And therefore if there be any art in this picture, it is very
-nasty and false. Next in the same book of academy pictures comes a
-picture by Langley, showing a stray beggar boy, who has evidently been
-called in by a woman who has taken pity on him. The boy, pitifully
-drawing his bare feet under the bench, is eating; the woman is looking
-on, probably considering whether he will not want some more; and a girl
-of about seven, leaning on her arm, is carefully and seriously looking
-on, not taking her eyes from the hungry boy, and evidently understanding
-for the first time what poverty is, and what inequality among people is,
-and asking herself why she has everything provided for her while this
-boy goes bare-foot and hungry? She feels sorry and yet pleased. And she
-loves both the boy and goodness.... And one feels that the artist loved
-this girl, and that she too loves. And this picture, by an artist who, I
-think, is not very widely known, is an admirable and true work of art.
-
-I remember seeing a performance of _Hamlet_ by Rossi. Both the tragedy
-itself and the performer who took the chief part are considered by our
-critics to represent the climax of supreme dramatic art. And yet, both
-from the subject-matter of the drama and from the performance, I
-experienced all the time that peculiar suffering which is caused by
-false imitations of works of art. And I lately read of a theatrical
-performance among the savage tribe the Voguls. A spectator describes the
-play. A big Vogul and a little one, both dressed in reindeer skins,
-represent a reindeer-doe and its young. A third Vogul, with a bow,
-represents a huntsman on snow-shoes, and a fourth imitates with his
-voice a bird that warns the reindeer of their danger. The play is that
-the huntsman follows the track that the doe with its young one has
-travelled. The deer run off the scene and again reappear. (Such
-performances take place in a small tent-house.) The huntsman gains more
-and more on the pursued. The little deer is tired, and presses against
-its mother. The doe stops to draw breath. The hunter comes up with them
-and draws his bow. But just then the bird sounds its note, warning the
-deer of their danger. They escape. Again there is a chase, and again the
-hunter gains on them, catches them and lets fly his arrow. The arrow
-strikes the young deer. Unable to run, the little one presses against
-its mother. The mother licks its wound. The hunter draws another arrow.
-The audience, as the eye-witness describes them, are paralysed with
-suspense; deep groans and even weeping is heard among them. And, from
-the mere description, I felt that this was a true work of art.
-
-What I am saying will be considered irrational paradox, at which one can
-only be amazed; but for all that I must say what I think, namely, that
-people of our circle, of whom some compose verses, stories, novels,
-operas, symphonies, and sonatas, paint all kinds of pictures and make
-statues, while others hear and look at these things, and again others
-appraise and criticise it all, discuss, condemn, triumph, and raise
-monuments to one another generation after generation,—that all these
-people, with very few exceptions, artists, and public, and critics, have
-never (except in childhood and earliest youth, before hearing any
-discussions on art), experienced that simple feeling familiar to the
-plainest man and even to a child, that sense of infection with another’s
-feeling,—compelling us to joy in another’s gladness, to sorrow at
-another’s grief, and to mingle souls with another,—which is the very
-essence of art. And therefore these people not only cannot distinguish
-true works of art from counterfeits, but continually mistake for real
-art the worst and most artificial, while they do not even perceive works
-of real art, because the counterfeits are always more ornate, while true
-art is modest.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV
-
-
-Art, in our society, has been so perverted that not only has bad art
-come to be considered good, but even the very perception of what art
-really is has been lost. In order to be able to speak about the art of
-our society, it is, therefore, first of all necessary to distinguish art
-from counterfeit art.
-
-There is one indubitable indication distinguishing real art from its
-counterfeit, namely, the infectiousness of art. If a man, without
-exercising effort and without altering his standpoint, on reading,
-hearing, or seeing another man’s work, experiences a mental condition
-which unites him with that man and with other people who also partake of
-that work of art, then the object evoking that condition is a work of
-art. And however poetical, realistic, effectful, or interesting a work
-may be, it is not a work of art if it does not evoke that feeling (quite
-distinct from all other feelings) of joy, and of spiritual union with
-another (the author) and with others (those who are also infected by
-it).
-
-It is true that this indication is an _internal_ one, and that there are
-people who have forgotten what the action of real art is, who expect
-something else from art (in our society the great majority are in this
-state), and that therefore such people may mistake for this æsthetic
-feeling the feeling of divertisement and a certain excitement which they
-receive from counterfeits of art. But though it is impossible to
-undeceive these people, just as it is impossible to convince a man
-suffering from “Daltonism” that green is not red, yet, for all that,
-this indication remains perfectly definite to those whose feeling for
-art is neither perverted nor atrophied, and it clearly distinguishes the
-feeling produced by art from all other feelings.
-
-The chief peculiarity of this feeling is that the receiver of a true
-artistic impression is so united to the artist that he feels as if the
-work were his own and not someone else’s,—as if what it expresses were
-just what he had long been wishing to express. A real work of art
-destroys, in the consciousness of the receiver, the separation between
-himself and the artist, nor that alone, but also between himself and all
-whose minds receive this work of art. In this freeing of our personality
-from its separation and isolation, in this uniting of it with others,
-lies the chief characteristic and the great attractive force of art.
-
-If a man is infected by the author’s condition of soul, if he feels this
-emotion and this union with others, then the object which has effected
-this is art; but if there be no such infection, if there be not this
-union with the author and with others who are moved by the same
-work—then it is not art. And not only is infection a sure sign of art,
-but the degree of infectiousness is also the sole measure of excellence
-in art.
-
-_The stronger the infection the better is the art, as art_, speaking now
-apart from its subject-matter, _i.e._ not considering the quality of the
-feelings it transmits.
-
-And the degree of the infectiousness of art depends on three
-conditions:—
-
-(1) On the greater or lesser individuality of the feeling transmitted;
-(2) on the greater or lesser clearness with which the feeling is
-transmitted; (3) on the sincerity of the artist, _i.e._ on the greater
-or lesser force with which the artist himself feels the emotion he
-transmits.
-
-The more individual the feeling transmitted the more strongly does it
-act on the receiver; the more individual the state of soul into which he
-is transferred the more pleasure does the receiver obtain, and therefore
-the more readily and strongly does he join in it.
-
-The clearness of expression assists infection, because the receiver, who
-mingles in consciousness with the author, is the better satisfied the
-more clearly the feeling is transmitted, which, as it seems to him, he
-has long known and felt, and for which he has only now found expression.
-
-But most of all is the degree of infectiousness of art increased by
-the degree of sincerity in the artist. As soon as the spectator,
-hearer, or reader feels that the artist is infected by his own
-production, and writes, sings, or plays for himself and not merely to
-act on others, this mental condition of the artist infects the
-receiver; and, contrariwise, as soon as the spectator, reader, or
-hearer feels that the author is not writing, singing, or playing for
-his own satisfaction,—does not himself feel what he wishes to
-express,—but is doing it for him, the receiver, a resistance
-immediately springs up, and the most individual and the newest
-feelings and the cleverest technique not only fail to produce any
-infection but actually repel.
-
-I have mentioned three conditions of contagiousness in art, but they may
-all be summed up into one, the last, sincerity, _i.e._ that the artist
-should be impelled by an inner need to express his feeling. That
-condition includes the first; for if the artist is sincere he will
-express the feeling as he experienced it. And as each man is different
-from everyone else, his feeling will be individual for everyone else;
-and the more individual it is,—the more the artist has drawn it from the
-depths of his nature,—the more sympathetic and sincere will it be. And
-this same sincerity will impel the artist to find a clear expression of
-the feeling which he wishes to transmit.
-
-Therefore this third condition—sincerity—is the most important of the
-three. It is always complied with in peasant art, and this explains why
-such art always acts so powerfully; but it is a condition almost
-entirely absent from our upper-class art, which is continually produced
-by artists actuated by personal aims of covetousness or vanity.
-
-Such are the three conditions which divide art from its counterfeits,
-and which also decide the quality of every work of art apart from its
-subject-matter.
-
-The absence of any one of these conditions excludes a work from the
-category of art and relegates it to that of art’s counterfeits. If the
-work does not transmit the artist’s peculiarity of feeling, and is
-therefore not individual, if it is unintelligibly expressed, or if it
-has not proceeded from the author’s inner need for expression—it is not
-a work of art. If all these conditions are present, even in the smallest
-degree, then the work, even if a weak one, is yet a work of art.
-
-The presence in various degrees of these three conditions:
-individuality, clearness, and sincerity, decides the merit of a work of
-art, as art, apart from subject-matter. All works of art take rank of
-merit according to the degree in which they fulfil the first, the
-second, and the third of these conditions. In one the individuality of
-the feeling transmitted may predominate; in another, clearness of
-expression; in a third, sincerity; while a fourth may have sincerity and
-individuality but be deficient in clearness; a fifth, individuality and
-clearness, but less sincerity; and so forth, in all possible degrees and
-combinations.
-
-Thus is art divided from not art, and thus is the quality of art, as
-art, decided, independently of its subject-matter, _i.e._ apart from
-whether the feelings it transmits are good or bad.
-
-But how are we to define good and bad art with reference to its
-subject-matter?
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI
-
-
-How in art are we to decide what is good and what is bad in
-subject-matter?
-
-Art, like speech, is a means of communication, and therefore of
-progress, _i.e._ of the movement of humanity forward towards perfection.
-Speech renders accessible to men of the latest generations all the
-knowledge discovered by the experience and reflection, both of preceding
-generations and of the best and foremost men of their own times; art
-renders accessible to men of the latest generations all the feelings
-experienced by their predecessors, and those also which are being felt
-by their best and foremost contemporaries. And as the evolution of
-knowledge proceeds by truer and more necessary knowledge dislodging and
-replacing what is mistaken and unnecessary, so the evolution of feeling
-proceeds through art,—feelings less kind and less needful for the
-well-being of mankind are replaced by others kinder and more needful for
-that end. That is the purpose of art. And, speaking now of its
-subject-matter, the more art fulfils that purpose the better the art,
-and the less it fulfils it the worse the art.
-
-And the appraisement of feelings (_i.e._ the acknowledgment of these or
-those feelings as being more or less good, more or less necessary for
-the well-being of mankind) is made by the religious perception of the
-age.
-
-In every period of history, and in every human society, there exists an
-understanding of the meaning of life which represents the highest level
-to which men of that society have attained,—an understanding defining
-the highest good at which that society aims. And this understanding is
-the religious perception of the given time and society. And this
-religious perception is always clearly expressed by some advanced men,
-and more or less vividly perceived by all the members of the society.
-Such a religious perception and its corresponding expression exists
-always in every society. If it appears to us that in our society there
-is no religious perception, this is not because there really is none,
-but only because we do not want to see it. And we often wish not to see
-it because it exposes the fact that our life is inconsistent with that
-religious perception.
-
-Religious perception in a society is like the direction of a flowing
-river. If the river flows at all, it must have a direction. If a society
-lives, there must be a religious perception indicating the direction in
-which, more or less consciously, all its members tend.
-
-And so there always has been, and there is, a religious perception in
-every society. And it is by the standard of this religious perception
-that the feelings transmitted by art have always been estimated. Only on
-the basis of this religious perception of their age have men always
-chosen from the endlessly varied spheres of art that art which
-transmitted feelings making religious perception operative in actual
-life. And such art has always been highly valued and encouraged; while
-art transmitting feelings already outlived, flowing from the antiquated
-religious perceptions of a former age, has always been condemned and
-despised. All the rest of art, transmitting those most diverse feelings
-by means of which people commune together, was not condemned, and was
-tolerated, if only it did not transmit feelings contrary to religious
-perception. Thus, for instance, among the Greeks, art transmitting the
-feeling of beauty, strength, and courage (Hesiod, Homer, Phidias) was
-chosen, approved, and encouraged; while art transmitting feelings of
-rude sensuality, despondency, and effeminacy was condemned and despised.
-Among the Jews, art transmitting feelings of devotion and submission to
-the God of the Hebrews and to His will (the epic of Genesis, the
-prophets, the Psalms) was chosen and encouraged, while art transmitting
-feelings of idolatry (the golden calf) was condemned and despised. All
-the rest of art—stories, songs, dances, ornamentation of houses, of
-utensils, and of clothes—which was not contrary to religious perception,
-was neither distinguished nor discussed. Thus, in regard to its
-subject-matter, has art been appraised always and everywhere, and thus
-it should be appraised, for this attitude towards art proceeds from the
-fundamental characteristics of human nature, and those characteristics
-do not change.
-
-I know that according to an opinion current in our times, religion is a
-superstition, which humanity has outgrown, and that it is therefore
-assumed that no such thing exists as a religious perception common to us
-all by which art, in our time, can be estimated. I know that this is the
-opinion current in the pseudo-cultured circles of to-day. People who do
-not acknowledge Christianity in its true meaning because it undermines
-all their social privileges, and who, therefore, invent all kinds of
-philosophic and æsthetic theories to hide from themselves the
-meaninglessness and wrongness of their lives, cannot think otherwise.
-These people intentionally, or sometimes unintentionally, confusing the
-conception of a religious cult with the conception of religious
-perception, think that by denying the cult they get rid of religious
-perception. But even the very attacks on religion, and the attempts to
-establish a life-conception contrary to the religious perception of our
-times, most clearly demonstrate the existence of a religious perception
-condemning the lives that are not in harmony with it.
-
-If humanity progresses, _i.e._ moves forward, there must inevitably be a
-guide to the direction of that movement. And religions have always
-furnished that guide. All history shows that the progress of humanity is
-accomplished not otherwise than under the guidance of religion. But if
-the race cannot progress without the guidance of religion,—and progress
-is always going on, and consequently also in our own times,—then there
-must be a religion of our times. So that, whether it pleases or
-displeases the so-called cultured people of to-day, they must admit the
-existence of religion—not of a religious cult, Catholic, Protestant, or
-another, but of religious perception—which, even in our times, is the
-guide always present where there is any progress. And if a religious
-perception exists amongst us, then our art should be appraised on the
-basis of that religious perception; and, as has always and everywhere
-been the case, art transmitting feelings flowing from the religious
-perception of our time should be chosen from all the indifferent art,
-should be acknowledged, highly esteemed, and encouraged; while art
-running counter to that perception should be condemned and despised, and
-all the remaining indifferent art should neither be distinguished nor
-encouraged.
-
-The religious perception of our time, in its widest and most practical
-application, is the consciousness that our well-being, both material and
-spiritual, individual and collective, temporal and eternal, lies in the
-growth of brotherhood among all men—in their loving harmony with one
-another. This perception is not only expressed by Christ and all the
-best men of past ages, it is not only repeated in the most varied forms
-and from most diverse sides by the best men of our own times, but it
-already serves as a clue to all the complex labour of humanity,
-consisting as this labour does, on the one hand, in the destruction of
-physical and moral obstacles to the union of men, and, on the other
-hand, in establishing the principles common to all men which can and
-should unite them into one universal brotherhood. And it is on the basis
-of this perception that we should appraise all the phenomena of our
-life, and, among the rest, our art also; choosing from all its realms
-whatever transmits feelings flowing from this religious perception,
-highly prizing and encouraging such art, rejecting whatever is contrary
-to this perception, and not attributing to the rest of art an importance
-not properly pertaining to it.
-
-The chief mistake made by people of the upper classes of the time of the
-so-called Renaissance,—a mistake which we still perpetuate,—was not that
-they ceased to value and to attach importance to religious art (people
-of that period could not attach importance to it, because, like our own
-upper classes, they could not believe in what the majority considered to
-be religion), but their mistake was that they set up in place of
-religious art which was lacking, an insignificant art which aimed only
-at giving pleasure, _i.e._ they began to choose, to value, and to
-encourage, in place of religious art, something which, in any case, did
-not deserve such esteem and encouragement.
-
-One of the Fathers of the Church said that the great evil is not that
-men do not know God, but that they have set up, instead of God, that
-which is not God. So also with art. The great misfortune of the people
-of the upper classes of our time is not so much that they are without a
-religious art, as that, instead of a supreme religious art, chosen from
-all the rest as being specially important and valuable, they have chosen
-a most insignificant and, usually, harmful art, which aims at pleasing
-certain people, and which, therefore, if only by its exclusive nature,
-stands in contradiction to that Christian principle of universal union
-which forms the religious perception of our time. Instead of religious
-art, an empty and often vicious art is set up, and this hides from men’s
-notice the need of that true religious art which should be present in
-life in order to improve it.
-
-It is true that art which satisfies the demands of the religious
-perception of our time is quite unlike former art, but, notwithstanding
-this dissimilarity, to a man who does not intentionally hide the truth
-from himself, it is very clear and definite what does form the religious
-art of our age. In former times, when the highest religious perception
-united only some people (who, even if they formed a large society, were
-yet but one society surrounded by others—Jews, or Athenian or Roman
-citizens), the feelings transmitted by the art of that time flowed from
-a desire for the might, greatness, glory, and prosperity of that
-society, and the heroes of art might be people who contributed to that
-prosperity by strength, by craft, by fraud, or by cruelty (Ulysses,
-Jacob, David, Samson, Hercules, and all the heroes). But the religious
-perception of our times does not select any one society of men; on the
-contrary, it demands the union of all—absolutely of all people without
-exception—and above every other virtue it sets brotherly love to all
-men. And, therefore, the feelings transmitted by the art of our time not
-only cannot coincide with the feelings transmitted by former art, but
-must run counter to them.
-
-Christian, truly Christian, art has been so long in establishing itself,
-and has not yet established itself, just because the Christian religious
-perception was not one of those small steps by which humanity advances
-regularly; but was an enormous revolution, which, if it has not already
-altered, must inevitably alter the entire life-conception of mankind,
-and, consequently, the whole internal organisation of their life. It is
-true that the life of humanity, like that of an individual, moves
-regularly; but in that regular movement come, as it were,
-turning-points, which sharply divide the preceding from the subsequent
-life. Christianity was such a turning-point; such, at least, it must
-appear to us who live by the Christian perception of life. Christian
-perception gave another, a new direction to all human feelings, and
-therefore completely altered both the contents and the significance of
-art. The Greeks could make use of Persian art and the Romans could use
-Greek art, or, similarly, the Jews could use Egyptian art,—the
-fundamental ideals were one and the same. Now the ideal was the
-greatness and prosperity of the Persians, now the greatness and
-prosperity of the Greeks, now that of the Romans. The same art was
-transferred into other conditions, and served new nations. But the
-Christian ideal changed and reversed everything, so that, as the Gospel
-puts it, “That which was exalted among men has become an abomination in
-the sight of God.” The ideal is no longer the greatness of Pharaoh or of
-a Roman emperor, not the beauty of a Greek nor the wealth of Phœnicia,
-but humility, purity, compassion, love. The hero is no longer Dives, but
-Lazarus the beggar; not Mary Magdalene in the day of her beauty, but in
-the day of her repentance; not those who acquire wealth, but those who
-have abandoned it; not those who dwell in palaces, but those who dwell
-in catacombs and huts; not those who rule over others, but those who
-acknowledge no authority but God’s. And the greatest work of art is no
-longer a cathedral of victory[84] with statues of conquerors, but the
-representation of a human soul so transformed by love that a man who is
-tormented and murdered yet pities and loves his persecutors.
-
-And the change is so great that men of the Christian world find it
-difficult to resist the inertia of the heathen art to which they have
-been accustomed all their lives. The subject-matter of Christian
-religious art is so new to them, so unlike the subject-matter of former
-art, that it seems to them as though Christian art were a denial of art,
-and they cling desperately to the old art. But this old art, having no
-longer, in our day, any source in religious perception, has lost its
-meaning, and we shall have to abandon it whether we wish to or not.
-
-The essence of the Christian perception consists in the recognition by
-every man of his sonship to God, and of the consequent union of men with
-God and with one another, as is said in the Gospel (John xvii. 21[85]).
-Therefore the subject-matter of Christian art is such feeling as can
-unite men with God and with one another.
-
-The expression _unite men with God and with one another_ may seem
-obscure to people accustomed to the misuse of these words which is so
-customary, but the words have a perfectly clear meaning nevertheless.
-They indicate that the Christian union of man (in contradiction to the
-partial, exclusive union of only some men) is that which unites all
-without exception.
-
-Art, all art, has this characteristic, that it unites people. Every art
-causes those to whom the artist’s feeling is transmitted to unite in
-soul with the artist, and also with all who receive the same impression.
-But non-Christian art, while uniting some people together, makes that
-very union a cause of separation between these united people and others;
-so that union of this kind is often a source, not only of division, but
-even of enmity towards others. Such is all patriotic art, with its
-anthems, poems, and monuments; such is all Church art, _i.e._ the art of
-certain cults, with their images, statues, processions, and other local
-ceremonies. Such art is belated and non-Christian art, uniting the
-people of one cult only to separate them yet more sharply from the
-members of other cults, and even to place them in relations of hostility
-to each other. Christian art is only such as tends to unite all without
-exception, either by evoking in them the perception that each man and
-all men stand in like relation towards God and towards their neighbour,
-or by evoking in them identical feelings, which may even be the very
-simplest provided only that they are not repugnant to Christianity and
-are natural to everyone without exception.
-
-Good Christian art of our time may be unintelligible to people because
-of imperfections in its form, or because men are inattentive to it, but
-it must be such that all men can experience the feelings it transmits.
-It must be the art, not of some one group of people, nor of one class,
-nor of one nationality, nor of one religious cult; that is, it must not
-transmit feelings which are accessible only to a man educated in a
-certain way, or only to an aristocrat, or a merchant, or only to a
-Russian, or a native of Japan, or a Roman Catholic, or a Buddhist, etc.,
-but it must transmit feelings accessible to everyone. Only art of this
-kind can be acknowledged in our time to be good art, worthy of being
-chosen out from all the rest of art and encouraged.
-
-Christian art, _i.e._ the art of our time, should be catholic in the
-original meaning of the word, _i.e._ universal, and therefore it should
-unite all men. And only two kinds of feeling do unite all men: first,
-feelings flowing from the perception of our sonship to God and of the
-brotherhood of man; and next, the simple feelings of common life,
-accessible to everyone without exception—such as the feeling of
-merriment, of pity, of cheerfulness, of tranquillity, etc. Only these
-two kinds of feelings can now supply material for art good in its
-subject-matter.
-
-And the action of these two kinds of art, apparently so dissimilar, is
-one and the same. The feelings flowing from perception of our sonship to
-God and of the brotherhood of man—such as a feeling of sureness in
-truth, devotion to the will of God, self-sacrifice, respect for and love
-of man—evoked by Christian religious perception; and the simplest
-feelings—such as a softened or a merry mood caused by a song or an
-amusing jest intelligible to everyone, or by a touching story, or a
-drawing, or a little doll: both alike produce one and the same
-effect—the loving union of man with man. Sometimes people who are
-together are, if not hostile to one another, at least estranged in mood
-and feeling, till perchance a story, a performance, a picture, or even a
-building, but oftenest of all music, unites them all as by an electric
-flash, and, in place of their former isolation or even enmity, they are
-all conscious of union and mutual love. Each is glad that another feels
-what he feels; glad of the communion established, not only between him
-and all present, but also with all now living who will yet share the
-same impression; and more than that, he feels the mysterious gladness of
-a communion which, reaching beyond the grave, unites us with all men of
-the past who have been moved by the same feelings, and with all men of
-the future who will yet be touched by them. And this effect is produced
-both by the religious art which transmits feelings of love to God and
-one’s neighbour, and by universal art transmitting the very simplest
-feelings common to all men.
-
-The art of our time should be appraised differently from former art
-chiefly in this, that the art of our time, _i.e._ Christian art (basing
-itself on a religious perception which demands the union of man),
-excludes from the domain of art good in subject-matter everything
-transmitting exclusive feelings, which do not unite but divide men. It
-relegates such work to the category of art bad in its subject-matter,
-while, on the other hand, it includes in the category of art good in
-subject-matter a section not formerly admitted to deserve to be chosen
-out and respected, namely, universal art transmitting even the most
-trifling and simple feelings if only they are accessible to all men
-without exception, and therefore unite them. Such art cannot, in our
-time, but be esteemed good, for it attains the end which the religious
-perception of our time, _i.e._ Christianity, sets before humanity.
-
-Christian art either evokes in men those feelings which, through love of
-God and of one’s neighbour, draw them to greater and ever greater union,
-and make them ready for and capable of such union; or evokes in them
-those feelings which show them that they are already united in the joys
-and sorrows of life. And therefore the Christian art of our time can be
-and is of two kinds: (1) art transmitting feelings flowing from a
-religious perception of man’s position in the world in relation to God
-and to his neighbour—religious art in the limited meaning of the term;
-and (2) art transmitting the simplest feelings of common life, but such,
-always, as are accessible to all men in the whole world—the art of
-common life—the art of a people—universal art. Only these two kinds of
-art can be considered good art in our time.
-
-The first, religious art,—transmitting both positive feelings of love to
-God and one’s neighbour, and negative feelings of indignation and horror
-at the violation of love,—manifests itself chiefly in the form of words,
-and to some extent also in painting and sculpture: the second kind
-(universal art) transmitting feelings accessible to all, manifests
-itself in words, in painting, in sculpture, in dances, in architecture,
-and, most of all, in music.
-
-If I were asked to give modern examples of each of these kinds of art,
-then, as examples of the highest art, flowing from love of God and man
-(both of the higher, positive, and of the lower, negative kind), in
-literature I should name _The Robbers_ by Schiller: Victor Hugo’s _Les
-Pauvres Gens_ and _Les Misérables_: the novels and stories of
-Dickens—_The Tale of Two Cities_, _The Christmas Carol_, _The Chimes_,
-and others: _Uncle Tom’s Cabin_: Dostoievsky’s works—especially his
-_Memoirs from the House of Death_: and _Adam Bede_ by George Eliot.
-
-In modern painting, strange to say, works of this kind, directly
-transmitting the Christian feeling of love of God and of one’s
-neighbour, are hardly to be found, especially among the works of the
-celebrated painters. There are plenty of pictures treating of the Gospel
-stories; they, however, depict historical events with great wealth of
-detail, but do not, and cannot, transmit religious feeling not possessed
-by their painters. There are many pictures treating of the personal
-feelings of various people, but of pictures representing great deeds of
-self-sacrifice and of Christian love there are very few, and what there
-are are principally by artists who are not celebrated, and are, for the
-most part, not pictures but merely sketches. Such, for instance, is the
-drawing by Kramskoy (worth many of his finished pictures), showing a
-drawing-room with a balcony, past which troops are marching in triumph
-on their return from the war. On the balcony stands a wet-nurse holding
-a baby and a boy. They are admiring the procession of the troops, but
-the mother, covering her face with a handkerchief, has fallen back on
-the sofa, sobbing. Such also is the picture by Walter Langley, to which
-I have already referred, and such again is a picture by the French
-artist Morion, depicting a lifeboat hastening, in a heavy storm, to the
-relief of a steamer that is being wrecked. Approaching these in kind are
-pictures which represent the hard-working peasant with respect and love.
-Such are the pictures by Millet, and, particularly, his drawing, “The
-Man with the Hoe,” also pictures in this style by Jules Breton,
-L’Hermitte, Defregger, and others. As examples of pictures evoking
-indignation and horror at the violation of love to God and man, Gay’s
-picture, “Judgment,” may serve, and also Leizen-Mayer’s, “Signing the
-Death Warrant.” But there are also very few of this kind. Anxiety about
-the technique and the beauty of the picture for the most part obscures
-the feeling. For instance, Gérôme’s “Pollice Verso” expresses, not so
-much horror at what is being perpetrated as attraction by the beauty of
-the spectacle.[86]
-
-To give examples, from the modern art of our upper classes, of art of
-the second kind, good universal art or even of the art of a whole
-people, is yet more difficult, especially in literary art and music. If
-there are some works which by their inner contents might be assigned to
-this class (such as _Don Quixote_, Molière’s comedies, _David
-Copperfield_ and _The Pickwick Papers_ by Dickens, Gogol’s and Pushkin’s
-tales, and some things of Maupassant’s), these works are for the most
-part—from the exceptional nature of the feelings they transmit, and the
-superfluity of special details of time and locality, and, above all, on
-account of the poverty of their subject-matter in comparison with
-examples of universal ancient art (such, for instance, as the story of
-Joseph)—comprehensible only to people of their own circle. That Joseph’s
-brethren, being jealous of his father’s affection, sell him to the
-merchants; that Potiphar’s wife wishes to tempt the youth; that having
-attained the highest station, he takes pity on his brothers, including
-Benjamin the favourite,—these and all the rest are feelings accessible
-alike to a Russian peasant, a Chinese, an African, a child, or an old
-man, educated or uneducated; and it is all written with such restraint,
-is so free from any superfluous detail, that the story may be told to
-any circle and will be equally comprehensible and touching to everyone.
-But not such are the feelings of Don Quixote or of Molière’s heroes
-(though Molière is perhaps the most universal, and therefore the most
-excellent, artist of modern times), nor of Pickwick and his friends.
-These feelings are not common to all men but very exceptional, and
-therefore, to make them infectious, the authors have surrounded them
-with abundant details of time and place. And this abundance of detail
-makes the stories difficult of comprehension to all people not living
-within reach of the conditions described by the author.
-
-The author of the novel of Joseph did not need to describe in detail, as
-would be done nowadays, the bloodstained coat of Joseph, the dwelling
-and dress of Jacob, the pose and attire of Potiphar’s wife, and how,
-adjusting the bracelet on her left arm, she said, “Come to me,” and so
-on, because the subject-matter of feelings in this novel is so strong
-that all details, except the most essential,—such as that Joseph went
-out into another room to weep,—are superfluous, and would only hinder
-the transmission of feelings. And therefore this novel is accessible to
-all men, touches people of all nations and classes, young and old, and
-has lasted to our times, and will yet last for thousands of years to
-come. But strip the best novels of our times of their details, and what
-will remain?
-
-It is therefore impossible in modern literature to indicate works fully
-satisfying the demands of universality. Such works as exist are, to a
-great extent, spoilt by what is usually called “realism,” but would be
-better termed “provincialism,” in art.
-
-In music the same occurs as in verbal art, and for similar reasons. In
-consequence of the poorness of the feeling they contain, the melodies of
-the modern composers are amazingly empty and insignificant. And to
-strengthen the impression produced by these empty melodies, the new
-musicians pile complex modulations on to each trivial melody, not only
-in their own national manner, but also in the way characteristic of
-their own exclusive circle and particular musical school. Melody—every
-melody—is free, and may be understood of all men; but as soon as it is
-bound up with a particular harmony, it ceases to be accessible except to
-people trained to such harmony, and it becomes strange, not only to
-common men of another nationality, but to all who do not belong to the
-circle whose members have accustomed themselves to certain forms of
-harmonisation. So that music, like poetry, travels in a vicious circle.
-Trivial and exclusive melodies, in order to make them attractive, are
-laden with harmonic, rhythmic, and orchestral complications, and thus
-become yet more exclusive, and far from being universal are not even
-national, _i.e._ they are not comprehensible to the whole people but
-only to some people.
-
-In music, besides marches and dances by various composers, which satisfy
-the demands of universal art, one can indicate very few works of this
-class: Bach’s famous violin _aria_, Chopin’s nocturne in E flat major,
-and perhaps a dozen bits (not whole pieces, but parts) selected from the
-works of Haydn, Mozart, Schubert, Beethoven, and Chopin.[87]
-
-Although in painting the same thing is repeated as in poetry and in
-music,—namely, that in order to make them more interesting, works weak
-in conception are surrounded by minutely studied accessories of time and
-place, which give them a temporary and local interest but make them less
-universal,—still, in painting, more than in the other spheres of art,
-may be found works satisfying the demands of universal Christian art;
-that is to say, there are more works expressing feelings in which all
-men may participate.
-
-In the arts of painting and sculpture, all pictures and statues in
-so-called genre style, depictions of animals, landscapes and caricatures
-with subjects comprehensible to everyone, and also all kinds of
-ornaments, are universal in subject-matter. Such productions in painting
-and sculpture are very numerous (_e.g._ china dolls), but for the most
-part such objects (for instance, ornaments of all kinds) are either not
-considered to be art or are considered to be art of a low quality. In
-reality all such objects, if only they transmit a true feeling
-experienced by the artist and comprehensible to everyone (however
-insignificant it may seem to us to be) are works of real, good,
-Christian art.
-
-I fear it will here be urged against me that having denied that the
-conception of beauty can supply a standard for works of art, I
-contradict myself by acknowledging ornaments to be works of good art.
-The reproach is unjust, for the subject-matter of all kinds of
-ornamentation consists not in the beauty, but in the feeling (of
-admiration of, and delight in, the combination of lines and colours)
-which the artist has experienced and with which he infects the
-spectator. Art remains what it was and what it must be: nothing but the
-infection by one man of another, or of others, with the feelings
-experienced by the infector. Among those feelings is the feeling of
-delight at what pleases the sight. Objects pleasing the sight may be
-such as please a small or a large number of people, or such as please
-all men. And ornaments for the most part are of the latter kind. A
-landscape representing a very unusual view, or a genre picture of a
-special subject, may not please everyone, but ornaments, from Yakutsk
-ornaments to Greek ones, are intelligible to everyone and evoke a
-similar feeling of admiration in all, and therefore this despised kind
-of art should, in Christian society, be esteemed far above exceptional,
-pretentious pictures and sculptures.
-
-So that there are only two kinds of good Christian art: all the rest of
-art not comprised in these two divisions should be acknowledged to be
-bad art, deserving not to be encouraged but to be driven out, denied and
-despised, as being art not uniting but dividing people. Such, in
-literary art, are all novels and poems which transmit Church or
-patriotic feelings, and also exclusive feelings pertaining only to the
-class of the idle rich; such as aristocratic honour, satiety, spleen,
-pessimism, and refined and vicious feelings flowing from sex-love—quite
-incomprehensible to the great majority of mankind.
-
-In painting we must similarly place in the class of bad art all the
-Church, patriotic, and exclusive pictures; all the pictures representing
-the amusements and allurements of a rich and idle life; all the
-so-called symbolic pictures, in which the very meaning of the symbol is
-comprehensible only to the people of a certain circle; and, above all,
-pictures with voluptuous subjects—all that odious female nudity which
-fills all the exhibitions and galleries. And to this class belongs
-almost all the chamber and opera music of our times,—beginning
-especially from Beethoven (Schumann, Berlioz, Liszt, Wagner),—by its
-subject-matter devoted to the expression of feelings accessible only to
-people who have developed in themselves an unhealthy, nervous irritation
-evoked by this exclusive, artificial, and complex music.
-
-“What! the _Ninth Symphony_ not a good work of art!” I hear exclaimed by
-indignant voices.
-
-And I reply: Most certainly it is not. All that I have written I have
-written with the sole purpose of finding a clear and reasonable
-criterion by which to judge the merits of works of art. And this
-criterion, coinciding with the indications of plain and sane sense,
-indubitably shows me that that symphony by Beethoven is not a good work
-of art. Of course, to people educated in the adoration of certain
-productions and of their authors, to people whose taste has been
-perverted just by being educated in such adoration, the acknowledgment
-that such a celebrated work is bad is amazing and strange. But how are
-we to escape the indications of reason and of common sense?
-
-Beethoven’s _Ninth Symphony_ is considered a great work of art. To
-verify its claim to be such, I must first ask myself whether this work
-transmits the highest religious feeling? I reply in the negative, for
-music in itself cannot transmit those feelings; and therefore I ask
-myself next, Since this work does not belong to the highest kind of
-religious art, has it the other characteristic of the good art of our
-time,—the quality of uniting all men in one common feeling: does it rank
-as Christian universal art? And again I have no option but to reply in
-the negative; for not only do I not see how the feelings transmitted by
-this work could unite people not specially trained to submit themselves
-to its complex hypnotism, but I am unable to imagine to myself a crowd
-of normal people who could understand anything of this long, confused,
-and artificial production, except short snatches which are lost in a sea
-of what is incomprehensible. And therefore, whether I like it or not, I
-am compelled to conclude that this work belongs to the rank of bad art.
-It is curious to note in this connection, that attached to the end of
-this very symphony is a poem of Schiller’s which (though somewhat
-obscurely) expresses this very thought, namely, that feeling (Schiller
-speaks only of the feeling of gladness) unites people and evokes love in
-them. But though this poem is sung at the end of the symphony, the music
-does not accord with the thought expressed in the verses; for the music
-is exclusive and does not unite all men, but unites only a few, dividing
-them off from the rest of mankind.
-
-And, just in this same way, in all branches of art, many and many works
-considered great by the upper classes of our society will have to be
-judged. By this one sure criterion we shall have to judge the celebrated
-_Divine Comedy_ and _Jerusalem Delivered_, and a great part of
-Shakespeare’s and Goethe’s works, and in painting every representation
-of miracles, including Raphael’s “Transfiguration,” etc.
-
-Whatever the work may be and however it may have been extolled, we have
-first to ask whether this work is one of real art or a counterfeit.
-Having acknowledged, on the basis of the indication of its
-infectiousness even to a small class of people, that a certain
-production belongs to the realm of art, it is necessary, on the basis of
-the indication of its accessibility, to decide the next question, Does
-this work belong to the category of bad, exclusive art, opposed to
-religious perception, or to Christian art, uniting people? And having
-acknowledged an article to belong to real Christian art, we must then,
-according to whether it transmits the feelings flowing from love to God
-and man, or merely the simple feelings uniting all men, assign it a
-place in the ranks of religious art or in those of universal art.
-
-Only on the basis of such verification shall we find it possible to
-select from the whole mass of what, in our society, claims to be art,
-those works which form real, important, necessary spiritual food, and to
-separate them from all the harmful and useless art, and from the
-counterfeits of art which surround us. Only on the basis of such
-verification shall we be able to rid ourselves of the pernicious results
-of harmful art, and to avail ourselves of that beneficent action which
-is the purpose of true and good art, and which is indispensable for the
-spiritual life of man and of humanity.
-
-Footnote 84:
-
- There is in Moscow a magnificent “Cathedral of our Saviour,” erected
- to commemorate the defeat of the French in the war of 1812.—Trans.
-
-Footnote 85:
-
- “That they may be one; even as thou, Father, art in me, and I in thee,
- that they also may be in us.”
-
-Footnote 86:
-
- In this picture the spectators in the Roman Amphitheatre are turning
- down their thumbs to show that they wish the vanquished gladiator to
- be killed.—Trans.
-
-Footnote 87:
-
- While offering as examples of art those that seem to me the best, I
- attach no special importance to my selection; for, besides being
- insufficiently informed in all branches of art, I belong to the class
- of people whose taste has, by false training, been perverted. And
- therefore my old, inured habits may cause me to err, and I may mistake
- for absolute merit the impression a work produced on me in my youth.
- My only purpose in mentioning examples of works of this or that class
- is to make my meaning clearer, and to show how, with my present views,
- I understand excellence in art in relation to its subject-matter. I
- must, moreover, mention that I consign my own artistic productions to
- the category of bad art, excepting the story _God sees the Truth_,
- which seeks a place in the first class, and _The Prisoner of the
- Caucasus_, which belongs to the second.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII
-
-
-Art is one of two organs of human progress. By words man interchanges
-thoughts, by the forms of art he interchanges feelings, and this with
-all men, not only of the present time, but also of the past and the
-future. It is natural to human beings to employ both these organs of
-intercommunication, and therefore the perversion of either of them must
-cause evil results to the society in which it occurs. And these results
-will be of two kinds: first, the absence, in that society, of the work
-which should be performed by the organ; and secondly, the harmful
-activity of the perverted organ. And just these results have shown
-themselves in our society. The organ of art has been perverted, and
-therefore the upper classes of society have, to a great extent, been
-deprived of the work that it should have performed. The diffusion in our
-society of enormous quantities of, on the one hand, those counterfeits
-of art which only serve to amuse and corrupt people, and, on the other
-hand, of works of insignificant, exclusive art, mistaken for the highest
-art, have perverted most men’s capacity to be infected by true works of
-art, and have thus deprived them of the possibility of experiencing the
-highest feelings to which mankind has attained, and which can only be
-transmitted from man to man by art.
-
-All the best that has been done in art by man remains strange to people
-who lack the capacity to be infected by art, and is replaced either by
-spurious counterfeits of art or by insignificant art, which they mistake
-for real art. People of our time and of our society are delighted with
-Baudelaires, Verlaines, Moréases, Ibsens, and Maeterlincks in poetry;
-with Monets, Manets, Puvis de Chavannes, Burne-Joneses, Stucks, and
-Böcklins in painting; with Wagners, Listzs, Richard Strausses, in music;
-and they are no longer capable of comprehending either the highest or
-the simplest art.
-
-In the upper classes, in consequence of this loss of capacity to be
-infected by works of art, people grow up, are educated, and live,
-lacking the fertilising, improving influence of art, and therefore not
-only do not advance towards perfection, do not become kinder, but, on
-the contrary, possessing highly-developed external means of
-civilisation, they yet tend to become continually more savage, more
-coarse, and more cruel.
-
-Such is the result of the absence from our society of the activity of
-that essential organ—art. But the consequences of the perverted activity
-of that organ are yet more harmful. And they are numerous.
-
-The first consequence, plain for all to see, is the enormous expenditure
-of the labour of working people on things which are not only useless,
-but which, for the most part, are harmful; and more than that, the waste
-of priceless human lives on this unnecessary and harmful business. It is
-terrible to consider with what intensity, and amid what privations,
-millions of people—who lack time and opportunity to attend to what they
-and their families urgently require—labour for 10, 12, or 14 hours on
-end, and even at night, setting the type for pseudo-artistic books which
-spread vice among mankind, or working for theatres, concerts,
-exhibitions, and picture galleries, which, for the most part, also serve
-vice; but it is yet more terrible to reflect that lively, kindly
-children, capable of all that is good, are devoted from their early
-years to such tasks as these: that for 6, 8, or 10 hours a day, and for
-10 or 15 years, some of them should play scales and exercises; others
-should twist their limbs, walk on their toes, and lift their legs above
-their heads; a third set should sing solfeggios; a fourth set, showing
-themselves off in all manner of ways, should pronounce verses; a fifth
-set should draw from busts or from nude models and paint studies; a
-sixth set should write compositions according to the rules of certain
-periods; and that in these occupations, unworthy of a human being, which
-are often continued long after full maturity, they should waste their
-physical and mental strength and lose all perception of the meaning of
-life. It is often said that it is horrible and pitiful to see little
-acrobats putting their legs over their necks, but it is not less pitiful
-to see children of 10 giving concerts, and it is still worse to see
-schoolboys of 10 who, as a preparation for literary work, have learnt by
-heart the exceptions to the Latin grammar. These people not only grow
-physically and mentally deformed, but also morally deformed, and become
-incapable of doing anything really needed by man. Occupying in society
-the rôle of amusers of the rich, they lose their sense of human dignity,
-and develop in themselves such a passion for public applause that they
-are always a prey to an inflated and unsatisfied vanity which grows in
-them to diseased dimensions, and they expend their mental strength in
-efforts to obtain satisfaction for this passion. And what is most tragic
-of all is that these people, who for the sake of art are spoilt for
-life, not only do not render service to this art, but, on the contrary,
-inflict the greatest harm on it. They are taught in academies, schools,
-and conservatoires how to counterfeit art, and by learning this they so
-pervert themselves that they quite lose the capacity to produce works of
-real art, and become purveyors of that counterfeit, or trivial, or
-depraved art which floods our society. This is the first obvious
-consequence of the perversion of the organ of art.
-
-The second consequence is that the productions of amusement-art, which
-are prepared in such terrific quantities by the armies of professional
-artists, enable the rich people of our times to live the lives they do,
-lives not only unnatural but in contradiction to the humane principles
-these people themselves profess. To live as do the rich, idle people,
-especially the women, far from nature and from animals, in artificial
-conditions, with muscles atrophied or misdeveloped by gymnastics, and
-with enfeebled vital energy would be impossible were it not for what is
-called art—for this occupation and amusement which hides from them the
-meaninglessness of their lives, and saves them from the dulness that
-oppresses them. Take from all these people the theatres, concerts,
-exhibitions, piano-playing, songs, and novels, with which they now fill
-their time in full confidence that occupation with these things is a
-very refined, æsthetical, and therefore good occupation; take from the
-patrons of art who buy pictures, assist musicians, and are acquainted
-with writers, their rôle of protectors of that important matter art, and
-they will not be able to continue such a life, but will all be eaten up
-by ennui and spleen, and will become conscious of the meaninglessness
-and wrongness of their present mode of life. Only occupation with what,
-among them, is considered art, renders it possible for them to continue
-to live on, infringing all natural conditions, without perceiving the
-emptiness and cruelty of their lives. And this support afforded to the
-false manner of life pursued by the rich is the second consequence, and
-a serious one, of the perversion of art.
-
-The third consequence of the perversion of art is the perplexity
-produced in the minds of children and of plain folk. Among people not
-perverted by the false theories of our society, among workers and
-children, there exists a very definite conception of what people may be
-respected and praised for. In the minds of peasants and children the
-ground for praise or eulogy can only be either physical strength:
-Hercules, the heroes and conquerors; or moral, spiritual, strength:
-Sakya Muni giving up a beautiful wife and a kingdom to save mankind,
-Christ going to the cross for the truth he professed, and all the
-martyrs and the saints. Both are understood by peasants and children.
-They understand that physical strength must be respected, for it compels
-respect; and the moral strength of goodness an unperverted man cannot
-fail to respect, because all his spiritual being draws him towards it.
-But these people, children and peasants, suddenly perceive that besides
-those praised, respected, and rewarded for physical or moral strength,
-there are others who are praised, extolled, and rewarded much more than
-the heroes of strength and virtue, merely because they sing well,
-compose verses, or dance. They see that singers, composers, painters,
-ballet-dancers, earn millions of roubles and receive more honour than
-the saints do: and peasants and children are perplexed.
-
-When 50 years had elapsed after Pushkin’s death, and, simultaneously,
-the cheap edition of his works began to circulate among the people and a
-monument was erected to him in Moscow, I received more than a dozen
-letters from different peasants asking why Pushkin was raised to such
-dignity? And only the other day a literate[88] man from Saratoff called
-on me who had evidently gone out of his mind over this very question. He
-was on his way to Moscow to expose the clergy for having taken part in
-raising a “monament” to Mr. Pushkin.
-
-Indeed one need only imagine to oneself what the state of mind of such a
-man of the people must be when he learns, from such rumours and
-newspapers as reach him, that the clergy, the Government officials, and
-all the best people in Russia are triumphantly unveiling a statue to a
-great man, the benefactor, the pride of Russia—Pushkin, of whom till
-then he had never heard. From all sides he reads or hears about this,
-and he naturally supposes that if such honours are rendered to anyone,
-then without doubt he must have done something extraordinary—either some
-feat of strength or of goodness. He tries to learn who Pushkin was, and
-having discovered that Pushkin was neither a hero nor a general, but was
-a private person and a writer, he comes to the conclusion that Pushkin
-must have been a holy man and a teacher of goodness, and he hastens to
-read or to hear his life and works. But what must be his perplexity when
-he learns that Pushkin was a man of more than easy morals, who was
-killed in a duel, _i.e._ when attempting to murder another man, and that
-all his service consisted in writing verses about love, which were often
-very indecent.
-
-That a hero, or Alexander the Great, or Genghis Khan, or Napoleon were
-great, he understands, because any one of them could have crushed him
-and a thousand like him; that Buddha, Socrates, and Christ were great he
-also understands, for he knows and feels that he and all men should be
-such as they were; but why a man should be great because he wrote verses
-about the love of women he cannot make out.
-
-A similar perplexity must trouble the brain of a Breton or Norman
-peasant who hears that a monument, “_une statue_” (as to the Madonna),
-is being erected to Baudelaire, and reads, or is told, what the contents
-of his _Fleurs du Mal_ are; or, more amazing still, to Verlaine, when he
-learns the story of that man’s wretched, vicious life, and reads his
-verses. And what confusion it must cause in the brains of peasants when
-they learn that some Patti or Taglioni is paid £10,000 for a season, or
-that a painter gets as much for a picture, or that authors of novels
-describing love-scenes have received even more than that.
-
-And it is the same with children. I remember how I passed through this
-stage of amazement and stupefaction, and only reconciled myself to this
-exaltation of artists to the level of heroes and saints by lowering in
-my own estimation the importance of moral excellence, and by attributing
-a false, unnatural meaning to works of art. And a similar confusion must
-occur in the soul of each child and each man of the people when he
-learns of the strange honours and rewards that are lavished on artists.
-This is the third consequence of the false relation in which our society
-stands towards art.
-
-The fourth consequence is that people of the upper classes, more and
-more frequently encountering the contradictions between beauty and
-goodness, put the ideal of beauty first, thus freeing themselves from
-the demands of morality. These people, reversing the rôles, instead of
-admitting, as is really the case, that the art they serve is an
-antiquated affair, allege that morality is an antiquated affair, which
-can have no importance for people situated on that high plane of
-development on which they opine that they are situated.
-
-This result of the false relation to art showed itself in our society
-long ago; but recently, with its prophet Nietzsche and his adherents,
-and with the decadents and certain English æsthetes who coincide with
-him, it is being expressed with especial impudence. The decadents, and
-æsthetes of the type at one time represented by Oscar Wilde, select as a
-theme for their productions the denial of morality and the laudation of
-vice.
-
-This art has partly generated, and partly coincides with, a similar
-philosophic theory. I recently received from America a book entitled
-“_The Survival of the Fittest: Philosophy of Power_, 1896, by Ragnar
-Redbeard, Chicago.” The substance of this book, as it is expressed in
-the editor’s preface, is that to measure “right” by the false philosophy
-of the Hebrew prophets and “weepful” Messiahs is madness. Right is not
-the offspring of doctrine but of power. All laws, commandments, or
-doctrines as to not doing to another what you do not wish done to you,
-have no inherent authority whatever, but receive it only from the club,
-the gallows, and the sword. A man truly free is under no obligation to
-obey any injunction, human or divine. Obedience is the sign of the
-degenerate. Disobedience is the stamp of the hero. Men should not be
-bound by moral rules invented by their foes. The whole world is a
-slippery battlefield. Ideal justice demands that the vanquished should
-be exploited, emasculated, and scorned. The free and brave may seize the
-world. And, therefore, there should be eternal war for life, for land,
-for love, for women, for power, and for gold. (Something similar was
-said a few years ago by the celebrated and refined academician, Vogüé.)
-The earth and its treasures is “booty for the bold.”
-
-The author has evidently by himself, independently of Nietzsche, come to
-the same conclusions which are professed by the new artists.
-
-Expressed in the form of a doctrine these positions startle us. In
-reality they are implied in the ideal of art serving beauty. The art of
-our upper classes has educated people in this ideal of the
-over-man,[89]—which is, in reality, the old ideal of Nero, Stenka
-Razin,[90] Genghis Khan, Robert Macaire,[91] or Napoleon, and all their
-accomplices, assistants, and adulators—and it supports this ideal with
-all its might.
-
-It is this supplanting of the ideal of what is right by the ideal of
-what is beautiful, _i.e._ of what is pleasant, that is the fourth
-consequence, and a terrible one, of the perversion of art in our
-society. It is fearful to think of what would befall humanity were such
-art to spread among the masses of the people. And it already begins to
-spread.
-
-Finally, the fifth and chief result is, that the art which flourishes in
-the upper classes of European society has a directly vitiating
-influence, infecting people with the worst feelings and with those most
-harmful to humanity—superstition, patriotism, and, above all,
-sensuality.
-
-Look carefully into the causes of the ignorance of the masses, and you
-may see that the chief cause does not at all lie in the lack of schools
-and libraries, as we are accustomed to suppose, but in those
-superstitions, both ecclesiastical and patriotic, with which the people
-are saturated, and which are unceasingly generated by all the methods of
-art. Church superstitions are supported and produced by the poetry of
-prayers, hymns, painting, by the sculpture of images and of statues, by
-singing, by organs, by music, by architecture, and even by dramatic art
-in religious ceremonies. Patriotic superstitions are supported and
-produced by verses and stories, which are supplied even in schools, by
-music, by songs, by triumphal processions, by royal meetings, by martial
-pictures, and by monuments.
-
-Were it not for this continual activity in all departments of art,
-perpetuating the ecclesiastical and patriotic intoxication and
-embitterment of the people, the masses would long ere this have attained
-to true enlightenment.
-
-But it is not only in Church matters and patriotic matters that art
-depraves; it is art in our time that serves as the chief cause of the
-perversion of people in the most important question of social life—in
-their sexual relations. We nearly all know by our own experience, and
-those who are fathers and mothers know in the case of their grown-up
-children also, what fearful mental and physical suffering, what useless
-waste of strength, people suffer merely as a consequence of
-dissoluteness in sexual desire.
-
-Since the world began, since the Trojan war, which sprang from that same
-sexual dissoluteness, down to and including the suicides and murders of
-lovers described in almost every newspaper, a great proportion of the
-sufferings of the human race have come from this source.
-
-And what is art doing? All art, real and counterfeit, with very few
-exceptions, is devoted to describing, depicting, and inflaming sexual
-love in every shape and form. When one remembers all those novels and
-their lust-kindling descriptions of love, from the most refined to the
-grossest, with which the literature of our society overflows; if one
-only remembers all those pictures and statues representing women’s naked
-bodies, and all sorts of abominations which are reproduced in
-illustrations and advertisements; if one only remembers all the filthy
-operas and operettas, songs and _romances_ with which our world teems,
-involuntarily it seems as if existing art had but one definite aim—to
-disseminate vice as widely as possible.
-
-Such, though not all, are the most direct consequences of that
-perversion of art which has occurred in our society. So that, what in
-our society is called art not only does not conduce to the progress of
-mankind, but, more than almost anything else, hinders the attainment of
-goodness in our lives.
-
-And therefore the question which involuntarily presents itself to every
-man free from artistic activity and therefore not bound to existing art
-by self-interest, the question asked by me at the beginning of this
-work: Is it just that to what we call art, to a something belonging to
-but a small section of society, should be offered up such sacrifices of
-human labour, of human lives, and of goodness as are now being offered
-up? receives the natural reply: No; it is unjust, and these things
-should not be! So also replies sound sense and unperverted moral
-feeling. Not only should these things not be, not only should no
-sacrifices be offered up to what among us is called art, but, on the
-contrary, the efforts of those who wish to live rightly should be
-directed towards the destruction of this art, for it is one of the most
-cruel of the evils that harass our section of humanity. So that, were
-the question put: Would it be preferable for our Christian world to be
-deprived of _all_ that is now esteemed to be art, and, together with the
-false, to lose _all_ that is good in it? I think that every reasonable
-and moral man would again decide the question as Plato decided it for
-his _Republic_, and as all the Church Christian and Mahommedan teachers
-of mankind decided it, _i.e._ would say, “Rather let there be no art at
-all than continue the depraving art, or simulation of art, which now
-exists.” Happily, no one has to face this question, and no one need
-adopt either solution. All that man can do, and that we—the so-called
-educated people, who are so placed that we have the possibility of
-understanding the meaning of the phenomena of our life—can and should
-do, is to understand the error we are involved in, and not harden our
-hearts in it but seek for a way of escape.
-
-Footnote 88:
-
- In Russian it is customary to make a distinction between literate and
- illiterate people, _i.e._ between those who can and those who cannot
- read. _Literate_ in this sense does not imply that the man would speak
- or write correctly.—Trans.
-
-Footnote 89:
-
- The over-man (Uebermensch), in the Nietzschean philosophy, is that
- superior type of man whom the struggle for existence is to evolve, and
- who will seek only his own power and pleasure, will know nothing of
- pity, and will have the right, because he will possess the power, to
- make ordinary people serve him.—Trans.
-
-Footnote 90:
-
- Stenka Razin was by origin a common Cossack. His brother was hung for
- a breach of military discipline, and to this event Stenka Razin’s
- hatred of the governing classes has been attributed. He formed a
- robber band, and subsequently headed a formidable rebellion, declaring
- himself in favour of freedom for the serfs, religious toleration, and
- the abolition of taxes. Like the Government he opposed, he relied on
- force, and, though he used it largely in defence of the poor against
- the rich, he still held to
-
- “The good old rule, the simple plan,
- That they should take who have the power,
- And they should keep who can.”
-
- Like Robin Hood he is favourably treated in popular legends.—Trans.
-
-Footnote 91:
-
- Robert Macaire is a modern type of adroit and audacious rascality. He
- was the hero of a popular play produced in Paris in 1834.—Trans.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII
-
-
-The cause of the lie into which the art of our society has fallen was
-that people of the upper classes, having ceased to believe in the Church
-teaching (called Christian), did not resolve to accept true Christian
-teaching in its real and fundamental principles of sonship to God and
-brotherhood to man, but continued to live on without any belief,
-endeavouring to make up for the absence of belief—some by hypocrisy,
-pretending still to believe in the nonsense of the Church creeds; others
-by boldly asserting their disbelief; others by refined agnosticism; and
-others, again, by returning to the Greek worship of beauty, proclaiming
-egotism to be right, and elevating it to the rank of a religious
-doctrine.
-
-The cause of the malady was the non-acceptance of Christ’s teaching in
-its real, _i.e._ its full, meaning. And the only cure for the illness
-lies in acknowledging that teaching in its full meaning. And such
-acknowledgment in our time is not only possible but inevitable. Already
-to-day a man, standing on the height of the knowledge of our age,
-whether he be nominally a Catholic or a Protestant, cannot say that he
-really believes in the dogmas of the Church: in God being a Trinity, in
-Christ being God, in the scheme of redemption, and so forth; nor can he
-satisfy himself by proclaiming his unbelief or scepticism, nor by
-relapsing into the worship of beauty and egotism. Above all, he can no
-longer say that we do not know the real meaning of Christ’s teaching.
-That meaning has not only become accessible to all men of our times, but
-the whole life of man to-day is permeated by the spirit of that
-teaching, and, consciously or unconsciously, is guided by it.
-
-However differently in form people belonging to our Christian world may
-define the destiny of man; whether they see it in human progress in
-whatever sense of the words, in the union of all men in a socialistic
-realm, or in the establishment of a commune; whether they look forward
-to the union of mankind under the guidance of one universal Church, or
-to the federation of the world,—however various in form their
-definitions of the destination of human life may be, all men in our
-times already admit that the highest well-being attainable by men is to
-be reached by their union with one another.
-
-However people of our upper classes (feeling that their ascendency can
-only be maintained as long as they separate themselves—the rich and
-learned—from the labourers, the poor, and the unlearned) may seek to
-devise new conceptions of life by which their privileges may be
-perpetuated,—now the ideal of returning to antiquity, now mysticism, now
-Hellenism, now the cult of the superior person (overman-ism),—they have,
-willingly or unwillingly, to admit the truth which is elucidating itself
-from all sides, voluntarily and involuntarily, namely, that our welfare
-lies only in the unification and the brotherhood of man.
-
-Unconsciously this truth is confirmed by the construction of means of
-communication,—telegraphs, telephones, the press, and the
-ever-increasing attainability of material well-being for everyone,—and
-consciously it is affirmed by the destruction of superstitions which
-divide men, by the diffusion of the truths of knowledge, and by the
-expression of the ideal of the brotherhood of man in the best works of
-art of our time.
-
-Art is a spiritual organ of human life which cannot be destroyed, and
-therefore, notwithstanding all the efforts made by people of the upper
-classes to conceal the religious ideal by which humanity lives, that
-ideal is more and more clearly recognised by man, and even in our
-perverted society is more and more often partially expressed by science
-and by art. During the present century works of the higher kind of
-religious art have appeared more and more frequently, both in literature
-and in painting, permeated by a truly Christian spirit, as also works of
-the universal art of common life, accessible to all. So that even art
-knows the true ideal of our times, and tends towards it. On the one
-hand, the best works of art of our times transmit religious feelings
-urging towards the union and the brotherhood of man (such are the works
-of Dickens, Hugo, Dostoievsky; and in painting, of Millet, Bastien
-Lepage, Jules Breton, L’Hermitte, and others); on the other hand, they
-strive towards the transmission, not of feelings which are natural to
-people of the upper classes only, but of such feelings as may unite
-everyone without exception. There are as yet few such works, but the
-need of them is already acknowledged. In recent times we also meet more
-and more frequently with attempts at publications, pictures, concerts,
-and theatres for the people. All this is still very far from
-accomplishing what should be done, but already the direction in which
-good art instinctively presses forward to regain the path natural to it
-can be discerned.
-
-The religious perception of our time—which consists in acknowledging
-that the aim of life (both collective and individual) is the union of
-mankind—is already so sufficiently distinct that people have now only to
-reject the false theory of beauty, according to which enjoyment is
-considered to be the purpose of art, and religious perception will
-naturally takes its place as the guide of the art of our time.
-
-And as soon as the religious perception, which already unconsciously
-directs the life of man, is consciously acknowledged, then immediately
-and naturally the division of art, into art for the lower and art for
-the upper classes, will disappear. There will be one common, brotherly,
-universal art; and first, that art will naturally be rejected which
-transmits feelings incompatible with the religious perception of our
-time,—feelings which do not unite, but divide men,—and then that
-insignificant, exclusive art will be rejected to which an importance is
-now attached to which it has no right.
-
-And as soon as this occurs, art will immediately cease to be, what it
-has been in recent times: a means of making people coarser and more
-vicious, and it will become, what it always used to be and should be, a
-means by which humanity progresses towards unity and blessedness;
-
-Strange as the comparison may sound, what has happened to the art of our
-circle and time is what happens to a woman who sells her womanly
-attractiveness, intended for maternity, for the pleasure of those who
-desire such pleasures.
-
-The art of our time and of our circle has become a prostitute. And this
-comparison holds good even in minute details. Like her it is not limited
-to certain times, like her it is always adorned, like her it is always
-saleable, and like her it is enticing and ruinous.
-
-A real work of art can only arise in the soul of an artist occasionally,
-as the fruit of the life he has lived, just as a child is conceived by
-its mother. But counterfeit art is produced by artisans and
-handicraftsmen continually, if only consumers can be found.
-
-Real art, like the wife of an affectionate husband, needs no ornaments.
-But counterfeit art, like a prostitute, must always be decked out.
-
-The cause of the production of real art is the artist’s inner need to
-express a feeling that has accumulated, just as for a mother the cause
-of sexual conception is love. The cause of counterfeit art, as of
-prostitution, is gain.
-
-The consequence of true art is the introduction of a new feeling into
-the intercourse of life, as the consequence of a wife’s love is the
-birth of a new man into life.
-
-The consequences of counterfeit art are the perversion of man, pleasure
-which never satisfies, and the weakening of man’s spiritual strength.
-
-And this is what people of our day and of our circle should understand,
-in order to avoid the filthy torrent of depraved and prostituted art
-with which we are deluged.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX
-
-
-People talk of the art of the future, meaning by “art of the future”
-some especially refined, new art, which, as they imagine, will be
-developed out of that exclusive art of one class which is now considered
-the highest art. But no such new art of the future can or will be found.
-Our exclusive art, that of the upper classes of Christendom, has found
-its way into a blind alley. The direction in which it has been going
-leads nowhere. Having once let go of that which is most essential for
-art (namely, the guidance given by religious perception), that art has
-become ever more and more exclusive, and therefore ever more and more
-perverted, until, finally, it has come to nothing. The art of the
-future, that which is really coming, will not be a development of
-present-day art, but will arise on completely other and new foundations,
-having nothing in common with those by which our present art of the
-upper classes is guided.
-
-Art of the future, that is to say, such part of art as will be chosen
-from among all the art diffused among mankind, will consist, not in
-transmitting feelings accessible only to members of the rich classes, as
-is the case to-day, but in transmitting such feelings as embody the
-highest religious perception of our times. Only those productions will
-be considered art which transmit feelings drawing men together in
-brotherly union, or such universal feelings as can unite all men. Only
-such art will be chosen, tolerated, approved, and diffused. But art
-transmitting feelings flowing from antiquated, worn-out religious
-teaching,—Church art, patriotic art, voluptuous art, transmitting
-feelings of superstitious fear, of pride, of vanity, of ecstatic
-admiration of national heroes,—art exciting exclusive love of one’s own
-people, or sensuality, will be considered bad, harmful art, and will be
-censured and despised by public opinion. All the rest of art,
-transmitting feelings accessible only to a section of people, will be
-considered unimportant, and will be neither blamed nor praised. And the
-appraisement of art in general will devolve, not, as is now the case, on
-a separate class of rich people, but on the whole people; so that for a
-work to be esteemed good, and to be approved of and diffused, it will
-have to satisfy the demands, not of a few people living in identical and
-often unnatural conditions, but it will have to satisfy the demands of
-all those great masses of people who are situated in the natural
-conditions of laborious life.
-
-And the artists producing art will also not be, as now, merely a few
-people selected from a small section of the nation, members of the upper
-classes or their hangers-on, but will consist of all those gifted
-members of the whole people who prove capable of, and are inclined
-towards, artistic activity.
-
-Artistic activity will then be accessible to all men. It will become
-accessible to the whole people, because, in the first place, in the art
-of the future, not only will that complex technique, which deforms the
-productions of the art of to-day and requires so great an effort and
-expenditure of time, not be demanded, but, on the contrary, the demand
-will be for clearness, simplicity, and brevity—conditions mastered not
-by mechanical exercises but by the education of taste. And secondly,
-artistic activity will become accessible to all men of the people
-because, instead of the present professional schools which only some can
-enter, all will learn music and depictive art (singing and drawing)
-equally with letters in the elementary schools, and in such a way that
-every man, having received the first principles of drawing and music,
-and feeling a capacity for, and a call to, one or other of the arts,
-will be able to perfect himself in it.
-
-People think that if there are no special art-schools the technique of
-art will deteriorate. Undoubtedly, if by technique we understand those
-complications of art which are now considered an excellence, it will
-deteriorate; but if by technique is understood clearness, beauty,
-simplicity, and compression in works of art, then, even if the elements
-of drawing and music were not to be taught in the national schools, the
-technique will not only not deteriorate, but, as is shown by all peasant
-art, will be a hundred times better. It will be improved, because all
-the artists of genius now hidden among the masses will become producers
-of art and will give models of excellence, which (as has always been the
-case) will be the best schools of technique for their successors. For
-every true artist, even now, learns his technique, chiefly, not in the
-schools but in life, from the examples of the great masters; then—when
-the producers of art will be the best artists of the whole nation, and
-there will be more such examples, and they will be more accessible—such
-part of the school training as the future artist will lose will be a
-hundredfold compensated for by the training he will receive from the
-numerous examples of good art diffused in society.
-
-Such will be one difference between present and future art. Another
-difference will be that art will not be produced by professional artists
-receiving payment for their work and engaged on nothing else besides
-their art. The art of the future will be produced by all the members of
-the community who feel the need of such activity, but they will occupy
-themselves with art only when they feel such need.
-
-In our society people think that an artist will work better, and produce
-more, if he has a secured maintenance. And this opinion would serve once
-more to show clearly, were such demonstration still needed, that what
-among us is considered art is not art, but only its counterfeit. It is
-quite true that for the production of boots or loaves division of labour
-is very advantageous, and that the bootmaker or baker who need not
-prepare his own dinner or fetch his own fuel will make more boots or
-loaves than if he had to busy himself about these matters. But art is
-not a handicraft; it is the transmission of feeling the artist has
-experienced. And sound feeling can only be engendered in a man when he
-is living on all its sides the life natural and proper to mankind. And
-therefore security of maintenance is a condition most harmful to an
-artist’s true productiveness, since it removes him from the condition
-natural to all men,—that of struggle with nature for the maintenance of
-both his own life and that of others,—and thus deprives him of
-opportunity and possibility to experience the most important and natural
-feelings of man. There is no position more injurious to an artist’s
-productiveness than that position of complete security and luxury in
-which artists usually live in our society.
-
-The artist of the future will live the common life of man, earning his
-subsistence by some kind of labour. The fruits of that highest spiritual
-strength which passes through him he will try to share with the greatest
-possible number of people, for in such transmission to others of the
-feelings that have arisen in him he will find his happiness and his
-reward. The artist of the future will be unable to understand how an
-artist, whose chief delight is in the wide diffusion of his works, could
-give them only in exchange for a certain payment.
-
-Until the dealers are driven out, the temple of art will not be a
-temple. But the art of the future will drive them out.
-
-And therefore the subject-matter of the art of the future, as I imagine
-it to myself, will be totally unlike that of to-day. It will consist,
-not in the expression of exclusive feelings: pride, spleen, satiety, and
-all possible forms of voluptuousness, available and interesting only to
-people who, by force, have freed themselves from the labour natural to
-human beings; but it will consist in the expression of feelings
-experienced by a man living the life natural to all men and flowing from
-the religious perception of our times, or of such feelings as are open
-to all men without exception.
-
-To people of our circle who do not know, and cannot or will not
-understand the feelings which will form the subject-matter of the art of
-the future, such subject-matter appears very poor in comparison with
-those subtleties of exclusive art with which they are now occupied.
-“What is there fresh to be said in the sphere of the Christian feeling
-of love of one’s fellow-man? The feelings common to everyone are so
-insignificant and monotonous,” think they. And yet, in our time, the
-really fresh feelings can only be religious, Christian feelings, and
-such as are open, accessible, to all. The feelings flowing from the
-religious perception of our times, Christian feelings, are infinitely
-new and varied, only not in the sense some people imagine,—not that they
-can be evoked by the depiction of Christ and of Gospel episodes, or by
-repeating in new forms the Christian truths of unity, brotherhood,
-equality, and love,—but in that all the oldest, commonest, and most
-hackneyed phenomena of life evoke the newest, most unexpected and
-touching emotions as soon as a man regards them from the Christian point
-of view.
-
-What can be older than the relations between married couples, of parents
-to children, of children to parents; the relations of men to their
-fellow-countrymen and to foreigners, to an invasion, to defence, to
-property, to the land, or to animals? But as soon as a man regards these
-matters from the Christian point of view, endlessly varied, fresh,
-complex, and strong emotions immediately arise.
-
-And, in the same way, that realm of subject-matter for the art of the
-future which relates to the simplest feelings of common life open to all
-will not be narrowed but widened. In our former art only the expression
-of feelings natural to people of a certain exceptional position was
-considered worthy of being transmitted by art, and even then only on
-condition that these feelings were transmitted in a most refined manner,
-incomprehensible to the majority of men; all the immense realm of
-folk-art, and children’s art—jests, proverbs, riddles, songs, dances,
-children’s games, and mimicry—was not esteemed a domain worthy of art.
-
-The artist of the future will understand that to compose a fairy-tale, a
-little song which will touch, a lullaby or a riddle which will
-entertain, a jest which will amuse, or to draw a sketch which will
-delight dozens of generations or millions of children and adults, is
-incomparably more important and more fruitful than to compose a novel or
-a symphony, or paint a picture which will divert some members of the
-wealthy classes for a short time, and then be for ever forgotten. The
-region of this art of the simple feelings accessible to all is enormous,
-and it is as yet almost untouched.
-
-The art of the future, therefore, will not be poorer, but infinitely
-richer in subject-matter. And the form of the art of the future will
-also not be inferior to the present forms of art, but infinitely
-superior to them. Superior, not in the sense of having a refined and
-complex technique, but in the sense of the capacity briefly, simply, and
-clearly to transmit, without any superfluities, the feeling which the
-artist has experienced and wishes to transmit.
-
-I remember once speaking to a famous astronomer who had given public
-lectures on the spectrum analysis of the stars of the Milky Way, and
-saying it would be a good thing if, with his knowledge and masterly
-delivery, he would give a lecture merely on the formation and movements
-of the earth, for certainly there were many people at his lecture on the
-spectrum analysis of the stars of the Milky Way, especially among the
-women, who did not well know why night follows day and summer follows
-winter. The wise astronomer smiled as he answered, “Yes, it would be a
-good thing, but it would be very difficult. To lecture on the spectrum
-analysis of the Milky Way is far easier.”
-
-And so it is in art. To write a rhymed poem dealing with the times of
-Cleopatra, or paint a picture of Nero burning Rome, or compose a
-symphony in the manner of Brahms or Richard Strauss, or an opera like
-Wagner’s, is far easier than to tell a simple story without any
-unnecessary details, yet so that it should transmit the feelings of the
-narrator, or to draw a pencil-sketch which should touch or amuse the
-beholder, or to compose four bars of clear and simple melody, without
-any accompaniment, which should convey an impression and be remembered
-by those who hear it.
-
-“It is impossible for us, with our culture, to return to a primitive
-state,” say the artists of our time. “It is impossible for us now to
-write such stories as that of Joseph or the Odyssey, to produce such
-statues as the Venus of Milo, or to compose such music as the
-folk-songs.”
-
-And indeed, for the artists of our society and day, it is impossible,
-but not for the future artist, who will be free from all the perversion
-of technical improvements hiding the absence of subject-matter, and who,
-not being a professional artist and receiving no payment for his
-activity, will only produce art when he feels impelled to do so by an
-irresistible inner impulse.
-
-The art of the future will thus be completely distinct, both in
-subject-matter and in form, from what is now called art. The only
-subject-matter of the art of the future will be either feelings drawing
-men towards union, or such as already unite them; and the forms of art
-will be such as will be open to everyone. And therefore, the ideal of
-excellence in the future will not be the exclusiveness of feeling,
-accessible only to some, but, on the contrary, its universality. And not
-bulkiness, obscurity, and complexity of form, as is now esteemed, but,
-on the contrary, brevity, clearness, and simplicity of expression. Only
-when art has attained to that, will art neither divert nor deprave men
-as it does now, calling on them to expend their best strength on it, but
-be what it should be—a vehicle wherewith to transmit religious,
-Christian perception from the realm of reason and intellect into that of
-feeling, and really drawing people in actual life nearer to that
-perfection and unity indicated to them by their religious perception.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XX
- THE CONCLUSION
-
-
-I have accomplished, to the best of my ability, this work which has
-occupied me for 15 years, on a subject near to me—that of art. By saying
-that this subject has occupied me for 15 years, I do not mean that I
-have been writing this book 15 years, but only that I began to write on
-art 15 years ago, thinking that when once I undertook the task I should
-be able to accomplish it without a break. It proved, however, that my
-views on the matter then were so far from clear that I could not arrange
-them in a way that satisfied me. From that time I have never ceased to
-think on the subject, and I have recommenced to write on it 6 or 7
-times; but each time, after writing a considerable part of it, I have
-found myself unable to bring the work to a satisfactory conclusion, and
-have had to put it aside. Now I have finished it; and however badly I
-may have performed the task, my hope is that my fundamental thought as
-to the false direction the art of our society has taken and is
-following, as to the reasons of this, and as to the real destination of
-art, is correct, and that therefore my work will not be without avail.
-But that this should come to pass, and that art should really abandon
-its false path and take the new direction, it is necessary that another
-equally important human spiritual activity,—science,—in intimate
-dependence on which art always rests, should abandon the false path
-which it too, like art, is following.
-
-Science and art are as closely bound together as the lungs and the
-heart, so that if one organ is vitiated the other cannot act rightly.
-
-True science investigates and brings to human perception such truths and
-such knowledge as the people of a given time and society consider most
-important. Art transmits these truths from the region of perception to
-the region of emotion. Therefore, if the path chosen by science be false
-so also will be the path taken by art. Science and art are like a
-certain kind of barge with kedge-anchors which used to ply on our
-rivers. Science, like the boats which took the anchors up-stream and
-made them secure, gives direction to the forward movement; while art,
-like the windlass worked on the barge to draw it towards the anchor,
-causes the actual progression. And thus a false activity of science
-inevitably causes a correspondingly false activity of art.
-
-As art in general is the transmission of every kind of feeling, but in
-the limited sense of the word we only call that art which transmits
-feelings acknowledged by us to be important, so also science in general
-is the transmission of all possible knowledge; but in the limited sense
-of the word we call science that which transmits knowledge acknowledged
-by us to be important.
-
-And the degree of importance, both of the feelings transmitted by art
-and of the information transmitted by science, is decided by the
-religious perception of the given time and society, _i.e._ by the common
-understanding of the purpose of their lives possessed by the people of
-that time or society.
-
-That which most of all contributes to the fulfilment of that purpose
-will be studied most; that which contributes less will be studied less;
-that which does not contribute at all to the fulfilment of the purpose
-of human life will be entirely neglected, or, if studied, such study
-will not be accounted science. So it always has been, and so it should
-be now; for such is the nature of human knowledge and of human life. But
-the science of the upper classes of our time, which not only does not
-acknowledge any religion, but considers every religion to be mere
-superstition, could not and cannot make such distinctions.
-
-Scientists of our day affirm that they study _everything_ impartially;
-but as everything is too much (is in fact an infinite number of
-objects), and as it is impossible to study all alike, this is only said
-in the theory, while in practice not everything is studied, and study is
-applied far from impartially, only that being studied which, on the one
-hand, is most wanted by, and on the other hand, is pleasantest to those
-people who occupy themselves with science. And what the people,
-belonging to the upper classes, who are occupying themselves with
-science most want is the maintenance of the system under which those
-classes retain their privileges; and what is pleasantest are such things
-as satisfy idle curiosity, do not demand great mental efforts, and can
-be practically applied.
-
-And therefore one side of science, including theology and philosophy
-adapted to the existing order, as also history and political economy of
-the same sort, are chiefly occupied in proving that the existing order
-is the very one which ought to exist; that it has come into existence
-and continues to exist by the operation of immutable laws not amenable
-to human will, and that all efforts to change it are therefore harmful
-and wrong. The other part, experimental science,—including mathematics,
-astronomy, chemistry, physics, botany, and all the natural sciences,—is
-exclusively occupied with things that have no direct relation to human
-life: with what is curious, and with things of which practical
-application advantageous to people of the upper classes can be made. And
-to justify that selection of objects of study which (in conformity to
-their own position) the men of science of our times have made, they have
-devised a theory of science for science’s sake, quite similar to the
-theory of art for art’s sake.
-
-As by the theory of art for art’s sake it appears that occupation with
-all those things that please us—is art, so, by the theory of science for
-science’s sake, the study of that which interests us—is science.
-
-So that one side of science, instead of studying how people should live
-in order to fulfil their mission in life, demonstrates the righteousness
-and immutability of the bad and false arrangements of life which exist
-around us; while the other part, experimental science, occupies itself
-with questions of simple curiosity or with technical improvements.
-
-The first of these divisions of science is harmful, not only because it
-confuses people’s perceptions and gives false decisions, but also
-because it exists, and occupies the ground which should belong to true
-science. It does this harm, that each man, in order to approach the
-study of the most important questions of life, must first refute these
-erections of lies which have during ages been piled around each of the
-most essential questions of human life, and which are propped up by all
-the strength of human ingenuity.
-
-The second division—the one of which modern science is so particularly
-proud, and which is considered by many people to be the only real
-science—is harmful in that it diverts attention from the really
-important subjects to insignificant subjects, and is also directly
-harmful in that, under the evil system of society which the first
-division of science justifies and supports, a great part of the
-technical gains of science are turned not to the advantage but to the
-injury of mankind.
-
-Indeed it is only to those who are devoting their lives to such study
-that it seems as if all the inventions which are made in the sphere of
-natural science were very important and useful things. And to these
-people it seems so only when they do not look around them and do not see
-what is really important. They only need tear themselves away from the
-psychological microscope under which they examine the objects of their
-study, and look about them, in order to see how insignificant is all
-that has afforded them such naïve pride, all that knowledge not only of
-geometry of n-dimensions, spectrum analysis of the Milky Way, the form
-of atoms, dimensions of human skulls of the Stone Age, and similar
-trifles, but even our knowledge of micro-organisms, X-rays, etc., in
-comparison with such knowledge as we have thrown aside and handed over
-to the perversions of the professors of theology, jurisprudence,
-political economy, financial science, etc. We need only look around us
-to perceive that the activity proper to real science is not the study of
-whatever happens to interest us, but the study of how man’s life should
-be established,—the study of those questions of religion, morality, and
-social life, without the solution of which all our knowledge of nature
-will be harmful or insignificant.
-
-We are highly delighted and very proud that our science renders it
-possible to utilise the energy of a waterfall and make it work in
-factories, or that we have pierced tunnels through mountains, and so
-forth. But the pity of it is that we make the force of the waterfall
-labour, not for the benefit of the workmen, but to enrich capitalists
-who produce articles of luxury or weapons of man-destroying war. The
-same dynamite with which we blast the mountains to pierce tunnels, we
-use for wars, from which latter we not only do not intend to abstain,
-but which we consider inevitable, and for which we unceasingly prepare.
-
-If we are now able to inoculate preventatively with diphtheritic
-microbes, to find a needle in a body by means of X-rays, to straighten a
-hunched-back, cure syphilis, and perform wonderful operations, we should
-not be proud of these acquisitions either (even were they all
-established beyond dispute) if we fully understood the true purpose of
-real science. If but one-tenth of the efforts now spent on objects of
-pure curiosity or of merely practical application were expended on real
-science organising the life of man, more than half the people now sick
-would not have the illnesses from which a small minority of them now get
-cured in hospitals. There would be no poor-blooded and deformed children
-growing up in factories, no death-rates, as now, of 50 per cent. among
-children, no deterioration of whole generations, no prostitution, no
-syphilis, and no murdering of hundreds of thousands in wars, nor those
-horrors of folly and of misery which our present science considers a
-necessary condition of human life.
-
-We have so perverted the conception of science that it seems strange to
-men of our day to allude to sciences which should prevent the mortality
-of children, prostitution, syphilis, the deterioration of whole
-generations, and the wholesale murder of men. It seems to us that
-science is only then real science when a man in a laboratory pours
-liquids from one jar into another, or analyses the spectrum, or cuts up
-frogs and porpoises, or weaves in a specialised, scientific jargon an
-obscure network of conventional phrases—theological, philosophical,
-historical, juridical, or politico-economical—semi-intelligible to the
-man himself, and intended to demonstrate that what now is, is what
-should be.
-
-But science, true science,—such science as would really deserve the
-respect which is now claimed by the followers of one (the least
-important) part of science,—is not at all such as this: real science
-lies in knowing what we should and what we should not believe, in
-knowing how the associated life of man should and should not be
-constituted; how to treat sexual relations, how to educate children, how
-to use the land, how to cultivate it oneself without oppressing other
-people, how to treat foreigners, how to treat animals, and much more
-that is important for the life of man.
-
-Such has true science ever been and such it should be. And such science
-is springing up in our times; but, on the one hand, such true science is
-denied and refuted by all those scientific people who defend the
-existing order of society, and, on the other hand, it is considered
-empty, unnecessary, unscientific science by those who are engrossed in
-experimental science.
-
-For instance, books and sermons appear, demonstrating the antiquatedness
-and absurdity of Church dogmas, as well as the necessity of establishing
-a reasonable religious perception suitable to our times, and all the
-theology that is considered to be real science is only engaged in
-refuting these works and in exercising human intelligence again and
-again to find support and justification for superstitions long since
-out-lived, and which have now become quite meaningless. Or a sermon
-appears showing that land should not be an object of private possession,
-and that the institution of private property in land is a chief cause of
-the poverty of the masses. Apparently science, real science, should
-welcome such a sermon and draw further deductions from this position.
-But the science of our times does nothing of the kind: on the contrary,
-political economy demonstrates the opposite position, namely, that
-landed property, like every other form of property, must be more and
-more concentrated in the hands of a small number of owners. Again, in
-the same way, one would suppose it to be the business of real science to
-demonstrate the irrationality, unprofitableness, and immorality of war
-and of executions; or the inhumanity and harmfulness of prostitution; or
-the absurdity, harmfulness, and immorality of using narcotics or of
-eating animals; or the irrationality, harmfulness, and antiquatedness of
-patriotism. And such works exist, but are all considered unscientific;
-while works to prove that all these things ought to continue, and works
-intended to satisfy an idle thirst for knowledge lacking any relation to
-human life, are considered to be scientific.
-
-The deviation of the science of our time from its true purpose is
-strikingly illustrated by those ideals which are put forward by some
-scientists, and are not denied, but admitted, by the majority of
-scientific men.
-
-These ideals are expressed not only in stupid, fashionable books,
-describing the world as it will be in 1000 or 3000 years’ time, but also
-by sociologists who consider themselves serious men of science. These
-ideals are that food instead of being obtained from the land by
-agriculture, will be prepared in laboratories by chemical means, and
-that human labour will be almost entirely superseded by the utilisation
-of natural forces.
-
-Man will not, as now, eat an egg laid by a hen he has kept, or bread
-grown on his field, or an apple from a tree he has reared and which has
-blossomed and matured in his sight; but he will eat tasty, nutritious,
-food which will be prepared in laboratories by the conjoint labour of
-many people in which he will take a small part. Man will hardly need to
-labour, so that all men will be able to yield to idleness as the upper,
-ruling classes now yield to it.
-
-Nothing shows more plainly than these ideals to what a degree the
-science of our times has deviated from the true path.
-
-The great majority of men in our times lack good and sufficient food (as
-well as dwellings and clothes and all the first necessaries of life).
-And this great majority of men is compelled, to the injury of its
-well-being, to labour continually beyond its strength. Both these evils
-can easily be removed by abolishing mutual strife, luxury, and the
-unrighteous distribution of wealth, in a word by the abolition of a
-false and harmful order and the establishment of a reasonable, human
-manner of life. But science considers the existing order of things to be
-as immutable as the movements of the planets, and therefore assumes that
-the purpose of science is—not to elucidate the falseness of this order
-and to arrange a new, reasonable way of life—but, under the existing
-order of things, to feed everybody and enable all to be as idle as the
-ruling classes, who live a depraved life, now are.
-
-And, meanwhile, it is forgotten that nourishment with corn, vegetables,
-and fruit raised from the soil by one’s own labour is the pleasantest,
-healthiest, easiest, and most natural nourishment, and that the work of
-using one’s muscles is as necessary a condition of life as is the
-oxidation of the blood by breathing.
-
-To invent means whereby people might, while continuing our false
-division of property and labour, be well nourished by means of
-chemically-prepared food, and might make the forces of nature work for
-them, is like inventing means to pump oxygen into the lungs of a man
-kept in a closed chamber the air of which is bad, when all that is
-needed is to cease to confine the man in the closed chamber.
-
-In the vegetable and animal kingdoms a laboratory for the production of
-food has been arranged, such as can be surpassed by no professors, and
-to enjoy the fruits of this laboratory, and to participate in it, man
-has only to yield to that ever joyful impulse to labour, without which
-man’s life is a torment. And lo and behold, the scientists of our times,
-instead of employing all their strength to abolish whatever hinders man
-from utilising the good things prepared for him, acknowledge the
-conditions under which man is deprived of these blessings to be
-unalterable, and instead of arranging the life of man so that he might
-work joyfully and be fed from the soil, they devise methods which will
-cause him to become an artificial abortion. It is like not helping a man
-out of confinement into the fresh air, but devising means, instead, to
-pump into him the necessary quantity of oxygen and arranging so that he
-may live in a stifling cellar instead of living at home.
-
-Such false ideals could not exist if science were not on a false path.
-
-And yet the feelings transmitted by art grow up on the bases supplied by
-science.
-
-But what feelings can such misdirected science evoke? One side of this
-science evokes antiquated feelings, which humanity has used up, and
-which, in our times, are bad and exclusive. The other side, occupied
-with the study of subjects unrelated to the conduct of human life, by
-its very nature cannot serve as a basis for art.
-
-So that art in our times, to be art, must either open up its own road
-independently of science, or must take direction from the unrecognised
-science which is denounced by the orthodox section of science. And this
-is what art, when it even partially fulfils its mission, is doing.
-
-It is to be hoped that the work I have tried to perform concerning art
-will be performed also for science—that the falseness of the theory of
-science for science’s sake will be demonstrated; that the necessity of
-acknowledging Christian teaching in its true meaning will be clearly
-shown, that on the basis of that teaching a reappraisement will be made
-of the knowledge we possess, and of which we are so proud; that the
-secondariness and insignificance of experimental science, and the
-primacy and importance of religious, moral, and social knowledge will be
-established; and that such knowledge will not, as now, be left to the
-guidance of the upper classes only, but will form a chief interest of
-all free, truth-loving men, such as those who, not in agreement with the
-upper classes but in their despite, have always forwarded the real
-science of life.
-
-Astronomical, physical, chemical, and biological science, as also
-technical and medical science, will be studied only in so far as they
-can help to free mankind from religious, juridical, or social
-deceptions, or can serve to promote the well-being of all men, and not
-of any single class.
-
-Only then will science cease to be what it is now—on the one hand a
-system of sophistries, needed for the maintenance of the existing
-worn-out order of society, and, on the other hand, a shapeless mass of
-miscellaneous knowledge, for the most part good for little or
-nothing—and become a shapely and organic whole, having a definite and
-reasonable purpose comprehensible to all men, namely, the purpose of
-bringing to the consciousness of men the truths that flow from the
-religious perception of our times.
-
-And only then will art, which is always dependent on science, be what it
-might and should be, an organ coequally important with science for the
-life and progress of mankind.
-
-Art is not a pleasure, a solace, or an amusement; art is a great matter.
-Art is an organ of human life, transmitting man’s reasonable perception
-into feeling. In our age the common religious perception of men is the
-consciousness of the brotherhood of man—we know that the well-being of
-man lies in union with his fellow-men. True science should indicate the
-various methods of applying this consciousness to life. Art should
-transform this perception into feeling.
-
-The task of art is enormous. Through the influence of real art, aided by
-science guided by religion, that peaceful co-operation of man which is
-now obtained by external means—by our law-courts, police, charitable
-institutions, factory inspection, etc.—should be obtained by man’s free
-and joyous activity. Art should cause violence to be set aside.
-
-And it is only art that can accomplish this.
-
-All that now, independently of the fear of violence and punishment,
-makes the social life of man possible (and already now this is an
-enormous part of the order of our lives)—all this has been brought about
-by art. If by art it has been inculcated how people should treat
-religious objects, their parents, their children, their wives, their
-relations, strangers, foreigners; how to conduct themselves to their
-elders, their superiors, to those who suffer, to their enemies, and to
-animals; and if this has been obeyed through generations by millions of
-people, not only unenforced by any violence, but so that the force of
-such customs can be shaken in no way but by means of art: then, by the
-same art, other customs, more in accord with the religious perception of
-our time, may be evoked. If art has been able to convey the sentiment of
-reverence for images, for the eucharist, and for the king’s person; of
-shame at betraying a comrade, devotion to a flag, the necessity of
-revenge for an insult, the need to sacrifice one’s labour for the
-erection and adornment of churches, the duty of defending one’s honour
-or the glory of one’s native land—then that same art can also evoke
-reverence for the dignity of every man and for the life of every animal;
-can make men ashamed of luxury, of violence, of revenge, or of using for
-their pleasure that of which others are in need; can compel people
-freely, gladly, and without noticing it, to sacrifice themselves in the
-service of man.
-
-The task for art to accomplish is to make that feeling of brotherhood
-and love of one’s neighbour, now attained only by the best members of
-the society, the customary feeling and the instinct of all men. By
-evoking, under imaginary conditions, the feeling of brotherhood and
-love, religious art will train men to experience those same feelings
-under similar circumstances in actual life; it will lay in the souls of
-men the rails along which the actions of those whom art thus educates
-will naturally pass. And universal art, by uniting the most different
-people in one common feeling, by destroying separation, will educate
-people to union, will show them, not by reason but by life itself, the
-joy of universal union reaching beyond the bounds set by life.
-
-The destiny of art in our time is to transmit from the realm of reason
-to the realm of feeling the truth that well-being for men consists in
-being united together, and to set up, in place of the existing reign of
-force, that kingdom of God, _i.e._ of love, which we all recognise to be
-the highest aim of human life.
-
-Possibly, in the future, science may reveal to art yet newer and higher
-ideals, which art may realise; but, in our time, the destiny of art is
-clear and definite. The task for Christian art is to establish brotherly
-union among men.
-
-
-
-
- APPENDICES
-
-
-
-
- APPENDIX I.
-
-
-This is the first page of Mallarmé’s book _Divagations_:—
-
-
- LE PHÉNOMÈNE FUTUR.
-
-
-Un ciel pâle, sur le monde qui finit de décrépitude, va peut-être partir
-avec les nuages: les lambeaux de la pourpre usée des couchants
-déteignent dans une rivière dormant à l’horizon submergé de rayons et
-d’eau. Les arbres s’ennuient, et, sous leur feuillage blanchi (de la
-poussière du temps plutôt que celle des chemins) monte la maison en
-toile de Montreur de choses Passées: maint réverbère attend le
-crépuscule et ravive les visages d’une malheureuse foule, vaincue par la
-maladie immortelle et le péché des siècles, d’hommes près de leurs
-chétives complices enceintes des fruits misérables avec lesquels périra
-la terre. Dans le silence inquiet de tous les yeux suppliant là-bas le
-soleil qui, sous l’eau, s’enfonce avec le désespoir d’un cri, voici le
-simple boniment: “Nulle enseigne ne vous régale du spectacle intérieur,
-car il n’est pas maintenant un peintre capable d’en donner une ombre
-triste. J’apporte, vivante (et préservée à travers les ans par la
-science souveraine) une Femme d’autrefois. Quelque folie, originelle et
-naïve, une extase d’or, je ne sais quoi! par elle nommé sa chevelure, se
-ploie avec la grâce des étoffes autour d’un visage qu’ éclaire la nudité
-sanglante de ses lèvres. A la place du vêtement vain, elle a un corps;
-et les yeux, semblables aux pierres rares! ne valent pas ce regard qui
-sort de sa chair heureuse: des seins levés comme s’ils étaient pleins
-d’un lait éternel, la pointe vers le ciel, les jambes lisses qui gardent
-le sel de la mer première.” Se rappelant leurs pauvres épouses, chauves,
-morbides et pleines d’horreur, les maris se pressent: elles aussi par
-curiosité, mélancoliques, veulent voir.
-
-Quand tous auront contemplé la noble créature, vestige de quelque époque
-déjà maudite, les uns indifférents, car ils n’auront pas eu la force de
-comprendre, mais d’autres navrés et la paupière humide de larmes
-résignées, se regarderont; tandis que les poètes de ces temps, sentant
-se rallumer leur yeux éteints, s’achemineront vers leur lampe, le
-cerveau ivre un instant d’une gloire confuse, hantés du Rythme et dans
-l’oubli d’exister à une époque qui survit à la beauté.
-
-
- THE FUTURE PHENOMENON—by Mallarmé
-
-
- A pale sky, above the world that is ending through decrepitude,
- going perhaps to pass away with the clouds: shreds of worn-out
- purple of the sunsets wash off their colour in a river sleeping on
- the horizon, submerged with rays and water. The trees are weary and,
- beneath their foliage, whitened (by the dust of time rather than
- that of the roads), rises the canvas house of “Showman of things
- Past.” Many a lamp awaits the gloaming and brightens the faces of a
- miserable crowd vanquished by the immortal illness and the sin of
- ages, of men by the sides of their puny accomplices pregnant with
- the miserable fruit with which the world will perish. In the anxious
- silence of all the eyes supplicating the sun there, which sinks
- under the water with the desperation of a cry, this is the plain
- announcement: “No sign-board now regales you with the spectacle that
- is inside, for there is no painter now capable of giving even a sad
- shadow of it. I bring living (and preserved by sovereign science
- through the years) a Woman of other days. Some kind of folly, naïve
- and original, an ecstasy of gold, I know not what, by her called her
- hair, clings with the grace of some material round a face brightened
- by the blood-red nudity of her lips. In place of vain clothing, she
- has a body; and her eyes, resembling precious stones! are not worth
- that look, which comes from her happy flesh: breasts raised as if
- full of eternal milk, the points towards the sky; the smooth legs,
- that keep the salt of the first sea.” Remembering their poor
- spouses, bald, morbid, and full of horrors, the husbands press
- forward: the women too, from curiosity, gloomily wish to see.
-
- When all shall have contemplated the noble creature, vestige of some
- epoch already damned, some indifferently, for they will not have had
- strength to understand, but others broken-hearted and with eyelids
- wet with tears of resignation, will look at each other; while the
- poets of those times, feeling their dim eyes rekindled, will make
- their way towards their lamp, their brain for an instant drunk with
- confused glory, haunted by Rhythm and forgetful that they exist at
- an epoch which has survived beauty.
-
-
-
-
- APPENDIX II.[92]
-
-
- No. 1.
-
-
-The following verses are by Vielé-Griffin, from page 28 of a volume of
-his Poems:—
-
-
- OISEAU BLEU COULEUR DU TEMPS.
-
-
- 1.
-
- Sait-tu l’oubli
- D’un vain doux rêve,
- Oiseau moqueur
- De la forêt?
- Le jour pâlit,
- La nuit se lève,
- Et dans mon cœur
- L’ombre a pleuré;
-
-
- 2.
-
- O chante-moi
- Ta folle gamme,
- Car j’ai dormi
- Ce jour durant;
- Le lâche emoi
- Où fut mon âme
- Sanglote ennui
- Le jour mourant...
-
-
- 3.
-
- Sais-tu le chant
- De sa parole
- Et de sa voix,
- Toi qui redis
- Dans le couchant
- Ton air frivole
- Comme autrefois
- Sous les midis?
-
-
- 4.
-
- O chante alors
- La mélodie
- De son amour,
- Mon fol espoir,
- Parmi les ors
- Et l’incendie
- Du vain doux jour
- Qui meurt ce soir.
-
- FRANCIS VIELÉ-GRIFFIN.
-
-
- BLUE BIRD.
-
-
- 1.
-
- Canst thou forget,
- In dreams so vain,
- Oh, mocking bird
- Of forest deep?
- The day doth set,
- Night comes again,
- My heart has heard
- The shadows weep;
-
-
- 2.
-
- Thy tones let flow
- In maddening scale,
- For I have slept
- The livelong day;
- Emotions low
- In me now wail,
- My soul they’ve kept:
- Light dies away ...
-
-
- 3.
-
- That music sweet,
- Ah, do you know
- Her voice and speech?
- Your airs so light
- You who repeat
- In sunset’s glow,
- As you sang, each,
- At noonday’s height.
-
-
- 4.
-
- Of my desire,
- My hope so bold,
- Her love—up, sing,
- Sing ’neath this light,
- This flaming fire,
- And all the gold
- The eve doth bring
- Ere comes the night.
-
-
- No. 2.
-
-
-And here are some verses by the esteemed young poet Verhaeren, which I
-also take from page 28 of his Works:—
-
-
- ATTIRANCES.
-
-
- Lointainement, et si étrangement pareils,
- De grands masques d’argent que la brume recule,
- Vaguent, au jour tombant, autour des vieux soleils.
-
- Les doux lointaines!—et comme, au fond du crépuscule,
- Ils nous fixent le cœur, immensément le cœur,
- Avec les yeux _défunts de leur_ visage d’âme.
-
- C’est toujours du silence, à moins, dans la pâleur
- Du soir, un jet de feu soudain, un cri de flamme,
- Un départ de lumière inattendu vers Dieu.
-
- On se laisse charmer et troubler de mystère,
- Et l’on dirait des morts qui taisent un adieu
- Trop mystique, pour être écouté par la terre!
-
- Sont-ils le souvenir matériel et clair
- Des éphèbes chrétiens couchés aux catacombes
- Parmi les lys? Sont-ils leur regard et leur chair?
-
- Ou seul, ce qui survit de merveilleux aux tombes
- De ceux qui sont partis, vers leurs rêves, un soir,
- Conquérir la folie à l’assaut des nuées?
-
- Lointainement, combien nous les sentons vouloir
- Un peu d’amour pour leurs œuvres destituées,
- Pour leur errance et leur tristesse aux horizons.
-
- Toujours! aux horizons du cœur et des pensées,
- Alors que les vieux soirs éclatent en blasons
- Soudains, pour les gloires noires et angoissées.
-
- ÉMILE VERHAEREN,
- _Poèmes_.
-
-
- ATTRACTIONS.
-
-
- Large masks of silver, by mists drawn away,
- So strangely alike, yet so far apart,
- Float round the old suns when faileth the day.
-
- They transfix our heart, so immensely our heart,
- Those distances mild, in the twilight deep,
- Looking out of dead faces with their spirit eyes.
-
- All around is now silence, except when there leap
- In the pallor of evening, with fiery cries,
- Some fountains of flame that God-ward do fly.
-
- Mysterious trouble and charms us enfold.
- You might think that the dead spoke a silent good-bye,
- Oh! too mystical far on earth to be told!
-
- Are they the memories, material and bright,
- Of the Christian youths that in catacombs sleep
- ’Mid the lilies? Are they their flesh or their sight?
-
- Or the marvel alone that survives, in the deep,
- Of those that, one night, returned to their dream
- Of conquering folly by assaulting the skies?
-
- For their destitute works—we feel it seems,
- For a little love their longing cries
- From horizons far—for their errings and pain.
-
- In horizons ever of heart and thought,
- While the evenings old in bright blaze wane
- Suddenly, for black glories anguish fraught.
-
-
- No. 3.
-
-
-And the following is a poem by Moréas, evidently an admirer of Greek
-beauty. It is from page 28 of a volume of his Poems:—
-
-
- ENONE AU CLAIR VISAGE.
-
-
- Enone, j’avais cru qu’en aimant ta beauté
- Où l’âme avec le corps trouvent leur unité,
- J’allais, m’affermissant et le cœur et l’esprit,
- Monter jusqu’à cela qui jamais ne périt,
- N’ayant été crée, qui n’est froideur ou feu,
- Qui n’est beau quelque part et laid en autre lieu;
- Et me flattais encor’ d’une belle harmonie
- Que j’eusse composé du meilleur et du pire,
- Ainsi que le chanteur qui chérit Polimnie,
- En accordant le grave avec l’aigu, retire
- Un son bien élevé sur les nerfs de sa lyre.
- Mais mon courage, hélas! se pâmant comme mort,
- M’enseigna que le trait qui m’avait fait amant
- Ne fut pas de cet arc que courbe sans effort
- La Vénus qui naquit du mâle seulement,
- Mais que j’avais souffert cette Vénus dernière,
- Qui a le cœur couard, né d’une faible mère.
- Et pourtant, ce mauvais garçon, chasseur habile,
- Qui charge son carquois de sagette subtile,
- Qui secoue en riant sa torche, pour un jour,
- Qui ne pose jamais que sur de tendres fleurs,
- C’est sur un teint charmant qu’il essuie les pleurs,
- Et c’est encore un Dieu, Enone, cet Amour.
- Mais, laisse, les oiseaux du printemps sont partis,
- Et je vois les rayons du soleil amortis.
- Enone, ma douleur, harmonieux visage,
- Superbe humilité, doux honnête langage,
- Hier me remirant dans cet étang glacé
- Qui au bout du jardin se couvre de feuillage,
- Sur ma face je vis que les jours ont passé.
-
- JEAN MORÉAS.
-
-
- ENONE.
-
-
- Enone, in loving thy beauty, I thought,
- Where the soul and the body to union are brought,
- That mounting by steadying my heart and my mind,
- In that which can’t perish, myself I should find.
- For it ne’er was created, is not ugly and fair;
- Is not coldness in one part, while on fire it is there.
- Yes, I flattered myself that a harmony fine
- I’d succeed to compose of the worst and the best,
- Like the bard who adores Polyhymnia divine,
- And mingling sounds different from the nerves of his lyre,
- From the grave and the smart draws melodies higher.
- But, alas! my courage, so faint and nigh spent,
- The dart that has struck me proves without fail
- Not to be from that bow which is easily bent
- By the Venus that’s born alone of the male.
- No, ’twas that other Venus that caused me to smart,
- Born of frail mother with cowardly heart.
- And yet that naughty lad, that little hunter bold,
- Who laughs and shakes his flowery torch just for a day,
- Who never rests but upon tender flowers and gay,
- On sweetest skin who dries the tears his eyes that fill,
- Yet oh, Enone mine, a God’s that Cupid still.
- Let it pass; for the birds of the Spring are away,
- And dying I see the sun’s lingering ray.
- Enone, my sorrow, oh, harmonious face,
- Humility grand, words of virtue and grace,
- I looked yestere’en in the pond frozen fast,
- Strewn with leaves at the end of the garden’s fair space,
- And I read in my face that those days are now past.
-
-
- No. 4.
-
-
-And this is also from page 28 of a thick book, full of similar Poems, by
-M. Montesquiou.
-
-
- BERCEUSE D’OMBRE.
-
-
- Des formes, des formes, des formes
- Blanche, bleue, et rose, et d’or
- Descendront du haut des ormes
- Sur l’enfant qui se rendort.
- Des formes!
-
- Des plumes, des plumes, des plumes
- Pour composer un doux nid.
- Midi sonne: les enclumes
- Cessent; la rumeur finit ...
- Des plumes!
-
- Des roses, des roses, des roses
- Pour embaumer son sommeil,
- Vos pétales sont moroses
- Près du sourire vermeil.
- O roses!
-
- Des ailes, des ailes, des ailes
- Pour bourdonner à son front.
- Abeilles et demoiselles,
- Des rythmes qui berceront.
- Des ailes!
-
- Des branches, des branches, des branches
- Pour tresser un pavillon,
- Par où des clartés moins franches
- Descendront sur l’oisillon.
- Des branches!
-
- Des songes, des songes, des songes
- Dans ses pensers entr’ ouverts
- Glissez un peu de mensonges
- A voir le vie au travers
- Des songes!
-
- Des fées, des fées, des fées,
- Pour filer leurs écheveaux
- Des mirages, de bouffées
- Dans tous ces petits cerveaux.
- Des fées.
-
- Des anges, des anges, des anges
- Pour emporter dans l’éther
- Les petits enfants étranges
- Qui ne veulent pas rester ...
- Nos anges!
-
- COMTE ROBERT DE MONTESQUIOU-FEZENSAC,
- _Les Hortensias Bleus_.
-
-
- THE SHADOW LULLABY.
-
-
- Oh forms, oh forms, oh forms
- White, blue, and gold, and red
- Descending from the elm trees,
- On sleeping baby’s head.
- Oh forms!
-
- Oh feathers, feathers, feathers
- To make a cosy nest.
- Twelve striking: stops the clamour;
- The anvils are at rest ...
- Oh feathers!
-
- Oh roses, roses, roses
- To scent his sleep awhile,
- Pale are your fragrant petals
- Beside his ruby smile.
- Oh roses!
-
- Oh wings, oh wings, oh wings
- Of bees and dragon-flies,
- To hum around his forehead,
- And lull him with your sighs.
- Oh wings!
-
- Branches, branches, branches
- A shady bower to twine,
- Through which, oh daylight, family
- Descend on birdie mine.
- Branches!
-
- Oh dreams, oh dreams, oh dreams
- Into his opening mind,
- Let in a little falsehood
- With sights of life behind.
- Dreams!
-
- Oh fairies, fairies, fairies,
- To twine and twist their threads
- With puffs of phantom visions
- Into these little heads.
- Fairies!
-
- Angels, angels, angels
- To the ether far away,
- Those children strange to carry
- That here don’t wish to stay ...
- Our angels!
-
-Footnote 92:
-
- The translations in Appendices I., II., and IV., are by Louise Maude.
- The aim of these renderings has been to keep as close to the originals
- as the obscurity of meaning allowed. The sense (or absence of sense)
- has therefore been more considered than the form of the verses.
-
-
-
-
- APPENDIX III.
-
-
-These are the contents of _The Nibelung’s Ring_:—
-
-The first part tells that the nymphs, the daughters of the Rhine, for
-some reason guard gold in the Rhine, and sing: Weia, Waga, Woge du
-Welle, Walle zur Wiege, Wagalaweia, Wallala, Weiala, Weia, and so forth.
-
-These singing nymphs are pursued by a gnome (a nibelung) who desires to
-seize them. The gnome cannot catch any of them. Then the nymphs guarding
-the gold tell the gnome just what they ought to keep secret, namely,
-that whoever renounces love will be able to steal the gold they are
-guarding. And the gnome renounces love, and steals the gold. This ends
-the first scene.
-
-In the second scene a god and a goddess lie in a field in sight of a
-castle which giants have built for them. Presently they wake up and are
-pleased with the castle, and they relate that in payment for this work
-they must give the goddess Freia to the giants. The giants come for
-their pay. But the god Wotan objects to parting with Freia. The giants
-get angry. The gods hear that the gnome has stolen the gold, promise to
-confiscate it and to pay the giants with it. But the giants won’t trust
-them, and seize the goddess Freia in pledge.
-
-The third scene takes place under ground. The gnome Alberich, who stole
-the gold, for some reason beats a gnome, Mime, and takes from him a
-helmet which has the power both of making people invisible and of
-turning them into other animals. The gods, Wotan and others, appear and
-quarrel with one another and with the gnomes, and wish to take the gold,
-but Alberich won’t give it up, and (like everybody all through the
-piece) behaves in a way to ensure his own ruin. He puts on the helmet,
-and becomes first a dragon and then a toad. The gods catch the toad,
-take the helmet off it, and carry Alberich away with them.
-
-Scene IV. The gods bring Alberich to their home, and order him to
-command his gnomes to bring them all the gold. The gnomes bring it.
-Alberich gives up the gold, but keeps a magic ring. The gods take the
-ring. So Alberich curses the ring, and says it is to bring misfortune on
-anyone who has it. The giants appear; they bring the goddess Freia, and
-demand her ransom. They stick up staves of Freia’s height, and gold is
-poured in between these staves: this is to be the ransom. There is not
-enough gold, so the helmet is thrown in, and they also demand the ring.
-Wotan refuses to give it up, but the goddess Erda appears and commands
-him to do so, because it brings misfortune. Wotan gives it up. Freia is
-released. The giants, having received the ring, fight, and one of them
-kills the other. This ends the Prelude, and we come to the First Day.
-
-The scene shows a house in a tree. Siegmund runs in tired, and lies
-down. Sieglinda, the mistress of the house (and wife of Hunding), gives
-him a drugged draught, and they fall in love with each other.
-Sieglinda’s husband comes home, learns that Siegmund belongs to a
-hostile race, and wishes to fight him next day; but Sieglinda drugs her
-husband, and comes to Siegmund. Siegmund discovers that Sieglinda is his
-sister, and that his father drove a sword into the tree so that no one
-can get it out. Siegmund pulls the sword out, and commits incest with
-his sister.
-
-Act II. Siegmund is to fight with Hunding. The gods discuss the question
-to whom they shall award the victory. Wotan, approving of Siegmund’s
-incest with his sister, wishes to spare him, but, under pressure from
-his wife, Fricka, he orders the Valkyrie Brünnhilda to kill Siegmund.
-Siegmund goes to fight; Sieglinda faints. Brünnhilda appears and wishes
-to slay Siegmund. Siegmund wishes to kill Sieglinda also, but Brünnhilda
-does not allow it; so he fights with Hunding. Brünnhilda defends
-Siegmund, but Wotan defends Hunding. Siegmund’s sword breaks, and he is
-killed. Sieglinda runs away.
-
-Act III. The Valkyries (divine Amazons) are on the stage. The Valkyrie
-Brünnhilda arrives on horseback, bringing Siegmund’s body. She is flying
-from Wotan, who is chasing her for her disobedience. Wotan catches her,
-and as a punishment dismisses her from her post as a Valkyrie. He casts
-a spell on her, so that she has to go to sleep and to continue asleep
-until a man wakes her. When someone wakes her she will fall in love with
-him. Wotan kisses her; she falls asleep. He lets off fire, which
-surrounds her.
-
-We now come to the Second Day. The gnome Mime forges a sword in a wood.
-Siegfried appears. He is a son born from the incest of brother with
-sister (Siegmund with Sieglinda), and has been brought up in this wood
-by the gnome. In general the motives of the actions of everybody in this
-production are quite unintelligible. Siegfried learns his own origin,
-and that the broken sword was his father’s. He orders Mime to reforge
-it, and then goes off. Wotan comes in the guise of a wanderer, and
-relates what will happen: that he who has not learnt to fear will forge
-the sword, and will defeat everybody. The gnome conjectures that this is
-Siegfried, and wants to poison him. Siegfried returns, forges his
-father’s sword, and runs off, shouting, Heiho! heiho! heiho! Ho! ho!
-Aha! oho! aha! Heiaho! heiaho! heiaho! Ho! ho! Hahei! hoho! hahei!
-
-And we get to Act II. Alberich sits guarding a giant, who, in form of a
-dragon, guards the gold he has received. Wotan appears, and for some
-unknown reason foretells that Siegfried will come and kill the dragon.
-Alberich wakes the dragon, and asks him for the ring, promising to
-defend him from Siegfried. The dragon won’t give up the ring. Exit
-Alberich. Mime and Siegfried appear. Mime hopes the dragon will teach
-Siegfried to fear. But Siegfried does not fear. He drives Mime away and
-kills the dragon, after which he puts his finger, smeared with the
-dragon’s blood, to his lips. This enables him to know men’s secret
-thoughts, as well as the language of birds. The birds tell him where the
-treasure and the ring are, and also that Mime wishes to poison him. Mime
-returns, and says out loud that he wishes to poison Siegfried. This is
-meant to signify that Siegfried, having tasted dragon’s blood,
-understands people’s secret thoughts. Siegfried, having learnt Mime’s
-intentions, kills him. The birds tell Siegfried where Brünnhilda is, and
-he goes to find her.
-
-Act III. Wotan calls up Erda. Erda prophesies to Wotan, and gives him
-advice. Siegfried appears, quarrels with Wotan, and they fight. Suddenly
-Siegfried’s sword breaks Wotan’s spear, which had been more powerful
-than anything else. Siegfried goes into the fire to Brünnhilda; kisses
-her; she wakes up, abandons her divinity, and throws herself into
-Siegfried’s arms.
-
-Third Day. Prelude. Three Norns plait a golden rope, and talk about the
-future. They go away. Siegfried and Brünnhilda appear. Siegfried takes
-leave of her, gives her the ring, and goes away.
-
-Act I. By the Rhine. A king wants to get married, and also to give his
-sister in marriage. Hagen, the king’s wicked brother, advises him to
-marry Brünnhilda, and to give his sister to Siegfried. Siegfried
-appears; they give him a drugged draught, which makes him forget all the
-past and fall in love with the king’s sister, Gutrune. So he rides off
-with Gunther, the king, to get Brünnhilda to be the king’s bride. The
-scene changes. Brünnhilda sits with the ring. A Valkyrie comes to her
-and tells her that Wotan’s spear is broken, and advises her to give the
-ring to the Rhine nymphs. Siegfried comes, and by means of the magic
-helmet turns himself into Gunther, demands the ring from Brünnhilda,
-seizes it, and drags her off to sleep with him.
-
-Act II. By the Rhine. Alberich and Hagen discuss how to get the ring.
-Siegfried comes, tells how he has obtained a bride for Gunther and spent
-the night with her, but put a sword between himself and her. Brünnhilda
-rides up, recognises the ring on Siegfried’s hand, and declares that it
-was he, and not Gunther, who was with her. Hagen stirs everybody up
-against Siegfried, and decides to kill him next day when hunting.
-
-Act III. Again the nymphs in the Rhine relate what has happened.
-Siegfried, who has lost his way, appears. The nymphs ask him for the
-ring, but he won’t give it up. Hunters appear. Siegfried tells the story
-of his life. Hagen then gives him a draught, which causes his memory to
-return to him. Siegfried relates how he aroused and obtained Brünnhilda,
-and everyone is astonished. Hagen stabs him in the back, and the scene
-is changed. Gutrune meets the corpse of Siegfried. Gunther and Hagen
-quarrel about the ring, and Hagen kills Gunther. Brünnhilda cries. Hagen
-wishes to take the ring from Siegfried’s hand, but the hand of the
-corpse raises itself threateningly. Brünnhilda takes the ring from
-Siegfried’s hand, and when Siegfried’s corpse is carried to the pyre she
-gets on to a horse and leaps into the fire. The Rhine rises, and the
-waves reach the pyre. In the river are three nymphs. Hagen throws
-himself into the fire to get the ring, but the nymphs seize him and
-carry him off. One of them holds the ring; and that is the end of the
-matter.
-
-The impression obtainable from my recapitulation is, of course,
-incomplete. But however incomplete it may be, it is certainly infinitely
-more favourable than the impression which results from reading the four
-booklets in which the work is printed.
-
-
-
-
- APPENDIX IV.
- Translations of French poems and prose quoted in Chapter X.
-
-
- BAUDELAIRE’S “FLOWERS OF EVIL.”
- No. XXIV.
-
-
- I adore thee as much as the vaults of night,
- O vase full of grief, taciturnity great,
- And I love thee the more because of thy flight.
- It seemeth, my night’s beautifier, that you
- Still heap up those leagues—yes! ironically heap!—
- That divide from my arms the immensity blue.
-
- I advance to attack, I climb to assault,
- Like a choir of young worms at a corpse in the vault;
- Thy coldness, oh cruel, implacable beast!
- Yet heightens thy beauty, on which my eyes feast!
-
-
- BAUDELAIRE’S “FLOWERS OF EVIL.”
- No. XXXVI.
-
-
- DUELLUM.
-
-
- Two warriors come running, to fight they begin,
- With gleaming and blood they bespatter the air;
- These games, and this clatter of arms, is the din
- Of youth that’s a prey to the surgings of love.
-
- The rapiers are broken! and so is our youth,
- But the dagger’s avenged, dear! and so is the sword,
- By the nail that is steeled and the hardened tooth.
- Oh, the fury of hearts aged and ulcered by love!
-
- In the ditch, where the ounce and the pard have their lair,
- Our heroes have rolled in an angry embrace;
- Their skin blooms on brambles that erewhile were bare.
- That ravine is a friend-inhabited hell!
- Then let us roll in, oh woman inhuman,
- To immortalise hatred that nothing can quell!
-
-
- FROM BAUDELAIRE’S PROSE WORK ENTITLED “LITTLE POEMS.”
-
-
- THE STRANGER.
-
-
-Whom dost thou love best? say, enigmatical man—thy father, thy mother,
-thy brother, or thy sister?
-
-“I have neither father, nor mother, nor sister, nor brother.”
-
-Thy friends?
-
-“You there use an expression the meaning of which till now remains
-unknown to me.”
-
-Thy country?
-
-“I ignore in what latitude it is situated.”
-
-Beauty?
-
-“I would gladly love her, goddess and immortal.”
-
-Gold?
-
-“I hate it as you hate God.”
-
-Then what do you love, extraordinary stranger?
-
-“I love the clouds ... the clouds that pass ... there ... the marvellous
-clouds!”
-
-
- BAUDELAIRE’S PROSE POEM,
- THE SOUP AND THE CLOUDS.
-
-
-My beloved little silly was giving me my dinner, and I was
-contemplating, through the open window of the dining-room, those moving
-architectures which God makes out of vapours, the marvellous
-constructions of the impalpable. And I said to myself, amid my
-contemplations, “All these phantasmagoria are almost as beautiful as the
-eyes of my beautiful beloved, the monstrous little silly with the green
-eyes.”
-
-Suddenly I felt the violent blow of a fist on my back, and I heard a
-harsh, charming voice, an hysterical voice, as it were hoarse with
-brandy, the voice of my dear little well-beloved, saying, “Are you going
-to eat your soup soon, you d—— b—— of a dealer in clouds?”
-
-
- BAUDELAIRE’S PROSE POEM,
- THE GALLANT MARKSMAN.
-
-
-As the carriage was passing through the forest, he ordered it to be
-stopped near a shooting-gallery, saying that he wished to shoot off a
-few bullets to _kill_ Time. To kill this monster, is it not the most
-ordinary and the most legitimate occupation of everyone? And he
-gallantly offered his arm to his dear, delicious, and execrable
-wife—that mysterious woman to whom he owed so much pleasure, so much
-pain, and perhaps also a large part of his genius.
-
-Several bullets struck far from the intended mark—one even penetrated
-the ceiling; and as the charming creature laughed madly, mocking her
-husband’s awkwardness, he turned abruptly towards her and said, “Look at
-that doll there on the right with the haughty mien and her nose in the
-air; well, dear angel, _I imagine to myself that it is you_!” And he
-closed his eyes and pulled the trigger. The doll was neatly decapitated.
-
-Then, bowing towards his dear one, his delightful, execrable wife, his
-inevitable, pitiless muse, and kissing her hand respectfully, he added,
-“Ah! my dear angel, how I thank you for my skill!”
-
-
- VERLAINE’S “FORGOTTEN AIRS.”
- No. I.
-
-
- “The wind in the plain
- Suspends its breath.”—FAVART.
-
- ’Tis ecstasy languishing,
- Amorous fatigue,
- Of woods all the shudderings
- Embraced by the breeze,
- ’Tis the choir of small voices
- Towards the grey trees.
-
- Oh the frail and fresh murmuring!
- The twitter and buzz,
- The soft cry resembling
- That’s expired by the grass ...
- Oh, the roll of the pebbles
- ’Neath waters that pass!
-
- Oh, this soul that is groaning
- In sleepy complaint!
- In us is it moaning?
- In me and in you?
- Low anthem exhaling
- While soft falls the dew.
-
-
- VERLAINE’S “FORGOTTEN AIRS.”
- No. VIII.
-
-
- In the unending
- Dulness of this land,
- Uncertain the snow
- Is gleaming like sand.
-
- No kind of brightness
- In copper-hued sky,
- The moon you might see
- Now live and now die.
-
- Grey float the oak trees—
- Cloudlike they seem—
- Of neighbouring forests,
- The mists in between.
-
- Wolves hungry and lean,
- And famishing crow,
- What happens to you
- When acid winds blow?
-
- In the unending
- Dulness of this land,
- Uncertain the snow
- Is gleaming like sand.
-
-
- SONG BY MAETERLINCK.
-
-
- When he went away,
- (Then I heard the door)
- When he went away,
- On her lips a smile there lay ...
-
- Back he came to her,
- (Then I heard the lamp)
- Back he came to her,
- Someone else was there ...
-
- It was death I met,
- (And I heard her soul)
- It was death I met,
- For her he’s waiting yet ...
-
- Someone came to say,
- (Child, I am afraid)
- Someone came to say
- That he would go away ...
-
- With my lamp alight,
- (Child, I am afraid)
- With my lamp alight,
- Approached I in affright ...
-
- To one door I came,
- (Child, I am afraid)
- To one door I came,
- A shudder shook the flame ...
-
- At the second door,
- (Child, I am afraid)
- At the second door
- Forth words the flame did pour ...
-
- To the third I came,
- (Child, I am afraid)
- To the third I came,
- Then died the little flame ...
-
- Should he one day return
- Then what shall we say?
- Waiting, tell him, one
- And dying for him lay ...
-
- If he asks for you,
- Say what answer then?
- Give him my gold ring
- And answer not a thing ...
-
- Should he question me
- Concerning the last hour?
- Say I smiled for fear
- That he should shed a tear ...
-
- Should he question more
- Without knowing me?
- Like a sister speak;
- Suffering he may be ...
-
- Should he question why
- Empty is the hall?
- Show the gaping door,
- The lamp alight no more ...
-
-
-PRINTED BY MORRISON AND GIBB LIMITED, EDINBURGH
-
-
-
-
- ● Transcriber’s Notes:
- ○ Text that was in italics is enclosed by underscores (_italics_).
- Text that was in bold face is enclosed by equals signs (=bold=).
- ○ Footnotes have been moved to follow the chapters in which they are
- referenced.
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WHAT IS ART? ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/64908-0.zip b/old/64908-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 65359e5..0000000
--- a/old/64908-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/64908-h.zip b/old/64908-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 38fb1a9..0000000
--- a/old/64908-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/64908-h/64908-h.htm b/old/64908-h/64908-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 2735a75..0000000
--- a/old/64908-h/64908-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,10774 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=UTF-8" />
- <title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of What Is Art?, by Leo Tolstoy</title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
- body { margin-left: 8%; margin-right: 10%; }
- h1 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.4em; }
- h2 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.2em; }
- h3 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.2em; }
- h4 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.0em; }
- .pageno { right: 1%; font-size: x-small; background-color: inherit; color: silver;
- text-indent: 0em; text-align: right; position: absolute;
- border: thin solid silver; padding: .1em .2em; font-style: normal;
- font-variant: normal; font-weight: normal; text-decoration: none; }
- p { text-indent: 0; margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; text-align: justify; }
- sup { vertical-align: top; font-size: 0.6em; }
- .fss { font-size: 75%; }
- .sc { font-variant: small-caps; }
- .large { font-size: large; }
- .xlarge { font-size: x-large; }
- .xxlarge { font-size: xx-large; }
- .lg-container-b { text-align: center; }
- @media handheld { .lg-container-b { clear: both; } }
- .linegroup { display: inline-block; text-align: left; }
- @media handheld { .linegroup { display: block; margin-left: 1.5em; } }
- .linegroup .group { margin: 1em auto; }
- .linegroup .line { text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em; }
- div.linegroup > :first-child { margin-top: 0; }
- .linegroup .in10 { padding-left: 8.0em; }
- .linegroup .in2 { padding-left: 4.0em; }
- ul.ul_1 {padding-left: 0; margin-left: 2.78%; margin-top: .5em;
- margin-bottom: .5em; list-style-type: disc; }
- ul.ul_2 {padding-left: 0; margin-left: 6.94%; margin-top: .5em;
- margin-bottom: .5em; list-style-type: circle; }
- div.footnote {margin-left: 2.5em; }
- div.footnote > :first-child { margin-top: 1em; }
- div.footnote .label { display: inline-block; width: 0em; text-indent: -2.5em;
- text-align: right; }
- div.pbb { page-break-before: always; }
- hr.pb { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-bottom: 1em; }
- @media handheld { hr.pb { display: none; } }
- .chapter { clear: both; page-break-before: always; }
- .figcenter { clear: both; max-width: 100%; margin: 2em auto; text-align: center; }
- .figcenter img { max-width: 100%; height: auto; }
- .id001 { width:600px; }
- @media handheld { .id001 { margin-left:12%; width:75%; } }
- .ig001 { width:100%; }
- .nf-center { text-align: center; }
- .nf-center-c1 { text-align: left; margin: 1em 0; }
- .c000 { margin-top: 1em; }
- .c001 { page-break-before: always; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c002 { margin-top: 4em; }
- .c003 { page-break-before:auto; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c004 { margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c005 { margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c006 { margin-left: 5.56%; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c007 { margin-left: 5.56%; margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c008 { text-decoration: none; }
- .c009 { margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c010 { margin-left: 5.56%; margin-top: 1em; font-size: 95%; }
- .c011 { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-top: 0.8em;
- margin-bottom: 0.8em; margin-left: 35%; margin-right: 35%; width: 30%; }
- .c012 { margin-top: 2em; }
- .c013 { page-break-before: always; margin-top: 2em; }
- .c014 { margin-left: 5.56%; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c015 { page-break-before: auto; margin-top: 2em; }
- .c016 { margin-left: 5.56%; margin-top: 2em; font-size: 95%; }
- div.tnotes { padding-left:1em;padding-right:1em;background-color:#E3E4FA;
- border:1px solid silver;margin:1em 5% 0 5%;text-align:justify; }
- </style>
- </head>
- <body>
-
-<div style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of What Is Art?, by Leo Tolstoy</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: What Is Art?</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Leo Tolstoy</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Translator: Aylmer Maude</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: March 23, 2021 [eBook #64908]</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Character set encoding: UTF-8</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Produced by: Tim Lindell, David King, and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net. (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive/Canadian Archives.)</div>
-
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WHAT IS ART? ***</div>
-
-<div class='figcenter id001'>
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_on'>on</span>
-<img src='images/cover.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-</div>
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c000' />
-</div>
-<div>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_i'>i</span>
- <h1 class='c001'>WHAT IS ART?</h1>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div><span class='pageno' id='Page_iii'>iii</span><span class='xxlarge'><b>WHAT IS ART?</b></span></div>
- <div class='c000'><span class='large'><b>BY</b></span></div>
- <div><span class='xxlarge'><b>LEO TOLSTOY</b></span></div>
- <div class='c000'><span class='large'><b>TRANSLATED FROM THE ORIGINAL MS.,</b></span></div>
- <div><span class='large'><b>WITH AN INTRODUCTION BY</b></span></div>
- <div><span class='xlarge'><b>AYLMER MAUDE</b></span></div>
- <div class='c000'>NEW YORK</div>
- <div>FUNK &amp; WAGNALLS COMPANY</div>
- <div>1904</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_v'>v</span>
- <h2 class='c003'>Introduction</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>What thoughtful man has not been perplexed by problems
-relating to art?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>An estimable and charming Russian lady I knew, felt
-the charm of the music and ritual of the services of the
-Russo-Greek Church so strongly that she wished the
-peasants, in whom she was interested, to retain their blind
-faith, though she herself disbelieved the church doctrines.
-“Their lives are so poor and bare—they have so little art,
-so little poetry and colour in their lives—let them at least
-enjoy what they have; it would be cruel to undeceive
-them,” said she.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>A false and antiquated view of life is supported by means
-of art, and is inseparably linked to some manifestations of
-art which we enjoy and prize. If the false view of life be
-destroyed this art will cease to appear valuable. Is it best
-to screen the error for the sake of preserving the art? Or
-should the art be sacrificed for the sake of truthfulness?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Again and again in history a dominant church has
-utilised art to maintain its sway over men. Reformers
-(early Christians, Mohammedans, Puritans, and others)
-have perceived that art bound people to the old faith, and
-they were angry with art. They diligently chipped the noses
-from statues and images, and were wroth with ceremonies,
-decorations, stained-glass windows, and processions. They
-were even ready to banish art altogether, for, besides the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_vi'>vi</span>superstitions it upheld, they saw that it depraved and perverted
-men by dramas, drinking-songs, novels, pictures, and
-dances, of a kind that awakened man’s lower nature. Yet
-art always reasserted her sway, and to-day we are told by
-many that art has nothing to do with morality—that “art
-should be followed for art’s sake.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I went one day, with a lady artist, to the Bodkin Art
-Gallery in Moscow. In one of the rooms, on a table, lay a
-book of coloured pictures, issued in Paris and supplied, I
-believe, to private subscribers only. The pictures were
-admirably executed, but represented scenes in the private
-cabinets of a restaurant. Sexual indulgence was the chief
-subject of each picture. Women extravagantly dressed and
-partly undressed, women exposing their legs and breasts to
-men in evening dress; men and women taking liberties
-with each other, or dancing the “can-can,” etc., etc. My
-companion the artist, a maiden lady of irreproachable
-conduct and reputation, began deliberately to look at these
-pictures. I could not let my attention dwell on them without
-ill effects. Such things had a certain attraction for me,
-and tended to make me restless and nervous. I ventured
-to suggest that the subject-matter of the pictures was
-objectionable. But my companion (who prided herself on
-being an artist) remarked with conscious superiority, that
-from an artist’s point of view the <i>subject</i> was of no consequence.
-The pictures being very well executed were
-artistic, and therefore worthy of attention and study.
-Morality had nothing to do with art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Here again is a problem. One remembers Plato’s advice
-not to let our thoughts run upon women, for if we do we
-shall think clearly about nothing else, and one knows that
-to neglect this advice is to lose tranquillity of mind; but
-then one does not wish to be considered narrow, ascetic, or
-inartistic, nor to lose artistic pleasures which those around
-us esteem so highly.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_vii'>vii</span>Again, the newspapers last year printed proposals to
-construct a Wagner Opera House, to cost, if I recollect
-rightly, £100,000—about as much as a hundred labourers
-may earn by fifteen or twenty years’ hard work. The
-writers thought it would be a good thing if such an Opera
-House were erected and endowed. But I had a talk lately
-with a man who, till his health failed him, had worked as a
-builder in London. He told me that when he was younger
-he had been very fond of theatre-going, but, later, when he
-thought things over and considered that in almost every
-number of his weekly paper he read of cases of people
-whose death was hastened by lack of good food, he felt it
-was not right that so much labour should be spent on
-theatres.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In reply to this view it is urged that food for the mind is
-as important as food for the body. The labouring classes
-work to produce food and necessaries for themselves and
-for the cultured, while some of the cultured class produce
-plays and operas. It is a division of labour. But this
-again invites the rejoinder that, sure enough, the labourers
-produce food for themselves and also food that the cultured
-class accept and consume, but that the artists seem too
-often to produce their spiritual food for the cultured only—at
-any rate that a singularly small share seems to reach
-the country labourers who work to supply the bodily
-food! Even were the “division of labour” shown to be
-a fair one, the “division of products” seems remarkably
-one-sided.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Once again: how is it that often when a new work is
-produced, neither the critics, the artists, the publishers, nor
-the public, seem to know whether it is valuable or worthless?
-Some of the most famous books in English literature
-could hardly find a publisher, or were savagely derided
-by leading critics; while other works once acclaimed as
-masterpieces are now laughed at or utterly forgotten. A
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_viii'>viii</span>play which nobody now reads was once passed off as a
-newly-discovered masterpiece of Shakespear’s, and was
-produced at a leading London theatre. Are the critics
-playing blind-man’s buff? Are they relying on each other?
-Is each following his own whim and fancy? Or do they
-possess a criterion which they never reveal to those outside
-the profession?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Such are a few of the many problems relating to art which
-present themselves to us all, and it is the purpose of this
-book to enable us to reach such a comprehension of art,
-and of the position art should occupy in our lives, as will
-enable us to answer such questions.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The task is one of enormous difficulty. Under the cloak
-of “art,” so much selfish amusement and self-indulgence
-tries to justify itself, and so many mercenary interests are
-concerned in preventing the light from shining in upon the
-subject, that the clamour raised by this book can only be
-compared to that raised by the silversmiths of Ephesus
-when they shouted, “Great is Diana of the Ephesians!”
-for about the space of two hours.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Elaborate theories blocked the path with subtle sophistries
-or ponderous pseudo-erudition. Merely to master
-these, and expose them, was by itself a colossal labour,
-but necessary in order to clear the road for a statement of
-any fresh view. To have accomplished this work of exposure
-in a few chapters is a wonderful achievement. To have
-done it without making the book intolerably dry is more
-wonderful still. In <a href='#chap03'>Chapter III.</a> (where a rapid summary of
-some sixty æsthetic writers is given) even Tolstoy’s powers
-fail to make the subject interesting, except to the specialist,
-and he has to plead with his readers “not to be overcome
-by dulness, but to read these extracts through.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Among the writers mentioned, English readers miss the
-names of John Ruskin and William Morris, especially as so
-much that Tolstoy says, is in accord with their views.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_ix'>ix</span>Of Ruskin, Tolstoy has a very high opinion. I have
-heard him say, “I don’t know why you English make
-such a fuss about Gladstone—you have a much greater
-man in Ruskin.” As a stylist, too, Tolstoy speaks of
-him with high commendation. Ruskin, however, though
-he has written on art with profound insight, and has
-said many things with which Tolstoy fully agrees, has,
-I think, nowhere so systematised and summarised his view
-that it can be readily quoted in the concise way which has
-enabled Tolstoy to indicate his points of essential agreement
-with Home, Véron, and Kant. Even the attempt to
-summarise Kant’s æsthetic philosophy in a dozen lines will
-hardly be of much service except to readers who have already
-some acquaintance with the subject. For those to whom the
-difference between “subjective” and “objective” perceptions
-is fresh, a dozen pages would be none too much. And
-to summarise Ruskin would be perhaps more difficult than
-to condense Kant.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>As to William Morris, we are reminded of his dictum that
-art is the workman’s expression of joy in his work, by
-Tolstoy’s “As soon as the author is not producing art for
-his own satisfaction,—does not himself feel what he wishes
-to express,—a resistance immediately springs up” (p. <a href='#Page_154'>154</a>);
-and again, “In such transmission to others of the feelings
-that have arisen in him, he (the artist) will find his happiness”
-(p. <a href='#Page_195'>195</a>). Tolstoy sweeps over a far wider range of
-thought, but he and Morris are not opposed. Morris was
-emphasising part of what Tolstoy is implying.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But to return to the difficulties of Tolstoy’s task. There
-is one, not yet mentioned, lurking in the hearts of most of
-us. We have enjoyed works of “art.” We have been
-interested by the information conveyed in a novel, or we
-have been thrilled by an unexpected “effect”; have
-admired the exactitude with which real life has been
-reproduced, or have had our feelings touched by allusions
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_x'>x</span>to, or reproductions of, works—old German legends, Greek
-myths, or Hebrew poetry—which moved us long ago, as
-they moved generations before us. And we thought all this
-was “art.” Not clearly understanding what art is, and
-wherein its importance lies, we were not only attached to
-these things, but attributed importance to them, calling
-them “artistic” and “beautiful,” without well knowing
-what we meant by those words.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But here is a book that obliges us to clear our minds.
-It challenges us to define “art” and “beauty,” and to say
-why we consider these things, that pleased us, to be specially
-important. And as to beauty, we find that the definition
-given by æsthetic writers amounts merely to this, that
-“Beauty is a kind of pleasure received by us, not having
-personal advantage for its object.” But it follows from this,
-that “beauty” is a matter of taste, differing among different
-people, and to attach special importance to what pleases
-<i>me</i> (and others who have had the same sort of training
-that I have had) is merely to repeat the old, old mistake
-which so divides human society; it is like declaring that my
-race is the best race, my nation the best nation, my
-church the best church, and my family the “best” family.
-It indicates ignorance and selfishness.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But “truth angers those whom it does not convince;”—people
-do not wish to understand these things. It seems,
-at first, as though Tolstoy were obliging us to sacrifice something
-valuable. We do not realise that we are being helped
-to select the best art, but we do feel that we are being
-deprived of our sense of satisfaction in Rudyard Kipling.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Both the magnitude and the difficulty of the task were
-therefore very great, but they have been surmounted in a
-marvellous manner. Of the effect this book has had on me
-personally, I can only say that “whereas I was blind, now I
-see.” Though sensitive to some forms of art, I was, when
-I took it up, much in the dark on questions of æsthetic
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xi'>xi</span>philosophy; when I had done with it, I had grasped the
-main solution of the problem so clearly that—though I
-waded through nearly all that the critics and reviewers had
-to say about the book—I never again became perplexed
-upon the central issues.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Tolstoy was indeed peculiarly qualified for the task he
-has accomplished. It was after many years of work as a
-writer of fiction, and when he was already standing in the
-very foremost rank of European novelists, that he found
-himself compelled to face, in deadly earnest, the deepest
-problems of human life. He not only could not go on
-writing books, but he felt he could not live, unless he
-found clear guidance, so that he might walk sure-footedly
-and know the purpose and meaning of his life. Not as a
-mere question of speculative curiosity, but as a matter of
-vital necessity, he devoted years to rediscover the truths
-which underlie all religion.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>To fit him for this task he possessed great knowledge of
-men and books, a wide experience of life, a knowledge of
-languages, and a freedom from bondage to any authority
-but that of reason and conscience. He was pinned to
-no Thirty-nine Articles, and was in receipt of no retaining
-fee which he was not prepared to sacrifice. Another gift,
-rare among men of his position, was his wonderful sincerity
-and (due, I think, to that sincerity) an amazing power of
-looking at the phenomena of our complex and artificial life
-with the eyes of a little child; going straight to the real,
-obvious facts of the case, and brushing aside the sophistries,
-the conventionalities, and the “authorities” by which they
-are obscured.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>He commenced the task when he was about fifty years
-of age, and since then (<i>i.e.</i>, during the last twenty years) he
-has produced nine philosophical or scientific works of first-rate
-importance, besides a great many stories and short
-articles.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xii'>xii</span>These works, in chronological order, are—</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>My Confession.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>A Criticism of Dogmatic Theology</i>, which has never
-been translated.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>The Four Gospels Harmonised and Translated</i>, of
-which only two parts, out of three, have as yet
-appeared in English.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>What I Believe</i>, sometimes called <i>My Religion</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>The Gospel in Brief.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>What are we to do then?</i> sometimes called in English
-<i>What to do?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>On Life</i>, which is not an easy work in the original,
-and has not been satisfactorily translated.<a id='r1' /><a href='#f1' class='c008'><sup>[1]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>The Kingdom of God is within you</i>; and</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>The Christian Teaching</i>, which appeared after <i>What
-is Art?</i> though it was written before it.</p>
-
-<p class='c009'>To these scientific works I am inclined to add <i>The
-Kreutzer Sonata</i>, with the <i>Sequel</i> or <i>Postscript</i> explaining
-its purpose; for though <i>The Kreutzer Sonata</i> is a story,
-the understanding of sexual problems, dealt with explicitly
-in the <i>Sequel</i>, is an integral part of that comprehension
-of life which causes Tolstoy to admire Christ, Buddha, or
-Francis of Assisi.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>These ten works treat of the meaning of our life; of the
-problems raised by the fact that we approve of some things
-and disapprove of others, and find ourselves deciding
-which of two courses to pursue.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Religion, Government, Property, Sex, War, and all the
-relations in which man stands to man, to his own consciousness,
-and to the ultimate source (which we call
-God) from whence that consciousness proceeds—are examined
-with the utmost frankness.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_xiii'>xiii</span>And all this time the problems of Art: What is Art?
-What importance is due to it? How is it related to the
-rest of life?—were working in his mind. He was a
-great artist, often upbraided for having abandoned his
-art. He, of all men, was bound to clear his thoughts on
-this perplexing subject, and to express them. His whole
-philosophy of life—the “religious perception” to which,
-with such tremendous labour and effort, he had attained,
-forbade him to detach art from life, and place it in a water-tight
-compartment where it should not act on life or be
-re-acted upon by life.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Life to him is rational. It has a clear aim and purpose,
-discernible by the aid of reason and conscience. And no
-human activity can be fully understood or rightly appreciated
-until the central purpose of life is perceived.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>You cannot piece together a puzzle-map as long as you
-keep one bit in a wrong place, but when the pieces all fit
-together, then you have a demonstration that they are all in
-their right places. Tolstoy used that simile years ago
-when explaining how the comprehension of the text,
-“resist not him that is evil,” enabled him to perceive the
-reasonableness of Christ’s teaching, which had long baffled
-him. So it is with the problem of Art. Wrongly understood,
-it will tend to confuse and perplex your whole comprehension
-of life. But given the clue supplied by true
-“religious perception,” and you can place art so that it
-shall fit in with a right understanding of politics, economics,
-sex-relationships, science, and all other phases of human
-activity.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The basis on which this work rests, is a perception of
-the meaning of human life. This has been quite lost
-sight of by some of the reviewers, who have merely misrepresented
-what Tolstoy says, and then demonstrated how
-very stupid he would have been had he said what they
-attributed to him. Leaving his premises and arguments untouched,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xiv'>xiv</span>they dissent from various conclusions—as though it
-were all a mere question of taste. They say that they are very
-fond of things which Tolstoy ridicules, and that they can’t
-understand why he does not like what they like—which is
-quite possible, especially if they have not understood
-the position from which he starts. But such criticism
-can lead to nothing. Discussions as to why one man likes
-pears and another prefers meat, do not help towards
-finding a definition of what is essential in nourishment;
-and just so, “the solution of questions of taste in art does
-not help to make clear what this particular human activity
-which we call art really consists in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The object of the following brief summary of a few main
-points is to help the reader to avoid pitfalls into which
-many reviewers have fallen. It aims at being no more than
-a bare statement of the positions—for more than that, the
-reader must turn to the book itself.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Let it be granted at the outset, that Tolstoy writes for
-those who have “ears to hear.” He seldom pauses to safeguard
-himself against the captious critic, and cares little
-for minute verbal accuracy. For instance, on page <a href='#Page_144'>144</a>, he
-mentions “Paris,” where an English writer (even one who
-knew to what an extent Paris is the art centre of France,
-and how many artists flock thither from Russia, America,
-and all ends of the earth) would have been almost sure to
-have said “France,” for fear of being thought to exaggerate.
-One needs some alertness of mind to follow Tolstoy in his
-task of compressing so large a subject into so small a
-space. Moreover, he is an emphatic writer who says
-what he means, and even, I think, sometimes rather
-overemphasizes it. With this much warning let us proceed
-to a brief summary of Tolstoy’s view of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“Art is a human activity,” and consequently does not
-exist for its own sake, but is valuable or objectionable in
-proportion as it is serviceable or harmful to mankind.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xv'>xv</span>The object of this activity is to transmit to others feeling
-the artist has experienced. Such feelings—intentionally
-re-evoked and successfully transmitted to others—are the
-subject-matter of all art. By certain external signs—movements,
-lines, colours, sounds, or arrangements of words—an
-artist infects other people so that they share his feelings.
-Thus “art is a means of union among men, joining them
-together in the same feelings.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Chapters <a href='#chap02'>II.</a> to <a href='#chap05'>V.</a> contain an examination of various
-theories which have taken art to be something other than
-this, and step by step we are brought to the conclusion
-that art is this, and nothing but this.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Having got our definition of art, let us first consider
-art independently of its subject-matter, <i>i.e.</i>, without asking
-whether the feelings transmitted are good, bad, or indifferent.
-Without adequate expression there is no art,
-for there is no infection, no transference to others of the
-author’s feeling. The test of art is infection. If an
-author has moved you so that you feel as he felt, if you
-are so united to him in feeling that it seems to you that
-he has expressed just what you have long wished to express,
-the work that has so infected you is a work of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In this sense, it is true that art has nothing to do
-with morality; for the test lies in the “infection,” and not
-in any consideration of the goodness or badness of the
-emotions conveyed. Thus the test of art is an <i>internal</i>
-one. The activity of art is based on the fact that a
-man, receiving, through his sense of hearing or sight,
-another man’s expression of feeling, is capable of experiencing
-the emotion that moved the man who expressed it.
-We all share the same common human nature, and in
-this sense, at least, are sons of one Father. To take the
-simplest example: a man laughs, and another, who hears,
-becomes merry; or a man weeps, and another, who hears,
-feels sorrow. Note in passing that it does not amount to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xvi'>xvi</span>art “if a man infects others directly, immediately, at the very
-time he experiences the feeling; if he causes another man
-to yawn when he himself cannot help yawning,” etc. Art
-begins when some one, <i>with the object of making others share
-his feeling</i>, expresses his feeling by certain external indications.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Normal human beings possess this faculty to be infected
-by the expression of another man’s emotions. For a plain
-man of unperverted taste, living in contact with nature,
-with animals, and with his fellow-men—say, for “a country
-peasant of unperverted taste, this is as easy as it is for
-an animal of unspoilt scent to follow the trace he needs.”
-And he will know indubitably whether a work presented
-to him does, or does not, unite him in feeling with the
-author. But very many people “of our circle” (upper
-and middle class society) live such unnatural lives, in
-such conventional relations to the people around them,
-and in such artificial surroundings, that they have lost
-“that simple feeling, that sense of infection with another’s
-feeling—compelling us to joy in another’s gladness, to
-sorrow in another’s grief, and to mingle souls with another—which
-is the essence of art.” Such people, therefore, have
-no inner test by which to recognise a work of art; and they
-will always be mistaking other things for art, and seeking
-for external guides, such as the opinions of “recognised
-authorities.” Or they will mistake for art something that
-produces a merely physiological effect—lulling or exciting
-them; or some intellectual puzzle that gives them something
-to think about.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But if most people of the “cultured crowd” are impervious
-to true art, is it really possible that a common
-Russian country peasant, for instance, whose work-days are
-filled with agricultural labour, and whose brief leisure is
-largely taken up by his family life and by his participation
-in the affairs of the village commune—is it possible that <i>he</i>
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xvii'>xvii</span>can recognise and be touched by works of art? Certainly
-it is! Just as in ancient Greece crowds assembled to hear
-the poems of Homer, so to-day in Russia, as in many
-countries and many ages, the Gospel parables, and much
-else of the highest art, are gladly heard by the common
-people. And this does not refer to any superstitious use
-of the Bible, but to its use as literature.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Not only do normal, labouring country people possess the
-capacity to be infected by good art—“the epic of Genesis,
-folk-legends, fairy-tales, folk-songs, etc.,” but they themselves
-produce songs, stories, dances, decorations, etc.,
-which are works of true art. Take as examples the works of
-Burns or Bunyan, and the peasant women’s song mentioned
-by Tolstoy in <a href='#chap14'>Chapter XIV.</a>, or some of those melodies produced
-by the negro slaves on the southern plantations, which
-have touched, and still touch, many of us with the emotions
-felt by their unknown and unpaid composers.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The one great quality which makes a work of art truly
-contagious is its <i>sincerity</i>. If an artist is really actuated by
-a feeling, and is strongly impelled to communicate that
-feeling to other people—not for money or fame, or anything
-else, but because he feels he must share it—then he will not
-be satisfied till he has found a <i>clear</i> way of expressing it.
-And the man who is not borrowing his feelings, but has
-drawn what he expresses from the depths of his nature,
-is sure to be <i>original</i>, for in the same way that no two
-people have exactly similar faces or forms, no two people
-have exactly similar minds or souls.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>That in briefest outline is what Tolstoy says about art,
-considered apart from its subject-matter. And this is how
-certain critics have met it. They say that when Tolstoy
-says the test of art is <i>internal</i>, he must mean that it is
-<i>external</i>. When he says that country peasants have in the
-past appreciated, and do still appreciate, works of the
-highest art, he means that the way to detect a work of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xviii'>xviii</span>art is to see what is apparently most popular among the
-masses. Go into the streets or music-halls of the cities in
-any particular country and year, and observe what is most
-frequently sung, shouted, or played on the barrel-organs.
-It may happen to be</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c010'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“Tarara-boom-deay,”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>or,</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c010'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“We don’t want to fight,</div>
- <div class='line'>But, by Jingo, if we do.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>But whatever it is, you may at once declare these songs to
-be the highest musical art, without even pausing to ask to
-what they owe their vogue—what actress, or singer, or
-politician, or wave of patriotic passion has conduced to
-their popularity. Nor need you consider whether that
-popularity is not merely temporary and local. Tolstoy
-has said that works of the highest art are understood by
-unperverted country peasants—and here are things which
-are popular with the mob, <i>ergo</i>, these things must be the
-highest art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The critics then proceed to say that such a test is utterly
-absurd. And on this point I am able to agree with the critics.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Some of these writers commence their articles by saying
-that Tolstoy is a most profound thinker, a great prophet,
-an intellectual force, etc. Yet when Tolstoy, in his emphatic
-way, makes the sweeping remark that “good art
-always pleases every one,” the critics do not read on to
-find out what he means, but reply: “No! good art does
-not please every one; some people are colour-blind, and
-some are deaf, or have no ear for music.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>It is as though a man strenuously arguing a point were to
-say, “Every one knows that two and two make four,” and
-a boy who did not at all see what the speaker was driving
-at, were to reply: “No, our new-born baby doesn’t know
-it!” It would distract attention from the subject in hand,
-but it would not elucidate matters.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_xix'>xix</span>There is, of course, a verbal contradiction between the
-statements that “good art always pleases every one”
-(p. <a href='#Page_100'>100</a>), and the remark concerning “people of our
-circle,” who, “with very few exceptions, artists and public
-and critics, ... cannot distinguish true works of art
-from counterfeits, but continually mistake for real art the
-worst and most artificial” (p. <a href='#Page_151'>151</a>). But I venture to think
-that any one of intelligence, and free from prejudice, reading
-this book carefully, need not fail to reach the author’s
-meaning.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>A point to be carefully noted is the distinction between
-science and art. “Science investigates and brings to
-human perception such truths and such knowledge as
-the people of a given time and society consider most
-important. Art transmits these truths from the region
-of perception to the region of emotion” (p. <a href='#Page_102'>102</a>). Science
-is an “activity of the understanding which demands
-preparation and a certain sequence of knowledge, so that
-one cannot learn trigonometry before knowing geometry.”
-“The business of art,” on the other hand, “lies just in
-this—to make that understood and felt which, in the
-form of an argument, might be incomprehensible and
-inaccessible” (p. <a href='#Page_102'>102</a>). It “infects any man whatever his
-plane of development,” and “the hindrance to understanding
-the best and highest <i>feelings</i> (as is said in the
-gospel) does not at all lie in deficiency of development
-or learning, but, on the contrary, in false development
-and false learning” (pp. <a href='#Page_102'>102</a>, <a href='#Page_103'>103</a>). Science and art are
-frequently blended in one work—<i>e.g.</i>, in the gospel elucidation
-of Christ’s comprehension of life, or, to take a modern
-instance, in Henry George’s elucidation of the land question
-in <i>Progress and Poverty</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The class distinction to which Tolstoy repeatedly alludes
-needs some explanation. The position of the lower classes
-in England and in Russia is different. In Russia a much
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xx'>xx</span>larger number of people live on the verge of starvation;
-the condition of the factory-hands is much worse than
-in England, and there are many glaring cases of brutal
-cruelty inflicted on the peasants by the officials, the police,
-or the military,—but in Russia a far greater proportion of
-the population live in the country, and a peasant usually
-has his own house, and tills his share of the communal
-lands. The “unperverted country peasant” of whom
-Tolstoy speaks is a man who perhaps suffers grievous
-want when there is a bad harvest in his province, but
-he is a man accustomed to the experiences of a natural
-life, to the management of his own affairs, and to a
-real voice in the arrangements of the village commune.
-The Government interferes, from time to time, to collect
-its taxes by force, to take the young men for soldiers, or
-to maintain the “rights” of the upper classes; but otherwise
-the peasant is free to do what he sees to be necessary
-and reasonable. On the other hand, English labourers
-are, for the most part, not so poor, they have more legal
-rights, and they have votes; but a far larger number of
-them live in towns and are engaged in unnatural occupations,
-while even those that do live in touch with nature
-are usually mere wage-earners, tilling other men’s land,
-and living often in abject submission to the farmer, the
-parson, or the lady-bountiful. They are dependent on
-an employer for daily bread, and the condition of a wage-labourer
-is as unnatural as that of a landlord.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The tyranny of the St. Petersburg bureaucracy is more
-dramatic, but less omnipresent—and probably far less fatal to
-the capacity to enjoy art—than the tyranny of our respectable,
-self-satisfied, and property-loving middle-class. I am therefore
-afraid that we have no great number of “unperverted”
-country labourers to compare with those of whom Tolstoy
-speaks—and some of whom I have known personally.
-But the truth Tolstoy elucidates lies far too deep in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xxi'>xxi</span>human nature to be infringed by such differences of
-local circumstance. Whatever those circumstances may
-be, the fact remains that in proportion as a man approaches
-towards the condition not only of “earning his subsistence
-by some kind of labour,” but of “living on all its sides
-the life natural and proper to mankind,” his capacity to
-appreciate true art tends to increase. On the other hand,
-when a class settles down into an artificial way of life,—loses
-touch with nature, becomes confused in its perceptions
-of what is good and what is bad, and prefers the condition
-of a parasite to that of a producer,—its capacity to appreciate
-true art must diminish. Having lost all clear perception
-of the meaning of life, such people are necessarily left
-without any criterion which will enable them to distinguish
-good from bad art, and they are sure to follow eagerly after
-beauty, or “that which pleases them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The artists of our society can usually only reach
-people of the upper and middle classes. But who is the
-great artist?—he who delights a select audience of his
-own day and class, or he whose works link generation to
-generation and race to race in a common bond of feeling?
-Surely art should fulfil its purpose as completely as possible.
-A work of art that united every one with the author,
-and with one another, would be perfect art. Tolstoy, in
-his emphatic way, speaks of works of “universal” art,
-and (though the profound critics hasten to inform us that
-no work of art ever reached everybody) certainly the
-more nearly a work of art approaches to such expression
-of feeling that every one may be infected by it—the
-nearer (apart from all question of subject-matter)
-it approaches perfection.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But now as to subject-matter. The subject-matter of art
-consists of feelings which can be spread from man to man,
-feelings which are “contagious” or “infectious.” Is it of no
-importance <i>what</i> feelings increase and multiply among men?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_xxii'>xxii</span>One man feels that submission to the authority of <i>his</i>
-church, and belief in all that it teaches him, is good; another
-is embued by a sense of each man’s duty to think with his
-own head—to use for his guidance in life the reason and
-conscience given to him. One man feels that his nation
-<i>ought to</i> wipe out in blood the shame of a defeat inflicted
-on her; another feels that we are brothers, sons of one
-spirit, and that the slaughter of man by man is always
-wrong. One man feels that the most desirable thing in
-life is the satisfaction obtainable by the love of women;
-another man feels that sex-love is an entanglement and a
-snare, hindering his real work in life. And each of these,
-if he possess an artist’s gift of expression, and if the
-feeling be really his own and sincere, may infect other
-men. But some of these feelings will benefit and some
-will harm mankind, and the more widely they are spread
-the greater will be their effect.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Art unites men. Surely it is desirable that the feelings
-in which it unites them should be “the best and highest
-to which men have risen,” or at least should not run
-contrary to our perception of what makes for the well-being
-of ourselves and of others. And our perception
-of what makes for the well-being of ourselves and of
-others is what Tolstoy calls our “religious perception.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Therefore the subject-matter of what we, in our day,
-can esteem as being the best art, can be of two kinds
-only—</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>(1) Feelings flowing from the highest perception now
-attainable by man of our right relation to our neighbour
-and to the Source from which we come. Dickens’
-“Christmas Carol,” uniting us in a more vivid sense of
-compassion and love, is a ready example of such art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>(2) The simple feelings of common life, accessible to
-every one—provided that they are such as do not hinder
-progress towards well-being. Art of this kind makes us
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xxiii'>xxiii</span>realise to how great an extent we already are members
-one of another—sharing the feelings of one common human
-nature.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The success of a very primitive novel—the story of
-Joseph, which made its way into the sacred books of the
-Jews, spread from land to land and from age to age, and
-continues to be read to-day among people quite free from
-bibliolatry—shows how nearly “universal” may be the
-appeal of this kind of art. This branch includes all
-harmless jokes, folk-stories, nursery rhymes, and even dolls,
-if only the author or designer has expressed a feeling
-(tenderness, pleasure, humour, or what not) so as to infect
-others.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But how are we to know what <i>are</i> the “best” feelings?
-What is good? and what is evil? This is decided by
-“religious perception.” Some such perception exists in
-every human being; there is always something he approves
-of, and something he disapproves of. Reason and conscience
-are always present, active or latent, as long as
-man lives. Miss Flora Shaw tells that the most degraded
-cannibal she ever met, drew the line at eating his own
-mother—nothing would induce him to entertain the thought,
-his moral sense was revolted by the suggestion. In most
-societies the “religious perception,” to which they have
-advanced,—the foremost stage in mankind’s long march
-towards perfection, which has been discerned,—has been
-clearly expressed by some one, and more or less consciously
-accepted as an ideal by the many. But there
-are transition periods in history when the worn-out formularies
-of a past age have ceased to satisfy men, or
-have become so incrusted with superstitions that their
-original brightness is lost. The “religious perception”
-that is dawning may not yet have found such expression as
-to be generally understood, but for all that it exists, and
-shows itself by compelling men to repudiate beliefs that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xxiv'>xxiv</span>satisfied their forefathers, the outward and visible signs of
-which are still endowed and dominant long after their spirit
-has taken refuge in temples not made with hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>At such times it is difficult for men to understand each
-other, for the very <i>words</i> needed to express the deepest
-experiences of men’s consciousness mean different things to
-different men. So among us to-day, to many minds <i>faith</i>
-means <i>credulity</i>, and <i>God</i> suggests a person of the male
-sex, father of one only-begotten son, and creator of the
-universe.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>This is why Tolstoy’s clear and rational “religious perception,”
-expressed in the books named on a previous page,
-is frequently spoken of by people who have not grasped it,
-as “mysticism.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The narrow materialist is shocked to find that Tolstoy
-will not confine himself to the “objective” view of life.
-Encountering in himself that “inner voice” which compels
-us all to choose between good and evil, Tolstoy refuses to be
-diverted from a matter which is of immediate and vital
-importance to him, by discussions as to the derivation of
-the external manifestations of conscience which biologists
-are able to detect in remote forms of life. The real mystic,
-on the other hand, shrinks from Tolstoy’s desire to try all
-things by the light of reason, to depend on nothing vague,
-and to accept nothing on authority. The man who does
-not trust his own reason, fears that life thus squarely faced
-will prove less worth having than it is when clothed in
-mist.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In this work, however, Tolstoy does not recapitulate at
-length what he has said before. He does not pause to
-re-explain why he condemns Patriotism—<i>i.e.</i>, each man’s
-preference for the predominance of <i>his own</i> country, which
-leads to the murder of man by man in war; or Churches,
-which are sectarian—<i>i.e.</i>, which striving to assert that your
-doxy is heterodoxy, but that <i>our</i> doxy is orthodoxy, make
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xxv'>xxv</span>external authorities (Popes, Bibles, Councils) supreme, and
-cling to superstitions (<i>their own</i> miracles, legends, and
-myths), thus separating themselves from communion with
-the rest of mankind. Nor does he re-explain why he (like
-Christ) says “pitiable is your plight—ye rich,” who live
-artificial lives, maintainable only by the unbrotherly use of
-force (police and soldiers), but blessed are ye poor—who,
-by your way of life, are within easier reach of brotherly conditions,
-if you will but trust to reason and conscience, and
-change the direction of your hearts and of your labour,—working
-no more primarily from fear or greed, but seeking
-<i>first</i> the kingdom of righteousness, in which all good things
-will be added unto you. He merely summarises it all in a
-few sentences, defining the “religious perception” of to-day,
-which alone can decide for us “the degree of importance
-both of the feelings transmitted by art and of the information
-transmitted by science.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“The religious perception of our time, in its widest and
-most practical application, is the consciousness that our
-well-being, both material and spiritual, individual and
-collective, temporal and eternal, lies in the growth of
-brotherhood among men—in their loving harmony with
-one another” (p. <a href='#Page_159'>159</a>).</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And again:</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“However differently in form people belonging to our
-Christian world may define the destiny of man; whether
-they see it in human progress in whatever sense of the
-words, in the union of all men in a socialistic realm, or in
-the establishment of a commune; whether they look forward
-to the union of mankind under the guidance of one universal
-Church, or to the federation of the world,—however
-various in form their definitions of the destination of human
-life may be, all men in our times already admit that the
-highest well-being attainable by men is to be reached by
-their union with one another” (p. <a href='#Page_188'>188</a>).</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_xxvi'>xxvi</span>This is the foundation on which the whole work is based.
-It follows necessarily from this perception that we should
-consider as most important in science “investigations into
-the results of good and bad actions, considerations of the
-reasonableness or unreasonableness of human institutions
-and beliefs, considerations of how human life should be
-lived in order to obtain the greatest well-being for each; as
-to what one may and ought, and what one cannot and
-should not believe; how to subdue one’s passions, and how
-to acquire the habit of virtue.” This is the science that
-“occupied Moses, Solon, Socrates, Epictetus, Confucius,
-Mencius, Marcus Aurelius, Spinoza, and all those who have
-taught men to live a moral life,” and it is precisely the kind
-of scientific investigation to which Tolstoy has devoted most
-of the last twenty years, and for the sake of which he is
-often said to have “abandoned art.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Since science, like art, is a “human activity,” <i>that</i> science
-best deserves our esteem, best deserves to be “chosen,
-tolerated, approved, and diffused,” which treats of what is
-supremely important to man; which deals with urgent,
-vital, inevitable problems of actual life. Such science as
-this brings “to the consciousness of men the truths that
-flow from the religious perception of our times,” and
-“indicates the various methods of applying this consciousness
-to life.” “Art should transform this perception into
-feeling.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The “science” which is occupied in “pouring liquids
-from one jar into another, or analysing the spectrum, or
-cutting up frogs and porpoises,” is no use for rendering such
-guidance to art, though capable of practical applications
-which, under a more righteous system of society, might
-greatly have lightened the sufferings of mankind.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Naturally enough, the last chapter of the book deals with
-the relation between science and art. And the conclusion
-is that:</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_xxvii'>xxvii</span>“The destiny of art in our time is to transmit from the
-realm of reason to the realm of feeling the truth that well-being
-for men consists in being united together, and to set
-up, in place of the existing reign of force, that kingdom of
-God, <i>i.e.</i> of love, which we all recognise to be the highest
-aim of human life.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And this art of the future will not be poorer, but far
-richer, in subject-matter than the art of to-day. From the
-lullaby—that will delight millions of people, generation after
-generation—to the highest religious art, dealing with strong,
-rich, and varied emotions flowing from a fresh outlook upon
-life and all its problems—the field open for good art is
-enormous. With so much to say that is urgently important
-to all, the art of the future will, in matter of form also, be
-far superior to our art in “clearness, beauty, simplicity, and
-compression” (p. <a href='#Page_194'>194</a>).</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>For beauty (<i>i.e.</i>, “that which pleases”)—though it depends
-on taste, and can furnish no <i>criterion</i> for art—will be a
-natural characteristic of work done, not for hire, nor even
-for fame, but because men, living a natural and healthy life,
-wish to share the “highest spiritual strength which passes
-through them” with the greatest possible number of others.
-The feelings such an artist wishes to share, he will transmit
-in a way that will please him, and will please other men
-who share his nature.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Morality is in the nature of things—we cannot escape it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In a society where each man sets himself to obtain
-wealth, the difficulty of obtaining an honest living tends to
-become greater and greater. The more keenly a society
-pants to obtain “that which pleases,” and puts this forward
-as the first and great consideration, the more puerile
-and worthless will their art become. But in a society which
-sought, primarily, for right relations between its members,
-an abundance would easily be obtainable for all; and
-when “religious perception” guides a people’s art—beauty
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xxviii'>xxviii</span>inevitably results, as has always been the case when men
-have seized a fresh perception of life and of its purpose.</p>
-
-<hr class='c011' />
-
-<p class='c005'>An illustration which Tolstoy struck out of the work
-while it was being printed, may serve to illustrate how, with
-the aid of the principles explained above, we may judge of
-the merits of any work professing to be art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Take <i>Romeo and Juliet</i>. The conventional view is that
-Shakespear is the greatest of artists, and that <i>Romeo and
-Juliet</i> is one of his good plays. Why this is so nobody can
-tell you. It is so: that is the way certain people feel about
-it. They are “the authorities,” and to doubt their dictum
-is to show that you know nothing about art. Tolstoy does
-not agree with them in their estimate of Shakespear,
-therefore Tolstoy is wrong!</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But now let us apply Tolstoy’s view of art to <i>Romeo
-and Juliet</i>. He does not deny that it infects. “Let us
-admit that it is a work of art, that it infects (though it is so
-artificial that it can infect only those who have been carefully
-educated thereunto); but what are the feelings it
-transmits?”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>That is to say, judging by the <i>internal</i> test, Tolstoy
-admits that <i>Romeo and Juliet</i> unites him to its author and
-to other people in feeling. But the work is very far from
-being one of “universal” art—only a small minority of
-people ever have cared, or ever will care, for it. Even in
-England, or even in the layer of European society it
-is best adapted to reach, it only touches a minority, and
-does not approach the universality attained by the story of
-Joseph and many pieces of folk-lore.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But perhaps the subject-matter, the <i>feeling</i> with which
-<i>Romeo and Juliet</i> infects those whom it does reach, lifts it
-into the class of the highest religious art? Not so. The
-feeling is one of the attractiveness of “love at first sight.”
-A girl fourteen years old and a young man meet at an
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xxix'>xxix</span>aristocratic party, where there is feasting and pleasure and
-idleness, and, without knowing each other’s minds, they
-fall in love as the birds and beasts do. If any feeling is
-transmitted to us, it is the feeling that there <i>is</i> a pleasure in
-these things. Somewhere, in most natures, there dwells,
-dominant or dormant, an inclination to let such physical
-sexual attraction guide our course in life. To give it a plain
-name, it is “sensuality.” “How can I, father or mother of
-a daughter of Juliet’s age, wish that those foul feelings
-which the play transmits should be communicated to my
-daughter? And if the feelings transmitted by the play
-are bad, how can I call it good in subject-matter?”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But, objects a friend, the <i>moral</i> of <i>Romeo and Juliet</i> is
-excellent. See what disasters followed from the physical
-“love at first sight.” But that is quite another matter.
-It is the feelings with which you are infected when reading,
-and not any moral you can deduce, that is subject-matter
-of art. Pondering upon the consequences that flow from
-Romeo and Juliet’s behaviour may belong to the domain
-of moral science, but not to that of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I have hesitated to use an illustration Tolstoy had struck
-out, but I think it serves its purpose. No doubt there are
-other, subordinate, feelings (<i>e.g.</i> humour) to be found in
-<i>Romeo and Juliet</i>; but many quaint conceits that are ingenious,
-and have been much admired, are not, I think,
-infectious.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Tried by such tests, the enormous majority of the things
-we have been taught to consider great works of art are
-found wanting. Either they fail to infect (and attract
-merely by being interesting, realistic, effectful, or by borrowing
-from others), and are therefore not works of art at
-all; or they are works of “exclusive art,” bad in form and
-capable of infecting only a select audience trained and
-habituated to such inferior art; or they are bad in subject-matter,
-transmitting feelings harmful to mankind.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_xxx'>xxx</span>Tolstoy does not shrink from condemning his own
-artistic productions; with the exception of two short stories,
-he tells us they are works of bad art. Take, for instance,
-the novel <i>Resurrection</i>, which is now appearing, and of
-which he has, somewhere, spoken disparagingly, as being
-“written in my former style,” and being therefore bad art.
-What does this mean? The book is a masterpiece in its
-own line; it is eagerly read in many languages; it undoubtedly
-infects its readers, and the feelings transmitted
-are, in the main, such as Tolstoy approves of—in fact, they are
-the feelings to which his religious perception has brought
-him. If lust is felt in one chapter, the reaction follows
-as inevitably as in real life, and is transmitted with great
-artistic power. Why a work of such rare merit does not
-satisfy Tolstoy, is because it is a work of “exclusive
-art,” laden with details of time and place. It has not the
-“simplicity and compression” necessary in works of “universal”
-art. Things are mentioned which might apparently
-be quite well omitted. The style, also, is not one of great
-simplicity; the sentences are often long and involved, as is
-commonly the case in Tolstoy’s writings. It is a novel
-appealing mainly to the class that has leisure for novel reading
-because it neglects to produce its own food, make its own
-clothes, or build its own houses. If Tolstoy is stringent in
-his judgment of other artists, he is more stringent still in
-his judgment of his own artistic works. Had <i>Resurrection</i>
-been written by Dickens, or by Hugo, Tolstoy would, I
-think, have found a place for it (with whatever reservations)
-among the examples of religious art. For indeed, strive as
-we may to be clear and explicit, our approval and disapproval
-is a matter of degree. The thought which underlay
-the remark: “Why callest thou me good? none is good,
-save one, even God,” applies not to man only, but to all
-things human.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><i>What is Art?</i> itself is a work of science—though
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xxxi'>xxxi</span>many passages, and even some whole chapters, appeal to us
-as works of art, and we feel the contagion of the author’s hope,
-his anxiety to serve the cause of truth and love, his indignation
-(sometimes rather sharply expressed) with what
-blocks the path of advance, and his contempt for much
-that the “cultured crowd,” in our erudite, perverted society,
-have persuaded themselves, and would fain persuade others,
-is the highest art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>One result which follows inevitably from Tolstoy’s view
-(and which illustrates how widely his views differ from the
-fashionable æsthetic mysticism), is that art is not stationary
-but progressive. It is true that our highest religious perception
-found expression eighteen hundred years ago, and
-then served as the basis of an art which is still unmatched;
-and similar cases can be instanced from the
-East. But allowing for such great exceptions,—to which,
-not inaptly, the term of “inspiration” has been specially
-applied,—the subject-matter of art improves, though long
-periods of time may have to be considered in order to
-make this obvious. Our power of verbal expression, for
-instance, may now be no better than it was in the days of
-David, but we must no longer esteem as good <i>in subject-matter</i>
-poems which appeal to the Eternal to destroy a
-man’s private or national foes; for we have reached a
-“religious perception” which bids us have no foes, and
-the ultimate source (undefinable by us) from which this
-consciousness has come, is what we mean when we speak
-of God.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>AYLMER MAUDE.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Wickham’s Farm,<br />
-Near Danbury, Essex,<br />
-<i>23rd March 1899</i>.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_xxxiii'>xxxiii</span>
- <h2 class='c003'>The Author’s Preface</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>This book of mine, “What is Art?” appears now for the
-first time in its true form. More than one edition has
-already been issued in Russia, but in each case it has been
-so mutilated by the “Censor,” that I request all who are
-interested in my views on art only to judge of them by
-the work in its present shape. The causes which led to
-the publication of the book—with my name attached to
-it—in a mutilated form, were the following:—In accordance
-with a decision I arrived at long ago,—not to submit
-my writings to the “Censorship” (which I consider to be
-an immoral and irrational institution), but to print them
-only in the shape in which they were written,—I intended
-not to attempt to print this work in Russia. However,
-my good acquaintance Professor Grote, editor of a Moscow
-psychological magazine, having heard of the contents of my
-work, asked me to print it in his magazine, and promised
-me that he would get the book through the “Censor’s”
-office unmutilated if I would but agree to a few very
-unimportant alterations, merely toning down certain expressions.
-I was weak enough to agree to this, and it
-has resulted in a book appearing, under my name, from
-which not only have some essential thoughts been excluded,
-but into which the thoughts of other men—even thoughts
-utterly opposed to my own convictions—have been introduced.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_xxxiv'>xxxiv</span>The thing occurred in this way. First, Grote softened
-my expressions, and in some cases weakened them. For
-instance, he replaced the words: <i>always</i> by <i>sometimes</i>, <i>all</i>
-by <i>some</i>, <i>Church</i> religion by <i>Roman Catholic</i> religion,
-“<i>Mother of God</i>” by <i>Madonna</i>, <i>patriotism</i> by <i>pseudo-patriotism</i>,
-<i>palaces</i> by <i>palatii</i>,<a id='r2' /><a href='#f2' class='c008'><sup>[2]</sup></a> etc., and I did not consider
-it necessary to protest. But when the book was already
-in type, the Censor required that whole sentences should
-be altered, and that instead of what I said about the evil
-of landed property, a remark should be substituted on the
-evils of a landless proletariat.<a id='r3' /><a href='#f3' class='c008'><sup>[3]</sup></a> I agreed to this also and
-to some further alterations. It seemed not worth while
-to upset the whole affair for the sake of one sentence, and
-when one alteration had been agreed to it seemed not
-worth while to protest against a second and a third. So,
-little by little, expressions crept into the book which
-altered the sense and attributed things to me that I could
-not have wished to say. So that by the time the book
-was printed it had been deprived of some part of its
-integrity and sincerity. But there was consolation in the
-thought that the book, even in this form, if it contains
-something that is good, would be of use to Russian readers
-whom it would otherwise not have reached. Things, however,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xxxv'>xxxv</span>turned out otherwise. <i>Nous comptions sans notre
-hôte.</i> After the legal term of four days had already elapsed,
-the book was seized, and, on instructions received from
-Petersburg, it was handed over to the “Spiritual Censor.”
-Then Grote declined all further participation in the affair,
-and the “Spiritual Censor” proceeded to do what he would
-with the book. The “Spiritual Censorship” is one of the
-most ignorant, venal, stupid, and despotic institutions in
-Russia. Books which disagree in any way with the recognised
-state religion of Russia, if once it gets hold of them,
-are almost always totally suppressed and burnt; which is
-what happened to all my religious works when attempts
-were made to print them in Russia. Probably a similar
-fate would have overtaken this work also, had not the
-editors of the magazine employed all means to save it.
-The result of their efforts was that the “Spiritual Censor,”
-a priest who probably understands art and is interested in
-art as much as I understand or am interested in church
-services, but who gets a good salary for destroying whatever
-is likely to displease his superiors, struck out all that
-seemed to him to endanger his position, and substituted
-his thoughts for mine wherever he considered it necessary
-to do so. For instance, where I speak of Christ going to
-the Cross for the sake of the truth He professed, the
-“Censor” substituted a statement that Christ died for
-mankind, <i>i.e.</i> he attributed to me an assertion of the
-dogma of the Redemption, which I consider to be one
-of the most untrue and harmful of Church dogmas. After
-correcting the book in this way, the “Spiritual Censor”
-allowed it to be printed.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>To protest in Russia is impossible, no newspaper would
-publish such a protest, and to withdraw my book from the
-magazine and place the editor in an awkward position with
-the public was also not possible.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>So the matter has remained. A book has appeared under
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xxxvi'>xxxvi</span>my name containing thoughts attributed to me which are
-not mine.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I was persuaded to give my article to a Russian magazine,
-in order that my thoughts, which may be useful, should
-become the possession of Russian readers; and the result
-has been that my name is affixed to a work from which
-it might be assumed that I quite arbitrarily assert things
-contrary to the general opinion, without adducing my
-reasons; that I only consider false patriotism bad, but patriotism
-in general a very good feeling; that I merely deny the
-absurdities of the Roman Catholic Church and disbelieve
-in the Madonna, but that I believe in the Orthodox Eastern
-faith and in the “Mother of God”; that I consider all the
-writings collected in the Bible to be holy books, and see
-the chief importance of Christ’s life in the Redemption of
-mankind by his death.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I have narrated all this in such detail because it strikingly
-illustrates the indubitable truth, that all compromise
-with institutions of which your conscience disapproves,—compromises
-which are usually made for the sake of the
-general good,—instead of producing the good you expected,
-inevitably lead you not only to acknowledge the institution
-you disapprove of, but also to participate in the evil that
-institution produces.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I am glad to be able by this statement at least to do
-something to correct the error into which I was led by
-my compromise.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I have also to mention that besides reinstating the parts
-excluded by the Censor from the Russian editions, other
-corrections and additions of importance have been made in
-this edition.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Leo Tolstoy.</span></p>
-
-<p class='c005'><i>29th March 1898.</i></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_xxxvii'>xxxvii</span>
- <h2 class='c003'>Contents</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c004'><span class='sc'>Introduction</span> v</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Author’s Preface</span> xxxiii</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap01'>CHAPTER I</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Time and labour spent on art—Lives stunted in its service—Morality
-sacrificed to and anger justified by art—The
-rehearsal of an opera described 1</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap02'>CHAPTER II</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Does art compensate for so much evil?—What is art?—Confusion
-of opinions—Is it “that which produces beauty”?—The
-word “beauty” in Russian—Chaos in æsthetics 9</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap03'>CHAPTER III</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Summary of various æsthetic theories and definitions, from
-Baumgarten to to-day 20</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap04'>CHAPTER IV</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Definitions of art founded on beauty—Taste not definable—A
-clear definition needed to enable us to recognise works
-of art 38</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap05'>CHAPTER V</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Definitions not founded on beauty—Tolstoy’s definition—The
-extent and necessity of art—How people in the past have
-distinguished good from bad in art 46</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_xxxviii'>xxxviii</span><a href='#chap06'>CHAPTER VI</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>How art for pleasure has come into esteem—Religions indicate
-what is considered good and bad—Church Christianity—The
-Renaissance—Scepticism of the upper classes—They
-confound beauty with goodness 53</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap07'>CHAPTER VII</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>An æsthetic theory framed to suit this view of life 61</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap08'>CHAPTER VIII</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Who have adopted it?—Real art needful for all men—Our art
-too expensive, too unintelligible, and too harmful for the
-masses—The theory of “the elect” in art 67</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap09'>CHAPTER IX</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Perversion of our art—It has lost its natural subject-matter—Has
-no flow of fresh feeling—Transmits chiefly three base
-emotions 73</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap10'>CHAPTER X</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Loss of comprehensibility—Decadent art—Recent French art—Have
-we a right to say it is bad and that what we like
-is good art?—The highest art has always been comprehensible
-to normal people—What fails to infect normal
-people is not art 79</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap11'>CHAPTER XI</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Counterfeits of art produced by: Borrowing; Imitating;
-Striking; Interesting—Qualifications needful for production
-of real works of art, and those sufficient for production
-of counterfeits 106</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap12'>CHAPTER XII</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Causes of production of counterfeits—Professionalism—Criticism—Schools
-of art 118</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap13'>CHAPTER XIII</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Wagner’s “Nibelung’s Ring” a type of counterfeit art—Its
-success, and the reasons thereof 128</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_xxxix'>xxxix</span><a href='#chap14'>CHAPTER XIV</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Truths fatal to preconceived views are not readily recognised—Proportion
-of works of art to counterfeits—Perversion
-of taste and incapacity to recognise art—Examples 143</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap15'>CHAPTER XV</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'><b>The quality of art, considered apart from its subject-matter</b>—The
-sign of art: infectiousness—Incomprehensible
-to those whose taste is perverted—Conditions of
-infection: Individuality; Clearness; Sincerity 152</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap16'>CHAPTER XVI</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'><b>The quality of art, considered according to its subject-matter</b>—The
-better the feeling the better the art—The
-cultured crowd—The religious perception of our age—The
-new ideals put fresh demands to art—Art unites—Religious
-art—Universal art—Both co-operate to one
-result—The new appraisement of art—Bad art—Examples
-of art—How to test a work claiming to be art 156</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap17'>CHAPTER XVII</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Results of absence of true art—Results of perversion of art:
-Labour and lives spent on what is useless and harmful—The
-abnormal life of the rich—Perplexity of children and
-plain folk—Confusion of right and wrong—Nietzsche and
-Redbeard—Superstition, Patriotism, and Sensuality 175</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap18'>CHAPTER XVIII</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The purpose of human life is the brotherly union of man—Art
-must be guided by this perception 187</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap19'>CHAPTER XIX</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The art of the future not a possession of a select minority, but
-a means towards perfection and unity 192</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#chap20'>CHAPTER XX</a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The connection between science and art—The mendacious
-sciences; the trivial sciences—Science should deal with
-the great problems of human life, and serve as a basis
-for art 200</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_xl'>xl</span>
- <h2 class='c003'>APPENDICES</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c004'><a href='#app1'>Appendix I</a> 215</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#app2'>Appendix II</a> 218</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#app3'>Appendix III</a> 226</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><a href='#app4'>Appendix IV</a> 232</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_1'>1</span>
- <h2 id='chap01' class='c003'>What is Art?</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>Take up any one of our ordinary newspapers, and you
-will find a part devoted to the theatre and music. In
-almost every number you will find a description of some
-art exhibition, or of some particular picture, and you will
-always find reviews of new works of art that have appeared,
-of volumes of poems, of short stories, or of novels.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Promptly, and in detail, as soon as it has occurred, an
-account is published of how such and such an actress or
-actor played this or that rôle in such and such a drama,
-comedy, or opera; and of the merits of the performance, as
-well as of the contents of the new drama, comedy, or opera,
-with its defects and merits. With as much care and detail,
-or even more, we are told how such and such an artist
-has sung a certain piece, or has played it on the piano or
-violin, and what were the merits and defects of the piece
-and of the performance. In every large town there is sure
-to be at least one, if not more than one, exhibition of new
-pictures, the merits and defects of which are discussed in
-the utmost detail by critics and connoisseurs.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>New novels and poems, in separate volumes or in the
-magazines, appear almost every day, and the newspapers
-consider it their duty to give their readers detailed accounts
-of these artistic productions.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_2'>2</span>For the support of art in Russia (where for the education
-of the people only a hundredth part is spent of what would
-be required to give everyone the opportunity of instruction)
-the Government grants millions of roubles in subsidies to
-academies, conservatoires and theatres. In France twenty
-million francs are assigned for art, and similar grants are
-made in Germany and England.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In every large town enormous buildings are erected for
-museums, academies, conservatoires, dramatic schools, and for
-performances and concerts. Hundreds of thousands of workmen,—carpenters,
-masons, painters, joiners, paperhangers,
-tailors, hairdressers, jewellers, moulders, type-setters,—spend
-their whole lives in hard labour to satisfy the demands of
-art, so that hardly any other department of human activity,
-except the military, consumes so much energy as this.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Not only is enormous labour spent on this activity, but in
-it, as in war, the very lives of men are sacrificed. Hundreds
-of thousands of people devote their lives from childhood to
-learning to twirl their legs rapidly (dancers), or to touch
-notes and strings very rapidly (musicians), or to draw with
-paint and represent what they see (artists), or to turn every
-phrase inside out and find a rhyme to every word. And these
-people, often very kind and clever, and capable of all sorts
-of useful labour, grow savage over their specialised and
-stupefying occupations, and become one-sided and self-complacent
-specialists, dull to all the serious phenomena of
-life, and skilful only at rapidly twisting their legs, their
-tongues, or their fingers.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But even this stunting of human life is not the worst. I
-remember being once at the rehearsal of one of the most
-ordinary of the new operas which are produced at all the
-opera houses of Europe and America.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I arrived when the first act had already commenced. To
-reach the auditorium I had to pass through the stage
-entrance. By dark entrances and passages, I was led through
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_3'>3</span>the vaults of an enormous building past immense machines
-for changing the scenery and for illuminating; and there in
-the gloom and dust I saw workmen busily engaged. One
-of these men, pale, haggard, in a dirty blouse, with dirty,
-work-worn hands and cramped fingers, evidently tired and
-out of humour, went past me, angrily scolding another man.
-Ascending by a dark stair, I came out on the boards behind
-the scenes. Amid various poles and rings and scattered
-scenery, decorations and curtains, stood and moved dozens,
-if not hundreds, of painted and dressed-up men, in costumes
-fitting tight to their thighs and calves, and also women, as
-usual, as nearly nude as might be. These were all singers,
-or members of the chorus, or ballet-dancers, awaiting their
-turns. My guide led me across the stage and, by means of
-a bridge of boards, across the orchestra (in which perhaps
-a hundred musicians of all kinds, from kettle-drum to flute
-and harp, were seated), to the dark pit-stalls.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>On an elevation, between two lamps with reflectors, and
-in an arm-chair placed before a music-stand, sat the director
-of the musical part, <i>bâton</i> in hand, managing the orchestra
-and singers, and, in general, the production of the whole
-opera.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The performance had already commenced, and on the
-stage a procession of Indians who had brought home a bride
-was being represented. Besides men and women in costume,
-two other men in ordinary clothes bustled and ran about on
-the stage; one was the director of the dramatic part, and
-the other, who stepped about in soft shoes and ran from
-place to place with unusual agility, was the dancing-master,
-whose salary per month exceeded what ten labourers earn
-in a year.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>These three directors arranged the singing, the orchestra,
-and the procession. The procession, as usual, was enacted
-by couples, with tinfoil halberds on their shoulders. They
-all came from one place, and walked round and round again,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_4'>4</span>and then stopped. The procession took a long time to
-arrange: first the Indians with halberds came on too late;
-then too soon; then at the right time, but crowded together
-at the exit; then they did not crowd, but arranged themselves
-badly at the sides of the stage; and each time the whole
-performance was stopped and recommenced from the beginning.
-The procession was introduced by a recitative,
-delivered by a man dressed up like some variety of Turk,
-who, opening his mouth in a curious way, sang, “Home I
-bring the bri-i-ide.” He sings and waves his arm (which is
-of course bare) from under his mantle. The procession
-commences, but here the French horn, in the accompaniment
-of the recitative, does something wrong; and the director,
-with a shudder as if some catastrophe had occurred, raps
-with his stick on the stand. All is stopped, and the
-director, turning to the orchestra, attacks the French horn,
-scolding him in the rudest terms, as cabmen abuse each
-other, for taking the wrong note. And again the whole
-thing recommences. The Indians with their halberds
-again come on, treading softly in their extraordinary boots;
-again the singer sings, “Home I bring the bri-i-ide.” But
-here the pairs get too close together. More raps with
-the stick, more scolding, and a recommencement. Again,
-“Home I bring the bri-i-ide,” again the same gesticulation
-with the bare arm from under the mantle, and again the
-couples, treading softly with halberds on their shoulders,
-some with sad and serious faces, some talking and smiling,
-arrange themselves in a circle and begin to sing. All
-seems to be going well, but again the stick raps, and the
-director, in a distressed and angry voice, begins to scold
-the men and women of the chorus. It appears that when
-singing they had omitted to raise their hands from time to
-time in sign of animation. “Are you all dead, or what?
-Cows that you are! Are you corpses, that you can’t move?”
-Again they re-commence, “Home I bring the bri-i-ide,” and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_5'>5</span>again, with sorrowful faces, the chorus women sing, first one
-and then another of them raising their hands. But two
-chorus-girls speak to each other,—again a more vehement
-rapping with the stick. “Have you come here to talk? Can’t
-you gossip at home? You there in red breeches, come
-nearer. Look towards me! Recommence!” Again, “Home
-I bring the bri-i-ide.” And so it goes on for one, two, three
-hours. The whole of such a rehearsal lasts six hours on
-end. Raps with the stick, repetitions, placings, corrections
-of the singers, of the orchestra, of the procession, of the
-dancers,—all seasoned with angry scolding. I heard the
-words, “asses,” “fools,” “idiots,” “swine,” addressed to the
-musicians and singers at least forty times in the course of
-one hour. And the unhappy individual to whom the abuse
-is addressed,—flautist, horn-blower, or singer,—physically and
-mentally demoralised, does not reply, and does what is
-demanded of him. Twenty times is repeated the one phrase,
-“Home I bring the bri-i-ide,” and twenty times the striding
-about in yellow shoes with a halberd over the shoulder.
-The conductor knows that these people are so demoralised
-that they are no longer fit for anything but to blow trumpets
-and walk about with halberds and in yellow shoes, and that
-they are also accustomed to dainty, easy living, so that they
-will put up with anything rather than lose their luxurious
-life. He therefore gives free vent to his churlishness,
-especially as he has seen the same thing done in Paris and
-Vienna, and knows that this is the way the best conductors
-behave, and that it is a musical tradition of great artists
-to be so carried away by the great business of their art
-that they cannot pause to consider the feelings of other
-artists.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>It would be difficult to find a more repulsive sight. I
-have seen one workman abuse another for not supporting
-the weight piled upon him when goods were being unloaded,
-or, at hay-stacking, the village elder scold a peasant for not
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_6'>6</span>making the rick right, and the man submitted in silence.
-And, however unpleasant it was to witness the scene, the
-unpleasantness was lessened by the consciousness that the
-business in hand was needful and important, and that the
-fault for which the head-man scolded the labourer was one
-which might spoil a needful undertaking.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But what was being done here? For what, and for
-whom? Very likely the conductor was tired out, like the
-workman I passed in the vaults; it was even evident that
-he was; but who made him tire himself? And for what
-was he tiring himself? The opera he was rehearsing was
-one of the most ordinary of operas for people who are
-accustomed to them, but also one of the most gigantic
-absurdities that could possibly be devised. An Indian king
-wants to marry; they bring him a bride; he disguises himself
-as a minstrel; the bride falls in love with the minstrel
-and is in despair, but afterwards discovers that the minstrel
-is the king, and everyone is highly delighted.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>That there never were, or could be, such Indians, and that
-they were not only unlike Indians, but that what they were
-doing was unlike anything on earth except other operas,
-was beyond all manner of doubt; that people do not converse
-in such a way as recitative, and do not place themselves
-at fixed distances, in a quartet, waving their arms to
-express their emotions; that nowhere, except in theatres, do
-people walk about in such a manner, in pairs, with tinfoil
-halberds and in slippers; that no one ever gets angry in such
-a way, or is affected in such a way, or laughs in such a way,
-or cries in such a way; and that no one on earth can
-be moved by such performances; all this is beyond the
-possibility of doubt.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Instinctively the question presents itself—For whom is
-this being done? Whom <i>can</i> it please? If there are,
-occasionally, good melodies in the opera, to which it is
-pleasant to listen, they could have been sung simply, without
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_7'>7</span>these stupid costumes and all the processions and recitatives
-and hand-wavings.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The ballet, in which half-naked women make voluptuous
-movements, twisting themselves into various sensual wreathings,
-is simply a lewd performance.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>So one is quite at a loss as to whom these things are done
-for. The man of culture is heartily sick of them, while to
-a real working man they are utterly incomprehensible. If
-anyone can be pleased by these things (which is doubtful),
-it can only be some young footman or depraved artisan, who
-has contracted the spirit of the upper classes but is not yet
-satiated with their amusements, and wishes to show his
-breeding.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And all this nasty folly is prepared, not simply, nor with
-kindly merriment, but with anger and brutal cruelty.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>It is said that it is all done for the sake of art, and that
-art is a very important thing. But is it true that art is so
-important that such sacrifices should be made for its sake?
-This question is especially urgent, because art, for the sake
-of which the labour of millions, the lives of men, and above
-all, love between man and man, are being sacrificed,—this
-very art is becoming something more and more vague and
-uncertain to human perception.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Criticism, in which the lovers of art used to find support
-for their opinions, has latterly become so self-contradictory,
-that, if we exclude from the domain of art all that to
-which the critics of various schools themselves deny the
-title, there is scarcely any art left.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The artists of various sects, like the theologians of the
-various sects, mutually exclude and destroy themselves.
-Listen to the artists of the schools of our times, and you
-will find, in all branches, each set of artists disowning others.
-In poetry the old romanticists deny the parnassians and
-the decadents; the parnassians disown the romanticists and
-the decadents; the decadents disown all their predecessors
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_8'>8</span>and the symbolists; the symbolists disown all their predecessors
-and <i>les mages</i>; and <i>les mages</i> disown all, all their
-predecessors. Among novelists we have naturalists, psychologists,
-and “nature-ists,” all rejecting each other. And it
-is the same in dramatic art, in painting and in music. So
-that art, which demands such tremendous labour-sacrifices
-from the people, which stunts human lives and transgresses
-against human love, is not only <i>not</i> a thing clearly and
-firmly defined, but is understood in such contradictory ways
-by its own devotees that it is difficult to say what is meant
-by art, and especially what is good, useful art,—art for the
-sake of which we might condone such sacrifices as are being
-offered at its shrine.</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_9'>9</span>
- <h2 id='chap02' class='c003'>CHAPTER II</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>For the production of every ballet, circus, opera, operetta,
-exhibition, picture, concert, or printed book, the intense and
-unwilling labour of thousands and thousands of people is
-needed at what is often harmful and humiliating work.
-It were well if artists made all they require for themselves,
-but, as it is, they all need the help of workmen, not only to
-produce art, but also for their own usually luxurious maintenance.
-And, one way or other, they get it; either through
-payments from rich people, or through subsidies given by
-Government (in Russia, for instance, in grants of millions of
-roubles to theatres, conservatoires and academies). This
-money is collected from the people, some of whom have to
-sell their only cow to pay the tax, and who never get those
-æsthetic pleasures which art gives.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>It was all very well for a Greek or Roman artist, or even
-for a Russian artist of the first half of our century (when
-there were still slaves, and it was considered right that there
-should be), with a quiet mind to make people serve him and
-his art; but in our day, when in all men there is at least
-some dim perception of the equal rights of all, it is impossible
-to constrain people to labour unwillingly for art, without
-first deciding the question whether it is true that art is so
-good and so important an affair as to redeem this evil.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>If not, we have the terrible probability to consider, that
-while fearful sacrifices of the labour and lives of men, and
-of morality itself, are being made to art, that same art may
-be not only useless but even harmful.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_10'>10</span>And therefore it is necessary for a society in which works
-of art arise and are supported, to find out whether all that
-professes to be art is really art; whether (as is presupposed
-in our society) all that which is art is good; and whether
-it is important and worth those sacrifices which it necessitates.
-It is still more necessary for every conscientious
-artist to know this, that he may be sure that all he does
-has a valid meaning; that it is not merely an infatuation
-of the small circle of people among whom he lives which
-excites in him the false assurance that he is doing a good
-work; and that what he takes from others for the support
-of his often very luxurious life, will be compensated for by
-those productions at which he works. And that is why
-answers to the above questions are especially important in
-our time.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>What is this art, which is considered so important and
-necessary for humanity that for its sake these sacrifices of
-labour, of human life, and even of goodness may be made?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“What is art? What a question! Art is architecture,
-sculpture, painting, music, and poetry in all its forms,”
-usually replies the ordinary man, the art amateur, or even
-the artist himself, imagining the matter about which he is
-talking to be perfectly clear, and uniformly understood by
-everybody. But in architecture, one inquires further,
-are there not simple buildings which are not objects of
-art, and buildings with artistic pretensions which are unsuccessful
-and ugly and therefore cannot be considered as
-works of art? wherein lies the characteristic sign of a work
-of art?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>It is the same in sculpture, in music, and in poetry. Art,
-in all its forms, is bounded on one side by the practically
-useful and on the other by unsuccessful attempts at art.
-How is art to be marked off from each of these? The
-ordinary educated man of our circle, and even the artist
-who has not occupied himself especially with æsthetics,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_11'>11</span>will not hesitate at this question either. He thinks the
-solution has been found long ago, and is well known to
-everyone.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“Art is such activity as produces beauty,” says such a
-man.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>If art consists in that, then is a ballet or an operetta
-art? you inquire.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“Yes,” says the ordinary man, though with some hesitation,
-“a good ballet or a graceful operetta is also art, in so
-far as it manifests beauty.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But without even asking the ordinary man what differentiates
-the “good” ballet and the “graceful” operetta from
-their opposites (a question he would have much difficulty
-in answering), if you ask him whether the activity of costumiers
-and hairdressers, who ornament the figures and faces
-of the women for the ballet and the operetta, is art; or the
-activity of Worth, the dressmaker; of scent-makers and men-cooks,
-then he will, in most cases, deny that their activity
-belongs to the sphere of art. But in this the ordinary man
-makes a mistake, just because he is an ordinary man and not
-a specialist, and because he has not occupied himself with
-æsthetic questions. Had he looked into these matters, he
-would have seen in the great Renan’s book, <i>Marc Aurele</i>,
-a dissertation showing that the tailor’s work is art, and that
-those who do not see in the adornment of woman an affair
-of the highest art are very small-minded and dull. “<i>C’est le
-grand art</i>” says Renan. Moreover, he would have known
-that in many æsthetic systems—for instance, in the æsthetics
-of the learned Professor Kralik, <i>Weltschönheit</i>, <i>Versuch
-einer allgemeinen Æsthetik</i>, <i>von Richard Kralik</i>, and in <i>Les
-problèmes de l’Esthétique Contemporaine</i>, by Guyau—the arts
-of costume, of taste, and of touch are included.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“<i>Es Folgt nun ein Fünfblatt von Künsten, die der subjectiven
-Sinnlichkeit entkeimen</i>” (There results then a pentafoliate
-of arts, growing out of the subjective perceptions), says
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_12'>12</span>Kralik (p. 175). “<i>Sie sind die ästhetische Behandlung
-der fünf Sinne.</i>” (They are the æsthetic treatment of the
-five senses.)</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>These five arts are the following:—</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><i>Die Kunst des Geschmacksinns</i>—The art of the sense of
-taste (p. 175).</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><i>Die Kunst des Geruchsinns</i>—The art of the sense of smell
-(p. 177).</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><i>Die Kunst des Tastsinns</i>—The art of the sense of touch
-(p. 180).</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><i>Die Kunst des Gehörsinns</i>—The art of the sense of hearing
-(p. 182).</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><i>Die Kunst des Gesichtsinns</i>—The art of the sense of sight
-(p. 184).</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Of the first of these—<i>die Kunst des Geschmacksinns</i>—he
-says: “<i>Man hält zwar gewöhnlich nur zwei oder höchstens
-drei Sinne für würdig, den Stoff künstlerischer Behandlung
-abzugeben, aber ich glaube nur mit bedingtem Recht. Ich
-will kein allzugrosses Gewicht darauf legen, dass der gemeine
-Sprachgebrauch manch andere Künste, wie zum Beispiel die
-Kochkunst kennt.</i>”<a id='r4' /><a href='#f4' class='c008'><sup>[4]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And further: “<i>Und es ist doch gewiss eine ästhetische
-Leistung, wenn es der Kochkunst gelingt aus einem thierischen
-Kadaver einen Gegenstand des Geschmacks in jedem Sinne zu
-machen. Der Grundsatz der Kunst des Geschmacksinns (die
-weiter ist als die sogenannte Kochkunst) ist also dieser: Es
-soll alles Geniessbare als Sinnbild einer Idee behandelt werden
-und in jedesmaligem Einklang zur auszudrückenden Idee.</i>”<a id='r5' /><a href='#f5' class='c008'><sup>[5]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_13'>13</span>This author, like Renan, acknowledges a <i>Kostümkunst</i>
-(Art of Costume) (p. 200), etc.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Such is also the opinion of the French writer, Guyau,
-who is highly esteemed by some authors of our day. In
-his book, <i>Les problèmes de l’esthétique contemporaine</i>, he
-speaks seriously of touch, taste, and smell as giving, or being
-capable of giving, aesthetic impressions: “<i>Si la couleur
-manque au toucher, il nous fournit en revanche une notion
-que l’œil seul ne peut nous donner, et qui a une valeur
-esthétique considérable, celle du doux, du soyeux du poli.
-Ce qui caractérise la beauté du velours, c’est sa douceur au
-toucher non moins que son brillant. Dans l’idée que nous
-nous faisons de la beauté d’une femme, le velouté de sa peau
-entre comme élément essentiel.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“<i>Chacun de nous probablement avec un peu d’attention se
-rappellera des jouissances du goût, qui out été de véritables
-jouissances esthétiques.</i>”<a id='r6' /><a href='#f6' class='c008'><sup>[6]</sup></a> And he recounts how a glass of
-milk drunk by him in the mountains gave him æsthetic
-enjoyment.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>So it turns out that the conception of art as consisting
-in making beauty manifest is not at all so simple as it seemed,
-especially now, when in this conception of beauty are
-included our sensations of touch and taste and smell, as
-they are by the latest æsthetic writers.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_14'>14</span>But the ordinary man either does not know, or does not
-wish to know, all this, and is firmly convinced that all
-questions about art may be simply and clearly solved by
-acknowledging beauty to be the subject-matter of art. To
-him it seems clear and comprehensible that art consists in
-manifesting beauty, and that a reference to beauty will
-serve to explain all questions about art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But what is this beauty which forms the subject-matter
-of art? How is it defined? What is it?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>As is always the case, the more cloudy and confused the
-conception conveyed by a word, with the more <i>aplomb</i> and
-self-assurance do people use that word, pretending that
-what is understood by it is so simple and clear that it is
-not worth while even to discuss what it actually
-means.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>This is how matters of orthodox religion are usually dealt
-with, and this is how people now deal with the conception
-of beauty. It is taken for granted that what is meant by
-the word beauty is known and understood by everyone.
-And yet not only is this not known, but, after whole
-mountains of books have been written on the subject by the
-most learned and profound thinkers during one hundred
-and fifty years (ever since Baumgarten founded æsthetics in
-the year 1750), the question, What is beauty? remains to
-this day quite unsolved, and in each new work on æsthetics
-it is answered in a new way. One of the last books I
-read on æsthetics is a not ill-written booklet by Julius
-Mithalter, called <i>Rätsel des Schönen</i> (The Enigma of the
-Beautiful). And that title precisely expresses the position
-of the question, What is beauty? After thousands of
-learned men have discussed it during one hundred and fifty
-years, the meaning of the word beauty remains an enigma
-still. The Germans answer the question in their manner,
-though in a hundred different ways. The physiologist-æstheticians,
-especially the Englishmen: Herbert Spencer,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_15'>15</span>Grant Allen and his school, answer it, each in his own
-way; the French eclectics, and the followers of Guyau and
-Taine, also each in his own way; and all these people know
-all the preceding solutions given by Baumgarten, and Kant,
-and Schelling, and Schiller, and Fichte, and Winckelmann,
-and Lessing, and Hegel, and Schopenhauer, and Hartmann,
-and Schasler, and Cousin, and Lévêque and others.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>What is this strange conception “beauty,” which seems so
-simple to those who talk without thinking, but in defining
-which all the philosophers of various tendencies and different
-nationalities can come to no agreement during a century and
-a half? What is this conception of beauty, on which the
-dominant doctrine of art rests?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In Russian, by the word <i>krasota</i> (beauty) we mean only
-that which pleases the sight. And though latterly people
-have begun to speak of “an ugly deed,” or of “beautiful
-music,” it is not good Russian.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>A Russian of the common folk, not knowing foreign
-languages, will not understand you if you tell him that a
-man who has given his last coat to another, or done anything
-similar, has acted “beautifully,” that a man who has
-cheated another has done an “ugly” action, or that a song
-is “beautiful.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In Russian a deed may be kind and good, or unkind and
-bad. Music may be pleasant and good, or unpleasant and
-bad; but there can be no such thing as “beautiful” or
-“ugly” music.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Beautiful may relate to a man, a horse, a house, a view,
-or a movement. Of actions, thoughts, character, or music,
-if they please us, we may say that they are good, or, if they
-do not please us, that they are not good. But beautiful
-can be used only concerning that which pleases the sight.
-So that the word and conception “good” includes the
-conception of “beautiful,” but the reverse is not the case;
-the conception “beauty” does not include the conception
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_16'>16</span>“good.” If we say “good” of an article which we
-value for its appearance, we thereby say that the article is
-beautiful; but if we say it is “beautiful,” it does not at
-all mean that the article is a good one.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Such is the meaning ascribed by the Russian language,
-and therefore by the sense of the people, to the words and
-conceptions “good” and “beautiful.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In all the European languages, <i>i.e.</i> the languages of those
-nations among whom the doctrine has spread that beauty is
-the essential thing in art, the words “beau,” “schön,”
-“beautiful,” “bello,” etc., while keeping their meaning of
-beautiful in form, have come to also express “goodness,”
-“kindness,” <i>i.e.</i> have come to act as substitutes for the
-word “good.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>So that it has become quite natural in those languages to
-use such expressions as “belle ame,” “schöne Gedanken,” of
-“beautiful deed.” Those languages no longer have a
-suitable word wherewith expressly to indicate beauty of
-form, and have to use a combination of words such as
-“beau par la forme,” “beautiful to look at,” etc., to convey
-that idea.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Observation of the divergent meanings which the words
-“beauty” and “beautiful” have in Russian on the one hand,
-and in those European languages now permeated by this
-æsthetic theory on the other hand, shows us that the word
-“beauty” has, among the latter, acquired a special meaning,
-namely, that of “good.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>What is remarkable, moreover, is that since we Russians
-have begun more and more to adopt the European view of
-art, the same evolution has begun to show itself in our
-language also, and some people speak and write quite
-confidently, and without causing surprise, of beautiful music
-and ugly actions, or even thoughts; whereas forty years ago,
-when I was young, the expressions “beautiful music” and
-“ugly actions” were not only unusual but incomprehensible.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_17'>17</span>Evidently this new meaning given to beauty by European
-thought begins to be assimilated by Russian society.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And what really is this meaning? What is this “beauty”
-as it is understood by the European peoples?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In order to answer this question, I must here quote at
-least a small selection of those definitions of beauty most
-generally adopted in existing æsthetic systems. I especially
-beg the reader not to be overcome by dulness, but to read
-these extracts through, or, still better, to read some one of
-the erudite æsthetic authors. Not to mention the voluminous
-German æstheticians, a very good book for this purpose
-would be either the German book by Kralik, the English work
-by Knight, or the French one by Lévêque. It is necessary to
-read one of the learned æsthetic writers in order to form at
-first-hand a conception of the variety in opinion and the
-frightful obscurity which reigns in this region of speculation;
-not, in this important matter, trusting to another’s
-report.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>This, for instance, is what the German æsthetician
-Schasler says in the preface to his famous, voluminous,
-and detailed work on æsthetics:—</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“Hardly in any sphere of philosophic science can we
-find such divergent methods of investigation and exposition,
-amounting even to self-contradiction, as in the sphere of
-æsthetics. On the one hand we have elegant phraseology
-without any substance, characterised in great part by most
-one-sided superficiality; and on the other hand, accompanying
-undeniable profundity of investigation and richness of
-subject-matter, we get a revolting awkwardness of philosophic
-terminology, enfolding the simplest thoughts in an apparel
-of abstract science as though to render them worthy to
-enter the consecrated palace of the system; and finally,
-between these two methods of investigation and exposition,
-there is a third, forming, as it were, the transition from one
-to the other, a method consisting of eclecticism, now flaunting
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_18'>18</span>an elegant phraseology and now a pedantic erudition....
-A style of exposition that falls into none of these three
-defects but it is truly concrete, and, having important matter,
-expresses it in clear and popular philosophic language, can
-nowhere be found less frequently than in the domain of
-æsthetics.”<a id='r7' /><a href='#f7' class='c008'><sup>[7]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>It is only necessary, for instance, to read Schasler’s own
-book to convince oneself of the justice of this observation of
-his.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>On the same subject the French writer Véron, in the
-preface to his very good work on æsthetics, says, “<i>Il n’y a pas
-de science, qui ait été plus que l’esthétique livrée aux rêveries des
-métaphysiciens. Depuis Platon jusqu’ aux doctrines officielles
-de nos jours, on a fait de l’art je ne sais quel amalgame de
-fantaisies quintessenciées, et de mystères transcendantaux qui
-trouvent leur expression suprême dans la conception absolue du
-Beau idéal, prototype immuable et divin des choses réelles</i>”
-(<i>L’esthétique</i>, 1878, p. 5).<a id='r8' /><a href='#f8' class='c008'><sup>[8]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>If the reader will only be at the pains to peruse the
-following extracts, defining beauty, taken from the chief
-writers on æsthetics, he may convince himself that this
-censure is thoroughly deserved.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I shall not quote the definitions of beauty attributed to
-the ancients,—Socrates, Plato, Aristotle, etc., down to
-Plotinus,—because, in reality, the ancients had not that
-conception of beauty separated from goodness which forms
-the basis and aim of æsthetics in our time. By referring the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_19'>19</span>judgments of the ancients on beauty to our conception of it,
-as is usually done in æsthetics, we give the words of the
-ancients a meaning which is not theirs.<a id='r9' /><a href='#f9' class='c008'><sup>[9]</sup></a></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_20'>20</span>
- <h2 id='chap03' class='c003'>CHAPTER III</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>I begin with the founder of æsthetics, Baumgarten (1714-1762).</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Baumgarten,<a id='r10' /><a href='#f10' class='c008'><sup>[10]</sup></a> the object of logical knowledge
-is Truth, the object of æsthetic (<i>i.e.</i> sensuous) knowledge
-is Beauty. Beauty is the Perfect (the Absolute), recognised
-through the senses; Truth is the Perfect perceived
-through reason; Goodness is the Perfect reached by moral
-will.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Beauty is defined by Baumgarten as a correspondence, <i>i.e.</i>
-an order of the parts in their mutual relations to each
-other and in their relation to the whole. The aim of beauty
-itself is to please and excite a desire, “<i>Wohlgefallen und
-Erregung eines Verlangens.</i>” (A position precisely the opposite
-of Kant’s definition of the nature and sign of beauty.)</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>With reference to the manifestations of beauty, Baumgarten
-considers that the highest embodiment of beauty
-is seen by us in nature, and he therefore thinks that the
-highest aim of art is to copy nature. (This position
-also is directly contradicted by the conclusions of the
-latest æstheticians.)</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Passing over the unimportant followers of Baumgarten,—Maier,
-Eschenburg, and Eberhard,—who only slightly
-modified the doctrine of their teacher by dividing the
-pleasant from the beautiful, I will quote the definitions
-given by writers who came immediately after Baumgarten,
-and defined beauty quite in another way. These writers
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_21'>21</span>were Sulzer, Mendelssohn, and Moritz. They, in contradiction
-to Baumgarten’s main position, recognise as the
-aim of art, not beauty, but goodness. Thus Sulzer
-(1720-1777) says that only that can be considered beautiful
-which contains goodness. According to his theory, the aim
-of the whole life of humanity is welfare in social life. This
-is attained by the education of the moral feelings, to
-which end art should be subservient. Beauty is that
-which evokes and educates this feeling.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Beauty is understood almost in the same way by
-Mendelssohn (1729-1786). According to him, art is the
-carrying forward of the beautiful, obscurely recognised by
-feeling, till it becomes the true and good. The aim of art
-is moral perfection.<a id='r11' /><a href='#f11' class='c008'><sup>[11]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>For the æstheticians of this school, the ideal of beauty
-is a beautiful soul in a beautiful body. So that these
-æstheticians completely wipe out Baumgarten’s division of
-the Perfect (the Absolute), into the three forms of Truth,
-Goodness, and Beauty; and Beauty is again united with the
-Good and the True.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But this conception is not only not maintained by the later
-æstheticians, but the æsthetic doctrine of Winckelmann
-arises, again in complete opposition. This divides the mission
-of art from the aim of goodness in the sharpest and most
-positive manner, makes external beauty the aim of art, and
-even limits it to visible beauty.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to the celebrated work of Winckelmann (1717-1767),
-the law and aim of all art is beauty only, beauty
-quite separated from and independent of goodness. There
-are three kinds of beauty:—(1) beauty of form, (2) beauty
-of idea, expressing itself in the position of the figure (in
-plastic art), (3) beauty of expression, attainable only when
-the two first conditions are present. This beauty of expression
-is the highest aim of art, and is attained in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_22'>22</span>antique art; modern art should therefore aim at imitating
-ancient art.<a id='r12' /><a href='#f12' class='c008'><sup>[12]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Art is similarly understood by Lessing, Herder, and afterwards
-by Goethe and by all the distinguished æstheticians
-of Germany till Kant, from whose day, again, a different
-conception of art commences.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Native æsthetic theories arose during this period in
-England, France, Italy, and Holland, and they, though not
-taken from the German, were equally cloudy and contradictory.
-And all these writers, just like the German
-æstheticians, founded their theories on a conception of the
-Beautiful, understanding beauty in the sense of a something
-existing absolutely, and more or less intermingled with
-Goodness or having one and the same root. In England,
-almost simultaneously with Baumgarten, even a little earlier,
-Shaftesbury, Hutcheson, Home, Burke, Hogarth, and others,
-wrote on art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Shaftesbury (1670-1713), “That which is
-beautiful is harmonious and proportionable, what is harmonious
-and proportionable is true, and what is at once
-both beautiful and true is of consequence agreeable and
-good.”<a id='r13' /><a href='#f13' class='c008'><sup>[13]</sup></a> Beauty, he taught, is recognised by the mind only.
-God is fundamental beauty; beauty and goodness proceed
-from the same fount.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>So that, although Shaftesbury regards beauty as being
-something separate from goodness, they again merge into
-something inseparable.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Hutcheson (1694-1747—“Inquiry into the
-Original of our Ideas of Beauty and Virtue”), the aim of
-art is beauty, the essence of which consists in evoking in us
-the perception of uniformity amid variety. In the recognition
-of what is art we are guided by “an internal sense.”
-This internal sense may be in contradiction to the ethical
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_23'>23</span>one. So that, according to Hutcheson, beauty does not
-always correspond with goodness, but separates from it and
-is sometimes contrary to it.<a id='r14' /><a href='#f14' class='c008'><sup>[14]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Home, Lord Kames (1696-1782), beauty is
-that which is pleasant. Therefore beauty is defined by taste
-alone. The standard of true taste is that the maximum of
-richness, fulness, strength, and variety of impression should
-be contained in the narrowest limits. That is the ideal of
-a perfect work of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Burke (1729-1797—“Philosophical Inquiry
-into the Origin of our Ideas of the Sublime and Beautiful”),
-the sublime and beautiful, which are the aim of art, have
-their origin in the promptings of self-preservation and of
-society. These feelings, examined in their source, are means
-for the maintenance of the race through the individual. The
-first (self-preservation) is attained by nourishment, defence,
-and war; the second (society) by intercourse and propagation.
-Therefore self-defence, and war, which is bound up with it,
-is the source of the sublime; sociability, and the sex-instinct,
-which is bound up with it, is the source of beauty.<a id='r15' /><a href='#f15' class='c008'><sup>[15]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Such were the chief English definitions of art and beauty
-in the eighteenth century.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>During that period, in France, the writers on art were Père
-André and Batteux, with Diderot, D’Alembert, and, to some
-extent, Voltaire, following later.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Père André (“Essai sur le Beau,” 1741), there
-are three kinds of beauty—divine beauty, natural beauty,
-and artificial beauty.<a id='r16' /><a href='#f16' class='c008'><sup>[16]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Batteux (1713-1780), art consists in
-imitating the beauty of nature, its aim being enjoyment.<a id='r17' /><a href='#f17' class='c008'><sup>[17]</sup></a>
-Such is also Diderot’s definition of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_24'>24</span>The French writers, like the English, consider that it is taste
-that decides what is beautiful. And the laws of taste are not
-only not laid down, but it is granted that they cannot be settled.
-The same view was held by D’Alembert and Voltaire.<a id='r18' /><a href='#f18' class='c008'><sup>[18]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to the Italian æsthetician of that period, Pagano,
-art consists in uniting the beauties’ dispersed in nature.
-The capacity to perceive these beauties is taste, the capacity
-to bring them into one whole is artistic genius. Beauty
-commingles with goodness, so that beauty is goodness made
-visible, and goodness is inner beauty.<a id='r19' /><a href='#f19' class='c008'><sup>[19]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to the opinion of other Italians: Muratori (1672-1750),—“<i>Riflessioni
-sopra il buon gusto intorno le science e
-le arti</i>,”—and especially Spaletti,<a id='r20' /><a href='#f20' class='c008'><sup>[20]</sup></a>—“<i>Saggio sopra la bellezza</i>”
-(1765),—art amounts to an egotistical sensation, founded (as
-with Burke) on the desire for self-preservation and society.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Among Dutch writers, Hemsterhuis (1720-1790), who
-had an influence on the German æstheticians and on Goethe,
-is remarkable. According to him, beauty is that which gives
-most pleasure, and that gives most pleasure which gives us
-the greatest number of ideas in the shortest time. Enjoyment
-of the beautiful, because it gives the greatest quantity
-of perceptions in the shortest time, is the highest notion to
-which man can attain.<a id='r21' /><a href='#f21' class='c008'><sup>[21]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Such were the æsthetic theories outside Germany during the
-last century. In Germany, after Winckelmann, there again
-arose a completely new æsthetic theory, that of Kant (1724-1804),
-which more than all others clears up what this conception
-of beauty, and consequently of art, really amounts to.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The æsthetic teaching of Kant is founded as follows:—Man
-has a knowledge of nature outside him and of himself
-in nature. In nature, outside himself, he seeks for truth;
-in himself he seeks for goodness. The first is an affair of
-pure reason, the other of practical reason (free-will). Besides
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_25'>25</span>these two means of perception, there is yet the judging
-capacity (<i>Urteilskraft</i>), which forms judgments without
-reasonings and produces pleasure without desire (<i>Urtheil
-ohne Begriff und Vergnügen ohne Begehren</i>). This capacity
-is the basis of æsthetic feeling. Beauty, according to Kant,
-in its subjective meaning is that which, in general and
-necessarily, without reasonings and without practical
-advantage, pleases. In its objective meaning it is the form
-of a suitable object in so far as that object is perceived
-without any conception of its utility.<a id='r22' /><a href='#f22' class='c008'><sup>[22]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Beauty is defined in the same way by the followers of
-Kant, among whom was Schiller (1759-1805). According
-to Schiller, who wrote much on æsthetics, the aim of art is,
-as with Kant, beauty, the source of which is pleasure without
-practical advantage. So that art may be called a game,
-not in the sense of an unimportant occupation, but in the
-sense of a manifestation of the beauties of life itself without
-other aim than that of beauty.<a id='r23' /><a href='#f23' class='c008'><sup>[23]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Besides Schiller, the most remarkable of Kant’s followers
-in the sphere of æsthetics was Wilhelm Humboldt, who,
-though he added nothing to the definition of beauty, explained
-various forms of it,—the drama, music, the comic, etc.<a id='r24' /><a href='#f24' class='c008'><sup>[24]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>After Kant, besides the second-rate philosophers, the
-writers on æsthetics were Fichte, Schelling, Hegel, and their
-followers. Fichte (1762-1814) says that perception of the
-beautiful proceeds from this: the world—<i>i.e.</i> nature—has
-two sides: it is the sum of our limitations, and it is the
-sum of our free idealistic activity. In the first aspect the
-world is limited, in the second aspect it is free. In the first
-aspect every object is limited, distorted, compressed, confined—and
-we see deformity; in the second we perceive its inner
-completeness, vitality, regeneration—and we see beauty. So
-that the deformity or beauty of an object, according to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_26'>26</span>Fichte, depends on the point of view of the observer.
-Beauty therefore exists, not in the world, but in the beautiful
-soul (<i>schöner Geist</i>). Art is the manifestation of this
-beautiful soul, and its aim is the education, not only of the
-mind—that is the business of the <i>savant</i>; not only of the
-heart—that is the affair of the moral preacher; but of the
-whole man. And so the characteristic of beauty lies, not
-in anything external, but in the presence of a beautiful soul
-in the artist.<a id='r25' /><a href='#f25' class='c008'><sup>[25]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Following Fichte, and in the same direction, Friedrich
-Schlegel and Adam Müller also defined beauty. According
-to Schlegel (1772—1829), beauty in art is understood too
-incompletely, one-sidedly, and disconnectedly. Beauty exists
-not only in art, but also in nature and in love; so that the
-truly beautiful is expressed by the union of art, nature, and
-love. Therefore, as inseparably one with aesthetic art,
-Schlegel acknowledges moral and philosophic art.<a id='r26' /><a href='#f26' class='c008'><sup>[26]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Adam Muller (1779-1829), there are two
-kinds of beauty; the one, general beauty, which attracts
-people as the sun attracts the planet—this is found chiefly in
-antique art—and the other, individual beauty, which results
-from the observer himself becoming a sun attracting beauty,—this
-is the beauty of modern art. A world in which all
-contradictions are harmonised is the highest beauty. Every
-work of art is a reproduction of this universal harmony.<a id='r27' /><a href='#f27' class='c008'><sup>[27]</sup></a>
-The highest art is the art of life.<a id='r28' /><a href='#f28' class='c008'><sup>[28]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Next after Fichte and his followers came a contemporary
-of his, the philosopher Schelling (1775-1854), who has had
-a great influence on the æsthetic conceptions of our times.
-According to Schelling’s philosophy, art is the production
-or result of that conception of things by which the subject
-becomes its own object, or the object its own subject.
-Beauty is the perception of the infinite in the finite. And
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_27'>27</span>the chief characteristic of works of art is unconscious infinity.
-Art is the uniting of the subjective with the objective, of
-nature with reason, of the unconscious with the conscious,
-and therefore art is the highest means of knowledge.
-Beauty is the contemplation of things in themselves as they
-exist in the prototype (<i>In den Urbildern</i>). It is not the
-artist who by his knowledge or skill produces the beautiful,
-but the idea of beauty in him itself produces it.<a id='r29' /><a href='#f29' class='c008'><sup>[29]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Of Schelling’s followers the most noticeable was Solger
-(1780-1819—<i>Vorlesungen über Aesthetik</i>). According to him,
-the idea of beauty is the fundamental idea of everything.
-In the world we see only distortions of the fundamental
-idea, but art, by imagination, may lift itself to the height of
-this idea. Art is therefore akin to creation.<a id='r30' /><a href='#f30' class='c008'><sup>[30]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to another follower of Schelling, Krause
-(1781-1832), true, positive beauty is the manifestation of the
-Idea in an individual form; art is the actualisation of the
-beauty existing in the sphere of man’s free spirit. The
-highest stage of art is the art of life, which directs its activity
-towards the adornment of life so that it may be a beautiful
-abode for a beautiful man.<a id='r31' /><a href='#f31' class='c008'><sup>[31]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>After Schelling and his followers came the new æsthetic
-doctrine of Hegel, which is held to this day, consciously by
-many, but by the majority unconsciously. This teaching is
-not only no clearer or better defined than the preceding
-ones, but is, if possible, even more cloudy and mystical.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Hegel (1770-1831), God manifests himself
-in nature and in art in the form of beauty. God expresses
-himself in two ways: in the object and in the subject, in
-nature and in spirit. Beauty is the shining of the Idea
-through matter. Only the soul, and what pertains to
-it, is truly beautiful; and therefore the beauty of nature is
-only the reflection of the natural beauty of the spirit—the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_28'>28</span>beautiful has only a spiritual content. But the spiritual
-must appear in sensuous form. The sensuous manifestation
-of spirit is only appearance (<i>schein</i>), and this appearance
-is the only reality of the beautiful. Art is thus the production
-of this appearance of the Idea, and is a means, together with
-religion and philosophy, of bringing to consciousness and
-of expressing the deepest problems of humanity and the
-highest truths of the spirit.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Truth and beauty, according to Hegel, are one and the
-same thing; the difference being only that truth is the
-Idea itself as it exists in itself, and is thinkable. The
-Idea, manifested externally, becomes to the apprehension
-not only true but beautiful. The beautiful is the manifestation
-of the Idea.<a id='r32' /><a href='#f32' class='c008'><sup>[32]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Following Hegel came his many adherents, Weisse,
-Arnold Ruge, Rosenkrantz, Theodor Vischer and others.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Weisse (1801-1867), art is the introduction
-(<i>Einbildung</i>) of the absolute spiritual reality of beauty
-into external, dead, indifferent matter, the perception of
-which latter apart from the beauty brought into it presents
-the negation of all existence in itself (<i>Negation alles
-Fürsichseins</i>).</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In the idea of truth, Weisse explains, lies a contradiction
-between the subjective and the objective sides of
-knowledge, in that an individual <i>I</i> discerns the Universal.
-This contradiction can be removed by a conception that
-should unite into one the universal and the individual, which
-fall asunder in our conceptions of truth. Such a conception
-would be reconciled (<i>aufgehoben</i>) truth. Beauty is such a
-reconciled truth.<a id='r33' /><a href='#f33' class='c008'><sup>[33]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Ruge (1802-1880), a strict follower of
-Hegel, beauty is the Idea expressing itself. The spirit,
-contemplating itself, either finds itself expressed completely,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_29'>29</span>and then that full expression of itself is beauty; or incompletely,
-and then it feels the need to alter this imperfect
-expression of itself, and becomes creative art.<a id='r34' /><a href='#f34' class='c008'><sup>[34]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Vischer (1807-1887), beauty is the Idea in
-the form of a finite phenomenon. The Idea itself is not
-indivisible, but forms a system of ideas, which may be
-represented by ascending and descending lines. The
-higher the idea the more beauty it contains; but even
-the lowest contains beauty, because it forms an essential
-link of the system. The highest form of the Idea is
-personality, and therefore the highest art is that which has
-for its subject-matter the highest personality.<a id='r35' /><a href='#f35' class='c008'><sup>[35]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Such were the theories of the German æstheticians in the
-Hegelian direction, but they did not monopolise æsthetic
-dissertations. In Germany, side by side and simultaneously
-with the Hegelian theories, there appeared theories of
-beauty not only independent of Hegel’s position (that
-beauty is the manifestation of the Idea), but directly contrary
-to this view, denying and ridiculing it. Such was
-the line taken by Herbart and, more particularly, by
-Schopenhauer.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Herbart (1776-1841), there is not, and
-cannot be, any such thing as beauty existing in itself.
-What does exist is only our opinion, and it is necessary to
-find the base of this opinion (<i>Ästhetisches Elementarurtheil</i>).
-Such bases are connected with our impressions.
-There are certain relations which we term beautiful;
-and art consists in finding these relations, which
-are simultaneous in painting, the plastic art, and
-architecture, successive and simultaneous in music,
-and purely successive in poetry. In contradiction to the
-former æstheticians, Herbart holds that objects are often
-beautiful which express nothing at all, as, for instance, the
-rainbow, which is beautiful for its lines and colours, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_30'>30</span>not for its mythological connection with Iris or Noah’s
-rainbow.<a id='r36' /><a href='#f36' class='c008'><sup>[36]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Another opponent of Hegel was Schopenhauer, who
-denied Hegel’s whole system, his æsthetics included.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Schopenhauer (1788-1860), Will objectivizes
-itself in the world on various planes; and although the
-higher the plane on which it is objectivized the more
-beautiful it is, yet each plane has its own beauty. Renunciation
-of one’s individuality and contemplation of one
-of these planes of manifestation of Will gives us a perception
-of beauty. All men, says Schopenhauer, possess
-the capacity to objectivize the Idea on different planes.
-The genius of the artist has this capacity in a higher degree,
-and therefore makes a higher beauty manifest.<a id='r37' /><a href='#f37' class='c008'><sup>[37]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>After these more eminent writers there followed, in
-Germany, less original and less influential ones, such as
-Hartmann, Kirkmann, Schnasse, and, to some extent,
-Helmholtz (as an æsthetician), Bergmann, Jungmann, and an
-innumerable host of others.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Hartmann (1842), beauty lies, not in the
-external world, nor in “the thing in itself,” neither does it
-reside in the soul of man, but it lies in the “seeming”
-(<i>Schein</i>) produced by the artist. The thing in itself is not
-beautiful, but is transformed into beauty by the artist.<a id='r38' /><a href='#f38' class='c008'><sup>[38]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Schnasse (1798-1875), there is no perfect
-beauty in the world. In nature there is only an approach
-towards it. Art gives what nature cannot give. In the
-energy of the free <i>ego</i>, conscious of harmony not found in
-nature, beauty is disclosed.<a id='r39' /><a href='#f39' class='c008'><sup>[39]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Kirkmann wrote on experimental aesthetics. All aspects
-of history in his system are joined by pure chance. Thus,
-according to Kirkmann (1802-1884), there are six realms
-of history:—The realm of Knowledge, of Wealth, of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_31'>31</span>Morality, of Faith, of Politics, and of Beauty; and activity
-in the last-named realm is art.<a id='r40' /><a href='#f40' class='c008'><sup>[40]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Helmholtz (1821), who wrote on beauty as
-it relates to music, beauty in musical productions is attained
-only by following unalterable laws. These laws are not
-known to the artist; so that beauty is manifested by the
-artist unconsciously, and cannot be subjected to analysis.<a id='r41' /><a href='#f41' class='c008'><sup>[41]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Bergmann (1840) (<i>Ueber das Schöne</i>, 1887),
-to define beauty objectively is impossible. Beauty is only
-perceived subjectively, and therefore the problem of æsthetics
-is to define what pleases whom.<a id='r42' /><a href='#f42' class='c008'><sup>[42]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Jungmann (d. 1885), firstly, beauty is a
-suprasensible quality of things; secondly, beauty produces
-in us pleasure by merely being contemplated; and, thirdly,
-beauty is the foundation of love.<a id='r43' /><a href='#f43' class='c008'><sup>[43]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The æsthetic theories of the chief representatives of France,
-England, and other nations in recent times have been the
-following:—</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In France, during this period, the prominent writers on
-æsthetics were Cousin, Jouffroy, Pictet, Ravaisson, Lévêque.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Cousin (1792-1867) was an eclectic, and a follower of the
-German idealists. According to his theory, beauty always
-has a moral foundation. He disputes the doctrine that art
-is imitation and that the beautiful is what pleases. He
-affirms that beauty may be defined objectively, and that it
-essentially consists in variety in unity.<a id='r44' /><a href='#f44' class='c008'><sup>[44]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>After Cousin came Jouffroy (1796-1842), who was a pupil
-of Cousin’s and also a follower of the German æstheticians.
-According to his definition, beauty is the expression of the
-invisible by those natural signs which manifest it. The
-visible world is the garment by means of which we see beauty.<a id='r45' /><a href='#f45' class='c008'><sup>[45]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The Swiss writer Pictet repeated Hegel and Plato,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_32'>32</span>supposing beauty to exist in the direct and free manifestation
-of the divine Idea revealing itself in sense forms.<a id='r46' /><a href='#f46' class='c008'><sup>[46]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Lévêque was a follower of Schelling and Hegel. He
-holds that beauty is something invisible behind nature—a
-force or spirit revealing itself in ordered energy.<a id='r47' /><a href='#f47' class='c008'><sup>[47]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Similar vague opinions about the nature of beauty were
-expressed by the French metaphysician Ravaisson, who
-considered beauty to be the ultimate aim and purpose of the
-world. “<i>La beauté la plus divine et principalement la plus
-parfaite contient le secret du monde.</i>”<a id='r48' /><a href='#f48' class='c008'><sup>[48]</sup></a> And again:—<i>“Le
-monde entier est l’œuvre d’une beauté absolue, qui n’est la
-cause des choses que par l’amour qu’elle met en elles</i>.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I purposely abstain from translating these metaphysical
-expressions, because, however cloudy the Germans may be,
-the French, once they absorb the theories of the Germans
-and take to imitating them, far surpass them in uniting
-heterogeneous conceptions into one expression, and putting
-forward one meaning or another indiscriminately. For
-instance, the French philosopher Renouvier, when discussing
-beauty, says:—“<i>Ne craignons pas de dire qu’une vérité qui
-ne serait pas belle, ne serait qu’un jeu logique de notre esprit
-et que la seule vérité solide et digne de ce nom c’est la beauté.</i>”<a id='r49' /><a href='#f49' class='c008'><sup>[49]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Besides the æsthetic idealists who wrote and still write
-under the influence of German philosophy, the following
-recent writers have also influenced the comprehension of art
-and beauty in France: Taine, Guyau, Cherbuliez, Coster,
-and Véron.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Taine (1828-1893), beauty is the manifestation
-of the essential characteristic of any important idea
-more completely than it is expressed in reality.<a id='r50' /><a href='#f50' class='c008'><sup>[50]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Guyau (1854-1888) taught that beauty is not something
-exterior to the object itself,—is not, as it were, a parasitic
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_33'>33</span>growth on it,—but is itself the very blossoming forth of that
-on which it appears. Art is the expression of reasonable and
-conscious life, evoking in us both the deepest consciousness
-of existence and the highest feelings and loftiest thoughts.
-Art lifts man from his personal life into the universal life,
-by means, not only of participation in the same ideas and
-beliefs, but also by means of similarity in feeling.<a id='r51' /><a href='#f51' class='c008'><sup>[51]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Cherbuliez, art is an activity, (1) satisfying
-our innate love of forms (<i>apparences</i>), (2) endowing these
-forms with ideas, (3) affording pleasure alike to our senses,
-heart, and reason. Beauty is not inherent in objects, but is
-an act of our souls. Beauty is an illusion; there is no
-absolute beauty. But what we consider characteristic and
-harmonious appears beautiful to us.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Coster held that the ideas of the beautiful, the good, and
-the true are innate. These ideas illuminate our minds and
-are identical with God, who is Goodness, Truth, and Beauty.
-The idea of Beauty includes unity of essence, variety of
-constitutive elements, and order, which brings unity into
-the various manifestations of life.<a id='r52' /><a href='#f52' class='c008'><sup>[52]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>For the sake of completeness, I will further cite some of
-the very latest writings upon art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><i>La psychologie du Beau et de l’Art, par Mario Pilo</i> (1895),
-says that beauty is a product of our physical feelings. The
-aim of art is pleasure, but this pleasure (for some reason) he
-considers to be necessarily highly moral.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The <i>Essai sur l’art contemporain, par Fierens Gevaert</i>
-(1897), says that art rests on its connection with the past,
-and on the religious ideal of the present which the artist
-holds when giving to his work the form of his individuality.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Then again, Sar Peladan’s <i>L’art idéaliste et mystique</i> (1894)
-says that beauty is one of the manifestations of God. “<i>Il n’y
-a pas d’autre Réalité que Dieu, n’y a pas d’autre Vérité
-que Dieu, il n’y a pas d’autre Beauté, que Dieu</i>” (p. 33).
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_34'>34</span>This book is very fantastic and very illiterate, but is
-characteristic in the positions it takes up, and noticeable on
-account of a certain success it is having with the younger
-generation in France.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>All the æsthetics diffused in France up to the present time
-are similar in kind, but among them Véron’s <i>L’esthétique</i> (1878)
-forms an exception, being reasonable and clear. That work,
-though it does not give an exact definition of art, at least
-rids æsthetics of the cloudy conception of an absolute beauty.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Véron (1825-1889), art is the manifestation
-of emotion transmitted externally by a combination of lines,
-forms, colours, or by a succession of movements, sounds, or
-words subjected to certain rhythms.<a id='r53' /><a href='#f53' class='c008'><sup>[53]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In England, during this period, the writers on æsthetics
-define beauty more and more frequently, not by its own
-qualities, but by taste, and the discussion about beauty is
-superseded by a discussion on taste.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>After Reid (1704-1796), who acknowledged beauty as
-being entirely dependent on the spectator, Alison, in his
-<i>Essay on the Nature and Principles of Taste</i> (1790), proved
-the same thing. From another side this was also asserted
-by Erasmus Darwin (1731-1802), the grandfather of the
-celebrated Charles Darwin.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>He says that we consider beautiful that which is connected
-in our conception with what we love. Richard
-Knight’s work, <i>An Analytical Inquiry into the Principles of
-Taste</i>, also tends in the same direction.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Most of the English theories of æsthetics are on the same
-lines. The prominent writers on æsthetics in England
-during the present century have been Charles Darwin, (to
-some extent), Herbert Spencer, Grant Allen, Ker, and
-Knight.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Charles Darwin (1809-1882—<i>Descent of
-Man</i>, 1871), beauty is a feeling natural not only to man
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_35'>35</span>but also to animals, and consequently to the ancestors of
-man. Birds adorn their nests and esteem beauty in their
-mates. Beauty has an influence on marriages. Beauty
-includes a variety of diverse conceptions. The origin of
-the art of music is the call of the males to the females.<a id='r54' /><a href='#f54' class='c008'><sup>[54]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Herbert Spencer (b. 1820), the origin of
-art is play, a thought previously expressed by Schiller. In
-the lower animals all the energy of life is expended in life-maintenance
-and race-maintenance; in man, however, there
-remains, after these needs are satisfied, some superfluous
-strength. This excess is used in play, which passes over
-into art. Play is an imitation of real activity, so is art.
-The sources of æsthetic pleasure are threefold:—(1) That
-“which exercises the faculties affected in the most complete
-ways, with the fewest drawbacks from excess of exercise,”
-(2) “the difference of a stimulus in large amount, which
-awakens a glow of agreeable feeling,” (3) the partial revival
-of the same, with special combinations.<a id='r55' /><a href='#f55' class='c008'><sup>[55]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In Todhunter’s <i>Theory of the Beautiful</i> (1872), beauty is
-infinite loveliness, which we apprehend both by reason and
-by the enthusiasm of love. The recognition of beauty as
-being such depends on taste; there can be no criterion for
-it. The only approach to a definition is found in culture.
-(What culture is, is not defined.) Intrinsically, art—that
-which affects us through lines, colours, sounds, or words—is
-not the product of blind forces, but of reasonable ones,
-working, with mutual helpfulness, towards a reasonable
-aim. Beauty is the reconciliation of contradictions.<a id='r56' /><a href='#f56' class='c008'><sup>[56]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Grant Allen is a follower of Spencer, and in his
-<i>Physiological Æsthetics</i> (1877) he says that beauty has a
-physical origin. Æsthetic pleasures come from the contemplation
-of the beautiful, but the conception of beauty is
-obtained by a physiological process. The origin of art is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_36'>36</span>play; when there is a superfluity of physical strength man
-gives himself to play; when there is a superfluity of receptive
-power man gives himself to art. The beautiful is that which
-affords the maximum of stimulation with the minimum of
-waste. Differences in the estimation of beauty proceed from
-taste. Taste can be educated. We must have faith in the
-judgments “of the finest-nurtured and most discriminative”
-men. These people form the taste of the next generation.<a id='r57' /><a href='#f57' class='c008'><sup>[57]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Ker’s <i>Essay on the Philosophy of Art</i>
-(1883), beauty enables us to make part of the objective
-world intelligible to ourselves without being troubled by
-reference to other parts of it, as is inevitable for science.
-So that art destroys the opposition between the one and
-the many, between the law and its manifestation, between
-the subject and its object, by uniting them. Art is the
-revelation and vindication of freedom, because it is free
-from the darkness and incomprehensibility of finite things.<a id='r58' /><a href='#f58' class='c008'><sup>[58]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>According to Knight’s <i>Philosophy of the Beautiful</i>,
-Part II. (1893), beauty is (as with Schelling) the union of
-object and subject, the drawing forth from nature of that
-which is cognate to man, and the recognition in oneself of
-that which is common to all nature.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The opinions on beauty and on Art here mentioned are far
-from exhausting what has been written on the subject. And
-every day fresh writers on æsthetics arise, in whose disquisitions
-appear the same enchanted confusion and contradictoriness
-in defining beauty. Some, by inertia, continue the
-mystical æsthetics of Baumgarten and Hegel with sundry
-variations; others transfer the question to the region of
-subjectivity, and seek for the foundation of the beautiful in
-questions of taste; others—the æstheticians of the very latest
-formation—seek the origin of beauty in the laws of physiology;
-and finally, others again investigate the question
-quite independently of the conception of beauty. Thus,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_37'>37</span>Sully in his <i>Sensation and Intuition: Studies in Psychology
-and Æsthetics</i> (1874), dismisses the conception of beauty
-altogether, art, by his definition, being the production of
-some permanent object or passing action fitted to supply
-active enjoyment to the producer, and a pleasurable impression
-to a number of spectators or listeners, quite apart
-from any personal advantage derived from it.<a id='r59' /><a href='#f59' class='c008'><sup>[59]</sup></a></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_38'>38</span>
- <h2 id='chap04' class='c003'>CHAPTER IV</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>To what do these definitions of beauty amount? Not
-reckoning the thoroughly inaccurate definitions of beauty
-which fail to cover the conception of art, and which suppose
-beauty to consist either in utility, or in adjustment to a
-purpose, or in symmetry, or in order, or in proportion, or in
-smoothness, or in harmony of the parts, or in unity amid
-variety, or in various combinations of these,—not reckoning
-these unsatisfactory attempts at objective definition, all the
-æsthetic definitions of beauty lead to two fundamental
-conceptions. The first is that beauty is something having an
-independent existence (existing in itself), that it is one of
-the manifestations of the absolutely Perfect, of the Idea, of
-the Spirit, of Will, or of God; the other is that beauty is
-a kind of pleasure received by us, not having personal
-advantage for its object.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The first of these definitions was accepted by Fichte,
-Schelling, Hegel, Schopenhauer, and the philosophising
-Frenchmen, Cousin, Jouffroy, Ravaisson, and others, not to
-enumerate the second-rate æsthetic philosophers. And this
-same objective-mystical definition of beauty is held by a
-majority of the educated people of our day. It is a conception
-very widely spread, especially among the elder generation.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The second view, that beauty is a certain kind of pleasure
-received by us, not having personal advantage for its aim,
-finds favour chiefly among the English æsthetic writers, and is
-shared by the other part of our society, principally by the
-younger generation.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_39'>39</span>So there are (and it could not be otherwise) only two
-definitions of beauty: the one objective, mystical, merging
-this conception into that of the highest perfection, God—a
-fantastic definition, founded on nothing; the other, on the
-contrary, a very simple and intelligible subjective one,
-which considers beauty to be that which pleases (I do not
-add to the word “pleases” the words “without the aim of
-advantage,” because “pleases” naturally presupposes the
-absence of the idea of profit).</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>On the one hand, beauty is viewed as something mystical
-and very elevated, but unfortunately at the same time very
-indefinite, and consequently embracing philosophy, religion,
-and life itself (as in the theories of Schelling and Hegel,
-and their German and French followers); or, on the other
-hand (as necessarily follows from the definition of Kant and
-his adherents), beauty is simply a certain kind of disinterested
-pleasure received by us. And this conception of beauty,
-although it seems very clear, is, unfortunately, again inexact;
-for it widens out on the other side, <i>i.e.</i> it includes the
-pleasure derived from drink, from food, from touching a
-delicate skin, etc., as is acknowledged by Guyau, Kralik,
-and others.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>It is true that, following the development of the æsthetic
-doctrines on beauty, we may notice that, though at first (in
-the times when the foundations of the science of æsthetics
-were being laid) the metaphysical definition of beauty
-prevailed, yet the nearer we get to our own times the
-more does an experimental definition (recently assuming a
-physiological form) come to the front, so that at last we
-even meet with such æstheticians as Véron and Sully, who try
-to escape entirely from the conception of beauty. But such
-æstheticians have very little success, and with the majority of
-the public, as well as of artists and the learned, a conception
-of beauty is firmly held which agrees with the definitions
-contained in most of the æsthetic treatises, <i>i.e.</i> which regards
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_40'>40</span>beauty either as something mystical or metaphysical, or as
-a special kind of enjoyment.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>What then is this conception of beauty, so stubbornly
-held to by people of our circle and day as furnishing a
-definition of art?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In the subjective aspect, we call beauty that which
-supplies us with a particular kind of pleasure.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In the objective aspect, we call beauty something
-absolutely perfect, and we acknowledge it to be so only
-because we receive, from the manifestation of this absolute
-perfection, a certain kind of pleasure; so that this objective
-definition is nothing but the subjective conception differently
-expressed. In reality both conceptions of beauty amount
-to one and the same thing, namely, the reception by us of
-a certain kind of pleasure, <i>i.e.</i> we call “beauty” that which
-pleases us without evoking in us desire.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Such being the position of affairs, it would seem only
-natural that the science of art should decline to content
-itself with a definition of art based on beauty (<i>i.e.</i> on that
-which pleases), and seek a general definition, which should
-apply to all artistic productions, and by reference to which
-we might decide whether a certain article belonged to the
-realm of art or not. But no such definition is supplied, as
-the reader may see from those summaries of the æsthetic
-theories which I have given, and as he may discover even
-more clearly from the original æsthetic works, if he will be
-at the pains to read them. All attempts to define absolute
-beauty in itself—whether as an imitation of nature, or as
-suitability to its object, or as a correspondence of parts, or as
-symmetry, or as harmony, or as unity in variety, etc.—either
-define nothing at all, or define only some traits of
-some artistic productions, and are far from including all
-that everybody has always held, and still holds, to be art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>There is no objective definition of beauty. The existing
-definitions, (both the metaphysical and the experimental),
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_41'>41</span>amount only to one and the same subjective definition which
-(strange as it seems to say so) is, that art is that which makes
-beauty manifest, and beauty is that which pleases (without
-exciting desire). Many æstheticians have felt the insufficiency
-and instability of such a definition, and, in order to give it
-a firm basis, have asked themselves why a thing pleases.
-And they have converted the discussion on beauty into
-a question concerning taste, as did Hutcheson, Voltaire,
-Diderot, and others. But all attempts to define what taste
-is must lead to nothing, as the reader may see both from the
-history of æsthetics and experimentally. There is and can
-be no explanation of why one thing pleases one man and
-displeases another, or <i>vice versâ</i>. So that the whole existing
-science of æsthetics fails to do what we might expect from
-it, being a mental activity calling itself a science, namely,
-it does not define the qualities and laws of art, or of the
-beautiful (if that be the content of art), or the nature of
-taste (if taste decides the question of art and its merit), and
-then, on the basis of such definitions, acknowledge as art
-those productions which correspond to these laws, and reject
-those which do not come under them. But this science of
-æsthetics consists in first acknowledging a certain set of
-productions to be art (because they please us), and then
-framing such a theory of art that all those productions which
-please a certain circle of people should fit into it. There
-exists an art canon, according to which certain productions
-favoured by our circle are acknowledged as being art,—Phidias,
-Sophocles, Homer, Titian, Raphael, Bach, Beethoven,
-Dante, Shakespear, Goethe, and others,—and the æsthetic
-laws must be such as to embrace all these productions. In
-æsthetic literature you will incessantly meet with opinions
-on the merit and importance of art, founded not on any
-certain laws by which this or that is held to be good or bad,
-but merely on the consideration whether this art tallies with
-the art canon we have drawn up.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_42'>42</span>The other day I was reading a far from ill-written book
-by Folgeldt. Discussing the demand for morality in works
-of art, the author plainly says that we must not demand
-morality in art. And in proof of this he advances the fact
-that if we admit such a demand, Shakespear’s <i>Romeo and
-Juliet</i> and Goethe’s <i>Wilhelm Meister</i> would not fit into the
-definition of good art; but since both these books are
-included in our canon of art, he concludes that the demand is
-unjust. And therefore it is necessary to find a definition of
-art which shall fit the works; and instead of a demand for
-morality, Folgeldt postulates as the basis of art a demand
-for the important (<i>Bedeutungsvolles</i>).</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>All the existing æsthetic standards are built on this plan.
-Instead of giving a definition of true art, and then deciding
-what is and what is not good art by judging whether a
-work conforms or does not conform to the definition, a
-certain class of works, which for some reason please a certain
-circle of people, is accepted as being art, and a definition of
-art is then devised to cover all these productions. I recently
-came upon a remarkable instance of this method in a very
-good German work, <i>The History of Art in the Nineteenth
-Century</i>, by Muther. Describing the pre-Raphaelites, the
-Decadents and the Symbolists (who are already included in
-the canon of art), he not only does not venture to blame
-their tendency, but earnestly endeavours to widen his
-standard so that it may include them all, they appearing to
-him to represent a legitimate reaction from the excesses of
-realism. No matter what insanities appear in art, when
-once they find acceptance among the upper classes of our
-society a theory is quickly invented to explain and sanction
-them; just as if there had never been periods in history when
-certain special circles of people recognised and approved
-false, deformed, and insensate art which subsequently left
-no trace and has been utterly forgotten. And to what
-lengths the insanity and deformity of art may go, especially
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_43'>43</span>when, as in our days, it knows that it is considered infallible,
-may be seen by what is being done in the art of our circle
-to-day.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>So that the theory of art, founded on beauty, expounded
-by æsthetics, and, in dim outline, professed by the public, is
-nothing but the setting up as good, of that which has pleased
-and pleases us, <i>i.e.</i> pleases a certain class of people.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In order to define any human activity, it is necessary to
-understand its sense and importance. And, in order to do
-that, it is primarily necessary to examine that activity in
-itself, in its dependence on its causes, and in connection
-with its effects, and not merely in relation to the pleasure
-we can get from it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>If we say that the aim of any activity is merely our
-pleasure, and define it solely by that pleasure, our definition
-will evidently be a false one. But this is precisely what
-has occurred in the efforts to define art. Now, if we
-consider the food question, it will not occur to anyone to
-affirm that the importance of food consists in the pleasure
-we receive when eating it. Everyone understands that the
-satisfaction of our taste cannot serve as a basis for our
-definition of the merits of food, and that we have therefore
-no right to presuppose that the dinners with cayenne pepper,
-Limburg cheese, alcohol, etc., to which we are accustomed
-and which please us, form the very best human food.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And in the same way, beauty, or that which pleases us,
-can in no sense serve as the basis for the definition of art;
-nor can a series of objects which afford us pleasure serve as
-the model of what art should be.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>To see the aim and purpose of art in the pleasure we get
-from it, is like assuming (as is done by people of the lowest
-moral development, <i>e.g.</i> by savages) that the purpose and
-aim of food is the pleasure derived when consuming it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Just as people who conceive the aim and purpose of food
-to be pleasure cannot recognise the real meaning of eating,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_44'>44</span>so people who consider the aim of art to be pleasure cannot
-realise its true meaning and purpose, because they attribute
-to an activity, the meaning of which lies in its connection
-with other phenomena of life, the false and exceptional aim
-of pleasure. People come to understand that the meaning
-of eating lies in the nourishment of the body only when
-they cease to consider that the object of that activity is
-pleasure. And it is the same with regard to art. People
-will come to understand the meaning of art only when they
-cease to consider that the aim of that activity is beauty, <i>i.e.</i>
-pleasure. The acknowledgment of beauty (<i>i.e.</i> of a certain
-kind of pleasure received from art) as being the aim of art,
-not only fails to assist us in finding a definition of what
-art is, but, on the contrary, by transferring the question
-into a region quite foreign to art (into metaphysical,
-psychological, physiological, and even historical discussions
-as to why such a production pleases one person, and such
-another displeases or pleases someone else), it renders such
-definition impossible. And since discussions as to why one
-man likes pears and another prefers meat do not help towards
-finding a definition of what is essential in nourishment, so
-the solution of questions of taste in art (to which the
-discussions on art involuntarily come) not only does not
-help to make clear what this particular human activity
-which we call art really consists in, but renders such
-elucidation quite impossible, until we rid ourselves of a
-conception which justifies every kind of art, at the cost of
-confusing the whole matter.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>To the question, What is this art, to which is offered up
-the labour of millions, the very lives of men, and even
-morality itself? we have extracted replies from the existing
-æsthetics, which all amount to this: that the aim of art is
-beauty, that beauty is recognised by the enjoyment it gives,
-and that artistic enjoyment is a good and important thing,
-because it <i>is</i> enjoyment. In a word, that enjoyment is good
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_45'>45</span>because it is enjoyment. Thus, what is considered the
-definition of art is no definition at all, but only a shuffle
-to justify existing art. Therefore, however strange it may
-seem to say so, in spite of the mountains of books written
-about art, no exact definition of art has been constructed.
-And the reason of this is that the conception of art has
-been based on the conception of beauty.</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_46'>46</span>
- <h2 id='chap05' class='c003'>CHAPTER V</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>What is art, if we put aside the conception of beauty,
-which confuses the whole matter? The latest and most comprehensible
-definitions of art, apart from the conception of
-beauty, are the following:—(1 <i>a</i>) Art is an activity arising
-even in the animal kingdom, and springing from sexual
-desire and the propensity to play (Schiller, Darwin, Spencer),
-and (1 <i>b</i>) accompanied by a pleasurable excitement of the
-nervous system (Grant Allen). This is the physiological-evolutionary
-definition. (2) Art is the external manifestation,
-by means of lines, colours, movements, sounds, or words,
-of emotions felt by man (Véron). This is the experimental
-definition. According to the very latest definition (Sully),
-(3) Art is “the production of some permanent object, or
-passing action, which is fitted not only to supply an active
-enjoyment to the producer, but to convey a pleasurable
-impression to a number of spectators or listeners, quite apart
-from any personal advantage to be derived from it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Notwithstanding the superiority of these definitions to the
-metaphysical definitions which depended on the conception
-of beauty, they are yet far from exact. (1 <i>a</i>) The first, the
-physiological-evolutionary definition, is inexact, because,
-instead of speaking about the artistic activity itself, which
-is the real matter in hand, it treats of the derivation of art.
-The modification of it (1 <i>b</i>), based on the physiological effects
-on the human organism, is inexact, because within the limits
-of such definition many other human activities can be
-included, as has occurred in the neo-æsthetic theories, which
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_47'>47</span>reckon as art the preparation of handsome clothes, pleasant
-scents, and even of victuals.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The experimental definition (2), which makes art consist
-in the expression of emotions, is inexact, because a man may
-express his emotions by means of lines, colours, sounds, or
-words, and yet may not act on others by such expression;
-and then the manifestation of his emotions is not art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The third definition (that of Sully) is inexact, because
-in the production of objects or actions affording pleasure
-to the producer and a pleasant emotion to the spectators
-or hearers apart from personal advantage, may be included
-the showing of conjuring tricks or gymnastic exercises,
-and other activities which are not art. And, further,
-many things, the production of which does not afford
-pleasure to the producer, and the sensation received from
-which is unpleasant, such as gloomy, heart-rending scenes
-in a poetic description or a play, may nevertheless be
-undoubted works of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The inaccuracy of all these definitions arises from the fact
-that in them all (as also in the metaphysical definitions) the
-object considered is the pleasure art may give, and not the
-purpose it may serve in the life of man and of humanity.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In order correctly to define art, it is necessary, first of all,
-to cease to consider it as a means to pleasure, and to consider
-it as one of the conditions of human life. Viewing it in
-this way, we cannot fail to observe that art is one of the
-means of intercourse between man and man.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Every work of art causes the receiver to enter into a
-certain kind of relationship both with him who produced,
-or is producing, the art, and with all those who, simultaneously,
-previously or subsequently, receive the same
-artistic impression.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Speech, transmitting the thoughts and experiences of
-men, serves as a means of union among them, and art acts
-in a similar manner. The peculiarity of this latter means
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_48'>48</span>of intercourse, distinguishing it from intercourse by means
-of words, consists in this, that whereas by words a man
-transmits his thoughts to another, by means of art he
-transmits his feelings.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The activity of art is based on the fact that a man,
-receiving through his sense of hearing or sight another
-man’s expression of feeling, is capable of experiencing the
-emotion which moved the man who expressed it. To take
-the simplest example: one man laughs, and another, who
-hears, becomes merry; or a man weeps, and another, who
-hears, feels sorrow. A man is excited or irritated, and
-another man, seeing him, comes to a similar state of mind.
-By his movements, or by the sounds of his voice, a man
-expresses courage and determination, or sadness and calmness,
-and this state of mind passes on to others. A man
-suffers, expressing his sufferings by groans and spasms,
-and this suffering transmits itself to other people; a man
-expresses his feeling of admiration, devotion, fear, respect, or
-love to certain objects, persons, or phenomena, and others
-are infected by the same feelings of admiration, devotion,
-fear, respect, or love to the same objects, persons, and
-phenomena.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And it is on this capacity of man to receive another man’s
-expression of feeling, and experience those feelings himself,
-that the activity of art is based.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>If a man infects another or others, directly, immediately, by
-his appearance, or by the sounds he gives vent to at the very
-time he experiences the feeling; if he causes another man
-to yawn when he himself cannot help yawning, or to laugh
-or cry when he himself is obliged to laugh or cry, or to suffer
-when he himself is suffering—that does not amount to art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Art begins when one person, with the object of joining
-another or others to himself in one and the same feeling,
-expresses that feeling by certain external indications. To
-take the simplest example: a boy, having experienced, let us
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_49'>49</span>say, fear on encountering a wolf, relates that encounter; and,
-in order to evoke in others the feeling he has experienced,
-describes himself, his condition before the encounter, the
-surroundings, the wood, his own lightheartedness, and then
-the wolf’s appearance, its movements, the distance between
-himself and the wolf, etc. All this, if only the boy when
-telling the story, again experiences the feelings he had lived
-through and infects the hearers and compels them to feel
-what the narrator had experienced, is art. If even the
-boy had not seen a wolf but had frequently been afraid of
-one, and if, wishing to evoke in others the fear he had felt,
-he invented an encounter with a wolf, and recounted it so
-as to make his hearers share the feelings he experienced
-when he feared the wolf, that also would be art. And
-just in the same way it is art if a man, having experienced
-either the fear of suffering or the attraction of enjoyment
-(whether in reality or in imagination), expresses these
-feelings on canvas or in marble so that others are infected
-by them. And it is also art if a man feels or imagines
-to himself feelings of delight, gladness, sorrow, despair,
-courage, or despondency, and the transition from one to
-another of these feelings, and expresses these feelings by
-sounds, so that the hearers are infected by them, and
-experience them as they were experienced by the composer.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The feelings with which the artist infects others may be
-most various—very strong or very weak, very important or
-very insignificant, very bad or very good: feelings of love
-for native land, self-devotion and submission to fate or to
-God expressed in a drama, raptures of lovers described in
-a novel, feelings of voluptuousness expressed in a picture,
-courage expressed in a triumphal march, merriment evoked
-by a dance, humour evoked by a funny story, the feeling
-of quietness transmitted by an evening landscape or by a
-lullaby, or the feeling of admiration evoked by a beautiful
-arabesque—it is all art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_50'>50</span>If only the spectators or auditors are infected by the
-feelings which the author has felt, it is art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><i>To evoke in oneself a feeling one has once experienced, and
-having evoked it in oneself then, by means of movements, lines,
-colours, sounds, or forms expressed in words, so to transmit
-that feeling that others may experience the same feeling—this
-is the activity of art.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c005'><i>Art is a human activity, consisting in this, that one man
-consciously, by means of certain external signs, hands on to
-others feelings he has lived through, and that other people
-are infected by these feelings, and also experience them.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Art is not, as the metaphysicians say, the manifestation
-of some mysterious Idea of beauty, or God; it is not, as the
-æsthetical physiologists say, a game in which man lets off his
-excess of stored-up energy; it is not the expression of man’s
-emotions by external signs; it is not the production of
-pleasing objects; and, above all, it is not pleasure; but it is
-a means of union among men, joining them together in the
-same feelings, and indispensable for the life and progress
-towards well-being of individuals and of humanity.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>As, thanks to man’s capacity to express thoughts by words,
-every man may know all that has been done for him in the
-realms of thought by all humanity before his day, and can, in
-the present, thanks to this capacity to understand the thoughts
-of others, become a sharer in their activity, and can himself
-hand on to his contemporaries and descendants the thoughts
-he has assimilated from others, as well as those which have
-arisen within himself; so, thanks to man’s capacity to be
-infected with the feelings of others by means of art, all that
-is being lived through by his contemporaries is accessible to
-him, as well as the feelings experienced by men thousands of
-years ago, and he has also the possibility of transmitting his
-own feelings to others.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>If people lacked this capacity to receive the thoughts
-conceived by the men who preceded them, and to pass on to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_51'>51</span>others their own thoughts, men would be like wild beasts, or
-like Kaspar Hauser.<a id='r60' /><a href='#f60' class='c008'><sup>[60]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And if men lacked this other capacity of being infected by
-art, people might be almost more savage still, and, above all,
-more separated from, and more hostile to, one another.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And therefore the activity of art is a most important one,
-as important as the activity of speech itself, and as generally
-diffused.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>We are accustomed to understand art to be only what we
-hear and see in theatres, concerts, and exhibitions; together
-with buildings, statues, poems, novels.... But all this is but
-the smallest part of the art by which we communicate with
-each other in life. All human life is filled with works of
-art of every kind—from cradle-song, jest, mimicry, the
-ornamentation of houses, dress and utensils, up to church
-services, buildings, monuments, and triumphal processions.
-It is all artistic activity. So that by art, in the limited
-sense of the word, we do not mean all human activity
-transmitting feelings, but only that part which we for
-some reason select from it and to which we attach special
-importance.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>This special importance has always been given by all
-men to that part of this activity which transmits feelings
-flowing from their religious perception, and this small part
-of art they have specifically called art, attaching to it the
-full meaning of the word.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>That was how men of old—Socrates, Plato, and Aristotle—looked
-on art. Thus did the Hebrew prophets and the
-ancient Christians regard art; thus it was, and still is,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_52'>52</span>understood by the Mahommedans, and thus is it still understood
-by religious folk among our own peasantry.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Some teachers of mankind—as Plato in his <i>Republic</i>,
-and people such as the primitive Christians, the strict
-Mahommedans, and the Buddhists—have gone so far as to
-repudiate all art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>People viewing art in this way (in contradiction to the
-prevalent view of to-day, which regards any art as good if
-only it affords pleasure) considered, and consider, that art
-(as contrasted with speech, which need not be listened to) is so
-highly dangerous in its power to infect people against their
-wills, that mankind will lose far less by banishing all art
-than by tolerating each and every art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Evidently such people were wrong in repudiating all
-art, for they denied that which cannot be denied—one of
-the indispensable means of communication, without which
-mankind could not exist. But not less wrong are the people
-of civilised European society of our class and day, in
-favouring any art if it but serves beauty, <i>i.e.</i> gives people
-pleasure.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Formerly, people feared lest among the works of art
-there might chance to be some causing corruption, and they
-prohibited art altogether. Now, they only fear lest they
-should be deprived of any enjoyment art can afford, and
-patronise any art. And I think the last error is much
-grosser than the first, and that its consequences are far
-more harmful.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_53'>53</span>
- <h2 id='chap06' class='c003'>CHAPTER VI</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>But how could it happen that that very art, which in
-ancient times was merely tolerated (if tolerated at all),
-should have come, in our times, to be invariably considered
-a good thing if only it affords pleasure?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>It has resulted from the following causes. The estimation
-of the value of art (<i>i.e.</i> of the feelings it transmits) depends
-on men’s perception of the meaning of life; depends on
-what they consider to be the good and the evil of life.
-And what is good and what is evil is defined by what are
-termed religions.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Humanity unceasingly moves forward from a lower, more
-partial, and obscure understanding of life, to one more
-general and more lucid. And in this, as in every movement,
-there are leaders,—those who have understood the meaning
-of life more clearly than others,—and of these advanced men
-there is always one who has, in his words and by his life,
-expressed this meaning more clearly, accessibly, and strongly
-than others. This man’s expression of the meaning of life,
-together with those superstitions, traditions, and ceremonies
-which usually form themselves round the memory of such a
-man, is what is called a religion. Religions are the exponents
-of the highest comprehension of life accessible to
-the best and foremost men at a given time in a given society;
-a comprehension towards which, inevitably and irresistibly,
-all the rest of that society must advance. And therefore
-only religions have always served, and still serve, as bases
-for the valuation of human sentiments. If feelings bring
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_54'>54</span>men nearer the ideal their religion indicates, if they are
-in harmony with it and do not contradict it, they are good;
-if they estrange men from it and oppose it, they are bad.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>If the religion places the meaning of life in worshipping
-one God and fulfilling what is regarded as His will, as was
-the case among the Jews, then the feelings flowing from
-love to that God, and to His law, successfully transmitted
-through the art of poetry by the prophets, by the psalms, or
-by the epic of the book of Genesis, is good, high art. All
-opposing that, as for instance the transmission of feelings
-of devotion to strange gods, or of feelings incompatible with
-the law of God, would be considered bad art. Or if, as
-was the case among the Greeks, the religion places the
-meaning of life in earthly happiness, in beauty and in
-strength, then art successfully transmitting the joy and
-energy of life would be considered good art, but art which
-transmitted feelings of effeminacy or despondency would be
-bad art. If the meaning of life is seen in the well-being
-of one’s nation, or in honouring one’s ancestors and continuing
-the mode of life led by them, as was the case among
-the Romans and the Chinese respectively, then art transmitting
-feelings of joy at sacrificing one’s personal well-being
-for the common weal, or at exalting one’s ancestors and
-maintaining their traditions, would be considered good art;
-but art expressing feelings contrary to this would be regarded
-as bad. If the meaning of life is seen in freeing oneself from
-the yoke of animalism, as is the case among the Buddhists,
-then art successfully transmitting feelings that elevate the
-soul and humble the flesh will be good art, and all that
-transmits feelings strengthening the bodily passions will be
-bad art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In every age, and in every human society, there exists a
-religious sense, common to that whole society, of what is
-good and what is bad, and it is this religious conception
-that decides the value of the feelings transmitted by art.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_55'>55</span>And therefore, among all nations, art which transmitted
-feelings considered to be good by this general religious
-sense was recognised as being good and was encouraged;
-but art which transmitted feelings considered to be bad by
-this general religious conception, was recognised as being
-bad, and was rejected. All the rest of the immense field
-of art by means of which people communicate one with
-another, was not esteemed at all, and was only noticed when
-it ran counter to the religious conception of its age, and
-then merely to be repudiated. Thus it was among all
-nations,—Greeks, Jews, Indians, Egyptians, and Chinese,—and
-so it was when Christianity appeared.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The Christianity of the first centuries recognised as
-productions of good art, only legends, lives of saints,
-sermons, prayers and hymn-singing, evoking love of Christ,
-emotion at his life, desire to follow his example, renunciation
-of worldly life, humility, and the love of others; all
-productions transmitting feelings of personal enjoyment
-they considered to be bad, and therefore rejected: for
-instance, tolerating plastic representations only when they
-were symbolical, they rejected all the pagan sculptures.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>This was so among the Christians of the first centuries,
-who accepted Christ’s teaching, if not quite in its true form,
-at least not in the perverted, paganised form in which it
-was accepted subsequently.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But besides this Christianity, from the time of the wholesale
-conversion of nations by order of the authorities, as in
-the days of Constantine, Charlemagne, and Vladimir, there
-appeared another, a Church Christianity, which was nearer
-to paganism than to Christ’s teaching. And this Church
-Christianity, in accordance with its own teaching, estimated
-quite otherwise the feelings of people and the productions
-of art which transmitted those feelings.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>This Church Christianity not only did not acknowledge the
-fundamental and essential positions of true Christianity,—the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_56'>56</span>immediate relationship of each man to the Father, the
-consequent brotherhood and equality of all men, and the
-substitution of humility and love in place of every kind of
-violence—but, on the contrary, having set up a heavenly
-hierarchy similar to the pagan mythology, and having introduced
-the worship of Christ, of the Virgin, of angels, of
-apostles, of saints, and of martyrs, and not only of these
-divinities themselves, but also of their images, it made blind
-faith in the Church and its ordinances the essential point of
-its teaching.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>However foreign this teaching may have been to true
-Christianity, however degraded, not only in comparison
-with true Christianity, but even with the life-conception of
-Romans such as Julian and others; it was, for all that,
-to the barbarians who accepted it, a higher doctrine
-than their former adoration of gods, heroes, and good
-and bad spirits. And therefore this teaching was a
-religion to them, and on the basis of that religion the
-art of the time was assessed. And art transmitting pious
-adoration of the Virgin, Jesus, the saints and the angels,
-a blind faith in and submission to the Church, fear of
-torments and hope of blessedness in a life beyond the
-grave, was considered good; all art opposed to this was
-considered bad.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The teaching on the basis of which this art arose was a
-perversion of Christ’s teaching, but the art which sprang up
-on this perverted teaching was nevertheless a true art,
-because it corresponded to the religious view of life held by
-the people among whom it arose.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The artists of the Middle Ages, vitalised by the same
-source of feeling—religion—as the mass of the people, and
-transmitting, in architecture, sculpture, painting, music,
-poetry or drama, the feelings and states of mind they
-experienced, were true artists; and their activity, founded
-on the highest conceptions accessible to their age and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_57'>57</span>common to the entire people, though, for our times a
-mean art, was, nevertheless a true one, shared by the
-whole community.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And this was the state of things until, in the upper, rich,
-more educated classes of European society, doubt arose as to
-the truth of that understanding of life which was expressed
-by Church Christianity. When, after the Crusades and the
-maximum development of papal power and its abuses,
-people of the rich classes became acquainted with the wisdom
-of the classics, and saw, on the one hand, the reasonable
-lucidity of the teaching of the ancient sages, and, on the
-other hand, the incompatibility of the Church doctrine with
-the teaching of Christ, they lost all possibility of continuing
-to believe the Church teaching.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>If, in externals, they still kept to the forms of Church
-teaching, they could no longer believe in it, and held to it
-only by inertia and for the sake of influencing the masses,
-who continued to believe blindly in Church doctrine, and
-whom the upper classes, for their own advantage, considered
-it necessary to support in those beliefs.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>So that a time came when Church Christianity ceased to
-be the general religious doctrine of all Christian people;
-some—the masses—continued blindly to believe in it, but
-the upper classes—those in whose hands lay the power and
-wealth, and therefore the leisure to produce art and the
-means to stimulate it—ceased to believe in that teaching.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In respect to religion, the upper circles of the Middle Ages
-found themselves in the same position in which the educated
-Romans were before Christianity arose, <i>i.e.</i> they no longer
-believed in the religion of the masses, but had no beliefs to
-put in place of the worn-out Church doctrine which for them
-had lost its meaning.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>There was only this difference, that whereas for the
-Romans who lost faith in their emperor-gods and household-gods
-it was impossible to extract anything further from all
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_58'>58</span>the complex mythology they had borrowed from all the
-conquered nations, and it was consequently necessary to find
-a completely new conception of life, the people of the Middle
-Ages, when they doubted the truth of the Church teaching,
-had no need to seek a fresh one. That Christian teaching
-which they professed in a perverted form as Church doctrine,
-had mapped out the path of human progress so far ahead,
-that they had but to rid themselves of those perversions
-which hid the teaching announced by Christ, and to adopt
-its real meaning—if not completely, then at least in some
-greater degree than that in which the Church had held it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And this was partially done, not only in the reformations of
-Wyclif, Huss, Luther, and Calvin, but by all that current
-of non-Church Christianity, represented in earlier times
-by the Paulicians, the Bogomili,<a id='r61' /><a href='#f61' class='c008'><sup>[61]</sup></a> and, afterwards, by the
-Waldenses and the other non-Church Christians who were
-called heretics. But this could be, and was, done chiefly
-by poor people—who did not rule. A few of the rich and
-strong, like Francis of Assisi and others, accepted the
-Christian teaching in its full significance, even though it
-undermined their privileged positions. But most people of
-the upper classes (though in the depth of their souls they
-had lost faith in the Church teaching) could not or would
-not act thus, because the essence of that Christian view
-of life, which stood ready to be adopted when once they
-rejected the Church faith, was a teaching of the brotherhood
-(and therefore the equality) of man, and this negatived
-those privileges on which they lived, in which they had
-grown up and been educated, and to which they were
-accustomed. Not, in the depth of their hearts, believing in
-the Church teaching,—which had outlived its age and had
-no longer any true meaning for them,—and not being strong
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_59'>59</span>enough to accept true Christianity, men of these rich,
-governing classes—popes, kings, dukes, and all the great ones
-of the earth—were left without any religion, with but the
-external forms of one, which they supported as being
-profitable and even necessary for themselves, since these
-forms screened a teaching which justified those privileges
-which they made use of. In reality, these people believed
-in nothing, just as the Romans of the first centuries of our
-era believed in nothing. But at the same time these were
-the people who had the power and the wealth, and these
-were the people who rewarded art and directed it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And, let it be noticed, it was just among these people that
-there grew up an art esteemed not according to its success in
-expressing men’s religious feelings, but in proportion to its
-beauty,—in other words, according to the enjoyment it
-gave.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>No longer able to believe in the Church religion whose
-falsehood they had detected, and incapable of accepting true
-Christian teaching, which denounced their whole manner of
-life, these rich and powerful people, stranded without any
-religious conception of life, involuntarily returned to that
-pagan view of things which places life’s meaning in personal
-enjoyment. And then took place among the upper classes
-what is called the “Renaissance of science and art,” and
-which was really not only a denial of every religion but
-also an assertion that religion is unnecessary.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The Church doctrine is so coherent a system that it cannot
-be altered or corrected without destroying it altogether. As
-soon as doubt arose with regard to the infallibility of the
-pope (and this doubt was then in the minds of all educated
-people), doubt inevitably followed as to the truth of tradition.
-But doubt as to the truth of tradition is fatal not only to
-popery and Catholicism, but also to the whole Church creed
-with all its dogmas: the divinity of Christ, the resurrection,
-and the Trinity; and it destroys the authority of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_60'>60</span>Scriptures, since they were considered to be inspired only
-because the tradition of the Church decided it so.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>So that the majority of the highest classes of that age,
-even the popes and the ecclesiastics, really believed in
-nothing at all. In the Church doctrine these people did
-not believe, for they saw its insolvency; but neither could
-they follow Francis of Assisi, Keltchitsky,<a id='r62' /><a href='#f62' class='c008'><sup>[62]</sup></a> and most of the
-heretics, in acknowledging the moral, social teaching of
-Christ, for that teaching undermined their social position.
-And so these people remained without any religious view
-of life. And, having none, they could have no standard
-wherewith to estimate what was good and what was bad art
-but that of personal enjoyment. And, having acknowledged
-their criterion of what was good to be pleasure, <i>i.e.</i>, beauty,
-these people of the upper classes of European society went
-back in their comprehension of art to the gross conception
-of the primitive Greeks which Plato had already condemned.
-And conformably to this understanding of life a theory of
-art was formulated.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_61'>61</span>
- <h2 id='chap07' class='c003'>CHAPTER VII</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>From the time that people of the upper classes lost faith in
-Church Christianity, beauty (<i>i.e.</i> the pleasure received from
-art) became their standard of good and bad art. And, in
-accordance with that view, an æsthetic theory naturally sprang
-up among those upper classes justifying such a conception,—a
-theory according to which the aim of art is to exhibit
-beauty. The partisans of this æsthetic theory, in confirmation
-of its truth, affirmed that it was no invention of their
-own, but that it existed in the nature of things, and was
-recognised even by the ancient Greeks. But this assertion
-was quite arbitrary, and has no foundation other than the
-fact that among the ancient Greeks, in consequence of
-the low grade of their moral ideal (as compared with the
-Christian), their conception of the good, τὸ ἀγαθόν, was not
-yet sharply divided from their conception of the beautiful,
-τὸ καλόν.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>That highest perfection of goodness (not only not identical
-with beauty, but, for the most part, contrasting with it) which
-was discerned by the Jews even in the times of Isaiah, and
-fully expressed by Christianity, was quite unknown to the
-Greeks. They supposed that the beautiful must necessarily
-also be the good. It is true that their foremost thinkers—Socrates,
-Plato, Aristotle—felt that goodness may happen not
-to coincide with beauty. Socrates expressly subordinated
-beauty to goodness; Plato, to unite the two conceptions,
-spoke of spiritual beauty; while Aristotle demanded from art
-that it should have a moral influence on people (κάθαρσις).
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_62'>62</span>But, notwithstanding all this, they could not quite dismiss
-the notion that beauty and goodness coincide.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And consequently, in the language of that period, a
-compound word (καλο-κἀγαθία, beauty-goodness), came into
-use to express that notion.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Evidently the Greek sages began to draw near to that
-perception of goodness which is expressed in Buddhism and
-in Christianity, and they got entangled in defining the
-relation between goodness and beauty. Plato’s reasonings
-about beauty and goodness are full of contradictions. And
-it was just this confusion of ideas that those Europeans of
-a later age, who had lost all faith, tried to elevate into a
-law. They tried to prove that this union of beauty and
-goodness is inherent in the very essence of things;
-that beauty and goodness must coincide; and that
-the word and conception καλο-κἀγαθία (which had a
-meaning for Greeks but has none at all for Christians)
-represents the highest ideal of humanity. On this misunderstanding
-the new science of æsthetics was built up.
-And, to justify its existence, the teachings of the ancients
-on art were so twisted as to make it appear that this
-invented science of æsthetics had existed among the Greeks.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In reality, the reasoning of the ancients on art was quite
-unlike ours. As Benard, in his book on the æsthetics of
-Aristotle, quite justly remarks: “<i>Pour qui veut y regarder de
-près, la théorie du beau et celle de l’art sont tout à fait séparées
-dans Aristote, comme elles le sont dans Platon et chez tous
-leurs successeurs</i>” (<i>L’esthétique d’Aristote et de ses successeurs</i>,
-Paris, 1889, p. 28).<a id='r63' /><a href='#f63' class='c008'><sup>[63]</sup></a> And indeed the reasoning of the
-ancients on art not only does not confirm our science of
-æsthetics, but rather contradicts its doctrine of beauty. But
-nevertheless all the æsthetic guides, from Schasler to Knight,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_63'>63</span>declare that the science of the beautiful—æsthetic science—was
-commenced by the ancients, by Socrates, Plato, Aristotle;
-and was continued, they say, partially by the Epicureans
-and Stoics: by Seneca and Plutarch, down to Plotinus. But
-it is supposed that this science, by some unfortunate accident,
-suddenly vanished in the fourth century, and stayed away for
-about 1500 years, and only after these 1500 years had passed
-did it revive in Germany, <span class='fss'>A.D.</span> 1750, in Baumgarten’s doctrine.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>After Plotinus, says Schasler, fifteen centuries passed
-away during which there was not the slightest scientific
-interest felt for the world of beauty and art. These one
-and a half thousand years, says he, have been lost to æsthetics
-and have contributed nothing towards the erection of the
-learned edifice of this science.<a id='r64' /><a href='#f64' class='c008'><sup>[64]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In reality nothing of the kind happened. The science of
-æsthetics, the science of the beautiful, neither did nor could
-vanish because it never existed. Simply, the Greeks (just
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_64'>64</span>like everybody else, always and everywhere) considered
-art (like everything else) good only when it served goodness
-(as they understood goodness), and bad when it was in
-opposition to that goodness. And the Greeks themselves
-were so little developed morally, that goodness and beauty
-seemed to them to coincide. On that obsolete Greek view
-of life was erected the science of æsthetics, invented by men
-of the eighteenth century, and especially shaped and
-mounted in Baumgarten’s theory. The Greeks (as anyone
-may see who will read Benard’s admirable book on Aristotle
-and his successors, and Walter’s work on Plato) never had a
-science of æsthetics.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Æsthetic theories arose about one hundred and fifty
-years ago among the wealthy classes of the Christian
-European world, and arose simultaneously among different
-nations,—German, Italian, Dutch, French, and English.
-The founder and organiser of it, who gave it a scientific,
-theoretic form, was Baumgarten.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>With a characteristically German, external exactitude,
-pedantry and symmetry, he devised and expounded this
-extraordinary theory. And, notwithstanding its obvious
-insolidity, nobody else’s theory so pleased the cultured
-crowd, or was accepted so readily and with such an
-absence of criticism. It so suited the people of the upper
-classes, that to this day, notwithstanding its entirely fantastic
-character and the arbitrary nature of its assertions, it is
-repeated by learned and unlearned as though it were something
-indubitable and self-evident.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><i>Habent sua fata libelli pro capite lectoris</i>, and so, or even
-more so, theories <i>habent sua fata</i> according to the condition
-of error in which that society is living, among whom and for
-whom the theories are invented. If a theory justifies the false
-position in which a certain part of a society is living, then,
-however unfounded or even obviously false the theory may
-be, it is accepted, and becomes an article of faith to that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_65'>65</span>section of society. Such, for instance, was the celebrated and
-unfounded theory expounded by Malthus, of the tendency
-of the population of the world to increase in geometrical
-progression, but of the means of sustenance to increase only
-in arithmetical progression, and of the consequent overpopulation
-of the world; such, also, was the theory (an
-outgrowth of the Malthusian) of selection and struggle for
-existence as the basis of human progress. Such, again, is
-Marx’s theory, which regards the gradual destruction of
-small private production by large capitalistic production
-now going on around us, as an inevitable decree of fate.
-However unfounded such theories are, however contrary to
-all that is known and confessed by humanity, and however
-obviously immoral they may be, they are accepted with
-credulity, pass uncriticised, and are preached, perchance
-for centuries, until the conditions are destroyed which they
-served to justify, or until their absurdity has become too
-evident. To this class belongs this astonishing theory of
-the Baumgartenian Trinity—Goodness, Beauty, and Truth,
-according to which it appears that the very best that can be
-done by the art of nations after 1900 years of Christian
-teaching, is to choose as the ideal of their life the ideal that
-was held by a small, semi-savage, slave-holding people
-who lived 2000 years ago, who imitated the nude human
-body extremely well, and erected buildings pleasant to look
-at. All these incompatibilities pass completely unnoticed.
-Learned people write long, cloudy treatises on beauty as a
-member of the æsthetic trinity of Beauty, Truth, and Goodness;
-<i>das Schöne, das Wahre, das Gute</i>; <i>le Beau, le Vrai,
-le Bon</i>, are repeated, with capital letters, by philosophers,
-æstheticians and artists, by private individuals, by novelists
-and by <i>feuilletonistes</i>, and they all think, when pronouncing
-these sacrosanct words, that they speak of something quite
-definite and solid—something on which they can base their
-opinions. In reality, these words not only have no definite
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_66'>66</span>meaning, but they hinder us in attaching any definite meaning
-to existing art; they are wanted only for the purpose of
-justifying the false importance we attribute to an art that
-transmits every kind of feeling if only those feelings afford
-us pleasure.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_67'>67</span>
- <h2 id='chap08' class='c003'>CHAPTER VIII</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>But if art is a human activity having for its purpose the
-transmission to others of the highest and best feelings to
-which men have risen, how could it be that humanity
-for a certain rather considerable period of its existence
-(from the time people ceased to believe in Church doctrine
-down to the present day) should exist without this important
-activity, and, instead of it, should put up with an
-insignificant artistic activity only affording pleasure?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In order to answer this question, it is necessary, first of
-all, to correct the current error people make in attributing
-to our art the significance of true, universal art. We are
-so accustomed, not only naïvely to consider the Circassian
-family the best stock of people, but also the Anglo-Saxon
-race the best race if we are Englishmen or Americans, or
-the Teutonic if we are Germans, or the Gallo-Latin if we are
-French, or the Slavonic if we are Russians, that when
-speaking of our own art we feel fully convinced, not only
-that our art is true art, but even that it is the best and only
-true art. But in reality our art is not only not the only art
-(as the Bible once was held to be the only book), but it is
-not even the art of the whole of Christendom,—only of a
-small section of that part of humanity. It was correct to
-speak of a national Jewish, Grecian, or Egyptian art, and one
-may speak of a now-existing Chinese, Japanese, or Indian art
-shared in by a whole people. Such art, common to a whole
-nation, existed in Russia till Peter the First’s time, and existed
-in the rest of Europe until the thirteenth or fourteenth
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_68'>68</span>century; but since the upper classes of European society,
-having lost faith in the Church teaching, did not accept real
-Christianity but remained without any faith, one can no
-longer speak of an art of the Christian nations in the sense
-of the whole of art. Since the upper classes of the Christian
-nations lost faith in Church Christianity, the art of those
-upper classes has separated itself from the art of the rest of
-the people, and there have been two arts—the art of the
-people and genteel art. And therefore the answer to the
-question how it could occur that humanity lived for a
-certain period without real art, replacing it by art which
-served enjoyment only, is, that not all humanity, nor even
-any considerable portion of it, lived without real art, but
-only the highest classes of European Christian society, and
-even they only for a comparatively short time—from the
-commencement of the Renaissance down to our own day.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And the consequence of this absence of true art showed
-itself, inevitably, in the corruption of that class which
-nourished itself on the false art. All the confused, unintelligible
-theories of art, all the false and contradictory
-judgments on art, and particularly the self-confident stagnation
-of our art in its false path, all arise from the assertion,
-which has come into common use and is accepted as an
-unquestioned truth, but is yet amazingly and palpably false,
-the assertion, namely, that the art of our upper classes<a id='r65' /><a href='#f65' class='c008'><sup>[65]</sup></a> is
-the whole of art, the true, the only, the universal art. And
-although this assertion (which is precisely similar to the
-assertion made by religious people of the various Churches
-who consider that theirs is the only true religion) is quite
-arbitrary and obviously unjust, yet it is calmly repeated by
-all the people of our circle with full faith in its infallibility.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_69'>69</span>The art we have is the whole of art, the real, the only
-art, and yet two-thirds of the human race (all the peoples
-of Asia and Africa) live and die knowing nothing of this
-sole and supreme art. And even in our Christian society
-hardly one per cent. of the people make use of this art which
-we speak of as being the <i>whole</i> of art; the remaining ninety-nine
-per cent. live and die, generation after generation,
-crushed by toil and never tasting this art, which moreover
-is of such a nature that, if they could get it, they would not
-understand anything of it. We, according to the current
-æsthetic theory, acknowledge art either as one of the highest
-manifestations of the Idea, God, Beauty, or as the highest
-spiritual enjoyment; furthermore, we hold that all people
-have equal rights, if not to material, at any rate to spiritual
-well-being; and yet ninety-nine per cent. of our European
-population live and die, generation after generation, crushed
-by toil, much of which toil is necessary for the production of
-our art which they never use, and we, nevertheless, calmly
-assert that the art which we produce is the real, true, only
-art—all of art!</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>To the remark that if our art is the true art everyone
-should have the benefit of it, the usual reply is that if not
-everybody at present makes use of existing art, the fault
-lies, not in the art, but in the false organisation of society;
-that one can imagine to oneself, in the future, a state of
-things in which physical labour will be partly superseded
-by machinery, partly lightened by its just distribution, and
-that labour for the production of art will be taken in turns;
-that there is no need for some people always to sit below the
-stage moving the decorations, winding up the machinery,
-working at the piano or French horn, and setting type and
-printing books, but that the people who do all this work
-might be engaged only a few hours per day, and in their
-leisure time might enjoy all the blessings of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>That is what the defenders of our exclusive art say. But
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_70'>70</span>I think they do not themselves believe it. They cannot
-help knowing that fine art can arise only on the slavery of
-the masses of the people, and can continue only as long as
-that slavery lasts, and they cannot help knowing that only
-under conditions of intense labour for the workers, can
-specialists—writers, musicians, dancers, and actors—arrive
-at that fine degree of perfection to which they do attain,
-or produce their refined works of art; and only under the
-same conditions can there be a fine public to esteem such
-productions. Free the slaves of capital, and it will be
-impossible to produce such refined art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But even were we to admit the inadmissible, and say that
-means may be found by which art (that art which among us
-is considered to be art) may be accessible to the whole
-people, another consideration presents itself showing that
-fashionable art cannot be the whole of art, viz. the fact
-that it is completely unintelligible to the people. Formerly
-men wrote poems in Latin, but now their artistic productions
-are as unintelligible to the common folk as if they were
-written in Sanskrit. The usual reply to this is, that if the
-people do not now understand this art of ours, it only proves
-that they are undeveloped, and that this has been so at each
-fresh step forward made by art. First it was not understood,
-but afterwards people got accustomed to it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“It will be the same with our present art; it will be
-understood when everybody is as well educated as are we—the
-people of the upper classes—who produce this art,” say
-the defenders of our art. But this assertion is evidently
-even more unjust than the former; for we know that the
-majority of the productions of the art of the upper classes,
-such as various odes, poems, dramas, cantatas, pastorals,
-pictures, etc., which delighted the people of the upper
-classes when they were produced, never were afterwards
-either understood or valued by the great masses of mankind,
-but have remained, what they were at first, a mere
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_71'>71</span>pastime for rich people of their time, for whom alone they
-ever were of any importance. It is also often urged in
-proof of the assertion that the people will some day understand
-our art, that some productions of so-called “classical”
-poetry, music, or painting, which formerly did not please
-the masses, do—now that they have been offered to them
-from all sides—begin to please these same masses; but this
-only shows that the crowd, especially the half-spoilt town
-crowd, can easily (its taste having been perverted) be
-accustomed to any sort of art. Moreover, this art is not
-produced by these masses, nor even chosen by them, but
-is energetically thrust upon them in those public places in
-which art is accessible to the people. For the great majority
-of working people, our art, besides being inaccessible on
-account of its costliness, is strange in its very nature,
-transmitting as it does the feelings of people far removed
-from those conditions of laborious life which are natural to
-the great body of humanity. That which is enjoyment to
-a man of the rich classes, is incomprehensible, as a pleasure,
-to a working man, and evokes in him either no feeling at
-all, or only a feeling quite contrary to that which it evokes
-in an idle and satiated man. Such feelings as form the
-chief subjects of present-day art—say, for instance, honour,<a id='r66' /><a href='#f66' class='c008'><sup>[66]</sup></a>
-patriotism and amorousness, evoke in a working man only
-bewilderment and contempt, or indignation. So that even
-if a possibility were given to the labouring classes, in their
-free time, to see, to read, and to hear all that forms the
-flower of contemporary art (as is done to some extent in
-towns, by means of picture galleries, popular concerts, and
-libraries), the working man (to the extent to which he is a
-labourer, and has not begun to pass into the ranks of those
-perverted by idleness) would be able to make nothing of our
-fine art, and if he did understand it, that which he understood
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_72'>72</span>would not elevate his soul, but would certainly, in
-most cases, pervert it. To thoughtful and sincere people
-there can therefore be no doubt that the art of our upper
-classes never can be the art of the whole people. But if art
-is an important matter, a spiritual blessing, essential for
-all men (“like religion,” as the devotees of art are fond of
-saying), then it should be accessible to everyone. And if, as
-in our day, it is not accessible to all men, then one of two
-things: either art is not the vital matter it is represented
-to be, or that art which we call art is not the real thing.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The dilemma is inevitable, and therefore clever and
-immoral people avoid it by denying one side of it, viz.
-denying that the common people have a right to art. These
-people simply and boldly speak out (what lies at the heart
-of the matter), and say that the participators in and utilisers
-of what in their esteem is highly beautiful art, <i>i.e.</i> art
-furnishing the greatest enjoyment, can only be “schöne
-Geister,” “the elect,” as the romanticists called them, the
-“Uebermenschen,” as they are called by the followers of
-Nietzsche; the remaining vulgar herd, incapable of experiencing
-these pleasures, must serve the exalted pleasures
-of this superior breed of people. The people who express
-these views at least do not pretend and do not try to combine
-the incombinable, but frankly admit, what is the case,
-that our art is an art of the upper classes only. So,
-essentially, art has been, and is, understood by everyone
-engaged on it in our society.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_73'>73</span>
- <h2 id='chap09' class='c003'>CHAPTER IX</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>The unbelief of the upper classes of the European world
-had this effect, that instead of an artistic activity aiming at
-transmitting the highest feelings to which humanity has
-attained,—those flowing from religious perception,—we have
-an activity which aims at affording the greatest enjoyment
-to a certain class of society. And of all the immense domain
-of art, that part has been fenced off, and is alone called art,
-which affords enjoyment to the people of this particular
-circle.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Apart from the moral effects on European society of such
-a selection from the whole sphere of art of what did not deserve
-such a valuation, and the acknowledgment of it as
-important art, this perversion of art has weakened art itself,
-and well-nigh destroyed it. The first great result was that
-art was deprived of the infinite, varied, and profound religious
-subject-matter proper to it. The second result was that
-having only a small circle of people in view, it lost its beauty
-of form and became affected and obscure; and the third and
-chief result was that it ceased to be either natural or even
-sincere, and became thoroughly artificial and brain-spun.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The first result—the impoverishment of subject-matter—followed
-because only that is a true work of art which
-transmits fresh feelings not before experienced by man.
-As thought-product is only then real thought-product when
-it transmits new conceptions and thoughts, and does not
-merely repeat what was known before, so also an art-product
-is only then a genuine art-product when it brings
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_74'>74</span>a new feeling (however insignificant) into the current of
-human life. This explains why children and youths are
-so strongly impressed by those works of art which first
-transmit to them feelings they had not before experienced.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The same powerful impression is made on people by feelings
-which are quite new, and have never before been expressed
-by man. And it is the source from which such feelings
-flow of which the art of the upper classes has deprived
-itself by estimating feelings, not in conformity with religious
-perception, but according to the degree of enjoyment they
-afford. There is nothing older and more hackneyed than
-enjoyment, and there is nothing fresher than the feelings
-springing from the religious consciousness of each age. It
-could not be otherwise: man’s enjoyment has limits established
-by his nature, but the movement forward of
-humanity, that which is voiced by religious perception, has
-no limits. At every forward step taken by humanity—and
-such steps are taken in consequence of the greater and
-greater elucidation of religious perception—men experience
-new and fresh feelings. And therefore only on the basis
-of religious perception (which shows the highest level of
-life-comprehension reached by the men of a certain period)
-can fresh emotion, never before felt by man, arise. From
-the religious perception of the ancient Greeks flowed the
-really new, important, and endlessly varied feelings expressed
-by Homer and the tragic writers. It was the same
-among the Jews, who attained the religious conception of a
-single God,—from that perception flowed all those new and
-important emotions expressed by the prophets. It was the
-same for the poets of the Middle Ages, who, if they believed
-in a heavenly hierarchy, believed also in the Catholic
-commune; and it is the same for a man of to-day who has
-grasped the religious conception of true Christianity—the
-brotherhood of man.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The variety of fresh feelings flowing from religious
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_75'>75</span>perception is endless, and they are all new, for religious
-perception is nothing else than the first indication of that
-which is coming into existence, viz. the new relation of
-man to the world around him. But the feelings flowing
-from the desire for enjoyment are, on the contrary, not
-only limited, but were long ago experienced and expressed.
-And therefore the lack of belief of the upper classes of
-Europe has left them with an art fed on the poorest
-subject-matter.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The impoverishment of the subject-matter of upper-class
-art was further increased by the fact that, ceasing to be
-religious, it ceased also to be popular, and this again
-diminished the range of feelings which it transmitted. For
-the range of feelings experienced by the powerful and the
-rich, who have no experience of labour for the support of
-life, is far poorer, more limited, and more insignificant than
-the range of feelings natural to working people.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>People of our circle, æstheticians, usually think and say
-just the contrary of this. I remember how Gontchareff, the
-author, a very clever and educated man but a thorough townsman
-and an æsthetician, said to me that after Tourgenieff’s
-<i>Memoirs of a Sportsman</i> there was nothing left to write about
-in peasant life. It was all used up. The life of working
-people seemed to him so simple that Tourgenieff’s peasant
-stories had used up all there was to describe. The life of
-our wealthy people, with their love affairs and dissatisfaction
-with themselves, seemed to him full of inexhaustible
-subject-matter. One hero kissed his lady on her palm,
-another on her elbow, and a third somewhere else. One
-man is discontented through idleness, and another because
-people don’t love him. And Gontchareff thought that in
-this sphere there is no end of variety. And this opinion—that
-the life of working people is poor in subject-matter,
-but that our life, the life of the idle, is full of interest—is
-shared by very many people in our society. The life of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_76'>76</span>a labouring man, with its endlessly varied forms of labour,
-and the dangers connected with this labour on sea and
-underground; his migrations, the intercourse with his employers,
-overseers, and companions and with men of other
-religions and other nationalities; his struggles with nature
-and with wild beasts, the associations with domestic animals,
-the work in the forest, on the steppe, in the field, the garden,
-the orchard; his intercourse with wife and children, not only
-as with people near and dear to him, but as with co-workers
-and helpers in labour, replacing him in time of need; his
-concern in all economic questions, not as matters of display
-or discussion, but as problems of life for himself and his
-family; his pride in self-suppression and service to others,
-his pleasures of refreshment; and with all these interests
-permeated by a religious attitude towards these occurrences—all
-this to us, who have not these interests and possess no
-religious perception, seems monotonous in comparison with
-those small enjoyments and insignificant cares of our life,—a
-life, not of labour nor of production, but of consumption and
-destruction of that which others have produced for us. We
-think the feelings experienced by people of our day and
-our class are very important and varied; but in reality
-almost all the feelings of people of our class amount to
-but three very insignificant and simple feelings—the feeling
-of pride, the feeling of sexual desire, and the feeling of
-weariness of life. These three feelings, with their outgrowths,
-form almost the only subject-matter of the art of
-the rich classes.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>At first, at the very beginning of the separation of the
-exclusive art of the upper classes from universal art, its
-chief subject-matter was the feeling of pride. It was so at
-the time of the Renaissance and after it, when the chief
-subject of works of art was the laudation of the strong—popes,
-kings, and dukes: odes and madrigals were written in
-their honour, and they were extolled in cantatas and hymns;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_77'>77</span>their portraits were painted, and their statues carved, in
-various adulatory ways. Next, the element of sexual desire
-began more and more to enter into art, and (with very few
-exceptions, and in novels and dramas almost without
-exception) it has now become an essential feature of every
-art product of the rich classes.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The third feeling transmitted by the art of the rich—that
-of discontent with life—appeared yet later in modern art.
-This feeling, which, at the commencement of the present
-century, was expressed only by exceptional men; by Byron,
-by Leopardi, and afterwards by Heine, has latterly become
-fashionable and is expressed by most ordinary and empty
-people. Most justly does the French critic Doumic
-characterise the works of the new writers—“<i>c’est la
-lassitude de vivre, le mépris de l’époque présente, le regret
-d’un autre temps aperçu à travers l’illusion de l’art, le
-goût du paradoxe, le besoin de se singulariser, une aspiration
-de raffinés vers la simplicité, l’adoration enfantine du
-merveilleux, la séduction maladive de la rêverie, l’ébranlement
-des nerfs,—surtout l’appel exaspéré de la sensualité</i>” (<i>Les
-Jeunes</i>, René Doumic).<a id='r67' /><a href='#f67' class='c008'><sup>[67]</sup></a> And, as a matter of fact, of these
-three feelings it is sensuality, the lowest (accessible not
-only to all men but even to all animals) which forms the
-chief subject-matter of works of art of recent times.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>From Boccaccio to Marcel Prévost, all the novels, poems,
-and verses invariably transmit the feeling of sexual love in
-its different forms. Adultery is not only the favourite, but
-almost the only theme of all the novels. A performance is
-not a performance unless, under some pretence, women appear
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_78'>78</span>with naked busts and limbs. Songs and <i>romances</i>—all are
-expressions of lust, idealised in various degrees.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>A majority of the pictures by French artists represent
-female nakedness in various forms. In recent French
-literature there is hardly a page or a poem in which
-nakedness is not described, and in which, relevantly or
-irrelevantly, their favourite thought and word <i>nu</i> is not
-repeated a couple of times. There is a certain writer, René
-de Gourmond, who gets printed, and is considered talented.
-To get an idea of the new writers, I read his novel, <i>Les
-Chevaux de Diomède</i>. It is a consecutive and detailed
-account of the sexual connections some gentleman had with
-various women. Every page contains lust-kindling descriptions.
-It is the same in Pierre Louÿs’ book, <i>Aphrodite</i>,
-which met with success; it is the same in a book I lately
-chanced upon—Huysmans’ <i>Certains</i>, and, with but few
-exceptions, it is the same in all the French novels. They
-are all the productions of people suffering from erotic
-mania. And these people are evidently convinced that as
-their whole life, in consequence of their diseased condition,
-is concentrated on amplifying various sexual abominations,
-therefore the life of all the world is similarly concentrated.
-And these people, suffering from erotic mania, are imitated
-throughout the whole artistic world of Europe and America.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Thus in consequence of the lack of belief and the
-exceptional manner of life of the wealthy classes, the art
-of those classes became impoverished in its subject-matter,
-and has sunk to the transmission of the feelings of pride,
-discontent with life, and, above all, of sexual desire.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_79'>79</span>
- <h2 id='chap10' class='c003'>CHAPTER X</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>In consequence of their unbelief the art of the upper classes
-became poor in subject-matter. But besides that, becoming
-continually more and more exclusive, it became at the
-same time continually more and more involved, affected, and
-obscure.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>When a universal artist (such as were some of the Grecian
-artists or the Jewish prophets) composed his work, he naturally
-strove to say what he had to say in such a manner that his
-production should be intelligible to all men. But when an
-artist composed for a small circle of people placed in exceptional
-conditions, or even for a single individual and his
-courtiers,—for popes, cardinals, kings, dukes, queens, or for a
-king’s mistress,—he naturally only aimed at influencing these
-people, who were well known to him, and lived in exceptional
-conditions familiar to him. And this was an easier
-task, and the artist was involuntarily drawn to express
-himself by allusions comprehensible only to the initiated,
-and obscure to everyone else. In the first place, more could
-be said in this way; and secondly, there is (for the initiated)
-even a certain charm in the cloudiness of such a manner of
-expression. This method, which showed itself both in
-euphemism and in mythological and historical allusions,
-came more and more into use, until it has, apparently, at
-last reached its utmost limits in the so-called art of the
-Decadents. It has come, finally, to this: that not only is
-haziness, mysteriousness, obscurity, and exclusiveness (shutting
-out the masses) elevated to the rank of a merit and a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_80'>80</span>condition of poetic art, but even incorrectness, indefiniteness,
-and lack of eloquence are held in esteem.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Théophile Gautier, in his preface to the celebrated <i>Fleurs
-du Mal</i>, says that Baudelaire, as far as possible, banished
-from poetry eloquence, passion, and truth too strictly
-copied (“<i>l’éloquence, la passion, et la vérité calquée trop
-exactement</i>”).</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And Baudelaire not only expressed this, but maintained
-his thesis in his verses, and yet more strikingly in the prose
-of his <i>Petits Poèmes en Prose</i>, the meanings of which have
-to be guessed like a rebus, and remain for the most part
-undiscovered.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The poet Verlaine (who followed next after Baudelaire,
-and was also esteemed great) even wrote an “<i>Art poétique</i>,”
-in which he advises this style of composition:—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c010'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>De la musique avant toute chose,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Et pour cela préfère l’Impair</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Plus vague et plus soluble dans l’air,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Sans rien en lui qui pèse ou qui pose.</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Il faut aussi que tu n’ailles point</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Choisir tes mots sans quelque méprise:</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Rien de plus cher que la chanson grise</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Où l’Indécis au Précis se joint.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>And again:—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c010'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>De la musique encore et toujours!</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Que ton vers soit la chose envolée</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Qu’on sent qui fuit d’une âme en allée</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Vers d’autres cieux à d’autres amours.</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='pageno' id='Page_81'>81</span><i>Que ton vers soit la bonne aventure</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Éparse au vent crispé du matin,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Qui va fleurant la menthe et le thym ...</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Et tout le reste est littérature.</i><a id='r68' /><a href='#f68' class='c008'><sup>[68]</sup></a></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>After these two comes Mallarmé, considered the most
-important of the young poets, and he plainly says that the
-charm of poetry lies in our having to guess its meaning—that
-in poetry there should always be a puzzle:—</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><i>Je pense qu’il faut qu’il n’y ait qu’allusion</i>, says he.
-<i>La contemplation des objets, l’image s’envolant des rêveries
-suscitées par eux, sont le chant: les Parnassiens, eux,
-prennent la chose entièrement et la montrent; par là ils
-manquent de mystère; ils retirent aux esprits cette joie
-délicieuse de croire qu’ils créent. Nommer un objet, c’est
-supprimer les trois quarts de la jouissance du poème, qui
-est faite du bonheur de deviner peu à peu: le suggérer,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_82'>82</span>voilà le rêve. C’est le parfait usage de ce mystère qui
-constitue le symbole: évoquer petit à petit un objet pour
-montrer un état d’âme, ou, inversement, choisir un objet et
-en dégager un état d’âme, par une sèrie de déchiffrements.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>... <i>Si un être d’une intelligence moyenne, et d’une
-préparation littéraire insuffisante, ouvre par hasard un livre
-ainsi fait et prétend en jouir, il y a malentendu, il faut
-remettre les choses à leur place. Il doit y avoir toujours
-énigme en poèsie, et c’est le but de la littérature, il n’y en
-a pas d’autre,—d’évoquer les objets.</i>—“<i>Enquête sur l’évolution
-littéraire</i>,” Jules Huret, pp. 60, 61.<a id='r69' /><a href='#f69' class='c008'><sup>[69]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Thus is obscurity elevated into a dogma among the new
-poets. As the French critic Doumic (who has not yet
-accepted the dogma) quite correctly says:—</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“<i>Il serait temps aussi d’en finir avec cette fameuse ‘théorie
-de l’obscurité’ que la nouvelle école a élevée, en effet, à la
-hauteur d’un dogme.</i>”—<i>Les Jeunes</i>, par René Doumic.<a id='r70' /><a href='#f70' class='c008'><sup>[70]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But it is not French writers only who think thus. The
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_83'>83</span>poets of all other countries think and act in the same way:
-German, and Scandinavian, and Italian, and Russian, and
-English. So also do the artists of the new period in all
-branches of art: in painting, in sculpture, and in music.
-Relying on Nietzsche and Wagner, the artists of the new
-age conclude that it is unnecessary for them to be intelligible
-to the vulgar crowd; it is enough for them to evoke
-poetic emotion in “the finest nurtured,” to borrow a phrase
-from an English æsthetician.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In order that what I am saying may not seem to be
-mere assertion, I will quote at least a few examples from
-the French poets who have led this movement. The name
-of these poets is legion. I have taken French writers,
-because they, more decidedly than any others, indicate the
-new direction of art, and are imitated by most European
-writers.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Besides those whose names are already considered famous,
-such as Baudelaire and Verlaine, here are the names of a
-few of them: Jean Moréas, Charles Morice, Henri de
-Régnier, Charles Vignier, Adrien Remacle, René Ghil,
-Maurice Maeterlinck, G. Albert Aurier, Rémy de Gourmont,
-Saint-Pol-Roux-le-Magnifique, Georges Rodenbach,
-le comte Robert de Montesquiou-Fezensac. These are
-Symbolists and Decadents. Next we have the “Magi”:
-Joséphin Péladan, Paul Adam, Jules Bois, M. Papus,
-and others.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Besides these, there are yet one hundred and forty-one
-others, whom Doumic mentions in the book referred to
-above.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Here are some examples from the work of those of
-them who are considered to be the best, beginning with
-that most celebrated man, acknowledged to be a great
-artist worthy of a monument—Baudelaire. This is a
-poem from his celebrated <i>Fleurs du Mal</i>:—</p>
-<div class='lg-container-b c010'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='pageno' id='Page_84'>84</span>No. XXIV.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Je t’adore à l’égal de la voûte nocturne,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>O vase de tristesse, ô grande taciturne,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Et t’aime d’autant plus, belle, que tu me fuis,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Et que tu me parais, ornement de mes nuits,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Plus ironiquement accumuler les lieues</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Qui séparent mes bras des immensités bleues.</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Je m’avance à l’attaque, et je grimpe aux assauts,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Comme après un cadavre un chœur de vermisseaux,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Et je chéris, ô bête implacable et cruelle,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Jusqu’à cette froideur par où tu m’es plus belle!</i><a id='r71' /><a href='#f71' class='c008'><sup>[71]</sup></a></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>And this is another by the same writer:—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c010'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>No. XXXVI.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>DUELLUM.</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Deux guerriers ont couru l’un sur l’autre; leurs armes</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Ont éclaboussé l’air de lueurs et de sang.</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Ces jeux, ces cliquetis du fer sont les vacarmes</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>D’une jeunesse en proie à l’amour vagissant.</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line c012'><i>Les glaives sont brisés! comme notre jeunesse,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Ma chère! Mais les dents, les ongles acérés,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Vengent bientôt l’épée et la dague traîtresse.</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>O fureur des cœurs mûrs par l’amour ulcérés!</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line c012'><i>Dans le ravin hanté des chats-pards et des onces</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Nos héros, s’étreignant méchamment, ont roulé,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Et leur peau fleurira l’aridité des ronces.</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='pageno' id='Page_85'>85</span><i>Ce gouffre, c’est l’enfer, de nos amis peuplé!</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Roulons-y sans remords, amazone inhumaine,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Afin d’éterniser l’ardeur de notre haine!</i><a id='r72' /><a href='#f72' class='c008'><sup>[72]</sup></a></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>To be exact, I should mention that the collection contains
-verses less comprehensible than these, but not one poem
-which is plain and can be understood without a certain
-effort—an effort seldom rewarded, for the feelings which
-the poet transmits are evil and very low ones. And these
-feelings are always, and purposely, expressed by him with
-eccentricity and lack of clearness. This premeditated obscurity
-is especially noticeable in his prose, where the author
-could, if he liked, speak plainly.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Take, for instance, the first piece from his <i>Petits
-Poèmes</i>:—</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>L’ÉTRANGER.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Qui aimes-tu le mieux, homme énigmatique, dis? ton père,
-ta mère, ta sœur, ou ton frère?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Je n’ai ni père, ni mère, ni sœur, ni frère.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Tes amis?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Vous vous servez là d’une parole dont le sens m’est resté
-jusqu’ à ce jour inconnu.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Ta patrie?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>J’ignore sous quelle latitude elle est située.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>La beauté?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Je l’aimerais volontiers, déesse et immortelle.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>L’or?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Je le hais comme vous haïssez Dieu.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Et qu ’aimes-tu donc, extraordinaire étranger?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>J’aime les nuages ... les nuages qui passent ... là
-bas, ... les merveilleux nuages!</i></p>
-
-<p class='c009'>The piece called <i>La Soupe et les Nuages</i> is probably
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_86'>86</span>intended to express the unintelligibility of the poet even to
-her whom he loves. This is the piece in question:—</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Ma petite folle bien-aimée me donnait à dîner, et par la
-fenêtre ouverte de la salle à manger je contemplais les
-mouvantes architectures que Dieu fait avec les vapeurs, les
-merveilleuses constructions de l’impalpable. Et je me disais,
-à travers ma contemplation: “Toutes ces fantasmagories
-sont presque aussi belles que les yeux de ma belle bien-aimée,
-la petite folle monstrueuse aux yeux verts.”</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Et tout à coup je reçus un violent coup de poing dans le
-dos, et j’entendis une voix rauque et charmante, une voix
-hystérique et comme enrouée par l’eau-de-vie, la voix de ma
-chère petite bien-aimée, qui me disait, “Allez-vous bientôt
-manger votre soupe, s ... b ... de marchand de
-nuages?”</i><a id='r73' /><a href='#f73' class='c008'><sup>[73]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c009'>However artificial these two pieces may be, it is still
-possible, with some effort, to guess at what the author
-meant them to express, but some of the pieces are absolutely
-incomprehensible—at least to me. <i>Le Galant Tireur</i> is a
-piece I was quite unable to understand.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>LE GALANT TIREUR.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Comme la voiture traversait le bois, il la fit arrêter dans
-le voisinage d’un tir, disant qu’il lui serait agréable de tirer
-quelques balles pour tuer le Temps. Tuer ce monstre-là,
-n’est-ce pas l’occupation la plus ordinaire et la plus légitime
-de chacun?—Et il offrit galamment la main à sa chère,
-délicieuse et exécrable femme, à cette mystérieuse femme à
-laquelle il doit tant de plaisirs, tant de douleurs, et peut-être
-aussi une grande partie de son génie.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_87'>87</span><i>Plusieurs balles frappèrent loin du but proposé, l’une
-d’elles s’enfonça même dans le plafond; et comme la charmante
-créature riait follement, se moquant de la maladresse
-de son époux, celui-ci se tourna brusquement vers elle, et lui
-dit: “Observez cette poupée, là-bas, à droite, qui porte le nez
-en l’air et qui a la mine si hautaine. Eh bien! cher ange,
-je me figure que c’est vous.” Et il ferma les yeux et il lâcha
-la détente. La poupée fut nettement décapitée.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Alors s’ inclinant vers sa chère, sa délicieuse, son exécrable
-femme, son inévitable et impitoyable Muse, et lui baisant
-respectueusement la main, il ajouta: “Ah! mon cher ange,
-combien je vous remercie de mon adresse!”</i><a id='r74' /><a href='#f74' class='c008'><sup>[74]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c009'>The productions of another celebrity, Verlaine, are not
-less affected and unintelligible. This, for instance, is the
-first poem in the section called <i>Ariettes Oubliées</i>.</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c010'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“<i>Le vent dans la plaine</i></div>
- <div class='line in2'><i>Suspend son haleine</i>.”—<span class='sc'>Favart.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>C’est l’extase langoureuse,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>C’est la fatigue amoureuse,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>C’est tous les frissons des bois</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Parmi l’étreinte des brises,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>C’est, vers les ramures grises,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Le chœur des petites voix.</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>O le frêle et frais murmure!</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Cela gazouille et susurre,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Cela ressemble au cri doux</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Que l’herbe agitée expire ...</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Tu dirais, sous l’eau qui vire,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Le roulis sourd des cailloux.</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='pageno' id='Page_88'>88</span><i>Cette âme qui se lamente</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>En cette plainte dormante</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>C’est la nôtre, n’est-ce pas?</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>La mienne, dis, et la tienne,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Dont s’exhale l’humble antienne</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Par ce tiède soir, tout has?</i><a id='r75' /><a href='#f75' class='c008'><sup>[75]</sup></a></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>What “<i>chœur des petites voix</i>”? and what “<i>cri doux
-que l’herbe agitée expire</i>”? and what it all means, remains
-altogether unintelligible to me.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And here is another <i>Ariette</i>:—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c010'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>VIII.</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Dans l’interminable</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Ennui de la plaine,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>La neige incertaine</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Luit comme du sable.</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Le ciel est de cuivre,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Sans lueur aucune.</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>On croirait voir vivre</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Et mourir la lune.</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Comme des nuées</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Flottent gris les chênes</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Des forêts prochaines</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Parmi les buées.</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Le ciel est de cuivre,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Sans lueur aucune.</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>On croirait voir vivre</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Et mourir la lune.</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='pageno' id='Page_89'>89</span><i>Corneille poussive</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Et vous, les loups maigres,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Par ces bises aigres</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Quoi donc vous arrive?</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Dans l’interminable</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Ennui de la plaine,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>La neige incertaine</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Luit comme du sable.</i><a id='r76' /><a href='#f76' class='c008'><sup>[76]</sup></a></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>How does the moon seem to live and die in a copper
-heaven? And how can snow shine like sand? The whole
-thing is not merely unintelligible, but, under pretence of
-conveying an impression, it passes off a string of incorrect
-comparisons and words.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Besides these artificial and obscure poems, there are
-others which are intelligible, but which make up for it by
-being altogether bad, both in form and in subject. Such
-are all the poems under the heading <i>La Sagesse</i>. The chief
-place in these verses is occupied by a very poor expression of
-the most commonplace Roman Catholic and patriotic sentiments.
-For instance, one meets with verses such as this:—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c010'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Je ne veux plus penser qu’ à ma mère Marie,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Siège de la sagesse et source de pardons,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Mère de France aussi de qui nous attendons</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Inébranlablement l’honneur de la patrie.</i><a id='r77' /><a href='#f77' class='c008'><sup>[77]</sup></a></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Before citing examples from other poets, I must pause to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_90'>90</span>note the amazing celebrity of these two versifiers, Baudelaire
-and Verlaine, who are now accepted as being great poets.
-How the French, who had Chénier, Musset, Lamartine, and,
-above all, Hugo,—and among whom quite recently flourished
-the so-called Parnassiens: Leconte de Lisle, Sully-Prudhomme,
-etc.,—could attribute such importance to these two
-versifiers, who were far from skilful in form and most contemptible
-and commonplace in subject-matter, is to me incomprehensible.
-The conception-of-life of one of them, Baudelaire,
-consisted in elevating gross egotism into a theory, and
-replacing morality by a cloudy conception of beauty, and
-especially artificial beauty. Baudelaire had a preference,
-which he expressed, for a woman’s face painted rather than
-showing its natural colour, and for metal trees and a
-theatrical imitation of water rather than real trees and
-real water.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The life-conception of the other, Verlaine, consisted in
-weak profligacy, confession of his moral impotence, and,
-as an antidote to that impotence, in the grossest Roman
-Catholic idolatry. Both, moreover, were quite lacking in
-naïveté, sincerity, and simplicity, and both overflowed with
-artificiality, forced originality, and self-assurance. So that
-in their least bad productions one sees more of M. Baudelaire
-or M. Verlaine than of what they were describing.
-But these two indifferent versifiers form a school, and lead
-hundreds of followers after them.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>There is only one explanation of this fact: it is that the
-art of the society in which these versifiers lived is not a
-serious, important matter of life, but is a mere amusement.
-And all amusements grow wearisome by repetition. And,
-in order to make wearisome amusement again tolerable, it
-is necessary to find some means to freshen it up. When,
-at cards, ombre grows stale, whist is introduced; when whist
-grows stale, écarté is substituted; when écarté grows stale,
-some other novelty is invented, and so on. The substance
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_91'>91</span>of the matter remains the same, only its form is changed.
-And so it is with this kind of art. The subject-matter of the
-art of the upper classes growing continually more and more
-limited, it has come at last to this, that to the artists of these
-exclusive classes it seems as if everything has already been
-said, and that to find anything new to say is impossible.
-And therefore, to freshen up this art, they look out for
-fresh forms.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Baudelaire and Verlaine invent such a new form, furbish
-it up, moreover, with hitherto unused pornographic details,
-and—the critics and the public of the upper classes hail
-them as great writers.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>This is the only explanation of the success, not of
-Baudelaire and Verlaine only, but of all the Decadents.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>For instance, there are poems by Mallarmé and Maeterlinck
-which have no meaning, and yet for all that, or perhaps on
-that very account, are printed by tens of thousands, not
-only in various publications, but even in collections of the
-best works of the younger poets.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>This, for example, is a sonnet by Mallarmé:—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c010'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>A la nue accablante tu</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Basse de basalte et de laves</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>A même les échos esclaves</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Par une trompe sans vertu.</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Quel sépulcral naufrage (tu</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Le soir, écume, mais y baves)</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Suprême une entre les épaves</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Abolit le mât dévêtu.</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Ou cela que furibond faute</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>De quelque perdition haute</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Tout l’abîme vain éployé</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='pageno' id='Page_92'>92</span><i>Dans le si blanc cheveu qui traîne</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Avarement aura noyé</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Le flanc enfant d’une sirène.</i><a id='r78' /><a href='#f78' class='c008'><sup>[78]</sup></a></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>(“Pan,” 1895, No. 1.)</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>This poem is not exceptional in its incomprehensibility.
-I have read several poems by Mallarmé, and they also had
-no meaning whatever. I give a sample of his prose in
-Appendix I. There is a whole volume of this prose, called
-“<i>Divagations</i>.” It is impossible to understand any of it.
-And that is evidently what the author intended.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And here is a song by Maeterlinck, another celebrated
-author of to-day:—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c010'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Quand il est sorti,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>(J’entendis la porte)</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Quand il est sorti</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Elle avait souri ...</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Mais quand il entra</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>(J’entendis la lampe)</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Mais quand il entra</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Une autre était là ...</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Et j’ai vu la mort,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>(J’entendis son âme)</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Et j’ai vu la mort</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Qui l’attend encore ...</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>On est venu dire,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>(Mon enfant j’ai peur)</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>On est venu dire</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Qu’il allait partir ...</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='pageno' id='Page_93'>93</span><i>Ma lampe allumée,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>(Mon enfant j’ai peur)</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Ma lampe allumée</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Me suis approchée ...</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>A la première porte,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>(Mon enfant j’ai peur)</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>A la première porte,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>La flamme a tremblé ...</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>A la seconde porte,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>(Mon enfant j’ai peur)</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>A la seconde porte,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>La flamme a parlé ...</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>A la troisième porte,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>(Mon enfant j’ai peur)</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>A la troisième porte,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>La lumière est morte ...</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Et s’il revenait un jour</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Que faut-il lui dire?</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Dites-lui qu’on l’attendit</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Jusqu’à s’en mourir ...</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Et s’il demande où vous êtes</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Que faut-il répondre?</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Donnez-lui mon anneau d’or</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Sans rien lui répondre ...</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Et s’il m’interroge alors</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Sur la dernière heure?</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Dites lui que fai souri</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>De peur qu’il ne pleure ...</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='pageno' id='Page_94'>94</span><i>Et s’il m’interroge encore</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Sans me reconnaître?</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Parlez-lui comme une sœur,</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Il souffre peut-être ...</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Et s’il veut savoir pourquoi</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>La salle est déserte?</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Montrez lui la lampe éteinte</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Et la porte ouverte ...</i><a id='r79' /><a href='#f79' class='c008'><sup>[79]</sup></a></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>(“Pan,” 1895, No. 2.)</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Who went out? Who came in? Who is speaking? Who
-died?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I beg the reader to be at the pains of reading through
-the samples I cite in <a href='#app2'>Appendix II.</a> of the celebrated and
-esteemed young poets—Griffin, Verhaeren, Moréas, and
-Montesquiou. It is important to do so in order to form a
-clear conception of the present position of art, and not to
-suppose, as many do, that Decadentism is an accidental and
-transitory phenomenon. To avoid the reproach of having
-selected the worst verses, I have copied out of each volume
-the poem which happened to stand on page <a href='#Page_28'>28</a>.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>All the other productions of these poets are equally unintelligible,
-or can only be understood with great difficulty,
-and then not fully. All the productions of those hundreds
-of poets, of whom I have named a few, are the same in kind.
-And among the Germans, Swedes, Norwegians, Italians, and
-us Russians, similar verses are printed. And such productions
-are printed and made up into book form, if not by the
-million, then by the hundred thousand (some of these works
-sell in tens of thousands). For type-setting, paging, printing,
-and binding these books, millions and millions of working
-days are spent—not less, I think, than went to build the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_95'>95</span>great pyramid. And this is not all. The same is going on
-in all the other arts: millions and millions of working
-days are being spent on the production of equally
-incomprehensible works in painting, in music, and in the
-drama.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Painting not only does not lag behind poetry in this
-matter, but rather outstrips it. Here is an extract from
-the diary of an amateur of art, written when visiting the
-Paris exhibitions in 1894:—</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“I was to-day at three exhibitions: the Symbolists’, the
-Impressionists’, and the Neo-Impressionists’. I looked at
-the pictures conscientiously and carefully, but again felt the
-same stupefaction and ultimate indignation. The first
-exhibition, that of Camille Pissarro, was comparatively the
-most comprehensible, though the pictures were out of
-drawing, had no subject, and the colourings were most
-improbable. The drawing was so indefinite that you were
-sometimes unable to make out which way an arm or a head
-was turned. The subject was generally, ‘<i>effets</i>’—<i>Effet de
-brouillard</i>, <i>Effet du soir</i>, <i>Soleil couchant</i>. There were some
-pictures with figures, but without subjects.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“In the colouring, bright blue and bright green predominated.
-And each picture had its special colour, with which
-the whole picture was, as it were, splashed. For instance in
-‘A Girl guarding Geese’ the special colour is <i>vert de gris</i>, and
-dots of it were splashed about everywhere: on the face,
-the hair, the hands, and the clothes. In the same gallery—‘Durand
-Ruel’—were other pictures, by Puvis de Chavannes,
-Manet, Monet, Renoir, Sisley—who are all Impressionists.
-One of them, whose name I could not make out,—it was
-something like Redon,—had painted a blue face in profile.
-On the whole face there is only this blue tone, with white-of-lead.
-Pissarro has a water-colour all done in dots. In the
-foreground is a cow entirely painted with various-coloured
-dots. The general colour cannot be distinguished, however
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_96'>96</span>much one stands back from, or draws near to, the picture.
-From there I went to see the Symbolists. I looked at them
-long without asking anyone for an explanation, trying to
-guess the meaning; but it is beyond human comprehension.
-One of the first things to catch my eye was a wooden <i>haut-relief</i>,
-wretchedly executed, representing a woman (naked)
-who with both hands is squeezing from her two breasts
-streams of blood. The blood flows down, becoming lilac in
-colour. Her hair first descends and then rises again and
-turns into trees. The figure is all coloured yellow, and the
-hair is brown.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“Next—a picture: a yellow sea, on which swims something
-which is neither a ship nor a heart; on the horizon is a
-profile with a halo and yellow hair, which changes into a sea,
-in which it is lost. Some of the painters lay on their
-colours so thickly that the effect is something between
-painting and sculpture. A third exhibit was even less
-comprehensible: a man’s profile; before him a flame and
-black stripes—leeches, as I was afterwards told. At last I
-asked a gentleman who was there what it meant, and he
-explained to me that the <i>haut-relief</i> was a symbol, and that
-it represented ‘<i>La Terre</i>.’ The heart swimming in a yellow
-sea was ‘<i>Illusion perdue</i>,’ and the gentleman with the leeches
-was ‘<i>Le Mal</i>.’ There were also some Impressionist pictures:
-elementary profiles, holding some sort of flowers in their
-hands: in monotone, out of drawing, and either quite blurred
-or else marked out with wide black outlines.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>This was in 1894; the same tendency is now even more
-strongly defined, and we have Böcklin, Stuck, Klinger,
-Sasha Schneider, and others.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The same thing is taking place in the drama. The play-writers
-give us an architect who, for some reason, has not
-fulfilled his former high intentions, and who consequently
-climbs on to the roof of a house he has erected and tumbles
-down head foremost; or an incomprehensible old woman
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_97'>97</span>(who exterminates rats), and who, for an unintelligible
-reason, takes a poetic child to the sea and there drowns
-him; or some blind men, who, sitting on the seashore, for
-some reason always repeat one and the same thing; or a bell
-of some kind, which flies into a lake and there rings.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And the same is happening in music—in that art which,
-more than any other, one would have thought, should be
-intelligible to everybody.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>An acquaintance of yours, a musician of repute, sits down
-to the piano and plays you what he says is a new composition
-of his own, or of one of the new composers. You
-hear the strange, loud sounds, and admire the gymnastic
-exercises performed by his fingers; and you see that the
-performer wishes to impress upon you that the sounds he is
-producing express various poetic strivings of the soul. You
-see his intention, but no feeling whatever is transmitted to
-you except weariness. The execution lasts long, or at least
-it seems very long to you, because you do not receive any
-clear impression, and involuntarily you remember the words
-of Alphonse Karr, “<i>Plus ça va vite, plus ça dure longtemps.</i>”<a id='r80' /><a href='#f80' class='c008'><sup>[80]</sup></a>
-And it occurs to you that perhaps it is all a mystification;
-perhaps the performer is trying you—just throwing his
-hands and fingers wildly about the key-board in the hope
-that you will fall into the trap and praise him, and then
-he will laugh and confess that he only wanted to see if
-he could hoax you. But when at last the piece does
-finish, and the perspiring and agitated musician rises from
-the piano evidently anticipating praise, you see that it was
-all done in earnest.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The same thing takes place at all the concerts with pieces
-by Liszt, Wagner, Berlioz, Brahms, and (newest of all)
-Richard Strauss, and the numberless other composers of
-the new school, who unceasingly produce opera after opera,
-symphony after symphony, piece after piece.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_98'>98</span>The same is occurring in a domain in which it seemed hard
-to be unintelligible—in the sphere of novels and short stories.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Read <i>Là-Bas</i> by Huysmans, or some of Kipling’s
-short stories, or <i>L’annonciateur</i> by Villiers de l’Isle Adam
-in his <i>Contes Cruels</i>, etc., and you will find them not only
-“abscons” (to use a word adopted by the new writers), but
-absolutely unintelligible both in form and in substance.
-Such, again, is the work by E. Morel, <i>Terre Promise</i>, now
-appearing in the <i>Revue Blanche</i>, and such are most of
-the new novels. The style is very high-flown, the feelings
-seem to be most elevated, but you can’t make out what is
-happening, to whom it is happening, and where it is happening.
-And such is the bulk of the young art of our time.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>People who grew up in the first half of this century,
-admiring Goethe, Schiller, Musset, Hugo, Dickens,
-Beethoven, Chopin, Raphael, da Vinci, Michael Angelo,
-Delaroche, being unable to make head or tail of this new
-art, simply attribute its productions to tasteless insanity and
-wish to ignore them. But such an attitude towards this
-new art is quite unjustifiable, because, in the first place,
-that art is spreading more and more, and has already
-conquered for itself a firm position in society, similar to
-the one occupied by the Romanticists in the third decade
-of this century; and secondly and chiefly, because, if it is
-permissible to judge in this way of the productions of the
-latest form of art, called by us Decadent art, merely because
-we do not understand it, then remember, there are an
-enormous number of people,—all the labourers and many of
-the non-labouring folk,—who, in just the same way, do not
-comprehend those productions of art which we consider
-admirable: the verses of our favourite artists—Goethe,
-Schiller, and Hugo; the novels of Dickens, the music of
-Beethoven and Chopin, the pictures of Raphael, Michael
-Angelo, da Vinci, etc.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>If I have a right to think that great masses of people do
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_99'>99</span>not understand and do not like what I consider undoubtedly
-good because they are not sufficiently developed, then I
-have no right to deny that perhaps the reason why I cannot
-understand and cannot like the new productions of
-art, is merely that I am still insufficiently developed to
-understand them. If I have a right to say that I, and the
-majority of people who are in sympathy, with me, do not
-understand the productions of the new art simply because
-there is nothing in it to understand and because it is bad
-art, then, with just the same right, the still larger majority,
-the whole labouring mass, who do not understand what I
-consider admirable art, can say that what I reckon as good
-art is bad art, and there is nothing in it to understand.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I once saw the injustice of such condemnation of the new
-art with especial clearness, when, in my presence, a certain
-poet, who writes incomprehensible verses, ridiculed incomprehensible
-music with gay self-assurance; and, shortly afterwards,
-a certain musician, who composes incomprehensible
-symphonies, laughed at incomprehensible poetry with equal
-self-confidence. I have no right, and no authority, to
-condemn the new art on the ground that I (a man educated
-in the first half of the century) do not understand it; I can
-only say that it is incomprehensible to me. The only
-advantage the art I acknowledge has over the Decadent
-art, lies in the fact that the art I recognise is comprehensible
-to a somewhat larger number of people than the present-day
-art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The fact that I am accustomed to a certain exclusive art,
-and can understand it, but am unable to understand
-another still more exclusive art, does not give me a right to
-conclude that my art is the real true art, and that the other
-one, which I do not understand, is an unreal, a bad art. I
-can only conclude that art, becoming ever more and more
-exclusive, has become more and more incomprehensible to
-an ever-increasing number of people, and that, in this its
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_100'>100</span>progress towards greater and greater incomprehensibility
-(on one level of which I am standing, with the art familiar
-to me), it has reached a point where it is understood by a
-very small number of the elect, and the number of these
-chosen people is ever becoming smaller and smaller.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>As soon as ever the art of the upper classes separated
-itself from universal art, a conviction arose that art may
-be art and yet be incomprehensible to the masses. And
-as soon as this position was admitted, it had inevitably
-to be admitted also that art may be intelligible only
-to the very smallest number of the elect, and, eventually,
-to two, or to one, of our nearest friends, or to oneself
-alone. Which is practically what is being said by
-modern artists:—“I create and understand myself, and if
-anyone does not understand me, so much the worse for
-him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The assertion that art may be good art, and at the same
-time incomprehensible to a great number of people, is extremely
-unjust, and its consequences are ruinous to art itself;
-but at the same time it is so common and has so eaten into
-our conceptions, that it is impossible sufficiently to elucidate
-all the absurdity of it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Nothing is more common than to hear it said of reputed
-works of art, that they are very good but very difficult
-to understand. We are quite used to such assertions, and
-yet to say that a work of art is good, but incomprehensible
-to the majority of men, is the same as saying of some
-kind of food that it is very good but that most people
-can’t eat it. The majority of men may not like rotten
-cheese or putrefying grouse—dishes esteemed by people with
-perverted tastes; but bread and fruit are only good when
-they please the majority of men. And it is the same with
-art. Perverted art may not please the majority of men, but
-good art always pleases everyone.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>It is said that the very best works of art are such that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_101'>101</span>they cannot be understood by the mass, but are accessible
-only to the elect who are prepared to understand these great
-works. But if the majority of men do not understand, the
-knowledge necessary to enable them to understand should
-be taught and explained to them. But it turns out that
-there is no such knowledge, that the works cannot be
-explained, and that those who say the majority do not
-understand good works of art, still do not explain those
-works, but only tell us that, in order to understand them,
-one must read, and see, and hear these same works over
-and over again. But this is not to explain, it is only to
-habituate! And people may habituate themselves to anything,
-even to the very worst things. As people may habituate
-themselves to bad food, to spirits, tobacco, and opium,
-just in the same way they may habituate themselves to bad
-art—and that is exactly what is being done.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Moreover, it cannot be said that the majority of people
-lack the taste to esteem the highest works of art. The
-majority always have understood, and still understand, what
-we also recognise as being the very best art: the epic of
-Genesis, the Gospel parables, folk-legends, fairy-tales, and
-folk-songs are understood by all. How can it be that the
-majority has suddenly lost its capacity to understand what
-is high in our art?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Of a speech it may be said that it is admirable, but incomprehensible
-to those who do not know the language in
-which it is delivered. A speech delivered in Chinese may
-be excellent, and may yet remain incomprehensible to me
-if I do not know Chinese; but what distinguishes a work of
-art from all other mental activity is just the fact that its
-language is understood by all, and that it infects all without
-distinction. The tears and laughter of a Chinese infect me
-just as the laughter and tears of a Russian; and it is the
-same with painting and music and poetry, when it is translated
-into a language I understand. The songs of a Kirghiz
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_102'>102</span>or of a Japanese touch me, though in a lesser degree than
-they touch a Kirghiz or a Japanese. I am also touched by
-Japanese painting, Indian architecture, and Arabian stories.
-If I am but little touched by a Japanese song and a Chinese
-novel, it is not that I do not understand these productions,
-but that I know and am accustomed to higher works of
-art. It is not because their art is above me. Great works
-of art are only great because they are accessible and comprehensible
-to everyone. The story of Joseph, translated into
-the Chinese language, touches a Chinese. The story of Sakya
-Muni touches us. And there are, and must be, buildings,
-pictures, statues, and music of similar power. So that, if art
-fails to move men, it cannot be said that this is due to the
-spectators’ or hearers’ lack of understanding; but the conclusion
-to be drawn may, and should be, that such art is
-either bad art, or is not art at all.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Art is differentiated from activity of the understanding,
-which demands preparation and a certain sequence of knowledge
-(so that one cannot learn trigonometry before knowing
-geometry), by the fact that it acts on people independently of
-their state of development and education, that the charm of
-a picture, of sounds, or of forms, infects any man whatever
-his plane of development.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The business of art lies just in this—to make that understood
-and felt which, in the form of an argument, might be
-incomprehensible and inaccessible. Usually it seems to the
-recipient of a truly artistic impression that he knew the thing
-before but had been unable to express it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And such has always been the nature of good, supreme art;
-the <i>Iliad</i>, the <i>Odyssey</i>, the stories of Isaac, Jacob, and Joseph,
-the Hebrew prophets, the psalms, the Gospel parables, the
-story of Sakya Muni, and the hymns of the Vedas: all transmit
-very elevated feelings, and are nevertheless quite comprehensible
-now to us, educated or uneducated, as they were comprehensible
-to the men of those times, long ago, who were
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_103'>103</span>even less educated than our labourers. People talk about
-incomprehensibility; but if art is the transmission of feelings
-flowing from man’s religious perception, how can a feeling
-be incomprehensible which is founded on religion, <i>i.e.</i> on
-man’s relation to God? Such art should be, and has actually,
-always been, comprehensible to everybody, because every
-man’s relation to God is one and the same. And therefore
-the churches and the images in them were always comprehensible
-to everyone. The hindrance to understanding the
-best and highest feelings (as is said in the gospel) does not at
-all lie in deficiency of development or learning, but, on the
-contrary, in false development and false learning. A good
-and lofty work of art may be incomprehensible, but not to
-simple, unperverted peasant labourers (all that is highest is
-understood by them)—it may be, and often is, unintelligible
-to erudite, perverted people destitute of religion. And this
-continually occurs in our society, in which the highest feelings
-are simply not understood. For instance, I know people
-who consider themselves most refined, and who say that
-they do not understand the poetry of love to one’s neighbour,
-of self-sacrifice, or of chastity.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>So that good, great, universal, religious art may be incomprehensible
-to a small circle of spoilt people, but certainly
-not to any large number of plain men.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Art cannot be incomprehensible to the great masses
-only because it is very good,—as artists of our day are fond
-of telling us. Rather we are bound to conclude that this
-art is unintelligible to the great masses only because it is
-very bad art, or even is not art at all. So that the favourite
-argument (naïvely accepted by the cultured crowd), that in
-order to feel art one has first to understand it (which
-really only means habituate oneself to it), is the truest
-indication that what we are asked to understand by such
-a method is either very bad, exclusive art, or is not art
-at all.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_104'>104</span>People say that works of art do not please the people
-because they are incapable of understanding them. But if
-the aim of works of art is to infect people with the emotion
-the artist has experienced, how can one talk about not
-understanding?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>A man of the people reads a book, sees a picture, hears a
-play or a symphony, and is touched by no feeling. He is
-told that this is because he cannot understand. People
-promise to let a man see a certain show; he enters and sees
-nothing. He is told that this is because his sight is not
-prepared for this show. But the man well knows that he
-sees quite well, and if he does not see what people promised
-to show him, he only concludes (as is quite just) that those
-who undertook to show him the spectacle have not fulfilled
-their engagement. And it is perfectly just for a man who
-does feel the influence of some works of art to come to this
-conclusion concerning artists who do not, by their works,
-evoke feeling in him. To say that the reason a man is not
-touched by my art is because he is still too stupid, besides
-being very self-conceited and also rude, is to reverse the
-rôles, and for the sick to send the hale to bed.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Voltaire said that “<i>Tous les genres sont bons, hors le
-genre ennuyeux</i>”;<a id='r81' /><a href='#f81' class='c008'><sup>[81]</sup></a> but with even more right one may say
-of art that <i>Tous les genres sons bons, hors celui qu’on ne
-comprend pas</i>, or <i>qui ne produit pas son effet</i>,<a id='r82' /><a href='#f82' class='c008'><sup>[82]</sup></a> for of
-what value is an article which fails to do that for which
-it was intended?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Mark this above all: if only it be admitted that art
-may be art and yet be unintelligible to anyone of sound
-mind, there is no reason why any circle of perverted people
-should not compose works tickling their own perverted
-feelings and comprehensible to no one but themselves, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_105'>105</span>call it “art,” as is actually being done by the so-called
-Decadents.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The direction art has taken may be compared to
-placing on a large circle other circles, smaller and smaller,
-until a cone is formed, the apex of which is no longer a
-circle at all. That is what has happened to the art of our
-times.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_106'>106</span>
- <h2 id='chap11' class='c003'>CHAPTER XI</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>Becoming ever poorer and poorer in subject-matter and
-more and more unintelligible in form, the art of the upper
-classes, in its latest productions, has even lost all the
-characteristics of art, and has been replaced by imitations
-of art. Not only has upper-class art, in consequence of its
-separation from universal art, become poor in subject-matter
-and bad in form, <i>i.e.</i> ever more and more unintelligible, it
-has, in course of time, ceased even to be art at all, and has
-been replaced by counterfeits.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>This has resulted from the following causes. Universal art
-arises only when some one of the people, having experienced
-a strong emotion, feels the necessity of transmitting it to
-others. The art of the rich classes, on the other hand,
-arises not from the artist’s inner impulse, but chiefly because
-people of the upper classes demand amusement and pay well
-for it. They demand from art the transmission of feelings
-that please them, and this demand artists try to meet. But
-it is a very difficult task, for people of the wealthy classes,
-spending their lives in idleness and luxury, desire to be
-continually diverted by art; and art, even the lowest,
-cannot be produced at will, but has to generate spontaneously
-in the artist’s inner self. And therefore, to satisfy the
-demands of people of the upper classes, artists have had to
-devise methods of producing imitations of art. And such
-methods have been devised.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>These methods are those of (1) borrowing, (2) imitating,
-(3) striking (effects), and (4) interesting.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_107'>107</span>The first method consists in borrowing whole subjects, or
-merely separate features, from former works recognised by everyone
-as being poetical, and in so re-shaping them, with sundry
-additions, that they should have an appearance of novelty.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Such works, evoking in people of a certain class memories
-of artistic feelings formerly experienced, produce an impression
-similar to art, and, provided only that they conform to
-other needful conditions, they pass for art among those who
-seek for pleasure from art. Subjects borrowed from previous
-works of art are usually called poetical subjects. Objects
-and people thus borrowed are called poetical objects and
-people. Thus, in our circle, all sorts of legends, sagas,
-and ancient traditions are considered poetical subjects.
-Among poetical people and objects we reckon maidens,
-warriors, shepherds, hermits, angels, devils of all sorts, moonlight,
-thunder, mountains, the sea, precipices, flowers, long
-hair, lions, lambs, doves, and nightingales. In general, all
-those objects are considered poetical which have been most
-frequently used by former artists in their productions.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Some forty years ago a stupid but highly cultured—<i>ayant
-beaucoup d’acquis</i>—lady (since deceased) asked me to listen
-to a novel written by herself. It began with a heroine who,
-in a poetic white dress, and with poetically flowing hair,
-was reading poetry near some water in a poetic wood.
-The scene was in Russia, but suddenly from behind the
-bushes the hero appears, wearing a hat with a feather <i>à la
-Guillaume Tell</i> (the book specially mentioned this) and
-accompanied by two poetical white dogs. The authoress
-deemed all this highly poetical, and it might have passed
-muster if only it had not been necessary for the hero to
-speak. But as soon as the gentleman in the hat <i>à la
-Guillaume Tell</i> began to converse with the maiden in the
-white dress, it became obvious that the authoress had
-nothing to say, but had merely been moved by poetic
-memories of other works, and imagined that by ringing the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_108'>108</span>changes on those memories she could produce an artistic
-impression. But an artistic impression, <i>i.e.</i> infection, is
-only received when an author has, in the manner peculiar
-to himself, experienced the feeling which he transmits, and
-not when he passes on another man’s feeling previously
-transmitted to him. Such poetry from poetry cannot infect
-people, it can only simulate a work of art, and even that
-only to people of perverted æsthetic taste. The lady in
-question being very stupid and devoid of talent, it was at
-once apparent how the case stood; but when such borrowing
-is resorted to by people who are erudite and talented and have
-cultivated the technique of their art, we get those borrowings
-from the Greek, the antique, the Christian or mythological
-world which have become so numerous, and which,
-particularly in our day, continue to increase and multiply,
-and are accepted by the public as works of art, if only the
-borrowings are well mounted by means of the technique of
-the particular art to which they belong.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>As a characteristic example of such counterfeits of art
-in the realm of poetry, take Rostand’s <i>Princesse Lointaine</i>,
-in which there is not a spark of art, but which seems very
-poetical to many people, and probably also to its author.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The second method of imparting a semblance of art is
-that which I have called imitating. The essence of this
-method consists in supplying details accompanying the thing
-described or depicted. In literary art this method consists
-in describing, in the minutest details, the external appearance,
-the faces, the clothes, the gestures, the tones, and the
-habitations of the characters represented, with all the occurrences
-met with in life. For instance, in novels and stories,
-when one of the characters speaks we are told in what voice
-he spoke, and what he was doing at the time. And the
-things said are not given so that they should have as much
-sense as possible, but, as they are in life, disconnectedly,
-and with interruptions and omissions. In dramatic art,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_109'>109</span>besides such imitation of real speech, this method consists
-in having all the accessories and all the people just like
-those in real life. In painting this method assimilates
-painting to photography and destroys the difference between
-them. And, strange to say, this method is used also in
-music: music tries to imitate not only by its rhythm but
-also by its very sounds, the sounds which in real life accompany
-the thing it wishes to represent.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The third method is by action, often purely physical, on
-the outer senses. Work of this kind is said to be “striking,”
-“effectful.” In all arts these effects consist chiefly in contrasts;
-in bringing together the terrible and the tender, the
-beautiful and the hideous, the loud and the soft, darkness
-and light, the most ordinary and the most extraordinary. In
-verbal art, besides effects of contrast, there are also effects
-consisting in the description of things that have never before
-been described. These are usually pornographic details
-evoking sexual desire, or details of suffering and death
-evoking feelings of horror, as, for instance, when describing
-a murder, to give a detailed medical account of the lacerated
-tissues, of the swellings, of the smell, quantity and appearance
-of the blood. It is the same in painting: besides all
-kinds of other contrasts, one is coming into vogue which
-consists in giving careful finish to one object and being
-careless about all the rest. The chief and usual effects in
-painting are effects of light and the depiction of the horrible.
-In the drama, the most common effects, besides contrasts, are
-tempests, thunder, moonlight, scenes at sea or by the sea-shore,
-changes of costume, exposure of the female body,
-madness, murders, and death generally: the dying person
-exhibiting in detail all the phases of agony. In music the
-most usual effects are a <i>crescendo</i>, passing from the softest
-and simplest sounds to the loudest and most complex crash
-of the full orchestra; a repetition of the same sounds
-<i>arpeggio</i> in all the octaves and on various instruments;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_110'>110</span>or that the harmony, tone, and rhythm be not at all those
-naturally flowing from the course of the musical thought, but
-such as strike one by their unexpectedness. Besides these, the
-commonest effects in music are produced in a purely physical
-manner by strength of sound, especially in an orchestra.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Such are some of the most usual effects in the various
-arts, but there yet remains one common to them all, namely,
-to convey by means of one art what it would be natural to
-convey by another: for instance, to make music describe (as is
-done by the programme music of Wagner and his followers),
-or to make painting, the drama, or poetry, induce a frame of
-mind (as is aimed at by all the Decadent art).</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The fourth method is that of interesting (that is, absorbing
-the mind) in connection with works of art. The interest
-may lie in an intricate plot—a method till quite recently
-much employed in English novels and French plays, but
-now going out of fashion and being replaced by authenticity,
-<i>i.e.</i> by detailed description of some historical period or some
-branch of contemporary life. For example, in a novel,
-interestingness may consist in a description of Egyptian or
-Roman life, the life of miners, or that of the clerks in a
-large shop. The reader becomes interested and mistakes
-this interest for an artistic impression. The interest may
-also depend on the very method of expression; a kind of
-interest that has now come much into use. Both verse and
-prose, as well as pictures, plays, and music, are constructed
-so that they must be guessed like riddles, and this process
-of guessing again affords pleasure and gives a semblance of
-the feeling received from art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>It is very often said that a work of art is very good
-because it is poetic, or realistic, or striking, or interesting;
-whereas not only can neither the first, nor the second, nor
-the third, nor the fourth of these attributes supply a
-standard of excellence in art, but they have not even
-anything in common with art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_111'>111</span>Poetic—means borrowed. All borrowing merely recalls to
-the reader, spectator, or listener some dim recollection of
-artistic impressions they have received from previous
-works of art, and does not infect them with feeling which
-the artist has himself experienced. A work founded on
-something borrowed, like Goethe’s <i>Faust</i> for instance, may
-be very well executed and be full of mind and every beauty,
-but because it lacks the chief characteristic of a work of art—completeness,
-oneness, the inseparable unity of form and
-contents expressing the feeling the artist has experienced—it
-cannot produce a really artistic impression. In availing
-himself of this method, the artist only transmits the feeling
-received by him from a previous work of art; therefore every
-borrowing, whether it be of whole subjects, or of various
-scenes, situations, or descriptions, is but a reflection of art,
-a simulation of it, but not art itself. And therefore, to say
-that a certain production is good because it is poetic,—<i>i.e.</i>
-resembles a work of art,—is like saying of a coin that it is
-good because it resembles real money.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Equally little can imitation, realism, serve, as many people
-think, as a measure of the quality of art. Imitation cannot
-be such a measure, for the chief characteristic of art is the
-infection of others with the feelings the artist has experienced,
-and infection with a feeling is not only not identical with
-description of the accessories of what is transmitted, but
-is usually hindered by superfluous details. The attention
-of the receiver of the artistic impression is diverted by all
-these well-observed details, and they hinder the transmission
-of feeling even when it exists.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>To value a work of art by the degree of its realism, by the
-accuracy of the details reproduced, is as strange as to judge
-of the nutritive quality of food by its external appearance.
-When we appraise a work according to its realism, we only
-show that we are talking, not of a work of art, but of its
-counterfeit.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_112'>112</span>Neither does the third method of imitating art—by
-the use of what is striking or effectful—coincide with
-real art any better than the two former methods, for
-in effectfulness—the effects of novelty, of the unexpected,
-of contrasts, of the horrible—there is no transmission of
-feeling, but only an action on the nerves. If an artist were
-to paint a bloody wound admirably, the sight of the wound
-would strike me, but it would not be art. One prolonged
-note on a powerful organ will produce a striking impression,
-will often even cause tears, but there is no music in it,
-because no feeling is transmitted. Yet such physiological
-effects are constantly mistaken for art by people of our
-circle, and this not only in music, but also in poetry,
-painting, and the drama. It is said that art has become
-refined. On the contrary, thanks to the pursuit of effectfulness,
-it has become very coarse. A new piece is brought
-out and accepted all over Europe, such, for instance, as
-<i>Hannele</i>, in which play the author wishes to transmit to the
-spectators pity for a persecuted girl. To evoke this feeling in
-the audience by means of art, the author should either make
-one of the characters express this pity in such a way as to
-infect everyone, or he should describe the girl’s feelings correctly.
-But he cannot, or will not, do this, and chooses
-another way, more complicated in stage management but
-easier for the author. He makes the girl die on the stage;
-and, still further to increase the physiological effect on the
-spectators, he extinguishes the lights in the theatre, leaving
-the audience in the dark, and to the sound of dismal music
-he shows how the girl is pursued and beaten by her drunken
-father. The girl shrinks—screams—groans—and falls.
-Angels appear and carry her away. And the audience,
-experiencing some excitement while this is going on, are
-fully convinced that this is true æsthetic feeling. But
-there is nothing æsthetic in such excitement, for there is no
-infecting of man by man, but only a mingled feeling of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_113'>113</span>pity for another, and of self-congratulation that it is not I
-who am suffering: it is like what we feel at the sight of
-an execution, or what the Romans felt in their circuses.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The substitution of effectfulness for æsthetic feeling is
-particularly noticeable in musical art—that art which by
-its nature has an immediate physiological action on the
-nerves. Instead of transmitting by means of a melody the
-feelings he has experienced, a composer of the new school
-accumulates and complicates sounds, and by now strengthening,
-now weakening them, he produces on the audience a
-physiological effect of a kind that can be measured by an
-apparatus invented for the purpose.<a id='r83' /><a href='#f83' class='c008'><sup>[83]</sup></a> And the public mistake
-this physiological effect for the effect of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>As to the fourth method—that of interesting—it also is
-frequently confounded with art. One often hears it said,
-not only of a poem, a novel, or a picture, but even of a
-musical work, that it is interesting. What does this mean?
-To speak of an interesting work of art means either that we
-receive from a work of art information new to us, or that
-the work is not fully intelligible, and that little by little,
-and with effort, we arrive at its meaning, and experience a
-certain pleasure in this process of guessing it. In neither
-case has the interest anything in common with artistic impression.
-Art aims at infecting people with feeling experienced
-by the artist. But the mental effort necessary to
-enable the spectator, listener, or reader to assimilate the new
-information contained in the work, or to guess the puzzles
-propounded, by distracting him, hinders the infection.
-And therefore the interestingness of a work not only has
-nothing to do with its excellence as a work of art, but
-rather hinders than assists artistic impression.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>We may, in a work of art, meet with what is poetic, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_114'>114</span>realistic, and striking, and interesting, but these things cannot
-replace the essential of art—feeling experienced by the artist.
-Latterly, in upper-class art, most of the objects given out as
-being works of art are of the kind which only resemble art,
-and are devoid of its essential quality—feeling experienced
-by the artist. And, for the diversion of the rich, such objects
-are continually being produced in enormous quantities by
-the artisans of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Many conditions must be fulfilled to enable a man to
-produce a real work of art. It is necessary that he should
-stand on the level of the highest life-conception of his
-time, that he should experience feeling and have the desire
-and capacity to transmit it, and that he should, moreover,
-have a talent for some one of the forms of art. It is very
-seldom that all these conditions necessary to the production
-of true art are combined. But in order—aided by the
-customary methods of borrowing, imitating, introducing
-effects, and interesting—unceasingly to produce counterfeits
-of art which pass for art in our society and are well paid
-for, it is only necessary to have a talent for some branch of
-art; and this is very often to be met with. By talent I
-mean ability: in literary art, the ability to express one’s
-thoughts and impressions easily and to notice and remember
-characteristic details; in the depictive arts, to distinguish
-and remember lines, forms, and colours; in music, to
-distinguish the intervals, and to remember and transmit
-the sequence of sounds. And a man, in our times, if only
-he possesses such a talent and selects some specialty, may,
-after learning the methods of counterfeiting used in his
-branch of art,—if he has patience and if his æsthetic feeling
-(which would render such productions revolting to him) be
-atrophied,—unceasingly, till the end of his life, turn out
-works which will pass for art in our society.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>To produce such counterfeits, definite rules or recipes
-exist in each branch of art. So that the talented man,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_115'>115</span>having assimilated them, may produce such works <i>à froid</i>,
-cold drawn, without any feeling.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In order to write poems a man of literary talent needs
-only these qualifications: to acquire the knack, conformably
-with the requirements of rhyme and rhythm, of using, instead
-of the one really suitable word, ten others meaning
-approximately the same; to learn how to take any phrase
-which, to be clear, has but one natural order of words, and
-despite all possible dislocations still to retain some sense
-in it; and lastly, to be able, guided by the words required
-for the rhymes, to devise some semblance of thoughts,
-feelings, or descriptions to suit these words. Having
-acquired these qualifications, he may unceasingly produce
-poems—short or long, religious, amatory or patriotic, according
-to the demand.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>If a man of literary talent wishes to write a story or
-novel, he need only form his style—<i>i.e.</i> learn how to
-describe all that he sees—and accustom himself to remember
-or note down details. When he has accustomed
-himself to this, he can, according to his inclination or the
-demand, unceasingly produce novels or stories—historical,
-naturalistic, social, erotic, psychological, or even religious,
-for which latter kind a demand and fashion begins to show
-itself. He can take subjects from books or from the events
-of life, and can copy the characters of the people in his book
-from his acquaintances.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And such novels and stories, if only they are decked out
-with well observed and carefully noted details, preferably
-erotic ones, will be considered works of art, even though
-they may not contain a spark of feeling experienced.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>To produce art in dramatic form, a talented man, in
-addition to all that is required for novels and stories, must
-also learn to furnish his characters with as many smart
-and witty sentences as possible, must know how to utilise
-theatrical effects, and how to entwine the action of his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_116'>116</span>characters so that there should not be any long conversations,
-but as much bustle and movement on the stage as
-possible. If the writer is able to do this, he may produce
-dramatic works one after another without stopping, selecting
-his subjects from the reports of the law courts, or from
-the latest society topic, such as hypnotism, heredity, etc.,
-or from deep antiquity, or even from the realms of fancy.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In the sphere of painting and sculpture it is still easier
-for the talented man to produce imitations of art. He
-need only learn to draw, paint, and model—especially naked
-bodies. Thus equipped he can continue to paint pictures,
-or model statues, one after another, choosing subjects
-according to his bent—mythological, or religious, or fantastic,
-or symbolical; or he may depict what is written about
-in the papers—a coronation, a strike, the Turko-Grecian
-war, famine scenes; or, commonest of all, he may just copy
-anything he thinks beautiful—from naked women to copper
-basins.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>For the production of musical art the talented man needs
-still less of what constitutes the essence of art, <i>i.e.</i> feeling
-wherewith to infect others; but, on the other hand, he
-requires more physical, gymnastic labour than for any other
-art, unless it be dancing. To produce works of musical art,
-he must first learn to move his fingers on some instrument
-as rapidly as those who have reached the highest perfection;
-next he must know how in former times polyphonic music
-was written, must study what are called counterpoint and
-fugue; and furthermore, he must learn orchestration, <i>i.e.</i> how
-to utilise the effects of the instruments. But once he has
-learned all this, the composer may unceasingly produce one
-work after another; whether programme-music, opera, or
-song (devising sounds more or less corresponding to the
-words), or chamber music, <i>i.e.</i> he may take another man’s
-themes and work them up into definite forms by means of
-counterpoint and fugue; or, what is commonest of all, he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_117'>117</span>may compose fantastic music, <i>i.e.</i> he may take a conjunction
-of sounds which happens to come to hand, and pile every
-sort of complication and ornamentation on to this chance
-combination.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Thus, in all realms of art, counterfeits of art are manufactured
-to a ready-made, prearranged recipe, and these
-counterfeits the public of our upper classes accept for real
-art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And this substitution of counterfeits for real works of
-art was the third and most important consequence of the
-separation of the art of the upper classes from universal art.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_118'>118</span>
- <h2 id='chap12' class='c003'>CHAPTER XII</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>In our society three conditions co-operate to cause the production
-of objects of counterfeit art. They are—(1) the
-considerable remuneration of artists for their productions
-and the professionalisation of artists which this has produced,
-(2) art criticism, and (3) schools of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>While art was as yet undivided, and only religious art
-was valued and rewarded while indiscriminate art was
-left unrewarded, there were no counterfeits of art,
-or, if any existed, being exposed to the criticism of the
-whole people, they quickly disappeared. But as soon as
-that division occurred, and the upper classes acclaimed
-every kind of art as good if only it afforded them pleasure,
-and began to reward such art more highly than any other
-social activity, immediately a large number of people devoted
-themselves to this activity, and art assumed quite a different
-character and became a profession.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And as soon as this occurred, the chief and most precious
-quality of art—its sincerity—was at once greatly weakened
-and eventually quite destroyed.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The professional artist lives by his art, and has continually
-to invent subjects for his works, and does invent them.
-And it is obvious how great a difference must exist between
-works of art produced on the one hand by men such as
-the Jewish prophets, the authors of the Psalms, Francis of
-Assisi, the authors of the <i>Iliad</i> and <i>Odyssey</i>, of folk-stories,
-legends, and folk-songs, many of whom not only received
-no remuneration for their work, but did not even attach
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_119'>119</span>their names to it; and, on the other hand, works produced
-by court poets, dramatists and musicians receiving honours
-and remuneration; and later on by professional artists, who
-lived by the trade, receiving remuneration from newspaper
-editors, publishers, impresarios, and in general from those
-agents who come between the artists and the town public—the
-consumers of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Professionalism is the first condition of the diffusion of
-false, counterfeit art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The second condition is the growth, in recent times, of
-artistic criticism, <i>i.e.</i> the valuation of art not by everybody,
-and, above all, not by plain men, but by erudite, that is, by
-perverted and at the same time self-confident individuals.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>A friend of mine, speaking of the relation of critics to
-artists, half-jokingly defined it thus: “Critics are the stupid
-who discuss the wise.” However partial, inexact, and rude
-this definition may be, it is yet partly true, and is incomparably
-juster than the definition which considers critics to
-be men who can explain works of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“Critics explain!” What do they explain?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The artist, if a real artist, has by his work transmitted
-to others the feeling he experienced. What is there, then,
-to explain?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>If a work be good as art, then the feeling expressed by
-the artist—be it moral or immoral—transmits itself to
-other people. If transmitted to others, then they feel it,
-and all interpretations are superfluous. If the work does
-not infect people, no explanation can make it contagious.
-An artist’s work cannot be interpreted. Had it been possible
-to explain in words what he wished to convey, the
-artist would have expressed himself in words. He expressed
-it by his art, only because the feeling he experienced could
-not be otherwise transmitted. The interpretation of works
-of art by words only indicates that the interpreter is himself
-incapable of feeling the infection of art. And this is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_120'>120</span>actually the case, for, however strange it may seem to say
-so, critics have always been people less susceptible than
-other men to the contagion of art. For the most part they
-are able writers, educated and clever, but with their capacity
-of being infected by art quite perverted or atrophied. And
-therefore their writings have always largely contributed, and
-still contribute, to the perversion of the taste of that public
-which reads them and trusts them.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Artistic criticism did not exist—could not and cannot
-exist—in societies where art is undivided, and where, consequently,
-it is appraised by the religious understanding-of-life
-common to the whole people. Art criticism grew,
-and could grow, only on the art of the upper classes, who
-did not acknowledge the religious perception of their time.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Universal art has a definite and indubitable internal
-criterion—religious perception; upper-class art lacks this, and
-therefore the appreciators of that art are obliged to cling to
-some external criterion. And they find it in “the judgments
-of the finest-nurtured,” as an English æsthetician has
-phrased it, that is, in the authority of the people who are
-considered educated, nor in this alone, but also in a tradition
-of such authorities. This tradition is extremely misleading,
-both because the opinions of “the finest-nurtured” are often
-mistaken, and also because judgments which were valid
-once cease to be so with the lapse of time. But the critics,
-having no basis for their judgments, never cease to repeat
-their traditions. The classical tragedians were once considered
-good, and therefore criticism considers them to be so
-still. Dante was esteemed a great poet, Raphael a great
-painter, Bach a great musician—and the critics, lacking a
-standard by which to separate good art from bad, not only
-consider these artists great, but regard all their productions
-as admirable and worthy of imitation. Nothing has contributed,
-and still contributes, so much to the perversion of art
-as these authorities set up by criticism. A man produces a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_121'>121</span>work of art, like every true artist expressing in his own
-peculiar manner a feeling he has experienced. Most people
-are infected by the artist’s feeling; and his work becomes
-known. Then criticism, discussing the artist, says that the
-work is not bad, but all the same the artist is not a Dante,
-nor a Shakespear, nor a Goethe, nor a Raphael, nor what
-Beethoven was in his last period. And the young artist
-sets to work to copy those who are held up for his imitation,
-and he produces not only feeble works, but false works,
-counterfeits of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Thus, for instance, our Pushkin writes his short poems,
-<i>Evgeniy Onegin</i>, <i>The Gipsies</i>, and his stories—works all
-varying in quality, but all true art. But then, under the
-influence of false criticism extolling Shakespear, he writes
-<i>Boris Godunoff</i>, a cold, brain-spun work, and this production
-is lauded by the critics, set up as a model, and imitations of
-it appear: <i>Minin</i> by Ostrovsky, and <i>Tsar Boris</i> by Alexée
-Tolstoy, and such imitations of imitations as crowd all literatures
-with insignificant productions. The chief harm done
-by the critics is this, that themselves lacking the capacity to
-be infected by art (and that is the characteristic of all
-critics; for did they not lack this they could not attempt
-the impossible—the interpretation of works of art), they
-pay most attention to, and eulogise, brain-spun, invented
-works, and set these up as models worthy of imitation.
-That is the reason they so confidently extol, in literature,
-the Greek tragedians, Dante, Tasso, Milton, Shakespear,
-Goethe (almost all he wrote), and, among recent writers,
-Zola and Ibsen; in music, Beethoven’s last period, and
-Wagner. To justify their praise of these brain-spun,
-invented works, they devise entire theories (of which the
-famous theory of beauty is one); and not only dull but
-also talented people compose works in strict deference to
-these theories; and often even real artists, doing violence to
-their genius, submit to them.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_122'>122</span>Every false work extolled by the critics serves as a
-door through which the hypocrites of art at once
-crowd in.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>It is solely due to the critics, who in our times still praise
-rude, savage, and, for us, often meaningless works of the
-ancient Greeks: Sophocles, Euripides, Æschylus, and especially
-Aristophanes; or, of modern writers, Dante, Tasso,
-Milton, Shakespear; in painting, all of Raphael, all of
-Michael Angelo, including his absurd “Last Judgment”; in
-music, the whole of Bach, and the whole of Beethoven,
-including his last period,—thanks only to them, have the
-Ibsens, Maeterlincks, Verlaines, Mallarmés, Puvis de Chavannes,
-Klingers, Böcklins, Stucks, Schneiders; in music,
-the Wagners, Liszts, Berliozes, Brahmses, and Richard
-Strausses, etc., and all that immense mass of good-for-nothing
-imitators of these imitators, become possible in
-our day.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>As a good illustration of the harmful influence of criticism,
-take its relation to Beethoven. Among his innumerable
-hasty productions written to order, there are, notwithstanding
-their artificiality of form, works of true art. But he
-grows deaf, cannot hear, and begins to write invented,
-unfinished works, which are consequently often meaningless
-and musically unintelligible. I know that musicians can
-imagine sounds vividly enough, and can almost hear what
-they read, but imaginary sounds can never replace real ones,
-and every composer must hear his production in order to
-perfect it. Beethoven, however, could not hear, could not
-perfect his work, and consequently published productions
-which are artistic ravings. But criticism, having once
-acknowledged him to be a great composer, seizes on just
-these abnormal works with special gusto, and searches for
-extraordinary beauties in them. And, to justify its laudations
-(perverting the very meaning of musical art), it
-attributed to music the property of describing what it cannot
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_123'>123</span>describe. And imitators appear—an innumerable host of
-imitators of these abnormal attempts at artistic productions
-which Beethoven wrote when he was deaf.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Then Wagner appears, who at first in critical articles
-praises just Beethoven’s last period, and connects this music
-with Schopenhauer’s mystical theory that music is the expression
-of Will—not of separate manifestations of will
-objectivised on various planes, but of its very essence—which
-is in itself as absurd as this music of Beethoven.
-And afterwards he composes music of his own on this
-theory, in conjunction with another still more erroneous
-system of the union of all the arts. After Wagner yet
-new imitators appear, diverging yet further from art:
-Brahms, Richard Strauss, and others.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Such are the results of criticism. But the third condition
-of the perversion of art, namely, art schools, is almost more
-harmful still.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>As soon as art became, not art for the whole people but
-for a rich class, it became a profession; as soon as it became
-a profession, methods were devised to teach it; people
-who chose this profession of art began to learn these
-methods, and thus professional schools sprang up: classes
-of rhetoric or literature in the public schools, academies
-for painting, conservatoires for music, schools for dramatic
-art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In these schools art is taught! But art is the transmission
-to others of a special feeling experienced by the artist.
-How can this be taught in schools?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>No school can evoke feeling in a man, and still less can
-it teach him how to manifest it in the one particular manner
-natural to him alone. But the essence of art lies in these
-things.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The one thing these schools can teach is how to transmit
-feelings experienced by other artists in the way those other
-artists transmitted them. And this is just what the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_124'>124</span>professional schools do teach; and such instruction not only
-does not assist the spread of true art, but, on the contrary,
-by diffusing counterfeits of art, does more than anything
-else to deprive people of the capacity to understand
-true art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In literary art people are taught how, without having
-anything they wish to say, to write a many-paged composition
-on a theme about which they have never thought,
-and, moreover, to write it so that it should resemble the
-work of an author admitted to be celebrated. This is taught
-in schools.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In painting the chief training consists in learning to draw
-and paint from copies and models, the naked body chiefly
-(the very thing that is never seen, and which a man
-occupied with real art hardly ever has to depict), and to
-draw and paint as former masters drew and painted. The
-composition of pictures is taught by giving out themes similar
-to those which have been treated by former acknowledged
-celebrities.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>So also in dramatic schools, the pupils are taught to
-recite monologues just as tragedians, considered celebrated,
-declaimed them.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>It is the same in music. The whole theory of music is
-nothing but a disconnected repetition of those methods
-which the acknowledged? masters of composition made
-use of.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I have elsewhere quoted the profound remark of the
-Russian artist Bruloff on art, but I cannot here refrain from
-repeating it, because nothing better illustrates what can
-and what can not be taught in the schools. Once when
-correcting a pupil’s study, Bruloff just touched it in a few
-places, and the poor dead study immediately became animated.
-“Why, you only touched it a <i>wee bit</i>, and it is quite
-another thing!” said one of the pupils. “Art begins where
-the <i>wee bit</i> begins,” replied Bruloff, indicating by these
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_125'>125</span>words just what is most characteristic of art. The remark
-is true of all the arts, but its justice is particularly noticeable
-in the performance of music. That musical execution should
-be artistic, should be art, <i>i.e.</i> should infect, three chief conditions
-must be observed,—there are many others needed for
-musical perfection; the transition from one sound to another
-must be interrupted or continuous; the sound must increase
-or diminish steadily; it must be blended with one and not
-with another sound; the sound must have this or that
-timbre, and much besides,—but take the three chief conditions:
-the pitch, the time, and the strength of the sound.
-Musical execution is only then art, only then infects, when
-the sound is neither higher nor lower than it should be,
-that is, when exactly the infinitely small centre of the
-required note is taken; when that note is continued exactly
-as long as is needed; and when the strength of the sound
-is neither more nor less than is required. The slightest
-deviation of pitch in either direction, the slightest increase
-or decrease in time, or the slightest strengthening or
-weakening of the sound beyond what is needed, destroys
-the perfection and, consequently, the infectiousness of
-the work. So that the feeling of infection by the art of
-music, which seems so simple and so easily obtained, is
-a thing we receive only when the performer finds those
-infinitely minute degrees which are necessary to perfection
-in music. It is the same in all arts: a wee bit lighter,
-a wee bit darker, a wee bit higher, lower, to the right or
-the left—in painting; a wee bit weaker or stronger in
-intonation, or a wee bit sooner or later—in dramatic art;
-a wee bit omitted, over-emphasised, or exaggerated—in
-poetry, and there is no contagion. Infection is only
-obtained when an artist finds those infinitely minute degrees
-of which a work of art consists, and only to the extent to
-which he finds them. And it is quite impossible to teach
-people by external means to find these minute degrees: they
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_126'>126</span>can only be found when a man yields to his feeling. No
-instruction can make a dancer catch just the tact of the
-music, or a singer or a fiddler take exactly the infinitely
-minute centre of his note, or a sketcher draw of all possible
-lines the only right one, or a poet find the only meet arrangement
-of the only suitable words. All this is found only
-by feeling. And therefore schools may teach what is necessary
-in order to produce something resembling art, but not
-art itself.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The teaching of the schools stops there where the <i>wee
-bit</i> begins—consequently where art begins.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Accustoming people to something resembling art, disaccustoms
-them to the comprehension of real art. And that
-is how it comes about that none are more dull to art than
-those who have passed through the professional schools and
-been most successful in them. Professional schools produce
-an hypocrisy of art precisely akin to that hypocrisy of
-religion which is produced by theological colleges for
-training priests, pastors, and religious teachers generally.
-As it is impossible in a school to train a man so as to
-make a religious teacher of him, so it is impossible to teach
-a man how to become an artist.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Art schools are thus doubly destructive of art: first, in
-that they destroy the capacity to produce real art in those
-who have the misfortune to enter them and go through a
-7 or 8 years’ course; secondly, in that they generate
-enormous quantities of that counterfeit art which perverts
-the taste of the masses and overflows our world. In
-order that born artists may know the methods of the
-various arts elaborated by former artists, there should
-exist in all elementary schools such classes for drawing
-and music (singing) that, after passing through them,
-every talented scholar may, by using existing models
-accessible to all, be able to perfect himself in his art
-independently.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_127'>127</span>These three conditions—the professionalisation of artists,
-art criticism, and art schools—have had this effect that
-most people in our times are quite unable even to understand
-what art is, and accept as art the grossest counterfeits
-of it.</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_128'>128</span>
- <h2 id='chap13' class='c003'>CHAPTER XIII</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>To what an extent people of our circle and time have lost the
-capacity to receive real art, and have become accustomed
-to accept as art things that have nothing in common with it,
-is best seen from the works of Richard Wagner, which have
-latterly come to be more and more esteemed, not only by
-the Germans but also by the French and the English, as the
-very highest art, revealing new horizons to us.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The peculiarity of Wagner’s music, as is known, consists
-in this, that he considered that music should serve poetry,
-expressing all the shades of a poetical work.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The union of the drama with music, devised in the
-fifteenth century in Italy for the revival of what they
-imagined to have been the ancient Greek drama with
-music, is an artificial form which had, and has, success
-only among the upper classes, and that only when gifted
-composers, such as Mozart, Weber, Rossini, and others,
-drawing inspiration from a dramatic subject, yielded freely
-to the inspiration and subordinated the text to the music,
-so that in their operas the important thing to the audience
-was merely the music on a certain text, and not the text
-at all, which latter, even when it was utterly absurd, as,
-for instance, in the <i>Magic Flute</i>, still did not prevent the
-music from producing an artistic impression.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Wagner wishes to correct the opera by letting music
-submit to the demands of poetry and unite with it. But
-each art has its own definite realm, which is not identical
-with the realm of other arts, but merely comes in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_129'>129</span>contact with them; and therefore, if the manifestation of,
-I will not say several, but even of two arts—the dramatic
-and the musical—be united in one complete production,
-then the demands of the one art will make it impossible
-to fulfil the demands of the other, as has always occurred in
-the ordinary operas, where the dramatic art has submitted to,
-or rather yielded place to, the musical. Wagner wishes that
-musical art should submit to dramatic art, and that both
-should appear in full strength. But this is impossible, for
-every work of art, if it be a true one, is an expression of
-intimate feelings of the artist, which are quite exceptional, and
-not like anything else. Such is a musical production, and such
-is a dramatic work, if they be true art. And therefore, in
-order that a production in the one branch of art should
-coincide with a production in the other branch, it is necessary
-that the impossible should happen: that two works from
-different realms of art should be absolutely exceptional,
-unlike anything that existed before, and yet should coincide,
-and be exactly alike.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And this cannot be, just as there cannot be two men, or
-even two leaves on a tree, exactly alike. Still less can two
-works from different realms of art, the musical and the
-literary, be absolutely alike. If they coincide, then either
-one is a work of art and the other a counterfeit, or both are
-counterfeits. Two live leaves cannot be exactly alike, but
-two artificial leaves may be. And so it is with works of
-art. They can only coincide completely when neither the
-one nor the other is art, but only cunningly devised
-semblances of it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>If poetry and music may be joined, as occurs in hymns,
-songs, and <i>romances</i>—(though even in these the music does
-not follow the changes of each verse of the text, as Wagner
-wants to, but the song and the music merely produce a
-coincident effect on the mind)—this occurs only because
-lyrical poetry and music have, to some extent, one and the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_130'>130</span>same aim: to produce a mental condition, and the conditions
-produced by lyrical poetry and by music can, more or
-less, coincide. But even in these conjunctions the centre of
-gravity always lies in one of the two productions, so that
-it is one of them that produces the artistic impression while
-the other remains unregarded. And still less is it possible
-for such union to exist between epic or dramatic poetry and
-music.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Moreover, one of the chief conditions of artistic creation
-is the complete freedom of the artist from every kind of
-preconceived demand. And the necessity of adjusting his
-musical work to a work from another realm of art is a preconceived
-demand of such a kind as to destroy all possibility
-of creative power; and therefore works of this kind, adjusted
-to one another, are, and must be, as has always happened,
-not works of art but only imitations of art, like the music
-of a melodrama, signatures to pictures, illustrations, and
-librettos to operas.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And such are Wagner’s productions. And a confirmation
-of this is to be seen in the fact that Wagner’s new
-music lacks the chief characteristic of every true work
-of art, namely, such entirety and completeness that the
-smallest alteration in its form would disturb the meaning
-of the whole work. In a true work of art—poem, drama,
-picture, song, or symphony—it is impossible to extract one line,
-one scene, one figure, or one bar from its place and put it in
-another, without infringing the significance of the whole
-work; just as it is impossible, without infringing the life
-of an organic being, to extract an organ from one place and
-insert it in another. But in the music of Wagner’s last
-period, with the exception of certain parts of little importance
-which have an independent musical meaning, it is possible
-to make all kinds of transpositions, putting what was in
-front behind, and <i>vice, versâ</i>, without altering the musical
-sense. And the reason why these transpositions do not
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_131'>131</span>alter the sense of Wagner’s music is because the sense lies
-in the words and not in the music.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The musical score of Wagner’s later operas is like what
-the result would be should one of those versifiers—of whom
-there are now many, with tongues so broken that they can
-write verses on any theme to any rhymes in any rhythm,
-which sound as if they had a meaning—conceive the idea
-of illustrating by his verses some symphony or sonata of
-Beethoven, or some ballade of Chopin, in the following
-manner. To the first bars, of one character, he writes
-verses corresponding in his opinion to those first bars.
-Next come some bars of a different character, and he also
-writes verses corresponding in his opinion to them, but with
-no internal connection with the first verses, and, moreover,
-without rhymes and without rhythm. Such a production,
-without the music, would be exactly parallel in poetry to
-what Wagner’s operas are in music, if heard without the
-words.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But Wagner is not only a musician, he is also a poet,
-or both together; and therefore, to judge of Wagner, one
-must know his poetry also—that same poetry which the
-music has to subserve. The chief poetical production of
-Wagner is <i>The Nibelung’s Ring</i>. This work has attained
-such enormous importance in our time, and has such influence
-on all that now professes to be art, that it is necessary
-for everyone to-day to have some idea of it. I have
-carefully read through the four booklets which contain this
-work, and have drawn up a brief summary of it, which I
-give in <a href='#app3'>Appendix III</a>. I would strongly advise the reader
-(if he has not perused the poem itself, which would be
-the best thing to do) at least to read my account of it,
-so as to have an idea of this extraordinary work. It is a
-model work of counterfeit art, so gross as to be even
-ridiculous.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But we are told that it is impossible to judge of Wagner’s
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_132'>132</span>works without seeing them on the stage. The Second Day
-of this drama, which, as I was told, is the best part of the
-whole work, was given in Moscow last winter, and I went
-to see the performance.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>When I arrived the enormous theatre was already filled
-from top to bottom. There were Grand-Dukes, and the
-flower of the aristocracy, of the merchant class, of the
-learned, and of the middle-class official public. Most of
-them held the libretto, fathoming its meaning. Musicians—some
-of them elderly, grey-haired men—followed the
-music, score in hand. Evidently the performance of this
-work was an event of importance.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I was rather late, but I was told that the short prelude,
-with which the act begins, was of little importance, and
-that it did not matter having missed it. When I arrived,
-an actor sat on the stage amid decorations intended to
-represent a cave, and before something which was meant to
-represent a smith’s forge. He was dressed in trico-tights,
-with a cloak of skins, wore a wig and an artificial beard, and
-with white, weak, genteel hands (his easy movements, and
-especially the shape of his stomach and his lack of muscle
-revealed the actor) beat an impossible sword with an
-unnatural hammer in a way in which no one ever uses
-a hammer; and at the same time, opening his mouth
-in a strange way, he sang something incomprehensible.
-The music of various instruments accompanied the strange
-sounds which he emitted. From the libretto one was
-able to gather that the actor had to represent a powerful
-gnome, who lived in the cave, and who was forging a sword
-for Siegfried, whom he had reared. One could tell
-he was a gnome by the fact that the actor walked
-all the time bending the knees of his trico-covered
-legs. This gnome, still opening his mouth in the same
-strange way, long continued to sing or shout. The music
-meanwhile runs over something strange, like beginnings
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_133'>133</span>which are not continued and do not get finished. From
-the libretto one could learn that the gnome is telling
-himself about a ring which a giant had obtained, and
-which the gnome wishes to procure through Siegfried’s
-aid, while Siegfried wants a good sword, on the forging
-of which the gnome is occupied. After this conversation
-or singing to himself has gone on rather a long time,
-other sounds are heard in the orchestra, also like something
-beginning and not finishing, and another actor appears,
-with a horn slung over his shoulder, and accompanied by
-a man running on all fours dressed up as a bear, whom
-he sets at the smith-gnome. The latter runs away without
-unbending the knees of his trico-covered legs. This
-actor with the horn represented the hero, Siegfried. The
-sounds which were emitted in the orchestra on the entrance
-of this actor were intended to represent Siegfried’s character
-and are called Siegfried’s <i>leit-motiv</i>. And these sounds are
-repeated each time Siegfried appears. There is one fixed
-combination of sounds, or <i>leit-motiv</i>, for each character,
-and this <i>leit-motiv</i> is repeated every time the person whom
-it represents appears; and when anyone is mentioned the
-<i>motiv</i> is heard which relates to that person. Moreover,
-each article also has its own <i>leit-motiv</i> or chord. There
-is a <i>motiv</i> of the ring, a <i>motiv</i> of the helmet, a <i>motiv</i> of
-the apple, a <i>motiv</i> of fire, spear, sword, water, etc.; and as
-soon as the ring, helmet, or apple is mentioned, the <i>motiv</i>
-or chord of the ring, helmet, or apple is heard. The actor
-with the horn opens his mouth as unnaturally as the gnome,
-and long continues in a chanting voice to shout some words,
-and in a similar chant Mime (that is the gnome’s name)
-answers something or other to him. The meaning of this
-conversation can only be discovered from the libretto; and it is
-that Siegfried was brought up by the gnome, and therefore,
-for some reason, hates him and always wishes to kill him.
-The gnome has forged a sword for Siegfried, but Siegfried
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_134'>134</span>is dissatisfied with it. From a ten-page conversation (by the
-libretto), lasting half an hour and conducted with the same
-strange openings of the mouth and chantings, it appears
-that Siegfried’s mother gave birth to him in the wood, and
-that concerning his father all that is known is that he had
-a sword which was broken, the pieces of which are in Mime’s
-possession, and that Siegfried does not know fear and wishes
-to go out of the wood. Mime, however, does not want to
-let him go. During the conversation the music never omits,
-at the mention of father, sword, etc., to sound the <i>motive</i> of
-these people and things. After these conversations fresh
-sounds are heard—those of the god Wotan—and a wanderer
-appears. This wanderer is the god Wotan. Also dressed
-up in a wig, and also in tights, this god Wotan, standing
-in a stupid pose with a spear, thinks proper to recount
-what Mime must have known before, but what it is
-necessary to tell the audience. He does not tell it simply,
-but in the form of riddles which he orders himself to guess,
-staking his head (one does not know why) that he will guess
-right. Moreover, whenever the wanderer strikes his spear
-on the ground, fire comes out of the ground, and in the
-orchestra the sounds of spear and of fire are heard. The
-orchestra accompanies the conversation, and the <i>motive</i> of the
-people and things spoken of are always artfully intermingled.
-Besides this the music expresses feelings in the most naïve
-manner: the terrible by sounds in the bass, the frivolous by
-rapid touches in the treble, etc.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The riddles have no meaning except to tell the audience
-what the <i>nibelungs</i> are, what the giants are, what the
-gods are, and what has happened before. This conversation
-also is chanted with strangely opened mouths and
-continues for eight libretto pages, and correspondingly
-long on the stage. After this the wanderer departs, and
-Siegfried returns and talks with Mime for thirteen pages more.
-There is not a single melody the whole of this time, but
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_135'>135</span>merely intertwinings of the <i>leit-motive</i> of the people and
-things mentioned. The conversation tells that Mime wishes
-to teach Siegfried fear, and that Siegfried does not know
-what fear is. Having finished this conversation, Siegfried
-seizes one of the pieces of what is meant to represent the
-broken sword, saws it up, puts it on what is meant to
-represent the forge, melts it, and then forges it and sings:
-Heiho! heiho! heiho! Ho! ho! Aha! oho! aha! Heiaho!
-heiaho! heiaho! Ho! ho! Hahei! hoho! hahei! and Act
-I. finishes.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>As far as the question I had come to the theatre to
-decide was concerned, my mind was fully made up, as
-surely as on the question of the merits of my lady
-acquaintance’s novel when she read me the scene between
-the loose-haired maiden in the white dress and the hero
-with two white dogs and a hat with a feather <i>à la Guillaume
-Tell</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>From an author who could compose such spurious scenes,
-outraging all æsthetic feeling, as those which I had witnessed,
-there was nothing to be hoped; it may safely be
-decided that all that such an author can write will be bad,
-because he evidently does not know what a true work of
-art is. I wished to leave, but the friends I was with
-asked me to remain, declaring that one could not form
-an opinion by that one act, and that the second would be
-better. So I stopped for the second act.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Act II., night. Afterwards dawn. In general the whole
-piece is crammed with lights, clouds, moonlight, darkness,
-magic fires, thunder, etc.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The scene represents a wood, and in the wood there is a
-cave. At the entrance of the cave sits a third actor in
-tights, representing another gnome. It dawns. Enter the
-god Wotan, again with a spear, and again in the guise of a
-wanderer. Again his sounds, together with fresh sounds of
-the deepest bass that can be produced. These latter indicate
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_136'>136</span>that the dragon is speaking. Wotan awakens the dragon.
-The same bass sounds are repeated, growing yet deeper and
-deeper. First the dragon says, “I want to sleep,” but afterwards
-he crawls out of the cave. The dragon is represented
-by two men; it is dressed in a green, scaly skin, waves a tail
-at one end, while at the other it opens a kind of crocodile’s
-jaw that is fastened on, and from which flames appear. The
-dragon (who is meant to be dreadful, and may appear so
-to five-year-old children) speaks some words in a terribly
-bass voice. This is all so stupid, so like what is done in a
-booth at a fair, that it is surprising that people over seven
-years of age can witness it seriously; yet thousands of
-quasi-cultured people sit and attentively hear and see it, and
-are delighted.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Siegfried, with his horn, reappears, as does Mime also. In
-the orchestra the sounds denoting them are emitted, and
-they talk about whether Siegfried does or does not know
-what fear is. Mime goes away, and a scene commences which
-is intended to be most poetical. Siegfried, in his tights, lies
-down in a would-be beautiful pose, and alternately keeps
-silent and talks to himself. He ponders, listens to the song
-of birds, and wishes to imitate them. For this purpose
-he cuts a reed with his sword and makes a pipe. The dawn
-grows brighter and brighter; the birds sing. Siegfried tries
-to imitate the birds. In the orchestra is heard the imitation
-of birds, alternating with sounds corresponding to the words
-he speaks. But Siegfried does not succeed with his pipe-playing,
-so he plays on his horn instead. This scene is
-unendurable. Of music, <i>i.e.</i> of art serving as a means to
-transmit a state of mind experienced by the author, there is
-not even a suggestion. There is something that is absolutely
-unintelligible musically. In a musical sense a hope is continually
-experienced, followed by disappointment, as if a
-musical thought were commenced only to be broken off. If
-there are something like musical commencements, these
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_137'>137</span>commencements are so short, so encumbered with complications
-of harmony and orchestration and with effects of contrast,
-are so obscure and unfinished, and what is happening
-on the stage meanwhile is so abominably false, that it is
-difficult even to perceive these musical snatches, let alone to
-be infected by them. Above all, from the very beginning
-to the very end, and in each note, the author’s purpose is so
-audible and visible, that one sees and hears neither Siegfried
-nor the birds, but only a limited, self-opinionated German
-of bad taste and bad style, who has a most false conception of
-poetry, and who, in the rudest and most primitive manner,
-wishes to transmit to me these false and mistaken conceptions
-of his.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Everyone knows the feeling of distrust and resistance
-which is always evoked by an author’s evident predetermination.
-A narrator need only say in advance, Prepare
-to cry or to laugh, and you are sure neither to cry nor to
-laugh. But when you see that an author prescribes emotion
-at what is not touching but only laughable or disgusting,
-and when you see, moreover, that the author is fully assured
-that he has captivated you, a painfully tormenting feeling
-results, similar to what one would feel if an old, deformed
-woman put on a ball-dress and smilingly coquetted before
-you, confident of your approbation. This impression was
-strengthened by the fact that around me I saw a crowd of
-three thousand people, who not only patiently witnessed all
-this absurd nonsense, but even considered it their duty to be
-delighted with it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I somehow managed to sit out the next scene also, in
-which the monster appears, to the accompaniment of his
-bass notes intermingled with the <i>motiv</i> of Siegfried; but
-after the fight with the monster, and all the roars, fires, and
-sword-wavings, I could stand no more of it, and escaped from
-the theatre with a feeling of repulsion which, even now, I
-cannot forget.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_138'>138</span>Listening to this opera, I involuntarily thought of a
-respected, wise, educated country labourer,—one, for
-instance, of those wise and truly religious men whom I
-know among the peasants,—and I pictured to myself the
-terrible perplexity such a man would be in were he to
-witness what I was seeing that evening.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>What would he think if he knew of all the labour spent
-on such a performance, and saw that audience, those great
-ones of the earth,—old, bald-headed, grey-bearded men,
-whom he had been accustomed to respect,—sit silent and
-attentive, listening to and looking at all these stupidities for
-five hours on end? Not to speak of an adult labourer, one
-can hardly imagine even a child of over seven occupying
-himself with such a stupid, incoherent fairy tale.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And yet an enormous audience, the cream of the cultured
-upper classes, sits out five hours of this insane performance,
-and goes away imagining that by paying tribute to this
-nonsense it has acquired a fresh right to esteem itself
-advanced and enlightened.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I speak of the Moscow public. But what is the Moscow
-public? It is but a hundredth part of that public which,
-while considering itself most highly enlightened, esteems it
-a merit to have so lost the capacity of being infected by art,
-that not only can it witness this stupid sham without being
-revolted, but can even take delight in it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In Bayreuth, where these performances were first given,
-people who consider themselves finely cultured assembled
-from the ends of the earth, spent, say £100 each, to see
-this performance, and for four days running they went to
-see and hear this nonsensical rubbish, sitting it out for six
-hours each day.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But why did people go, and why do they still go to these
-performances, and why do they admire them? The question
-naturally presents itself: How is the success of Wagner’s
-works to be explained?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_139'>139</span>That success I explain to myself in this way: thanks
-to his exceptional position in having at his disposal the
-resources of a king, Wagner was able to command all
-the methods for counterfeiting art which have been
-developed by long usage, and, employing these methods
-with great ability, he produced a model work of counterfeit
-art. The reason why I have selected his work for my
-illustration is, that in no other counterfeit of art known to
-me are all the methods by which art is counterfeited—namely,
-borrowings, imitation, effects, and interestingness—so
-ably and powerfully united.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>From the subject, borrowed from antiquity, to the clouds
-and the risings of the sun and moon, Wagner, in this work,
-has made use of all that is considered poetical. We have
-here the sleeping beauty, and nymphs, and subterranean
-fires, and gnomes, and battles, and swords, and love, and
-incest, and a monster, and singing-birds: the whole arsenal
-of the poetical is brought into action.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Moreover, everything is imitative: the decorations are
-imitated and the costumes are imitated. All is just as,
-according to the data supplied by archæology, they would
-have been in antiquity. The very sounds are imitative, for
-Wagner, who was not destitute of musical talent, invented
-just such sounds as imitate the strokes of a hammer, the
-hissing of molten iron, the singing of birds, etc.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Furthermore, in this work everything is in the highest
-degree striking in its effects and in its peculiarities: its
-monsters, its magic fires, and its scenes under water; the
-darkness in which the audience sit, the invisibility of the
-orchestra, and the hitherto unemployed combinations of
-harmony.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And besides, it is all interesting. The interest lies not
-only in the question who will kill whom, and who will
-marry whom, and who is whose son, and what will happen
-next?—the interest lies also in the relation of the music
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_140'>140</span>to the text. The rolling waves of the Rhine—now how
-is that to be expressed in music? An evil gnome appears—how
-is the music to express an evil gnome?—and how
-is it to express the sensuality of this gnome? How will
-bravery, fire, or apples be expressed in music? How are
-the <i>leit-motive</i> of the people speaking to be interwoven
-with the <i>leit-motive</i> of the people and objects about whom
-they speak? Besides, the music has a further interest.
-It diverges from all formerly accepted laws, and most
-unexpected and totally new modulations crop up (as is
-not only possible but even easy in music having no inner
-law of its being); the dissonances are new, and are allowed
-in a new way—and this, too, is interesting.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And it is this poeticality, imitativeness, effectfulness, and
-interestingness which, thanks to the peculiarities of Wagner’s
-talent and to the advantageous position in which he was
-placed, are in these productions carried to the highest pitch
-of perfection, that so act on the spectator, hypnotising him
-as one would be hypnotised who should listen for several
-consecutive hours to the ravings of a maniac pronounced
-with great oratorical power.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>People say, “You cannot judge without having seen
-Wagner performed at Bayreuth: in the dark, where the
-orchestra is out of sight concealed under the stage, and
-where the performance is brought to the highest perfection.”
-And this just proves that we have here no question
-of art, but one of hypnotism. It is just what the spiritualists
-say. To convince you of the reality of their apparitions,
-they usually say, “You cannot judge; you must try
-it, be present at several séances,” <i>i.e.</i> come and sit silent
-in the dark for hours together in the same room with
-semi-sane people, and repeat this some ten times over, and
-you shall see all that we see.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Yes, naturally! Only place yourself in such conditions,
-and you may see what you will. But this can be still more
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_141'>141</span>quickly attained by getting drunk or smoking opium. It
-is the same when listening to an opera of Wagner’s. Sit
-in the dark for four days in company with people who
-are not quite normal, and, through the auditory nerves,
-subject your brain to the strongest action of the sounds
-best adapted to excite it, and you will no doubt be reduced
-to an abnormal condition and be enchanted by absurdities.
-But to attain this end you do not even need four days;
-the five hours during which one “day” is enacted, as in
-Moscow, are quite enough. Nor are five hours needed;
-even one hour is enough for people who have no clear
-conception of what art should be, and who have come to
-the conclusion in advance that what they are going to see
-is excellent, and that indifference or dissatisfaction with
-this work will serve as a proof of their inferiority and
-lack of culture.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I observed the audience present at this representation.
-The people who led the whole audience and gave the tone to
-it were those who had previously been hypnotised, and who
-again succumbed to the hypnotic influence to which they
-were accustomed. These hypnotised people, being in an
-abnormal condition, were perfectly enraptured. Moreover,
-all the art critics, who lack the capacity to be infected by
-art and therefore always especially prize works like Wagner’s
-opera where it is all an affair of the intellect, also, with
-much profundity, expressed their approval of a work affording
-such ample material for ratiocination. And following
-these two groups went that large city crowd (indifferent to
-art, with their capacity to be infected by it perverted and
-partly atrophied), headed by the princes, millionaires, and
-art patrons, who, like sorry harriers, keep close to those who
-most loudly and decidedly express their opinion.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“Oh yes, certainly! What poetry! Marvellous! Especially
-the birds!” “Yes, yes! I am quite vanquished!”
-exclaim these people, repeating in various tones what they
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_142'>142</span>have just heard from men whose opinion appears to them
-authoritative.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>If some people do feel insulted by the absurdity and
-spuriousness of the whole thing, they are timidly silent, as
-sober men are timid and silent when surrounded by tipsy
-ones.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And thus, thanks to the masterly skill with which it
-counterfeits art while having nothing in common with it,
-a meaningless, coarse, spurious production finds acceptance
-all over the world, costs millions of roubles to produce, and
-assists more and more to pervert the taste of people of the
-upper classes and their conception of what is art.</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_143'>143</span>
- <h2 id='chap14' class='c003'>CHAPTER XIV</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>I know that most men—not only those considered clever,
-but even those who are very clever and capable of
-understanding most difficult scientific, mathematical or
-philosophic problems—can very seldom discern even the
-simplest and most obvious truth if it be such as to oblige
-them to admit the falsity of conclusions they have formed,
-perhaps with much difficulty—conclusions of which they
-are proud, which they have taught to others, and on which
-they have built their lives. And therefore I have little
-hope that what I adduce as to the perversion of art and
-taste in our society will be accepted or even seriously
-considered. Nevertheless, I must state fully the inevitable
-conclusion to which my investigation into the question of
-art has brought me. This investigation has brought me to
-the conviction that almost all that our society considers to
-be art, good art, and the whole of art, far from being real
-and good art, and the whole of art, is not even art at all,
-but only a counterfeit of it. This position, I know, will
-seem very strange and paradoxical; but if we once acknowledge
-art to be a human activity by means of which some
-people transmit their feelings to others (and not a service
-of Beauty, nor a manifestation of the Idea, and so forth), we
-shall inevitably have to admit this further conclusion also.
-If it is true that art is an activity by means of which one
-man having experienced a feeling intentionally transmits it
-to others, then we have inevitably to admit further, that of
-all that among us is termed the art of the upper classes—of all
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_144'>144</span>those novels, stories, dramas, comedies, pictures, sculptures,
-symphonies, operas, operettas, ballets, etc., which profess to
-be works of art—scarcely one in a hundred thousand proceeds
-from an emotion felt by its author, all the rest being
-but manufactured counterfeits of art in which borrowing,
-imitating, effects, and interestingness replace the contagion
-of feeling. That the proportion of real productions
-of art is to the counterfeits as one to some hundreds of
-thousands or even more, may be seen by the following
-calculation. I have read somewhere that the artist painters
-in Paris alone number 30,000; there will probably be as
-many in England, as many in Germany, and as many in
-Russia, Italy, and the smaller states combined. So that in
-all there will be in Europe, say, 120,000 painters; and there
-are probably as many musicians and as many literary artists.
-If these 360,000 individuals produce three works a year each
-(and many of them produce ten or more), then each year
-yields over a million so-called works of art. How many, then,
-must have been produced in the last ten years, and how
-many in the whole time since upper-class art broke off from
-the art of the whole people? Evidently millions. Yet who
-of all the connoisseurs of art has received impressions from
-all these pseudo works of art? Not to mention all the labouring
-classes who have no conception of these productions,
-even people of the upper classes cannot know one in a
-thousand of them all, and cannot remember those they
-have known. These works all appear under the guise of
-art, produce no impression on anyone (except when they
-serve as pastimes for the idle crowd of rich people), and
-vanish utterly.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In reply to this it is usually said that without this
-enormous number of unsuccessful attempts we should not
-have the real works of art. But such reasoning is as though
-a baker, in reply to a reproach that his bread was bad, were
-to say that if it were not for the hundreds of spoiled loaves
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_145'>145</span>there would not be any well-baked ones. It is true that
-where there is gold there is also much sand; but that can
-not serve as a reason for talking a lot of nonsense in order
-to say something wise.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>We are surrounded by productions considered artistic.
-Thousands of verses, thousands of poems, thousands of novels,
-thousands of dramas, thousands of pictures, thousands of
-musical pieces, follow one after another. All the verses
-describe love, or nature, or the author’s state of mind, and
-in all of them rhyme and rhythm are observed. All the
-dramas and comedies are splendidly mounted and are performed
-by admirably trained actors. All the novels are
-divided into chapters; all of them describe love, contain
-effective situations, and correctly describe the details of life.
-All the symphonies contain <i>allegro</i>, <i>andante</i>, <i>scherzo</i>, and
-<i>finale</i>; all consist of modulations and chords, and are played
-by highly-trained musicians. All the pictures, in gold frames,
-saliently depict faces and sundry accessories. But among
-these productions in the various branches of art there is in
-each branch one among hundreds of thousands, not only
-somewhat better than the rest, but differing from them as a
-diamond differs from paste. The one is priceless, the others
-not only have no value but are worse than valueless, for
-they deceive and pervert taste. And yet, externally, they
-are, to a man of perverted or atrophied artistic perception,
-precisely alike.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In our society the difficulty of recognising real works of
-art is further increased by the fact that the external quality
-of the work in false productions is not only no worse, but
-often better, than in real ones; the counterfeit is often
-more effective than the real, and its subject more interesting.
-How is one to discriminate? How is one to find a production
-in no way distinguished in externals from hundreds of thousands
-of others intentionally made to imitate it precisely?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>For a country peasant of unperverted taste this is as
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_146'>146</span>easy as it is for an animal of unspoilt scent to follow
-the trace he needs among a thousand others in wood or
-forest. The animal unerringly finds what he needs. So
-also the man, if only his natural qualities have not been
-perverted, will, without fail, select from among thousands
-of objects the real work of art he requires—that infecting
-him with the feeling experienced by the artist. But it is
-not so with those whose taste has been perverted by their
-education and life. The receptive feeling for art of these
-people is atrophied, and in valuing artistic productions they
-must be guided by discussion and study, which discussion
-and study completely confuse them. So that most
-people in our society are quite unable to distinguish a work
-of art from the grossest counterfeit. People sit for whole
-hours in concert-rooms and theatres listening to the new
-composers, consider it a duty to read the novels of the
-famous modern novelists and to look at pictures representing
-either something incomprehensible or just the very
-things they see much better in real life; and, above all,
-they consider it incumbent on them to be enraptured by
-all this, imagining it all to be art, while at the same time
-they will pass real works of art by, not only without
-attention, but even with contempt, merely because, in their
-circle, these works are not included in the list of works
-of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>A few days ago I was returning home from a walk feeling
-depressed, as occurs sometimes. On nearing the house I
-heard the loud singing of a large choir of peasant women.
-They were welcoming my daughter, celebrating her return
-home after her marriage. In this singing, with its cries
-and clanging of scythes, such a definite feeling of joy,
-cheerfulness, and energy was expressed, that, without
-noticing how it infected me, I continued my way towards
-the house in a better mood, and reached home smiling and
-quite in good spirits. That same evening, a visitor, an
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_147'>147</span>admirable musician, famed for his execution of classical
-music, and particularly of Beethoven, played us Beethoven’s
-sonata, Opus 101. For the benefit of those who might
-otherwise attribute my judgment of that sonata of Beethoven
-to non-comprehension of it, I should mention that whatever
-other people understand of that sonata and of other
-productions of Beethoven’s later period, I, being very
-susceptible to music, equally understood. For a long time
-I used to atune myself so as to delight in those shapeless
-improvisations which form the subject-matter of the works
-of Beethoven’s later period, but I had only to consider the
-question of art seriously, and to compare the impression
-I received from Beethoven’s later works with those pleasant,
-clear, and strong musical impressions which are transmitted,
-for instance, by the melodies of Bach (his arias), Haydn,
-Mozart, Chopin (when his melodies are not overloaded
-with complications and ornamention), and of Beethoven
-himself in his earlier period, and above all, with the
-impressions produced by folk-songs,—Italian, Norwegian,
-or Russian,—by the Hungarian <i>tzardas</i>, and other such
-simple, clear, and powerful music, and the obscure, almost
-unhealthy excitement from Beethoven’s later pieces that I
-had artificially evoked in myself was immediately destroyed.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>On the completion of the performance (though it was
-noticeable that everyone had become dull) those present, in
-the accepted manner, warmly praised Beethoven’s profound
-production, and did not forget to add that formerly they
-had not been able to understand that last period of his,
-but that they now saw that he was really then at his very
-best. And when I ventured to compare the impression
-made on me by the singing of the peasant women—an
-impression which had been shared by all who heard it—with
-the effect of this sonata, the admirers of Beethoven only
-smiled contemptuously, not considering it necessary to reply
-to such strange remarks.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_148'>148</span>But, for all that, the song of the peasant women was real
-art, transmitting a definite and strong feeling; while the
-101st sonata of Beethoven was only an unsuccessful attempt
-at art, containing no definite feeling and therefore not
-infectious.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>For my work on art I have this winter read diligently,
-though with great effort, the celebrated novels and stories,
-praised by all Europe, written by Zola, Bourget, Huysmans,
-and Kipling. At the same time I chanced on a story in a
-child’s magazine, and by a quite unknown writer, which told
-of the Easter preparations in a poor widow’s family. The
-story tells how the mother managed with difficulty to obtain
-some wheat-flour, which she poured on the table ready to
-knead. She then went out to procure some yeast, telling
-the children not to leave the hut, and to take care of the
-flour. When the mother had gone, some other children
-ran shouting near the window, calling those in the hut to
-come to play. The children forgot their mother’s warning,
-ran into the street, and were soon engrossed in the game.
-The mother, on her return with the yeast, finds a hen
-on the table throwing the last of the flour to her chickens,
-who were busily picking it out of the dust of the earthen
-floor. The mother, in despair, scolds the children, who cry
-bitterly. And the mother begins to feel pity for them—but
-the white flour has all gone. So to mend matters she
-decides to make the Easter cake with sifted rye-flour,
-brushing it over with white of egg and surrounding it
-with eggs. “Rye-bread which we bake is akin to any
-cake,” says the mother, using a rhyming proverb to console
-the children for not having an Easter cake made with white
-flour. And the children, quickly passing from despair to
-rapture, repeat the proverb and await the Easter cake more
-merrily even than before.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Well! the reading of the novels and stories by Zola,
-Bourget, Huysmans, Kipling, and others, handling the most
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_149'>149</span>harrowing subjects, did not touch me for one moment, and
-I was provoked with the authors all the while, as one is
-provoked with a man who considers you so naïve that he
-does not even conceal the trick by which he intends to take
-you in. From the first lines you see the intention with
-which the book is written, and the details all become superfluous,
-and one feels dull. Above all, one knows that the
-author had no other feeling all the time than a desire to
-write a story or a novel, and so one receives no artistic impression.
-On the other hand, I could not tear myself away
-from the unknown author’s tale of the children and the
-chickens, because I was at once infected by the feeling which
-the author had evidently experienced, re-evoked in himself,
-and transmitted.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Vasnetsoff is one of our Russian painters. He has painted
-ecclesiastical pictures in Kieff Cathedral, and everyone
-praises him as the founder of some new, elevated kind of
-Christian art. He worked at those pictures for ten years,
-was paid tens of thousands of roubles for them, and they are
-all simply bad imitations of imitations of imitations, destitute
-of any spark of feeling. And this same Vasnetsoff drew a
-picture for Tourgenieff’s story “The Quail” (in which it is
-told how, in his son’s presence, a father killed a quail and
-felt pity for it), showing the boy asleep with pouting upper
-lip, and above him, as a dream, the quail. And this picture
-is a true work of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In the English Academy of 1897 two pictures were
-exhibited together; one of which, by J. C. Dolman, was the
-temptation of St. Anthony. The Saint is on his knees praying.
-Behind him stands a naked woman and animals of some
-kind. It is apparent that the naked woman pleased the
-artist very much, but that Anthony did not concern him at
-all; and that, so far from the temptation being terrible to
-him (the artist) it is highly agreeable. And therefore if
-there be any art in this picture, it is very nasty and false.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_150'>150</span>Next in the same book of academy pictures comes a picture
-by Langley, showing a stray beggar boy, who has evidently
-been called in by a woman who has taken pity on him.
-The boy, pitifully drawing his bare feet under the bench,
-is eating; the woman is looking on, probably considering
-whether he will not want some more; and a girl of about
-seven, leaning on her arm, is carefully and seriously looking
-on, not taking her eyes from the hungry boy, and evidently
-understanding for the first time what poverty is, and what
-inequality among people is, and asking herself why she has
-everything provided for her while this boy goes bare-foot
-and hungry? She feels sorry and yet pleased. And she
-loves both the boy and goodness.... And one feels that
-the artist loved this girl, and that she too loves. And this
-picture, by an artist who, I think, is not very widely known,
-is an admirable and true work of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I remember seeing a performance of <i>Hamlet</i> by Rossi.
-Both the tragedy itself and the performer who took the
-chief part are considered by our critics to represent the
-climax of supreme dramatic art. And yet, both from the
-subject-matter of the drama and from the performance, I
-experienced all the time that peculiar suffering which is
-caused by false imitations of works of art. And I lately
-read of a theatrical performance among the savage tribe the
-Voguls. A spectator describes the play. A big Vogul and
-a little one, both dressed in reindeer skins, represent a reindeer-doe
-and its young. A third Vogul, with a bow, represents
-a huntsman on snow-shoes, and a fourth imitates with
-his voice a bird that warns the reindeer of their danger. The
-play is that the huntsman follows the track that the doe
-with its young one has travelled. The deer run off the
-scene and again reappear. (Such performances take place
-in a small tent-house.) The huntsman gains more and more
-on the pursued. The little deer is tired, and presses against
-its mother. The doe stops to draw breath. The hunter
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_151'>151</span>comes up with them and draws his bow. But just then the
-bird sounds its note, warning the deer of their danger.
-They escape. Again there is a chase, and again the hunter
-gains on them, catches them and lets fly his arrow. The
-arrow strikes the young deer. Unable to run, the little one
-presses against its mother. The mother licks its wound.
-The hunter draws another arrow. The audience, as the
-eye-witness describes them, are paralysed with suspense;
-deep groans and even weeping is heard among them. And,
-from the mere description, I felt that this was a true work
-of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>What I am saying will be considered irrational paradox,
-at which one can only be amazed; but for all that I must
-say what I think, namely, that people of our circle, of whom
-some compose verses, stories, novels, operas, symphonies,
-and sonatas, paint all kinds of pictures and make statues,
-while others hear and look at these things, and again others
-appraise and criticise it all, discuss, condemn, triumph, and
-raise monuments to one another generation after generation,—that
-all these people, with very few exceptions, artists,
-and public, and critics, have never (except in childhood and
-earliest youth, before hearing any discussions on art), experienced
-that simple feeling familiar to the plainest man
-and even to a child, that sense of infection with another’s
-feeling,—compelling us to joy in another’s gladness, to
-sorrow at another’s grief, and to mingle souls with another,—which
-is the very essence of art. And therefore these
-people not only cannot distinguish true works of art from
-counterfeits, but continually mistake for real art the worst
-and most artificial, while they do not even perceive works
-of real art, because the counterfeits are always more ornate,
-while true art is modest.</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_152'>152</span>
- <h2 id='chap15' class='c003'>CHAPTER XV</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>Art, in our society, has been so perverted that not only has
-bad art come to be considered good, but even the very perception
-of what art really is has been lost. In order to be
-able to speak about the art of our society, it is, therefore,
-first of all necessary to distinguish art from counterfeit art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>There is one indubitable indication distinguishing real
-art from its counterfeit, namely, the infectiousness of art.
-If a man, without exercising effort and without altering his
-standpoint, on reading, hearing, or seeing another man’s
-work, experiences a mental condition which unites him
-with that man and with other people who also partake of
-that work of art, then the object evoking that condition is
-a work of art. And however poetical, realistic, effectful, or
-interesting a work may be, it is not a work of art if it does
-not evoke that feeling (quite distinct from all other feelings)
-of joy, and of spiritual union with another (the author) and
-with others (those who are also infected by it).</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>It is true that this indication is an <i>internal</i> one, and that
-there are people who have forgotten what the action of real
-art is, who expect something else from art (in our society
-the great majority are in this state), and that therefore such
-people may mistake for this æsthetic feeling the feeling of
-divertisement and a certain excitement which they receive
-from counterfeits of art. But though it is impossible to
-undeceive these people, just as it is impossible to convince
-a man suffering from “Daltonism” that green is not red,
-yet, for all that, this indication remains perfectly definite
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_153'>153</span>to those whose feeling for art is neither perverted nor
-atrophied, and it clearly distinguishes the feeling produced
-by art from all other feelings.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The chief peculiarity of this feeling is that the receiver of
-a true artistic impression is so united to the artist that he
-feels as if the work were his own and not someone else’s,—as
-if what it expresses were just what he had long been
-wishing to express. A real work of art destroys, in the
-consciousness of the receiver, the separation between himself
-and the artist, nor that alone, but also between himself
-and all whose minds receive this work of art. In this
-freeing of our personality from its separation and isolation,
-in this uniting of it with others, lies the chief characteristic
-and the great attractive force of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>If a man is infected by the author’s condition of soul, if
-he feels this emotion and this union with others, then the
-object which has effected this is art; but if there be no
-such infection, if there be not this union with the author
-and with others who are moved by the same work—then it
-is not art. And not only is infection a sure sign of art,
-but the degree of infectiousness is also the sole measure of
-excellence in art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><i>The stronger the infection the better is the art, as art</i>,
-speaking now apart from its subject-matter, <i>i.e.</i> not considering
-the quality of the feelings it transmits.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And the degree of the infectiousness of art depends on
-three conditions:—</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>(1) On the greater or lesser individuality of the feeling
-transmitted; (2) on the greater or lesser clearness with
-which the feeling is transmitted; (3) on the sincerity of the
-artist, <i>i.e.</i> on the greater or lesser force with which the artist
-himself feels the emotion he transmits.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The more individual the feeling transmitted the more
-strongly does it act on the receiver; the more individual
-the state of soul into which he is transferred the more
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_154'>154</span>pleasure does the receiver obtain, and therefore the more
-readily and strongly does he join in it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The clearness of expression assists infection, because the
-receiver, who mingles in consciousness with the author, is
-the better satisfied the more clearly the feeling is transmitted,
-which, as it seems to him, he has long known and
-felt, and for which he has only now found expression.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But most of all is the degree of infectiousness of art
-increased by the degree of sincerity in the artist. As soon
-as the spectator, hearer, or reader feels that the artist is
-infected by his own production, and writes, sings, or plays
-for himself and not merely to act on others, this mental condition
-of the artist infects the receiver; and, contrariwise,
-as soon as the spectator, reader, or hearer feels that the author
-is not writing, singing, or playing for his own satisfaction,—does
-not himself feel what he wishes to express,—but is doing
-it for him, the receiver, a resistance immediately springs up,
-and the most individual and the newest feelings and the
-cleverest technique not only fail to produce any infection
-but actually repel.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I have mentioned three conditions of contagiousness in
-art, but they may all be summed up into one, the last,
-sincerity, <i>i.e.</i> that the artist should be impelled by an inner
-need to express his feeling. That condition includes the
-first; for if the artist is sincere he will express the feeling
-as he experienced it. And as each man is different from
-everyone else, his feeling will be individual for everyone
-else; and the more individual it is,—the more the artist
-has drawn it from the depths of his nature,—the more
-sympathetic and sincere will it be. And this same sincerity
-will impel the artist to find a clear expression of the feeling
-which he wishes to transmit.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Therefore this third condition—sincerity—is the most
-important of the three. It is always complied with in
-peasant art, and this explains why such art always acts so
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_155'>155</span>powerfully; but it is a condition almost entirely absent
-from our upper-class art, which is continually produced by
-artists actuated by personal aims of covetousness or vanity.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Such are the three conditions which divide art from its
-counterfeits, and which also decide the quality of every
-work of art apart from its subject-matter.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The absence of any one of these conditions excludes a
-work from the category of art and relegates it to that of
-art’s counterfeits. If the work does not transmit the
-artist’s peculiarity of feeling, and is therefore not individual,
-if it is unintelligibly expressed, or if it has not proceeded
-from the author’s inner need for expression—it is not a
-work of art. If all these conditions are present, even in
-the smallest degree, then the work, even if a weak one, is
-yet a work of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The presence in various degrees of these three conditions:
-individuality, clearness, and sincerity, decides the merit of
-a work of art, as art, apart from subject-matter. All works
-of art take rank of merit according to the degree in which
-they fulfil the first, the second, and the third of these conditions.
-In one the individuality of the feeling transmitted
-may predominate; in another, clearness of expression; in a
-third, sincerity; while a fourth may have sincerity and
-individuality but be deficient in clearness; a fifth, individuality
-and clearness, but less sincerity; and so forth, in all
-possible degrees and combinations.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Thus is art divided from not art, and thus is the quality
-of art, as art, decided, independently of its subject-matter,
-<i>i.e.</i> apart from whether the feelings it transmits are good or
-bad.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But how are we to define good and bad art with reference
-to its subject-matter?</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_156'>156</span>
- <h2 id='chap16' class='c003'>CHAPTER XVI</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>How in art are we to decide what is good and what is
-bad in subject-matter?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Art, like speech, is a means of communication, and
-therefore of progress, <i>i.e.</i> of the movement of humanity
-forward towards perfection. Speech renders accessible to
-men of the latest generations all the knowledge discovered
-by the experience and reflection, both of preceding generations
-and of the best and foremost men of their own times;
-art renders accessible to men of the latest generations all
-the feelings experienced by their predecessors, and those
-also which are being felt by their best and foremost contemporaries.
-And as the evolution of knowledge proceeds
-by truer and more necessary knowledge dislodging and
-replacing what is mistaken and unnecessary, so the evolution
-of feeling proceeds through art,—feelings less kind and
-less needful for the well-being of mankind are replaced by
-others kinder and more needful for that end. That is the
-purpose of art. And, speaking now of its subject-matter,
-the more art fulfils that purpose the better the art, and the
-less it fulfils it the worse the art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And the appraisement of feelings (<i>i.e.</i> the acknowledgment
-of these or those feelings as being more or less good, more
-or less necessary for the well-being of mankind) is made by
-the religious perception of the age.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In every period of history, and in every human society,
-there exists an understanding of the meaning of life which
-represents the highest level to which men of that society
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_157'>157</span>have attained,—an understanding defining the highest good
-at which that society aims. And this understanding is the
-religious perception of the given time and society. And
-this religious perception is always clearly expressed by some
-advanced men, and more or less vividly perceived by all the
-members of the society. Such a religious perception and its
-corresponding expression exists always in every society. If
-it appears to us that in our society there is no religious
-perception, this is not because there really is none, but only
-because we do not want to see it. And we often wish not
-to see it because it exposes the fact that our life is inconsistent
-with that religious perception.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Religious perception in a society is like the direction of
-a flowing river. If the river flows at all, it must have
-a direction. If a society lives, there must be a religious
-perception indicating the direction in which, more or less
-consciously, all its members tend.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And so there always has been, and there is, a religious
-perception in every society. And it is by the standard of
-this religious perception that the feelings transmitted by art
-have always been estimated. Only on the basis of this
-religious perception of their age have men always chosen from
-the endlessly varied spheres of art that art which transmitted
-feelings making religious perception operative in actual life.
-And such art has always been highly valued and encouraged;
-while art transmitting feelings already outlived, flowing from
-the antiquated religious perceptions of a former age, has
-always been condemned and despised. All the rest of art,
-transmitting those most diverse feelings by means of which
-people commune together, was not condemned, and was
-tolerated, if only it did not transmit feelings contrary to
-religious perception. Thus, for instance, among the Greeks,
-art transmitting the feeling of beauty, strength, and courage
-(Hesiod, Homer, Phidias) was chosen, approved, and encouraged;
-while art transmitting feelings of rude sensuality,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_158'>158</span>despondency, and effeminacy was condemned and despised.
-Among the Jews, art transmitting feelings of devotion and
-submission to the God of the Hebrews and to His will (the
-epic of Genesis, the prophets, the Psalms) was chosen and
-encouraged, while art transmitting feelings of idolatry (the
-golden calf) was condemned and despised. All the rest of
-art—stories, songs, dances, ornamentation of houses, of
-utensils, and of clothes—which was not contrary to religious
-perception, was neither distinguished nor discussed. Thus,
-in regard to its subject-matter, has art been appraised always
-and everywhere, and thus it should be appraised, for this
-attitude towards art proceeds from the fundamental characteristics
-of human nature, and those characteristics do not
-change.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I know that according to an opinion current in our times,
-religion is a superstition, which humanity has outgrown, and
-that it is therefore assumed that no such thing exists as a
-religious perception common to us all by which art, in our
-time, can be estimated. I know that this is the opinion
-current in the pseudo-cultured circles of to-day. People
-who do not acknowledge Christianity in its true meaning
-because it undermines all their social privileges, and who,
-therefore, invent all kinds of philosophic and æsthetic theories
-to hide from themselves the meaninglessness and wrongness
-of their lives, cannot think otherwise. These people intentionally,
-or sometimes unintentionally, confusing the conception
-of a religious cult with the conception of religious
-perception, think that by denying the cult they get rid of
-religious perception. But even the very attacks on religion,
-and the attempts to establish a life-conception contrary to
-the religious perception of our times, most clearly demonstrate
-the existence of a religious perception condemning
-the lives that are not in harmony with it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>If humanity progresses, <i>i.e.</i> moves forward, there must
-inevitably be a guide to the direction of that movement.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_159'>159</span>And religions have always furnished that guide. All
-history shows that the progress of humanity is accomplished
-not otherwise than under the guidance of religion. But if
-the race cannot progress without the guidance of religion,—and
-progress is always going on, and consequently
-also in our own times,—then there must be a religion
-of our times. So that, whether it pleases or displeases
-the so-called cultured people of to-day, they must admit
-the existence of religion—not of a religious cult, Catholic,
-Protestant, or another, but of religious perception—which,
-even in our times, is the guide always present where
-there is any progress. And if a religious perception exists
-amongst us, then our art should be appraised on the
-basis of that religious perception; and, as has always
-and everywhere been the case, art transmitting feelings
-flowing from the religious perception of our time should
-be chosen from all the indifferent art, should be acknowledged,
-highly esteemed, and encouraged; while art running
-counter to that perception should be condemned and
-despised, and all the remaining indifferent art should
-neither be distinguished nor encouraged.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The religious perception of our time, in its widest and
-most practical application, is the consciousness that our well-being,
-both material and spiritual, individual and collective,
-temporal and eternal, lies in the growth of brotherhood
-among all men—in their loving harmony with one another.
-This perception is not only expressed by Christ and all the
-best men of past ages, it is not only repeated in the most
-varied forms and from most diverse sides by the best men
-of our own times, but it already serves as a clue to all the
-complex labour of humanity, consisting as this labour does,
-on the one hand, in the destruction of physical and moral
-obstacles to the union of men, and, on the other hand, in
-establishing the principles common to all men which can
-and should unite them into one universal brotherhood.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_160'>160</span>And it is on the basis of this perception that we should
-appraise all the phenomena of our life, and, among the rest,
-our art also; choosing from all its realms whatever transmits
-feelings flowing from this religious perception, highly prizing
-and encouraging such art, rejecting whatever is contrary to
-this perception, and not attributing to the rest of art an
-importance not properly pertaining to it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The chief mistake made by people of the upper classes
-of the time of the so-called Renaissance,—a mistake which
-we still perpetuate,—was not that they ceased to value and
-to attach importance to religious art (people of that period
-could not attach importance to it, because, like our own
-upper classes, they could not believe in what the majority
-considered to be religion), but their mistake was that they
-set up in place of religious art which was lacking, an
-insignificant art which aimed only at giving pleasure, <i>i.e.</i>
-they began to choose, to value, and to encourage, in place
-of religious art, something which, in any case, did not deserve
-such esteem and encouragement.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>One of the Fathers of the Church said that the great
-evil is not that men do not know God, but that they have
-set up, instead of God, that which is not God. So also with
-art. The great misfortune of the people of the upper
-classes of our time is not so much that they are without a
-religious art, as that, instead of a supreme religious art,
-chosen from all the rest as being specially important and
-valuable, they have chosen a most insignificant and, usually,
-harmful art, which aims at pleasing certain people, and
-which, therefore, if only by its exclusive nature, stands in
-contradiction to that Christian principle of universal union
-which forms the religious perception of our time. Instead
-of religious art, an empty and often vicious art is set up,
-and this hides from men’s notice the need of that true
-religious art which should be present in life in order to
-improve it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_161'>161</span>It is true that art which satisfies the demands of the
-religious perception of our time is quite unlike former
-art, but, notwithstanding this dissimilarity, to a man
-who does not intentionally hide the truth from himself,
-it is very clear and definite what does form the religious
-art of our age. In former times, when the highest
-religious perception united only some people (who, even
-if they formed a large society, were yet but one
-society surrounded by others—Jews, or Athenian or Roman
-citizens), the feelings transmitted by the art of that time
-flowed from a desire for the might, greatness, glory, and
-prosperity of that society, and the heroes of art might be
-people who contributed to that prosperity by strength, by
-craft, by fraud, or by cruelty (Ulysses, Jacob, David, Samson,
-Hercules, and all the heroes). But the religious perception
-of our times does not select any one society of men; on
-the contrary, it demands the union of all—absolutely of all
-people without exception—and above every other virtue it
-sets brotherly love to all men. And, therefore, the feelings
-transmitted by the art of our time not only cannot coincide
-with the feelings transmitted by former art, but must run
-counter to them.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Christian, truly Christian, art has been so long in establishing
-itself, and has not yet established itself, just because the
-Christian religious perception was not one of those small
-steps by which humanity advances regularly; but was an
-enormous revolution, which, if it has not already altered,
-must inevitably alter the entire life-conception of mankind,
-and, consequently, the whole internal organisation of their
-life. It is true that the life of humanity, like that of an
-individual, moves regularly; but in that regular movement
-come, as it were, turning-points, which sharply divide the
-preceding from the subsequent life. Christianity was such
-a turning-point; such, at least, it must appear to us who
-live by the Christian perception of life. Christian perception
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_162'>162</span>gave another, a new direction to all human feelings, and
-therefore completely altered both the contents and the
-significance of art. The Greeks could make use of Persian
-art and the Romans could use Greek art, or, similarly, the
-Jews could use Egyptian art,—the fundamental ideals
-were one and the same. Now the ideal was the greatness
-and prosperity of the Persians, now the greatness
-and prosperity of the Greeks, now that of the Romans.
-The same art was transferred into other conditions, and
-served new nations. But the Christian ideal changed
-and reversed everything, so that, as the Gospel puts it,
-“That which was exalted among men has become an
-abomination in the sight of God.” The ideal is no longer
-the greatness of Pharaoh or of a Roman emperor, not the
-beauty of a Greek nor the wealth of Phœnicia, but humility,
-purity, compassion, love. The hero is no longer Dives, but
-Lazarus the beggar; not Mary Magdalene in the day of her
-beauty, but in the day of her repentance; not those who
-acquire wealth, but those who have abandoned it; not those
-who dwell in palaces, but those who dwell in catacombs and
-huts; not those who rule over others, but those who
-acknowledge no authority but God’s. And the greatest
-work of art is no longer a cathedral of victory<a id='r84' /><a href='#f84' class='c008'><sup>[84]</sup></a> with statues
-of conquerors, but the representation of a human soul
-so transformed by love that a man who is tormented and
-murdered yet pities and loves his persecutors.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And the change is so great that men of the Christian
-world find it difficult to resist the inertia of the heathen
-art to which they have been accustomed all their lives. The
-subject-matter of Christian religious art is so new to them,
-so unlike the subject-matter of former art, that it seems to
-them as though Christian art were a denial of art, and they
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_163'>163</span>cling desperately to the old art. But this old art, having
-no longer, in our day, any source in religious perception,
-has lost its meaning, and we shall have to abandon it
-whether we wish to or not.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The essence of the Christian perception consists in the
-recognition by every man of his sonship to God, and of the
-consequent union of men with God and with one another,
-as is said in the Gospel (John xvii. 21<a id='r85' /><a href='#f85' class='c008'><sup>[85]</sup></a>). Therefore the
-subject-matter of Christian art is such feeling as can unite
-men with God and with one another.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The expression <i>unite men with God and with one
-another</i> may seem obscure to people accustomed to the
-misuse of these words which is so customary, but the words
-have a perfectly clear meaning nevertheless. They indicate
-that the Christian union of man (in contradiction to the
-partial, exclusive union of only some men) is that which
-unites all without exception.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Art, all art, has this characteristic, that it unites
-people. Every art causes those to whom the artist’s
-feeling is transmitted to unite in soul with the artist, and
-also with all who receive the same impression. But non-Christian
-art, while uniting some people together, makes
-that very union a cause of separation between these united
-people and others; so that union of this kind is often a
-source, not only of division, but even of enmity towards
-others. Such is all patriotic art, with its anthems, poems,
-and monuments; such is all Church art, <i>i.e.</i> the art of
-certain cults, with their images, statues, processions, and
-other local ceremonies. Such art is belated and non-Christian
-art, uniting the people of one cult only to
-separate them yet more sharply from the members of other
-cults, and even to place them in relations of hostility to
-each other. Christian art is only such as tends to unite all
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_164'>164</span>without exception, either by evoking in them the perception
-that each man and all men stand in like relation
-towards God and towards their neighbour, or by evoking in
-them identical feelings, which may even be the very simplest
-provided only that they are not repugnant to Christianity
-and are natural to everyone without exception.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Good Christian art of our time may be unintelligible to
-people because of imperfections in its form, or because men
-are inattentive to it, but it must be such that all men can
-experience the feelings it transmits. It must be the art,
-not of some one group of people, nor of one class, nor of
-one nationality, nor of one religious cult; that is, it must
-not transmit feelings which are accessible only to a man
-educated in a certain way, or only to an aristocrat, or a
-merchant, or only to a Russian, or a native of Japan,
-or a Roman Catholic, or a Buddhist, etc., but it must
-transmit feelings accessible to everyone. Only art of
-this kind can be acknowledged in our time to be good
-art, worthy of being chosen out from all the rest of art
-and encouraged.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Christian art, <i>i.e.</i> the art of our time, should be catholic
-in the original meaning of the word, <i>i.e.</i> universal, and
-therefore it should unite all men. And only two kinds
-of feeling do unite all men: first, feelings flowing from the
-perception of our sonship to God and of the brotherhood
-of man; and next, the simple feelings of common life,
-accessible to everyone without exception—such as the
-feeling of merriment, of pity, of cheerfulness, of tranquillity,
-etc. Only these two kinds of feelings can now
-supply material for art good in its subject-matter.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And the action of these two kinds of art, apparently so
-dissimilar, is one and the same. The feelings flowing from
-perception of our sonship to God and of the brotherhood
-of man—such as a feeling of sureness in truth, devotion to
-the will of God, self-sacrifice, respect for and love of man—evoked
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_165'>165</span>by Christian religious perception; and the simplest
-feelings—such as a softened or a merry mood caused by
-a song or an amusing jest intelligible to everyone, or by
-a touching story, or a drawing, or a little doll: both alike
-produce one and the same effect—the loving union of man
-with man. Sometimes people who are together are, if not
-hostile to one another, at least estranged in mood and
-feeling, till perchance a story, a performance, a picture, or
-even a building, but oftenest of all music, unites them all
-as by an electric flash, and, in place of their former isolation
-or even enmity, they are all conscious of union and mutual
-love. Each is glad that another feels what he feels; glad
-of the communion established, not only between him and
-all present, but also with all now living who will yet share
-the same impression; and more than that, he feels the
-mysterious gladness of a communion which, reaching beyond
-the grave, unites us with all men of the past who have
-been moved by the same feelings, and with all men of the
-future who will yet be touched by them. And this effect
-is produced both by the religious art which transmits
-feelings of love to God and one’s neighbour, and by universal
-art transmitting the very simplest feelings common to all
-men.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The art of our time should be appraised differently from
-former art chiefly in this, that the art of our time, <i>i.e.</i>
-Christian art (basing itself on a religious perception which
-demands the union of man), excludes from the domain of
-art good in subject-matter everything transmitting exclusive
-feelings, which do not unite but divide men. It relegates
-such work to the category of art bad in its subject-matter,
-while, on the other hand, it includes in the category of art
-good in subject-matter a section not formerly admitted to
-deserve to be chosen out and respected, namely, universal
-art transmitting even the most trifling and simple feelings
-if only they are accessible to all men without exception,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_166'>166</span>and therefore unite them. Such art cannot, in our time,
-but be esteemed good, for it attains the end which the
-religious perception of our time, <i>i.e.</i> Christianity, sets before
-humanity.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Christian art either evokes in men those feelings which,
-through love of God and of one’s neighbour, draw them
-to greater and ever greater union, and make them ready
-for and capable of such union; or evokes in them those
-feelings which show them that they are already united in
-the joys and sorrows of life. And therefore the Christian
-art of our time can be and is of two kinds: (1) art transmitting
-feelings flowing from a religious perception of
-man’s position in the world in relation to God and to his
-neighbour—religious art in the limited meaning of the
-term; and (2) art transmitting the simplest feelings of
-common life, but such, always, as are accessible to all men
-in the whole world—the art of common life—the art of a
-people—universal art. Only these two kinds of art can be
-considered good art in our time.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The first, religious art,—transmitting both positive feelings
-of love to God and one’s neighbour, and negative feelings of
-indignation and horror at the violation of love,—manifests
-itself chiefly in the form of words, and to some extent also
-in painting and sculpture: the second kind (universal art)
-transmitting feelings accessible to all, manifests itself in
-words, in painting, in sculpture, in dances, in architecture,
-and, most of all, in music.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>If I were asked to give modern examples of each of these
-kinds of art, then, as examples of the highest art, flowing
-from love of God and man (both of the higher, positive, and
-of the lower, negative kind), in literature I should name
-<i>The Robbers</i> by Schiller: Victor Hugo’s <i>Les Pauvres Gens</i>
-and <i>Les Misérables</i>: the novels and stories of Dickens—<i>The
-Tale of Two Cities</i>, <i>The Christmas Carol</i>, <i>The Chimes</i>,
-and others: <i>Uncle Tom’s Cabin</i>: Dostoievsky’s works—especially
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_167'>167</span>his <i>Memoirs from the House of Death</i>: and <i>Adam
-Bede</i> by George Eliot.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In modern painting, strange to say, works of this kind,
-directly transmitting the Christian feeling of love of God
-and of one’s neighbour, are hardly to be found, especially
-among the works of the celebrated painters. There are
-plenty of pictures treating of the Gospel stories; they, however,
-depict historical events with great wealth of detail, but
-do not, and cannot, transmit religious feeling not possessed
-by their painters. There are many pictures treating of the
-personal feelings of various people, but of pictures representing
-great deeds of self-sacrifice and of Christian love
-there are very few, and what there are are principally by
-artists who are not celebrated, and are, for the most part,
-not pictures but merely sketches. Such, for instance, is the
-drawing by Kramskoy (worth many of his finished pictures),
-showing a drawing-room with a balcony, past which troops
-are marching in triumph on their return from the war. On
-the balcony stands a wet-nurse holding a baby and a boy.
-They are admiring the procession of the troops, but the
-mother, covering her face with a handkerchief, has fallen
-back on the sofa, sobbing. Such also is the picture by
-Walter Langley, to which I have already referred, and such
-again is a picture by the French artist Morion, depicting
-a lifeboat hastening, in a heavy storm, to the relief of a
-steamer that is being wrecked. Approaching these in kind
-are pictures which represent the hard-working peasant
-with respect and love. Such are the pictures by Millet,
-and, particularly, his drawing, “The Man with the Hoe,”
-also pictures in this style by Jules Breton, L’Hermitte,
-Defregger, and others. As examples of pictures evoking
-indignation and horror at the violation of love to God
-and man, Gay’s picture, “Judgment,” may serve, and also
-Leizen-Mayer’s, “Signing the Death Warrant.” But there
-are also very few of this kind. Anxiety about the technique
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_168'>168</span>and the beauty of the picture for the most part obscures the
-feeling. For instance, Gérôme’s “Pollice Verso” expresses,
-not so much horror at what is being perpetrated as attraction
-by the beauty of the spectacle.<a id='r86' /><a href='#f86' class='c008'><sup>[86]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>To give examples, from the modern art of our upper
-classes, of art of the second kind, good universal art or even
-of the art of a whole people, is yet more difficult, especially
-in literary art and music. If there are some works which
-by their inner contents might be assigned to this class
-(such as <i>Don Quixote</i>, Molière’s comedies, <i>David Copperfield</i>
-and <i>The Pickwick Papers</i> by Dickens, Gogol’s and Pushkin’s
-tales, and some things of Maupassant’s), these works are for
-the most part—from the exceptional nature of the feelings
-they transmit, and the superfluity of special details of time
-and locality, and, above all, on account of the poverty of their
-subject-matter in comparison with examples of universal
-ancient art (such, for instance, as the story of Joseph)—comprehensible
-only to people of their own circle. That
-Joseph’s brethren, being jealous of his father’s affection, sell
-him to the merchants; that Potiphar’s wife wishes to tempt
-the youth; that having attained the highest station, he takes
-pity on his brothers, including Benjamin the favourite,—these
-and all the rest are feelings accessible alike to a
-Russian peasant, a Chinese, an African, a child, or an old
-man, educated or uneducated; and it is all written with
-such restraint, is so free from any superfluous detail, that
-the story may be told to any circle and will be equally
-comprehensible and touching to everyone. But not such are
-the feelings of Don Quixote or of Molière’s heroes (though
-Molière is perhaps the most universal, and therefore the
-most excellent, artist of modern times), nor of Pickwick
-and his friends. These feelings are not common to all
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_169'>169</span>men but very exceptional, and therefore, to make them
-infectious, the authors have surrounded them with abundant
-details of time and place. And this abundance of detail
-makes the stories difficult of comprehension to all people
-not living within reach of the conditions described by the
-author.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The author of the novel of Joseph did not need to
-describe in detail, as would be done nowadays, the bloodstained
-coat of Joseph, the dwelling and dress of Jacob, the
-pose and attire of Potiphar’s wife, and how, adjusting the
-bracelet on her left arm, she said, “Come to me,” and so on,
-because the subject-matter of feelings in this novel is so
-strong that all details, except the most essential,—such as
-that Joseph went out into another room to weep,—are
-superfluous, and would only hinder the transmission of
-feelings. And therefore this novel is accessible to all men,
-touches people of all nations and classes, young and old,
-and has lasted to our times, and will yet last for thousands
-of years to come. But strip the best novels of our times of
-their details, and what will remain?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>It is therefore impossible in modern literature to indicate
-works fully satisfying the demands of universality. Such
-works as exist are, to a great extent, spoilt by what is
-usually called “realism,” but would be better termed
-“provincialism,” in art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In music the same occurs as in verbal art, and for similar
-reasons. In consequence of the poorness of the feeling
-they contain, the melodies of the modern composers are
-amazingly empty and insignificant. And to strengthen
-the impression produced by these empty melodies, the new
-musicians pile complex modulations on to each trivial melody,
-not only in their own national manner, but also in the way
-characteristic of their own exclusive circle and particular
-musical school. Melody—every melody—is free, and may
-be understood of all men; but as soon as it is bound up
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_170'>170</span>with a particular harmony, it ceases to be accessible except
-to people trained to such harmony, and it becomes strange,
-not only to common men of another nationality, but to
-all who do not belong to the circle whose members have
-accustomed themselves to certain forms of harmonisation.
-So that music, like poetry, travels in a vicious circle.
-Trivial and exclusive melodies, in order to make them attractive,
-are laden with harmonic, rhythmic, and orchestral complications,
-and thus become yet more exclusive, and far
-from being universal are not even national, <i>i.e.</i> they are not
-comprehensible to the whole people but only to some
-people.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In music, besides marches and dances by various composers,
-which satisfy the demands of universal art, one can indicate
-very few works of this class: Bach’s famous violin <i>aria</i>,
-Chopin’s nocturne in E flat major, and perhaps a dozen bits
-(not whole pieces, but parts) selected from the works of
-Haydn, Mozart, Schubert, Beethoven, and Chopin.<a id='r87' /><a href='#f87' class='c008'><sup>[87]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Although in painting the same thing is repeated as in
-poetry and in music,—namely, that in order to make them
-more interesting, works weak in conception are surrounded
-by minutely studied accessories of time and place, which
-give them a temporary and local interest but make them
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_171'>171</span>less universal,—still, in painting, more than in the other
-spheres of art, may be found works satisfying the demands
-of universal Christian art; that is to say, there are more
-works expressing feelings in which all men may participate.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In the arts of painting and sculpture, all pictures and
-statues in so-called genre style, depictions of animals,
-landscapes and caricatures with subjects comprehensible
-to everyone, and also all kinds of ornaments, are universal
-in subject-matter. Such productions in painting and
-sculpture are very numerous (<i>e.g.</i> china dolls), but for
-the most part such objects (for instance, ornaments of all
-kinds) are either not considered to be art or are considered
-to be art of a low quality. In reality all such
-objects, if only they transmit a true feeling experienced
-by the artist and comprehensible to everyone (however
-insignificant it may seem to us to be) are works of real,
-good, Christian art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I fear it will here be urged against me that having denied
-that the conception of beauty can supply a standard for
-works of art, I contradict myself by acknowledging ornaments
-to be works of good art. The reproach is unjust, for
-the subject-matter of all kinds of ornamentation consists not
-in the beauty, but in the feeling (of admiration of, and
-delight in, the combination of lines and colours) which the
-artist has experienced and with which he infects the
-spectator. Art remains what it was and what it must be:
-nothing but the infection by one man of another, or of
-others, with the feelings experienced by the infector.
-Among those feelings is the feeling of delight at what
-pleases the sight. Objects pleasing the sight may be such
-as please a small or a large number of people, or such as
-please all men. And ornaments for the most part are of
-the latter kind. A landscape representing a very unusual
-view, or a genre picture of a special subject, may not
-please everyone, but ornaments, from Yakutsk ornaments to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_172'>172</span>Greek ones, are intelligible to everyone and evoke a similar
-feeling of admiration in all, and therefore this despised
-kind of art should, in Christian society, be esteemed far
-above exceptional, pretentious pictures and sculptures.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>So that there are only two kinds of good Christian art:
-all the rest of art not comprised in these two divisions
-should be acknowledged to be bad art, deserving not to be
-encouraged but to be driven out, denied and despised, as
-being art not uniting but dividing people. Such, in literary
-art, are all novels and poems which transmit Church or
-patriotic feelings, and also exclusive feelings pertaining only
-to the class of the idle rich; such as aristocratic honour,
-satiety, spleen, pessimism, and refined and vicious feelings
-flowing from sex-love—quite incomprehensible to the great
-majority of mankind.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In painting we must similarly place in the class of bad
-art all the Church, patriotic, and exclusive pictures; all
-the pictures representing the amusements and allurements
-of a rich and idle life; all the so-called symbolic pictures, in
-which the very meaning of the symbol is comprehensible
-only to the people of a certain circle; and, above all, pictures
-with voluptuous subjects—all that odious female nudity
-which fills all the exhibitions and galleries. And to this
-class belongs almost all the chamber and opera music of our
-times,—beginning especially from Beethoven (Schumann,
-Berlioz, Liszt, Wagner),—by its subject-matter devoted to
-the expression of feelings accessible only to people who
-have developed in themselves an unhealthy, nervous irritation
-evoked by this exclusive, artificial, and complex
-music.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“What! the <i>Ninth Symphony</i> not a good work of art!”
-I hear exclaimed by indignant voices.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And I reply: Most certainly it is not. All that I have
-written I have written with the sole purpose of finding
-a clear and reasonable criterion by which to judge the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_173'>173</span>merits of works of art. And this criterion, coinciding
-with the indications of plain and sane sense, indubitably
-shows me that that symphony by Beethoven is not a
-good work of art. Of course, to people educated in the
-adoration of certain productions and of their authors, to
-people whose taste has been perverted just by being educated
-in such adoration, the acknowledgment that such a celebrated
-work is bad is amazing and strange. But how are
-we to escape the indications of reason and of common sense?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Beethoven’s <i>Ninth Symphony</i> is considered a great work
-of art. To verify its claim to be such, I must first ask myself
-whether this work transmits the highest religious feeling?
-I reply in the negative, for music in itself cannot transmit
-those feelings; and therefore I ask myself next, Since this
-work does not belong to the highest kind of religious art,
-has it the other characteristic of the good art of our time,—the
-quality of uniting all men in one common feeling:
-does it rank as Christian universal art? And again I have
-no option but to reply in the negative; for not only do I
-not see how the feelings transmitted by this work could
-unite people not specially trained to submit themselves to
-its complex hypnotism, but I am unable to imagine to
-myself a crowd of normal people who could understand
-anything of this long, confused, and artificial production,
-except short snatches which are lost in a sea of what is
-incomprehensible. And therefore, whether I like it or not, I
-am compelled to conclude that this work belongs to the
-rank of bad art. It is curious to note in this connection,
-that attached to the end of this very symphony is a poem
-of Schiller’s which (though somewhat obscurely) expresses
-this very thought, namely, that feeling (Schiller speaks
-only of the feeling of gladness) unites people and evokes
-love in them. But though this poem is sung at the end of
-the symphony, the music does not accord with the thought
-expressed in the verses; for the music is exclusive and does
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_174'>174</span>not unite all men, but unites only a few, dividing them off
-from the rest of mankind.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And, just in this same way, in all branches of art, many
-and many works considered great by the upper classes of our
-society will have to be judged. By this one sure criterion
-we shall have to judge the celebrated <i>Divine Comedy</i> and
-<i>Jerusalem Delivered</i>, and a great part of Shakespeare’s and
-Goethe’s works, and in painting every representation of
-miracles, including Raphael’s “Transfiguration,” etc.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Whatever the work may be and however it may have
-been extolled, we have first to ask whether this work is one
-of real art or a counterfeit. Having acknowledged, on the
-basis of the indication of its infectiousness even to a small
-class of people, that a certain production belongs to the
-realm of art, it is necessary, on the basis of the indication
-of its accessibility, to decide the next question, Does this
-work belong to the category of bad, exclusive art, opposed
-to religious perception, or to Christian art, uniting people?
-And having acknowledged an article to belong to real
-Christian art, we must then, according to whether it
-transmits the feelings flowing from love to God and man,
-or merely the simple feelings uniting all men, assign it a
-place in the ranks of religious art or in those of universal art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Only on the basis of such verification shall we find it
-possible to select from the whole mass of what, in our
-society, claims to be art, those works which form real,
-important, necessary spiritual food, and to separate them
-from all the harmful and useless art, and from the counterfeits
-of art which surround us. Only on the basis of such
-verification shall we be able to rid ourselves of the pernicious
-results of harmful art, and to avail ourselves of that beneficent
-action which is the purpose of true and good art, and
-which is indispensable for the spiritual life of man and of
-humanity.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_175'>175</span>
- <h2 id='chap17' class='c003'>CHAPTER XVII</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>Art is one of two organs of human progress. By words man
-interchanges thoughts, by the forms of art he interchanges
-feelings, and this with all men, not only of the present
-time, but also of the past and the future. It is natural to
-human beings to employ both these organs of intercommunication,
-and therefore the perversion of either of them
-must cause evil results to the society in which it occurs.
-And these results will be of two kinds: first, the absence,
-in that society, of the work which should be performed by
-the organ; and secondly, the harmful activity of the perverted
-organ. And just these results have shown themselves
-in our society. The organ of art has been perverted,
-and therefore the upper classes of society have, to a great
-extent, been deprived of the work that it should have
-performed. The diffusion in our society of enormous
-quantities of, on the one hand, those counterfeits of art
-which only serve to amuse and corrupt people, and, on
-the other hand, of works of insignificant, exclusive art,
-mistaken for the highest art, have perverted most men’s
-capacity to be infected by true works of art, and have
-thus deprived them of the possibility of experiencing the
-highest feelings to which mankind has attained, and which
-can only be transmitted from man to man by art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>All the best that has been done in art by man remains
-strange to people who lack the capacity to be infected by
-art, and is replaced either by spurious counterfeits of art
-or by insignificant art, which they mistake for real art.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_176'>176</span>People of our time and of our society are delighted with
-Baudelaires, Verlaines, Moréases, Ibsens, and Maeterlincks
-in poetry; with Monets, Manets, Puvis de Chavannes,
-Burne-Joneses, Stucks, and Böcklins in painting; with
-Wagners, Listzs, Richard Strausses, in music; and they
-are no longer capable of comprehending either the highest
-or the simplest art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In the upper classes, in consequence of this loss of
-capacity to be infected by works of art, people grow up, are
-educated, and live, lacking the fertilising, improving influence
-of art, and therefore not only do not advance towards
-perfection, do not become kinder, but, on the contrary,
-possessing highly-developed external means of civilisation,
-they yet tend to become continually more savage, more
-coarse, and more cruel.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Such is the result of the absence from our society of the
-activity of that essential organ—art. But the consequences
-of the perverted activity of that organ are yet more harmful.
-And they are numerous.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The first consequence, plain for all to see, is the enormous
-expenditure of the labour of working people on things which
-are not only useless, but which, for the most part, are harmful;
-and more than that, the waste of priceless human lives
-on this unnecessary and harmful business. It is terrible to
-consider with what intensity, and amid what privations,
-millions of people—who lack time and opportunity to attend
-to what they and their families urgently require—labour
-for 10, 12, or 14 hours on end, and even at night, setting
-the type for pseudo-artistic books which spread vice among
-mankind, or working for theatres, concerts, exhibitions, and
-picture galleries, which, for the most part, also serve vice;
-but it is yet more terrible to reflect that lively, kindly
-children, capable of all that is good, are devoted from their
-early years to such tasks as these: that for 6, 8, or 10
-hours a day, and for 10 or 15 years, some of them should
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_177'>177</span>play scales and exercises; others should twist their limbs,
-walk on their toes, and lift their legs above their heads;
-a third set should sing solfeggios; a fourth set, showing
-themselves off in all manner of ways, should pronounce
-verses; a fifth set should draw from busts or from nude
-models and paint studies; a sixth set should write compositions
-according to the rules of certain periods; and that
-in these occupations, unworthy of a human being, which are
-often continued long after full maturity, they should waste
-their physical and mental strength and lose all perception
-of the meaning of life. It is often said that it is horrible
-and pitiful to see little acrobats putting their legs over
-their necks, but it is not less pitiful to see children of 10
-giving concerts, and it is still worse to see schoolboys of
-10 who, as a preparation for literary work, have learnt by
-heart the exceptions to the Latin grammar. These people not
-only grow physically and mentally deformed, but also morally
-deformed, and become incapable of doing anything really
-needed by man. Occupying in society the rôle of amusers of
-the rich, they lose their sense of human dignity, and develop
-in themselves such a passion for public applause that they
-are always a prey to an inflated and unsatisfied vanity
-which grows in them to diseased dimensions, and they expend
-their mental strength in efforts to obtain satisfaction
-for this passion. And what is most tragic of all is that
-these people, who for the sake of art are spoilt for life,
-not only do not render service to this art, but, on the
-contrary, inflict the greatest harm on it. They are taught
-in academies, schools, and conservatoires how to counterfeit
-art, and by learning this they so pervert themselves that
-they quite lose the capacity to produce works of real art,
-and become purveyors of that counterfeit, or trivial, or
-depraved art which floods our society. This is the first
-obvious consequence of the perversion of the organ of
-art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_178'>178</span>The second consequence is that the productions of amusement-art,
-which are prepared in such terrific quantities by
-the armies of professional artists, enable the rich people of
-our times to live the lives they do, lives not only unnatural
-but in contradiction to the humane principles these people
-themselves profess. To live as do the rich, idle people,
-especially the women, far from nature and from animals,
-in artificial conditions, with muscles atrophied or misdeveloped
-by gymnastics, and with enfeebled vital energy
-would be impossible were it not for what is called art—for
-this occupation and amusement which hides from them
-the meaninglessness of their lives, and saves them from
-the dulness that oppresses them. Take from all these
-people the theatres, concerts, exhibitions, piano-playing,
-songs, and novels, with which they now fill their time
-in full confidence that occupation with these things is
-a very refined, æsthetical, and therefore good occupation;
-take from the patrons of art who buy pictures, assist
-musicians, and are acquainted with writers, their rôle of
-protectors of that important matter art, and they will
-not be able to continue such a life, but will all be eaten
-up by ennui and spleen, and will become conscious of
-the meaninglessness and wrongness of their present mode
-of life. Only occupation with what, among them, is considered
-art, renders it possible for them to continue to
-live on, infringing all natural conditions, without perceiving
-the emptiness and cruelty of their lives. And this
-support afforded to the false manner of life pursued by
-the rich is the second consequence, and a serious one, of
-the perversion of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The third consequence of the perversion of art is the
-perplexity produced in the minds of children and of plain
-folk. Among people not perverted by the false theories
-of our society, among workers and children, there exists a
-very definite conception of what people may be respected
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_179'>179</span>and praised for. In the minds of peasants and children
-the ground for praise or eulogy can only be either physical
-strength: Hercules, the heroes and conquerors; or moral,
-spiritual, strength: Sakya Muni giving up a beautiful wife
-and a kingdom to save mankind, Christ going to the
-cross for the truth he professed, and all the martyrs
-and the saints. Both are understood by peasants and
-children. They understand that physical strength must be
-respected, for it compels respect; and the moral strength
-of goodness an unperverted man cannot fail to respect,
-because all his spiritual being draws him towards it. But
-these people, children and peasants, suddenly perceive that
-besides those praised, respected, and rewarded for physical or
-moral strength, there are others who are praised, extolled,
-and rewarded much more than the heroes of strength and
-virtue, merely because they sing well, compose verses, or
-dance. They see that singers, composers, painters, ballet-dancers,
-earn millions of roubles and receive more honour
-than the saints do: and peasants and children are perplexed.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>When 50 years had elapsed after Pushkin’s death, and,
-simultaneously, the cheap edition of his works began to
-circulate among the people and a monument was erected to
-him in Moscow, I received more than a dozen letters from
-different peasants asking why Pushkin was raised to such
-dignity? And only the other day a literate<a id='r88' /><a href='#f88' class='c008'><sup>[88]</sup></a> man from
-Saratoff called on me who had evidently gone out of his
-mind over this very question. He was on his way to
-Moscow to expose the clergy for having taken part in
-raising a “monament” to Mr. Pushkin.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Indeed one need only imagine to oneself what the state of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_180'>180</span>mind of such a man of the people must be when he learns,
-from such rumours and newspapers as reach him, that the
-clergy, the Government officials, and all the best people in
-Russia are triumphantly unveiling a statue to a great man,
-the benefactor, the pride of Russia—Pushkin, of whom till
-then he had never heard. From all sides he reads or hears
-about this, and he naturally supposes that if such honours
-are rendered to anyone, then without doubt he must have
-done something extraordinary—either some feat of strength
-or of goodness. He tries to learn who Pushkin was, and
-having discovered that Pushkin was neither a hero nor a
-general, but was a private person and a writer, he comes to
-the conclusion that Pushkin must have been a holy man
-and a teacher of goodness, and he hastens to read or to hear
-his life and works. But what must be his perplexity when
-he learns that Pushkin was a man of more than easy
-morals, who was killed in a duel, <i>i.e.</i> when attempting
-to murder another man, and that all his service consisted
-in writing verses about love, which were often very
-indecent.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>That a hero, or Alexander the Great, or Genghis Khan, or
-Napoleon were great, he understands, because any one of them
-could have crushed him and a thousand like him; that
-Buddha, Socrates, and Christ were great he also understands,
-for he knows and feels that he and all men should be such
-as they were; but why a man should be great because he
-wrote verses about the love of women he cannot make out.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>A similar perplexity must trouble the brain of a Breton
-or Norman peasant who hears that a monument, “<i>une
-statue</i>” (as to the Madonna), is being erected to Baudelaire,
-and reads, or is told, what the contents of his <i>Fleurs du Mal</i>
-are; or, more amazing still, to Verlaine, when he learns the
-story of that man’s wretched, vicious life, and reads his
-verses. And what confusion it must cause in the brains
-of peasants when they learn that some Patti or Taglioni
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_181'>181</span>is paid £10,000 for a season, or that a painter gets as
-much for a picture, or that authors of novels describing
-love-scenes have received even more than that.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And it is the same with children. I remember how I
-passed through this stage of amazement and stupefaction,
-and only reconciled myself to this exaltation of artists
-to the level of heroes and saints by lowering in my own
-estimation the importance of moral excellence, and by
-attributing a false, unnatural meaning to works of art. And
-a similar confusion must occur in the soul of each child
-and each man of the people when he learns of the strange
-honours and rewards that are lavished on artists. This is
-the third consequence of the false relation in which our
-society stands towards art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The fourth consequence is that people of the upper
-classes, more and more frequently encountering the contradictions
-between beauty and goodness, put the ideal of
-beauty first, thus freeing themselves from the demands
-of morality. These people, reversing the rôles, instead of
-admitting, as is really the case, that the art they serve is
-an antiquated affair, allege that morality is an antiquated
-affair, which can have no importance for people situated on
-that high plane of development on which they opine that
-they are situated.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>This result of the false relation to art showed itself in
-our society long ago; but recently, with its prophet Nietzsche
-and his adherents, and with the decadents and certain
-English æsthetes who coincide with him, it is being
-expressed with especial impudence. The decadents, and
-æsthetes of the type at one time represented by Oscar Wilde,
-select as a theme for their productions the denial of morality
-and the laudation of vice.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>This art has partly generated, and partly coincides with,
-a similar philosophic theory. I recently received from
-America a book entitled “<i>The Survival of the Fittest:
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_182'>182</span>Philosophy of Power</i>, 1896, by Ragnar Redbeard, Chicago.”
-The substance of this book, as it is expressed in the editor’s
-preface, is that to measure “right” by the false philosophy
-of the Hebrew prophets and “weepful” Messiahs is madness.
-Right is not the offspring of doctrine but of power.
-All laws, commandments, or doctrines as to not doing to
-another what you do not wish done to you, have no
-inherent authority whatever, but receive it only from
-the club, the gallows, and the sword. A man truly free
-is under no obligation to obey any injunction, human or
-divine. Obedience is the sign of the degenerate. Disobedience
-is the stamp of the hero. Men should not be
-bound by moral rules invented by their foes. The whole
-world is a slippery battlefield. Ideal justice demands
-that the vanquished should be exploited, emasculated, and
-scorned. The free and brave may seize the world. And,
-therefore, there should be eternal war for life, for land,
-for love, for women, for power, and for gold. (Something
-similar was said a few years ago by the celebrated and
-refined academician, Vogüé.) The earth and its treasures is
-“booty for the bold.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The author has evidently by himself, independently of
-Nietzsche, come to the same conclusions which are professed
-by the new artists.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Expressed in the form of a doctrine these positions startle
-us. In reality they are implied in the ideal of art serving
-beauty. The art of our upper classes has educated people
-in this ideal of the over-man,<a id='r89' /><a href='#f89' class='c008'><sup>[89]</sup></a>—which is, in reality, the
-old ideal of Nero, Stenka Razin,<a id='r90' /><a href='#f90' class='c008'><sup>[90]</sup></a> Genghis Khan, Robert
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_183'>183</span>Macaire,<a id='r91' /><a href='#f91' class='c008'><sup>[91]</sup></a> or Napoleon, and all their accomplices, assistants,
-and adulators—and it supports this ideal with all its
-might.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>It is this supplanting of the ideal of what is right by
-the ideal of what is beautiful, <i>i.e.</i> of what is pleasant,
-that is the fourth consequence, and a terrible one, of
-the perversion of art in our society. It is fearful to
-think of what would befall humanity were such art to
-spread among the masses of the people. And it already
-begins to spread.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Finally, the fifth and chief result is, that the art which
-flourishes in the upper classes of European society has a
-directly vitiating influence, infecting people with the worst
-feelings and with those most harmful to humanity—superstition,
-patriotism, and, above all, sensuality.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Look carefully into the causes of the ignorance of the
-masses, and you may see that the chief cause does not at all
-lie in the lack of schools and libraries, as we are accustomed
-to suppose, but in those superstitions, both ecclesiastical
-and patriotic, with which the people are saturated, and
-which are unceasingly generated by all the methods of art.
-Church superstitions are supported and produced by the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_184'>184</span>poetry of prayers, hymns, painting, by the sculpture of
-images and of statues, by singing, by organs, by music, by
-architecture, and even by dramatic art in religious ceremonies.
-Patriotic superstitions are supported and produced by verses
-and stories, which are supplied even in schools, by music,
-by songs, by triumphal processions, by royal meetings, by
-martial pictures, and by monuments.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Were it not for this continual activity in all departments
-of art, perpetuating the ecclesiastical and patriotic intoxication
-and embitterment of the people, the masses would
-long ere this have attained to true enlightenment.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But it is not only in Church matters and patriotic
-matters that art depraves; it is art in our time that serves
-as the chief cause of the perversion of people in the most
-important question of social life—in their sexual relations.
-We nearly all know by our own experience, and those who
-are fathers and mothers know in the case of their grown-up
-children also, what fearful mental and physical suffering,
-what useless waste of strength, people suffer merely as a
-consequence of dissoluteness in sexual desire.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Since the world began, since the Trojan war, which
-sprang from that same sexual dissoluteness, down to and
-including the suicides and murders of lovers described in
-almost every newspaper, a great proportion of the sufferings
-of the human race have come from this source.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And what is art doing? All art, real and counterfeit, with
-very few exceptions, is devoted to describing, depicting, and
-inflaming sexual love in every shape and form. When one
-remembers all those novels and their lust-kindling descriptions
-of love, from the most refined to the grossest, with
-which the literature of our society overflows; if one only
-remembers all those pictures and statues representing
-women’s naked bodies, and all sorts of abominations which
-are reproduced in illustrations and advertisements; if one
-only remembers all the filthy operas and operettas, songs
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_185'>185</span>and <i>romances</i> with which our world teems, involuntarily
-it seems as if existing art had but one definite aim—to
-disseminate vice as widely as possible.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Such, though not all, are the most direct consequences of
-that perversion of art which has occurred in our society.
-So that, what in our society is called art not only does not
-conduce to the progress of mankind, but, more than almost
-anything else, hinders the attainment of goodness in our
-lives.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And therefore the question which involuntarily presents
-itself to every man free from artistic activity and therefore
-not bound to existing art by self-interest, the question
-asked by me at the beginning of this work: Is it just that
-to what we call art, to a something belonging to but a small
-section of society, should be offered up such sacrifices of
-human labour, of human lives, and of goodness as are now
-being offered up? receives the natural reply: No; it is unjust,
-and these things should not be! So also replies sound
-sense and unperverted moral feeling. Not only should
-these things not be, not only should no sacrifices be offered
-up to what among us is called art, but, on the contrary,
-the efforts of those who wish to live rightly should be
-directed towards the destruction of this art, for it is one
-of the most cruel of the evils that harass our section of
-humanity. So that, were the question put: Would it be
-preferable for our Christian world to be deprived of <i>all</i>
-that is now esteemed to be art, and, together with the
-false, to lose <i>all</i> that is good in it? I think that every
-reasonable and moral man would again decide the question
-as Plato decided it for his <i>Republic</i>, and as all the Church
-Christian and Mahommedan teachers of mankind decided
-it, <i>i.e.</i> would say, “Rather let there be no art at all than
-continue the depraving art, or simulation of art, which now
-exists.” Happily, no one has to face this question, and no
-one need adopt either solution. All that man can do, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_186'>186</span>that we—the so-called educated people, who are so placed
-that we have the possibility of understanding the meaning
-of the phenomena of our life—can and should do, is to
-understand the error we are involved in, and not harden our
-hearts in it but seek for a way of escape.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_187'>187</span>
- <h2 id='chap18' class='c003'>CHAPTER XVIII</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>The cause of the lie into which the art of our society has
-fallen was that people of the upper classes, having ceased
-to believe in the Church teaching (called Christian), did not
-resolve to accept true Christian teaching in its real and
-fundamental principles of sonship to God and brotherhood
-to man, but continued to live on without any belief, endeavouring
-to make up for the absence of belief—some by
-hypocrisy, pretending still to believe in the nonsense of the
-Church creeds; others by boldly asserting their disbelief;
-others by refined agnosticism; and others, again, by returning
-to the Greek worship of beauty, proclaiming egotism to
-be right, and elevating it to the rank of a religious doctrine.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The cause of the malady was the non-acceptance of Christ’s
-teaching in its real, <i>i.e.</i> its full, meaning. And the only cure
-for the illness lies in acknowledging that teaching in its
-full meaning. And such acknowledgment in our time is
-not only possible but inevitable. Already to-day a man,
-standing on the height of the knowledge of our age, whether
-he be nominally a Catholic or a Protestant, cannot say that
-he really believes in the dogmas of the Church: in God
-being a Trinity, in Christ being God, in the scheme of
-redemption, and so forth; nor can he satisfy himself by proclaiming
-his unbelief or scepticism, nor by relapsing into
-the worship of beauty and egotism. Above all, he can no
-longer say that we do not know the real meaning of Christ’s
-teaching. That meaning has not only become accessible to
-all men of our times, but the whole life of man to-day is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_188'>188</span>permeated by the spirit of that teaching, and, consciously
-or unconsciously, is guided by it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>However differently in form people belonging to our
-Christian world may define the destiny of man; whether
-they see it in human progress in whatever sense of the
-words, in the union of all men in a socialistic realm, or
-in the establishment of a commune; whether they look
-forward to the union of mankind under the guidance of
-one universal Church, or to the federation of the world,—however
-various in form their definitions of the destination
-of human life may be, all men in our times already admit
-that the highest well-being attainable by men is to be
-reached by their union with one another.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>However people of our upper classes (feeling that their
-ascendency can only be maintained as long as they separate
-themselves—the rich and learned—from the labourers, the
-poor, and the unlearned) may seek to devise new conceptions
-of life by which their privileges may be perpetuated,—now
-the ideal of returning to antiquity, now mysticism, now
-Hellenism, now the cult of the superior person (overman-ism),—they
-have, willingly or unwillingly, to admit the
-truth which is elucidating itself from all sides, voluntarily
-and involuntarily, namely, that our welfare lies only in the
-unification and the brotherhood of man.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Unconsciously this truth is confirmed by the construction of
-means of communication,—telegraphs, telephones, the press,
-and the ever-increasing attainability of material well-being for
-everyone,—and consciously it is affirmed by the destruction
-of superstitions which divide men, by the diffusion of the
-truths of knowledge, and by the expression of the ideal of
-the brotherhood of man in the best works of art of our time.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Art is a spiritual organ of human life which cannot be
-destroyed, and therefore, notwithstanding all the efforts
-made by people of the upper classes to conceal the religious
-ideal by which humanity lives, that ideal is more and more
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_189'>189</span>clearly recognised by man, and even in our perverted society
-is more and more often partially expressed by science and
-by art. During the present century works of the higher
-kind of religious art have appeared more and more frequently,
-both in literature and in painting, permeated by a
-truly Christian spirit, as also works of the universal art
-of common life, accessible to all. So that even art knows
-the true ideal of our times, and tends towards it. On
-the one hand, the best works of art of our times transmit
-religious feelings urging towards the union and the brotherhood
-of man (such are the works of Dickens, Hugo,
-Dostoievsky; and in painting, of Millet, Bastien Lepage,
-Jules Breton, L’Hermitte, and others); on the other hand,
-they strive towards the transmission, not of feelings which
-are natural to people of the upper classes only, but of such
-feelings as may unite everyone without exception. There
-are as yet few such works, but the need of them is already
-acknowledged. In recent times we also meet more and more
-frequently with attempts at publications, pictures, concerts,
-and theatres for the people. All this is still very far from
-accomplishing what should be done, but already the direction
-in which good art instinctively presses forward to regain
-the path natural to it can be discerned.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The religious perception of our time—which consists in
-acknowledging that the aim of life (both collective and
-individual) is the union of mankind—is already so sufficiently
-distinct that people have now only to reject the false
-theory of beauty, according to which enjoyment is considered
-to be the purpose of art, and religious perception will
-naturally takes its place as the guide of the art of our time.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And as soon as the religious perception, which already
-unconsciously directs the life of man, is consciously acknowledged,
-then immediately and naturally the division of
-art, into art for the lower and art for the upper classes,
-will disappear. There will be one common, brotherly,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_190'>190</span>universal art; and first, that art will naturally be rejected
-which transmits feelings incompatible with the religious
-perception of our time,—feelings which do not unite, but
-divide men,—and then that insignificant, exclusive art will
-be rejected to which an importance is now attached to which
-it has no right.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And as soon as this occurs, art will immediately cease to
-be, what it has been in recent times: a means of making
-people coarser and more vicious, and it will become, what
-it always used to be and should be, a means by which
-humanity progresses towards unity and blessedness;</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Strange as the comparison may sound, what has happened
-to the art of our circle and time is what happens to a woman
-who sells her womanly attractiveness, intended for maternity,
-for the pleasure of those who desire such pleasures.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The art of our time and of our circle has become a prostitute.
-And this comparison holds good even in minute
-details. Like her it is not limited to certain times, like her
-it is always adorned, like her it is always saleable, and like
-her it is enticing and ruinous.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>A real work of art can only arise in the soul of an artist
-occasionally, as the fruit of the life he has lived, just as a
-child is conceived by its mother. But counterfeit art is
-produced by artisans and handicraftsmen continually, if only
-consumers can be found.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Real art, like the wife of an affectionate husband, needs
-no ornaments. But counterfeit art, like a prostitute, must
-always be decked out.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The cause of the production of real art is the artist’s inner
-need to express a feeling that has accumulated, just as for a
-mother the cause of sexual conception is love. The cause
-of counterfeit art, as of prostitution, is gain.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The consequence of true art is the introduction of a new
-feeling into the intercourse of life, as the consequence of a
-wife’s love is the birth of a new man into life.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_191'>191</span>The consequences of counterfeit art are the perversion of
-man, pleasure which never satisfies, and the weakening of
-man’s spiritual strength.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And this is what people of our day and of our circle
-should understand, in order to avoid the filthy torrent of
-depraved and prostituted art with which we are deluged.</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_192'>192</span>
- <h2 id='chap19' class='c003'>CHAPTER XIX</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>People talk of the art of the future, meaning by “art of
-the future” some especially refined, new art, which, as they
-imagine, will be developed out of that exclusive art of one
-class which is now considered the highest art. But no such
-new art of the future can or will be found. Our exclusive
-art, that of the upper classes of Christendom, has found its
-way into a blind alley. The direction in which it has been
-going leads nowhere. Having once let go of that which is
-most essential for art (namely, the guidance given by
-religious perception), that art has become ever more and
-more exclusive, and therefore ever more and more perverted,
-until, finally, it has come to nothing. The art of the future,
-that which is really coming, will not be a development of
-present-day art, but will arise on completely other and new
-foundations, having nothing in common with those by which
-our present art of the upper classes is guided.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Art of the future, that is to say, such part of art as
-will be chosen from among all the art diffused among mankind,
-will consist, not in transmitting feelings accessible only
-to members of the rich classes, as is the case to-day, but in
-transmitting such feelings as embody the highest religious
-perception of our times. Only those productions will be
-considered art which transmit feelings drawing men together
-in brotherly union, or such universal feelings as can unite all
-men. Only such art will be chosen, tolerated, approved, and
-diffused. But art transmitting feelings flowing from antiquated,
-worn-out religious teaching,—Church art, patriotic art,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_193'>193</span>voluptuous art, transmitting feelings of superstitious fear, of
-pride, of vanity, of ecstatic admiration of national heroes,—art
-exciting exclusive love of one’s own people, or sensuality,
-will be considered bad, harmful art, and will be censured and
-despised by public opinion. All the rest of art, transmitting
-feelings accessible only to a section of people, will be considered
-unimportant, and will be neither blamed nor praised.
-And the appraisement of art in general will devolve, not,
-as is now the case, on a separate class of rich people, but on
-the whole people; so that for a work to be esteemed good,
-and to be approved of and diffused, it will have to satisfy
-the demands, not of a few people living in identical and
-often unnatural conditions, but it will have to satisfy the
-demands of all those great masses of people who are
-situated in the natural conditions of laborious life.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And the artists producing art will also not be, as now,
-merely a few people selected from a small section of the
-nation, members of the upper classes or their hangers-on,
-but will consist of all those gifted members of the whole
-people who prove capable of, and are inclined towards,
-artistic activity.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Artistic activity will then be accessible to all men. It
-will become accessible to the whole people, because, in
-the first place, in the art of the future, not only will that
-complex technique, which deforms the productions of the
-art of to-day and requires so great an effort and expenditure
-of time, not be demanded, but, on the contrary, the demand
-will be for clearness, simplicity, and brevity—conditions
-mastered not by mechanical exercises but by the education of
-taste. And secondly, artistic activity will become accessible
-to all men of the people because, instead of the present
-professional schools which only some can enter, all will
-learn music and depictive art (singing and drawing) equally
-with letters in the elementary schools, and in such a way
-that every man, having received the first principles of drawing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_194'>194</span>and music, and feeling a capacity for, and a call to, one
-or other of the arts, will be able to perfect himself in it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>People think that if there are no special art-schools the
-technique of art will deteriorate. Undoubtedly, if by
-technique we understand those complications of art which
-are now considered an excellence, it will deteriorate; but if
-by technique is understood clearness, beauty, simplicity,
-and compression in works of art, then, even if the elements
-of drawing and music were not to be taught in the national
-schools, the technique will not only not deteriorate, but,
-as is shown by all peasant art, will be a hundred times
-better. It will be improved, because all the artists of
-genius now hidden among the masses will become producers
-of art and will give models of excellence, which
-(as has always been the case) will be the best schools of
-technique for their successors. For every true artist, even
-now, learns his technique, chiefly, not in the schools but in
-life, from the examples of the great masters; then—when
-the producers of art will be the best artists of the whole
-nation, and there will be more such examples, and they
-will be more accessible—such part of the school training as
-the future artist will lose will be a hundredfold compensated
-for by the training he will receive from the numerous
-examples of good art diffused in society.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Such will be one difference between present and future
-art. Another difference will be that art will not be produced
-by professional artists receiving payment for their
-work and engaged on nothing else besides their art. The
-art of the future will be produced by all the members of
-the community who feel the need of such activity, but they
-will occupy themselves with art only when they feel such
-need.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In our society people think that an artist will work
-better, and produce more, if he has a secured maintenance.
-And this opinion would serve once more to show clearly,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_195'>195</span>were such demonstration still needed, that what among
-us is considered art is not art, but only its counterfeit. It
-is quite true that for the production of boots or loaves
-division of labour is very advantageous, and that the
-bootmaker or baker who need not prepare his own dinner
-or fetch his own fuel will make more boots or loaves
-than if he had to busy himself about these matters. But
-art is not a handicraft; it is the transmission of feeling
-the artist has experienced. And sound feeling can only be
-engendered in a man when he is living on all its sides the
-life natural and proper to mankind. And therefore security
-of maintenance is a condition most harmful to an artist’s
-true productiveness, since it removes him from the condition
-natural to all men,—that of struggle with nature for the
-maintenance of both his own life and that of others,—and
-thus deprives him of opportunity and possibility to
-experience the most important and natural feelings of man.
-There is no position more injurious to an artist’s productiveness
-than that position of complete security and luxury in
-which artists usually live in our society.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The artist of the future will live the common life of man,
-earning his subsistence by some kind of labour. The fruits
-of that highest spiritual strength which passes through him
-he will try to share with the greatest possible number of
-people, for in such transmission to others of the feelings
-that have arisen in him he will find his happiness and
-his reward. The artist of the future will be unable to
-understand how an artist, whose chief delight is in the
-wide diffusion of his works, could give them only in
-exchange for a certain payment.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Until the dealers are driven out, the temple of art will
-not be a temple. But the art of the future will drive them
-out.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And therefore the subject-matter of the art of the future, as
-I imagine it to myself, will be totally unlike that of to-day.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_196'>196</span>It will consist, not in the expression of exclusive feelings:
-pride, spleen, satiety, and all possible forms of voluptuousness,
-available and interesting only to people who,
-by force, have freed themselves from the labour natural to
-human beings; but it will consist in the expression of feelings
-experienced by a man living the life natural to all
-men and flowing from the religious perception of our times,
-or of such feelings as are open to all men without exception.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>To people of our circle who do not know, and cannot or
-will not understand the feelings which will form the subject-matter
-of the art of the future, such subject-matter appears
-very poor in comparison with those subtleties of exclusive
-art with which they are now occupied. “What is there
-fresh to be said in the sphere of the Christian feeling of
-love of one’s fellow-man? The feelings common to
-everyone are so insignificant and monotonous,” think they.
-And yet, in our time, the really fresh feelings can only be
-religious, Christian feelings, and such as are open, accessible, to
-all. The feelings flowing from the religious perception of our
-times, Christian feelings, are infinitely new and varied, only
-not in the sense some people imagine,—not that they can
-be evoked by the depiction of Christ and of Gospel episodes,
-or by repeating in new forms the Christian truths of unity,
-brotherhood, equality, and love,—but in that all the oldest,
-commonest, and most hackneyed phenomena of life evoke
-the newest, most unexpected and touching emotions as soon
-as a man regards them from the Christian point of view.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>What can be older than the relations between married
-couples, of parents to children, of children to parents; the
-relations of men to their fellow-countrymen and to foreigners,
-to an invasion, to defence, to property, to the land,
-or to animals? But as soon as a man regards these matters
-from the Christian point of view, endlessly varied, fresh,
-complex, and strong emotions immediately arise.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And, in the same way, that realm of subject-matter for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_197'>197</span>the art of the future which relates to the simplest
-feelings of common life open to all will not be narrowed
-but widened. In our former art only the expression of
-feelings natural to people of a certain exceptional position
-was considered worthy of being transmitted by art, and
-even then only on condition that these feelings were transmitted
-in a most refined manner, incomprehensible to the
-majority of men; all the immense realm of folk-art, and
-children’s art—jests, proverbs, riddles, songs, dances,
-children’s games, and mimicry—was not esteemed a domain
-worthy of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The artist of the future will understand that to compose
-a fairy-tale, a little song which will touch, a lullaby or a
-riddle which will entertain, a jest which will amuse, or to
-draw a sketch which will delight dozens of generations
-or millions of children and adults, is incomparably more
-important and more fruitful than to compose a novel or
-a symphony, or paint a picture which will divert some
-members of the wealthy classes for a short time, and then
-be for ever forgotten. The region of this art of the simple
-feelings accessible to all is enormous, and it is as yet almost
-untouched.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The art of the future, therefore, will not be poorer, but
-infinitely richer in subject-matter. And the form of the art of
-the future will also not be inferior to the present forms of art,
-but infinitely superior to them. Superior, not in the sense
-of having a refined and complex technique, but in the
-sense of the capacity briefly, simply, and clearly to transmit,
-without any superfluities, the feeling which the artist has
-experienced and wishes to transmit.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>I remember once speaking to a famous astronomer who
-had given public lectures on the spectrum analysis of the
-stars of the Milky Way, and saying it would be a good thing
-if, with his knowledge and masterly delivery, he would give
-a lecture merely on the formation and movements of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_198'>198</span>earth, for certainly there were many people at his lecture
-on the spectrum analysis of the stars of the Milky Way,
-especially among the women, who did not well know why
-night follows day and summer follows winter. The wise
-astronomer smiled as he answered, “Yes, it would be a
-good thing, but it would be very difficult. To lecture on
-the spectrum analysis of the Milky Way is far easier.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And so it is in art. To write a rhymed poem dealing
-with the times of Cleopatra, or paint a picture of Nero
-burning Rome, or compose a symphony in the manner of
-Brahms or Richard Strauss, or an opera like Wagner’s, is
-far easier than to tell a simple story without any unnecessary
-details, yet so that it should transmit the feelings of
-the narrator, or to draw a pencil-sketch which should
-touch or amuse the beholder, or to compose four bars
-of clear and simple melody, without any accompaniment,
-which should convey an impression and be remembered by
-those who hear it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“It is impossible for us, with our culture, to return to a
-primitive state,” say the artists of our time. “It is impossible
-for us now to write such stories as that of Joseph or
-the Odyssey, to produce such statues as the Venus of Milo,
-or to compose such music as the folk-songs.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And indeed, for the artists of our society and day, it is
-impossible, but not for the future artist, who will be free
-from all the perversion of technical improvements hiding
-the absence of subject-matter, and who, not being a professional
-artist and receiving no payment for his activity, will
-only produce art when he feels impelled to do so by an
-irresistible inner impulse.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The art of the future will thus be completely distinct,
-both in subject-matter and in form, from what is now called
-art. The only subject-matter of the art of the future will
-be either feelings drawing men towards union, or such as
-already unite them; and the forms of art will be such as
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_199'>199</span>will be open to everyone. And therefore, the ideal of
-excellence in the future will not be the exclusiveness of feeling,
-accessible only to some, but, on the contrary, its universality.
-And not bulkiness, obscurity, and complexity of
-form, as is now esteemed, but, on the contrary, brevity,
-clearness, and simplicity of expression. Only when art has
-attained to that, will art neither divert nor deprave men as
-it does now, calling on them to expend their best strength
-on it, but be what it should be—a vehicle wherewith
-to transmit religious, Christian perception from the realm of
-reason and intellect into that of feeling, and really drawing
-people in actual life nearer to that perfection and unity
-indicated to them by their religious perception.</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_200'>200</span>
- <h2 id='chap20' class='c003'>CHAPTER XX <br /> THE CONCLUSION</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>I have accomplished, to the best of my ability, this work
-which has occupied me for 15 years, on a subject near to me—that
-of art. By saying that this subject has occupied me
-for 15 years, I do not mean that I have been writing this
-book 15 years, but only that I began to write on art 15
-years ago, thinking that when once I undertook the task I
-should be able to accomplish it without a break. It proved,
-however, that my views on the matter then were so far from
-clear that I could not arrange them in a way that satisfied
-me. From that time I have never ceased to think
-on the subject, and I have recommenced to write on it 6
-or 7 times; but each time, after writing a considerable part
-of it, I have found myself unable to bring the work to a
-satisfactory conclusion, and have had to put it aside. Now
-I have finished it; and however badly I may have performed
-the task, my hope is that my fundamental thought as
-to the false direction the art of our society has taken and is
-following, as to the reasons of this, and as to the real
-destination of art, is correct, and that therefore my work
-will not be without avail. But that this should come to
-pass, and that art should really abandon its false path and
-take the new direction, it is necessary that another equally
-important human spiritual activity,—science,—in intimate
-dependence on which art always rests, should abandon the
-false path which it too, like art, is following.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_201'>201</span>Science and art are as closely bound together as the lungs
-and the heart, so that if one organ is vitiated the other
-cannot act rightly.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>True science investigates and brings to human perception
-such truths and such knowledge as the people of a given
-time and society consider most important. Art transmits
-these truths from the region of perception to the region of
-emotion. Therefore, if the path chosen by science be false
-so also will be the path taken by art. Science and art are like
-a certain kind of barge with kedge-anchors which used to ply
-on our rivers. Science, like the boats which took the anchors
-up-stream and made them secure, gives direction to the
-forward movement; while art, like the windlass worked on
-the barge to draw it towards the anchor, causes the actual
-progression. And thus a false activity of science inevitably
-causes a correspondingly false activity of art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>As art in general is the transmission of every kind of
-feeling, but in the limited sense of the word we only call
-that art which transmits feelings acknowledged by us to be
-important, so also science in general is the transmission of
-all possible knowledge; but in the limited sense of the word
-we call science that which transmits knowledge acknowledged
-by us to be important.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And the degree of importance, both of the feelings transmitted
-by art and of the information transmitted by science,
-is decided by the religious perception of the given time and
-society, <i>i.e.</i> by the common understanding of the purpose
-of their lives possessed by the people of that time or
-society.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>That which most of all contributes to the fulfilment of that
-purpose will be studied most; that which contributes less
-will be studied less; that which does not contribute at all
-to the fulfilment of the purpose of human life will be entirely
-neglected, or, if studied, such study will not be accounted
-science. So it always has been, and so it should be now;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_202'>202</span>for such is the nature of human knowledge and of human
-life. But the science of the upper classes of our time, which
-not only does not acknowledge any religion, but considers
-every religion to be mere superstition, could not and cannot
-make such distinctions.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Scientists of our day affirm that they study <i>everything</i>
-impartially; but as everything is too much (is in fact an
-infinite number of objects), and as it is impossible to study
-all alike, this is only said in the theory, while in practice
-not everything is studied, and study is applied far from
-impartially, only that being studied which, on the one hand,
-is most wanted by, and on the other hand, is pleasantest
-to those people who occupy themselves with science. And
-what the people, belonging to the upper classes, who are
-occupying themselves with science most want is the maintenance
-of the system under which those classes retain their
-privileges; and what is pleasantest are such things as satisfy
-idle curiosity, do not demand great mental efforts, and can
-be practically applied.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And therefore one side of science, including theology and
-philosophy adapted to the existing order, as also history and
-political economy of the same sort, are chiefly occupied in
-proving that the existing order is the very one which ought
-to exist; that it has come into existence and continues to
-exist by the operation of immutable laws not amenable to
-human will, and that all efforts to change it are therefore
-harmful and wrong. The other part, experimental science,—including
-mathematics, astronomy, chemistry, physics,
-botany, and all the natural sciences,—is exclusively occupied
-with things that have no direct relation to human life:
-with what is curious, and with things of which practical
-application advantageous to people of the upper classes can
-be made. And to justify that selection of objects of study
-which (in conformity to their own position) the men of
-science of our times have made, they have devised a theory
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_203'>203</span>of science for science’s sake, quite similar to the theory of
-art for art’s sake.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>As by the theory of art for art’s sake it appears that
-occupation with all those things that please us—is art, so,
-by the theory of science for science’s sake, the study of
-that which interests us—is science.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>So that one side of science, instead of studying how people
-should live in order to fulfil their mission in life, demonstrates
-the righteousness and immutability of the bad and
-false arrangements of life which exist around us; while the
-other part, experimental science, occupies itself with questions
-of simple curiosity or with technical improvements.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The first of these divisions of science is harmful, not
-only because it confuses people’s perceptions and gives false
-decisions, but also because it exists, and occupies the ground
-which should belong to true science. It does this harm,
-that each man, in order to approach the study of the most
-important questions of life, must first refute these erections
-of lies which have during ages been piled around each of
-the most essential questions of human life, and which are
-propped up by all the strength of human ingenuity.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The second division—the one of which modern science
-is so particularly proud, and which is considered by many
-people to be the only real science—is harmful in that it
-diverts attention from the really important subjects to insignificant
-subjects, and is also directly harmful in that,
-under the evil system of society which the first division of
-science justifies and supports, a great part of the technical
-gains of science are turned not to the advantage but to the
-injury of mankind.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Indeed it is only to those who are devoting their lives to
-such study that it seems as if all the inventions which are
-made in the sphere of natural science were very important
-and useful things. And to these people it seems so only
-when they do not look around them and do not see what is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_204'>204</span>really important. They only need tear themselves away
-from the psychological microscope under which they examine
-the objects of their study, and look about them, in
-order to see how insignificant is all that has afforded them
-such naïve pride, all that knowledge not only of geometry
-of n-dimensions, spectrum analysis of the Milky Way, the
-form of atoms, dimensions of human skulls of the Stone Age,
-and similar trifles, but even our knowledge of micro-organisms,
-X-rays, etc., in comparison with such knowledge
-as we have thrown aside and handed over to the perversions
-of the professors of theology, jurisprudence, political
-economy, financial science, etc. We need only look around
-us to perceive that the activity proper to real science is
-not the study of whatever happens to interest us, but the
-study of how man’s life should be established,—the study
-of those questions of religion, morality, and social life,
-without the solution of which all our knowledge of nature
-will be harmful or insignificant.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>We are highly delighted and very proud that our science
-renders it possible to utilise the energy of a waterfall and
-make it work in factories, or that we have pierced tunnels
-through mountains, and so forth. But the pity of it is
-that we make the force of the waterfall labour, not for
-the benefit of the workmen, but to enrich capitalists who
-produce articles of luxury or weapons of man-destroying
-war. The same dynamite with which we blast the mountains
-to pierce tunnels, we use for wars, from which latter
-we not only do not intend to abstain, but which we consider
-inevitable, and for which we unceasingly prepare.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>If we are now able to inoculate preventatively with
-diphtheritic microbes, to find a needle in a body by means
-of X-rays, to straighten a hunched-back, cure syphilis, and
-perform wonderful operations, we should not be proud of
-these acquisitions either (even were they all established
-beyond dispute) if we fully understood the true purpose
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_205'>205</span>of real science. If but one-tenth of the efforts now spent on
-objects of pure curiosity or of merely practical application
-were expended on real science organising the life of man,
-more than half the people now sick would not have the
-illnesses from which a small minority of them now get
-cured in hospitals. There would be no poor-blooded and
-deformed children growing up in factories, no death-rates,
-as now, of 50 per cent. among children, no deterioration
-of whole generations, no prostitution, no syphilis, and no
-murdering of hundreds of thousands in wars, nor those
-horrors of folly and of misery which our present science
-considers a necessary condition of human life.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>We have so perverted the conception of science that it
-seems strange to men of our day to allude to sciences which
-should prevent the mortality of children, prostitution,
-syphilis, the deterioration of whole generations, and the
-wholesale murder of men. It seems to us that science is
-only then real science when a man in a laboratory pours
-liquids from one jar into another, or analyses the spectrum,
-or cuts up frogs and porpoises, or weaves in a specialised,
-scientific jargon an obscure network of conventional
-phrases—theological, philosophical, historical, juridical, or
-politico-economical—semi-intelligible to the man himself, and
-intended to demonstrate that what now is, is what should be.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But science, true science,—such science as would really
-deserve the respect which is now claimed by the followers
-of one (the least important) part of science,—is not at all such
-as this: real science lies in knowing what we should and
-what we should not believe, in knowing how the associated
-life of man should and should not be constituted; how to
-treat sexual relations, how to educate children, how to use
-the land, how to cultivate it oneself without oppressing
-other people, how to treat foreigners, how to treat animals,
-and much more that is important for the life of man.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Such has true science ever been and such it should be.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_206'>206</span>And such science is springing up in our times; but, on
-the one hand, such true science is denied and refuted by
-all those scientific people who defend the existing order
-of society, and, on the other hand, it is considered empty,
-unnecessary, unscientific science by those who are engrossed
-in experimental science.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>For instance, books and sermons appear, demonstrating
-the antiquatedness and absurdity of Church dogmas, as well
-as the necessity of establishing a reasonable religious perception
-suitable to our times, and all the theology that is considered
-to be real science is only engaged in refuting these
-works and in exercising human intelligence again and again
-to find support and justification for superstitions long since
-out-lived, and which have now become quite meaningless. Or
-a sermon appears showing that land should not be an object
-of private possession, and that the institution of private
-property in land is a chief cause of the poverty of the
-masses. Apparently science, real science, should welcome
-such a sermon and draw further deductions from this position.
-But the science of our times does nothing of the
-kind: on the contrary, political economy demonstrates the
-opposite position, namely, that landed property, like every
-other form of property, must be more and more concentrated
-in the hands of a small number of owners. Again, in the
-same way, one would suppose it to be the business of real
-science to demonstrate the irrationality, unprofitableness, and
-immorality of war and of executions; or the inhumanity
-and harmfulness of prostitution; or the absurdity, harmfulness,
-and immorality of using narcotics or of eating animals;
-or the irrationality, harmfulness, and antiquatedness of
-patriotism. And such works exist, but are all considered
-unscientific; while works to prove that all these things
-ought to continue, and works intended to satisfy an idle
-thirst for knowledge lacking any relation to human life, are
-considered to be scientific.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_207'>207</span>The deviation of the science of our time from its true
-purpose is strikingly illustrated by those ideals which are
-put forward by some scientists, and are not denied, but
-admitted, by the majority of scientific men.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>These ideals are expressed not only in stupid, fashionable
-books, describing the world as it will be in 1000 or 3000
-years’ time, but also by sociologists who consider themselves
-serious men of science. These ideals are that food instead
-of being obtained from the land by agriculture, will be prepared
-in laboratories by chemical means, and that human
-labour will be almost entirely superseded by the utilisation
-of natural forces.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Man will not, as now, eat an egg laid by a hen he has
-kept, or bread grown on his field, or an apple from a tree he
-has reared and which has blossomed and matured in his
-sight; but he will eat tasty, nutritious, food which will be
-prepared in laboratories by the conjoint labour of many
-people in which he will take a small part. Man will hardly
-need to labour, so that all men will be able to yield to
-idleness as the upper, ruling classes now yield to it.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Nothing shows more plainly than these ideals to what a
-degree the science of our times has deviated from the true
-path.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The great majority of men in our times lack good and
-sufficient food (as well as dwellings and clothes and all the
-first necessaries of life). And this great majority of men is
-compelled, to the injury of its well-being, to labour continually
-beyond its strength. Both these evils can easily be
-removed by abolishing mutual strife, luxury, and the unrighteous
-distribution of wealth, in a word by the abolition
-of a false and harmful order and the establishment of a
-reasonable, human manner of life. But science considers the
-existing order of things to be as immutable as the movements
-of the planets, and therefore assumes that the purpose
-of science is—not to elucidate the falseness of this order and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_208'>208</span>to arrange a new, reasonable way of life—but, under the
-existing order of things, to feed everybody and enable all to be
-as idle as the ruling classes, who live a depraved life, now are.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And, meanwhile, it is forgotten that nourishment with
-corn, vegetables, and fruit raised from the soil by one’s own
-labour is the pleasantest, healthiest, easiest, and most natural
-nourishment, and that the work of using one’s muscles is as
-necessary a condition of life as is the oxidation of the blood
-by breathing.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>To invent means whereby people might, while continuing
-our false division of property and labour, be well nourished
-by means of chemically-prepared food, and might make the
-forces of nature work for them, is like inventing means to
-pump oxygen into the lungs of a man kept in a closed
-chamber the air of which is bad, when all that is needed is
-to cease to confine the man in the closed chamber.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In the vegetable and animal kingdoms a laboratory for
-the production of food has been arranged, such as can be
-surpassed by no professors, and to enjoy the fruits of this
-laboratory, and to participate in it, man has only to yield to
-that ever joyful impulse to labour, without which man’s
-life is a torment. And lo and behold, the scientists of our
-times, instead of employing all their strength to abolish whatever
-hinders man from utilising the good things prepared for
-him, acknowledge the conditions under which man is deprived
-of these blessings to be unalterable, and instead of arranging
-the life of man so that he might work joyfully and be fed
-from the soil, they devise methods which will cause him to
-become an artificial abortion. It is like not helping a man
-out of confinement into the fresh air, but devising means,
-instead, to pump into him the necessary quantity of oxygen
-and arranging so that he may live in a stifling cellar instead
-of living at home.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Such false ideals could not exist if science were not on a
-false path.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_209'>209</span>And yet the feelings transmitted by art grow up on the
-bases supplied by science.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>But what feelings can such misdirected science evoke?
-One side of this science evokes antiquated feelings, which
-humanity has used up, and which, in our times, are bad and
-exclusive. The other side, occupied with the study of subjects
-unrelated to the conduct of human life, by its very
-nature cannot serve as a basis for art.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>So that art in our times, to be art, must either open up its
-own road independently of science, or must take direction
-from the unrecognised science which is denounced by the
-orthodox section of science. And this is what art, when
-it even partially fulfils its mission, is doing.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>It is to be hoped that the work I have tried to perform
-concerning art will be performed also for science—that the
-falseness of the theory of science for science’s sake will be
-demonstrated; that the necessity of acknowledging Christian
-teaching in its true meaning will be clearly shown,
-that on the basis of that teaching a reappraisement will
-be made of the knowledge we possess, and of which we
-are so proud; that the secondariness and insignificance of
-experimental science, and the primacy and importance of
-religious, moral, and social knowledge will be established;
-and that such knowledge will not, as now, be left to the guidance
-of the upper classes only, but will form a chief interest
-of all free, truth-loving men, such as those who, not in agreement
-with the upper classes but in their despite, have
-always forwarded the real science of life.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Astronomical, physical, chemical, and biological science,
-as also technical and medical science, will be studied only in
-so far as they can help to free mankind from religious,
-juridical, or social deceptions, or can serve to promote the
-well-being of all men, and not of any single class.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Only then will science cease to be what it is now—on the
-one hand a system of sophistries, needed for the maintenance
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_210'>210</span>of the existing worn-out order of society, and, on the other
-hand, a shapeless mass of miscellaneous knowledge, for the
-most part good for little or nothing—and become a shapely
-and organic whole, having a definite and reasonable purpose
-comprehensible to all men, namely, the purpose of
-bringing to the consciousness of men the truths that flow
-from the religious perception of our times.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And only then will art, which is always dependent on
-science, be what it might and should be, an organ coequally
-important with science for the life and progress of mankind.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Art is not a pleasure, a solace, or an amusement; art is a
-great matter. Art is an organ of human life, transmitting
-man’s reasonable perception into feeling. In our age the
-common religious perception of men is the consciousness of
-the brotherhood of man—we know that the well-being of
-man lies in union with his fellow-men. True science
-should indicate the various methods of applying this consciousness
-to life. Art should transform this perception
-into feeling.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The task of art is enormous. Through the influence of
-real art, aided by science guided by religion, that peaceful
-co-operation of man which is now obtained by external
-means—by our law-courts, police, charitable institutions,
-factory inspection, etc.—should be obtained by man’s free
-and joyous activity. Art should cause violence to be set
-aside.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And it is only art that can accomplish this.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>All that now, independently of the fear of violence and
-punishment, makes the social life of man possible (and
-already now this is an enormous part of the order of our
-lives)—all this has been brought about by art. If by art
-it has been inculcated how people should treat religious
-objects, their parents, their children, their wives, their
-relations, strangers, foreigners; how to conduct themselves
-to their elders, their superiors, to those who suffer, to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_211'>211</span>their enemies, and to animals; and if this has been obeyed
-through generations by millions of people, not only unenforced
-by any violence, but so that the force of such
-customs can be shaken in no way but by means of art:
-then, by the same art, other customs, more in accord
-with the religious perception of our time, may be evoked.
-If art has been able to convey the sentiment of reverence
-for images, for the eucharist, and for the king’s person;
-of shame at betraying a comrade, devotion to a flag, the
-necessity of revenge for an insult, the need to sacrifice one’s
-labour for the erection and adornment of churches, the
-duty of defending one’s honour or the glory of one’s native
-land—then that same art can also evoke reverence for the
-dignity of every man and for the life of every animal; can
-make men ashamed of luxury, of violence, of revenge, or of
-using for their pleasure that of which others are in need;
-can compel people freely, gladly, and without noticing it,
-to sacrifice themselves in the service of man.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The task for art to accomplish is to make that feeling
-of brotherhood and love of one’s neighbour, now attained
-only by the best members of the society, the customary
-feeling and the instinct of all men. By evoking, under
-imaginary conditions, the feeling of brotherhood and love,
-religious art will train men to experience those same
-feelings under similar circumstances in actual life; it will
-lay in the souls of men the rails along which the actions
-of those whom art thus educates will naturally pass. And
-universal art, by uniting the most different people in one
-common feeling, by destroying separation, will educate
-people to union, will show them, not by reason but by life
-itself, the joy of universal union reaching beyond the bounds
-set by life.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The destiny of art in our time is to transmit from the
-realm of reason to the realm of feeling the truth that well-being
-for men consists in being united together, and to set
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_212'>212</span>up, in place of the existing reign of force, that kingdom of
-God, <i>i.e.</i> of love, which we all recognise to be the highest
-aim of human life.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Possibly, in the future, science may reveal to art yet
-newer and higher ideals, which art may realise; but, in our
-time, the destiny of art is clear and definite. The task for
-Christian art is to establish brotherly union among men.</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_213'>213</span>
- <h2 class='c003'>APPENDICES</h2>
-</div>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_215'>215</span>
- <h2 id='app1' class='c003'>APPENDIX I.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>This is the first page of Mallarmé’s book <i>Divagations</i>:—</p>
-<h3 class='c013'>LE PHÉNOMÈNE FUTUR.</h3>
-<p class='c004'>Un ciel pâle, sur le monde qui finit de décrépitude, va
-peut-être partir avec les nuages: les lambeaux de la pourpre
-usée des couchants déteignent dans une rivière dormant à
-l’horizon submergé de rayons et d’eau. Les arbres s’ennuient,
-et, sous leur feuillage blanchi (de la poussière du temps
-plutôt que celle des chemins) monte la maison en toile de
-Montreur de choses Passées: maint réverbère attend le
-crépuscule et ravive les visages d’une malheureuse foule,
-vaincue par la maladie immortelle et le péché des siècles,
-d’hommes près de leurs chétives complices enceintes des
-fruits misérables avec lesquels périra la terre. Dans le
-silence inquiet de tous les yeux suppliant là-bas le soleil qui,
-sous l’eau, s’enfonce avec le désespoir d’un cri, voici le
-simple boniment: “Nulle enseigne ne vous régale du
-spectacle intérieur, car il n’est pas maintenant un peintre
-capable d’en donner une ombre triste. J’apporte, vivante
-(et préservée à travers les ans par la science souveraine) une
-Femme d’autrefois. Quelque folie, originelle et naïve, une
-extase d’or, je ne sais quoi! par elle nommé sa chevelure, se
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_216'>216</span>ploie avec la grâce des étoffes autour d’un visage qu’ éclaire
-la nudité sanglante de ses lèvres. A la place du vêtement
-vain, elle a un corps; et les yeux, semblables aux pierres
-rares! ne valent pas ce regard qui sort de sa chair heureuse:
-des seins levés comme s’ils étaient pleins d’un lait éternel, la
-pointe vers le ciel, les jambes lisses qui gardent le sel de la
-mer première.” Se rappelant leurs pauvres épouses, chauves,
-morbides et pleines d’horreur, les maris se pressent: elles
-aussi par curiosité, mélancoliques, veulent voir.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Quand tous auront contemplé la noble créature, vestige
-de quelque époque déjà maudite, les uns indifférents, car ils
-n’auront pas eu la force de comprendre, mais d’autres navrés
-et la paupière humide de larmes résignées, se regarderont;
-tandis que les poètes de ces temps, sentant se rallumer leur
-yeux éteints, s’achemineront vers leur lampe, le cerveau ivre
-un instant d’une gloire confuse, hantés du Rythme et dans
-l’oubli d’exister à une époque qui survit à la beauté.</p>
-<h3 class='c013'>THE FUTURE PHENOMENON—by Mallarmé</h3>
-<p class='c014'>A pale sky, above the world that is ending through decrepitude,
-going perhaps to pass away with the clouds: shreds of worn-out
-purple of the sunsets wash off their colour in a river sleeping on the
-horizon, submerged with rays and water. The trees are weary and,
-beneath their foliage, whitened (by the dust of time rather than that
-of the roads), rises the canvas house of “Showman of things Past.”
-Many a lamp awaits the gloaming and brightens the faces of a
-miserable crowd vanquished by the immortal illness and the sin of
-ages, of men by the sides of their puny accomplices pregnant with
-the miserable fruit with which the world will perish. In the anxious
-silence of all the eyes supplicating the sun there, which sinks under
-the water with the desperation of a cry, this is the plain announcement:
-“No sign-board now regales you with the spectacle that is inside, for
-there is no painter now capable of giving even a sad shadow of it. I
-bring living (and preserved by sovereign science through the years) a
-Woman of other days. Some kind of folly, naïve and original, an
-ecstasy of gold, I know not what, by her called her hair, clings with
-the grace of some material round a face brightened by the blood-red
-nudity of her lips. In place of vain clothing, she has a body; and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_217'>217</span>her eyes, resembling precious stones! are not worth that look, which
-comes from her happy flesh: breasts raised as if full of eternal milk,
-the points towards the sky; the smooth legs, that keep the salt of the
-first sea.” Remembering their poor spouses, bald, morbid, and full of
-horrors, the husbands press forward: the women too, from curiosity,
-gloomily wish to see.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>When all shall have contemplated the noble creature, vestige of
-some epoch already damned, some indifferently, for they will not have
-had strength to understand, but others broken-hearted and with eyelids
-wet with tears of resignation, will look at each other; while the
-poets of those times, feeling their dim eyes rekindled, will make their
-way towards their lamp, their brain for an instant drunk with confused
-glory, haunted by Rhythm and forgetful that they exist at an
-epoch which has survived beauty.</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_218'>218</span>
- <h2 id='app2' class='c003'>APPENDIX II.<a id='r92' /><a href='#f92' class='c008'><sup>[92]</sup></a></h2>
-</div>
-<h3 class='c013'>No. 1.</h3>
-<p class='c004'>The following verses are by Vielé-Griffin, from page 28
-of a volume of his Poems:—</p>
-<h4 class='c015'>OISEAU BLEU COULEUR DU TEMPS.</h4>
-<div class='lg-container-b c016'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>1.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Sait-tu l’oubli</div>
- <div class='line'>D’un vain doux rêve,</div>
- <div class='line'>Oiseau moqueur</div>
- <div class='line'>De la forêt?</div>
- <div class='line'>Le jour pâlit,</div>
- <div class='line'>La nuit se lève,</div>
- <div class='line'>Et dans mon cœur</div>
- <div class='line'>L’ombre a pleuré;</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line c012'>2.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>O chante-moi</div>
- <div class='line'>Ta folle gamme,</div>
- <div class='line'>Car j’ai dormi</div>
- <div class='line'>Ce jour durant;</div>
- <div class='line'>Le lâche emoi</div>
- <div class='line'>Où fut mon âme</div>
- <div class='line'>Sanglote ennui</div>
- <div class='line'>Le jour mourant...</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line c012'>3.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Sais-tu le chant</div>
- <div class='line'>De sa parole</div>
- <div class='line'>Et de sa voix,</div>
- <div class='line'>Toi qui redis</div>
- <div class='line'>Dans le couchant</div>
- <div class='line'>Ton air frivole</div>
- <div class='line'>Comme autrefois</div>
- <div class='line'>Sous les midis?</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line c012'>4.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>O chante alors</div>
- <div class='line'>La mélodie</div>
- <div class='line'>De son amour,</div>
- <div class='line'>Mon fol espoir,</div>
- <div class='line'>Parmi les ors</div>
- <div class='line'>Et l’incendie</div>
- <div class='line'>Du vain doux jour</div>
- <div class='line'>Qui meurt ce soir.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>Francis Vielé-Griffin.</span></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_219'>219</span>
- <h4 class='c015'>BLUE BIRD.</h4>
-</div>
-<div class='lg-container-b c016'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>1.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Canst thou forget,</div>
- <div class='line'>In dreams so vain,</div>
- <div class='line'>Oh, mocking bird</div>
- <div class='line'>Of forest deep?</div>
- <div class='line'>The day doth set,</div>
- <div class='line'>Night comes again,</div>
- <div class='line'>My heart has heard</div>
- <div class='line'>The shadows weep;</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line c012'>2.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Thy tones let flow</div>
- <div class='line'>In maddening scale,</div>
- <div class='line'>For I have slept</div>
- <div class='line'>The livelong day;</div>
- <div class='line'>Emotions low</div>
- <div class='line'>In me now wail,</div>
- <div class='line'>My soul they’ve kept:</div>
- <div class='line'>Light dies away ...</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line c012'>3.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>That music sweet,</div>
- <div class='line'>Ah, do you know</div>
- <div class='line'>Her voice and speech?</div>
- <div class='line'>Your airs so light</div>
- <div class='line'>You who repeat</div>
- <div class='line'>In sunset’s glow,</div>
- <div class='line'>As you sang, each,</div>
- <div class='line'>At noonday’s height.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line c012'>4.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Of my desire,</div>
- <div class='line'>My hope so bold,</div>
- <div class='line'>Her love—up, sing,</div>
- <div class='line'>Sing ’neath this light,</div>
- <div class='line'>This flaming fire,</div>
- <div class='line'>And all the gold</div>
- <div class='line'>The eve doth bring</div>
- <div class='line'>Ere comes the night.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<h3 class='c013'>No. 2.</h3>
-<p class='c004'>And here are some verses by the esteemed young poet
-Verhaeren, which I also take from page 28 of his Works:—</p>
-<h4 class='c015'>ATTIRANCES.</h4>
-<div class='lg-container-b c016'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Lointainement, et si étrangement pareils,</div>
- <div class='line'>De grands masques d’argent que la brume recule,</div>
- <div class='line'>Vaguent, au jour tombant, autour des vieux soleils.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Les doux lointaines!—et comme, au fond du crépuscule,</div>
- <div class='line'>Ils nous fixent le cœur, immensément le cœur,</div>
- <div class='line'>Avec les yeux <i>défunts de leur</i> visage d’âme.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>C’est toujours du silence, à moins, dans la pâleur</div>
- <div class='line'>Du soir, un jet de feu soudain, un cri de flamme,</div>
- <div class='line'>Un départ de lumière inattendu vers Dieu.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='pageno' id='Page_220'>220</span>On se laisse charmer et troubler de mystère,</div>
- <div class='line'>Et l’on dirait des morts qui taisent un adieu</div>
- <div class='line'>Trop mystique, pour être écouté par la terre!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Sont-ils le souvenir matériel et clair</div>
- <div class='line'>Des éphèbes chrétiens couchés aux catacombes</div>
- <div class='line'>Parmi les lys? Sont-ils leur regard et leur chair?</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Ou seul, ce qui survit de merveilleux aux tombes</div>
- <div class='line'>De ceux qui sont partis, vers leurs rêves, un soir,</div>
- <div class='line'>Conquérir la folie à l’assaut des nuées?</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Lointainement, combien nous les sentons vouloir</div>
- <div class='line'>Un peu d’amour pour leurs œuvres destituées,</div>
- <div class='line'>Pour leur errance et leur tristesse aux horizons.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Toujours! aux horizons du cœur et des pensées,</div>
- <div class='line'>Alors que les vieux soirs éclatent en blasons</div>
- <div class='line'>Soudains, pour les gloires noires et angoissées.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>Émile Verhaeren</span>,</div>
- <div class='line'><i>Poèmes</i>.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<h4 class='c015'>ATTRACTIONS.</h4>
-<div class='lg-container-b c016'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Large masks of silver, by mists drawn away,</div>
- <div class='line'>So strangely alike, yet so far apart,</div>
- <div class='line'>Float round the old suns when faileth the day.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>They transfix our heart, so immensely our heart,</div>
- <div class='line'>Those distances mild, in the twilight deep,</div>
- <div class='line'>Looking out of dead faces with their spirit eyes.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>All around is now silence, except when there leap</div>
- <div class='line'>In the pallor of evening, with fiery cries,</div>
- <div class='line'>Some fountains of flame that God-ward do fly.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Mysterious trouble and charms us enfold.</div>
- <div class='line'>You might think that the dead spoke a silent good-bye,</div>
- <div class='line'>Oh! too mystical far on earth to be told!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='pageno' id='Page_221'>221</span>Are they the memories, material and bright,</div>
- <div class='line'>Of the Christian youths that in catacombs sleep</div>
- <div class='line'>’Mid the lilies? Are they their flesh or their sight?</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Or the marvel alone that survives, in the deep,</div>
- <div class='line'>Of those that, one night, returned to their dream</div>
- <div class='line'>Of conquering folly by assaulting the skies?</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>For their destitute works—we feel it seems,</div>
- <div class='line'>For a little love their longing cries</div>
- <div class='line'>From horizons far—for their errings and pain.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>In horizons ever of heart and thought,</div>
- <div class='line'>While the evenings old in bright blaze wane</div>
- <div class='line'>Suddenly, for black glories anguish fraught.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<h3 class='c013'>No. 3.</h3>
-<p class='c004'>And the following is a poem by Moréas, evidently an
-admirer of Greek beauty. It is from page 28 of a volume
-of his Poems:—</p>
-<h4 class='c015'>ENONE AU CLAIR VISAGE.</h4>
-<div class='lg-container-b c016'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Enone, j’avais cru qu’en aimant ta beauté</div>
- <div class='line'>Où l’âme avec le corps trouvent leur unité,</div>
- <div class='line'>J’allais, m’affermissant et le cœur et l’esprit,</div>
- <div class='line'>Monter jusqu’à cela qui jamais ne périt,</div>
- <div class='line'>N’ayant été crée, qui n’est froideur ou feu,</div>
- <div class='line'>Qui n’est beau quelque part et laid en autre lieu;</div>
- <div class='line'>Et me flattais encor’ d’une belle harmonie</div>
- <div class='line'>Que j’eusse composé du meilleur et du pire,</div>
- <div class='line'>Ainsi que le chanteur qui chérit Polimnie,</div>
- <div class='line'>En accordant le grave avec l’aigu, retire</div>
- <div class='line'>Un son bien élevé sur les nerfs de sa lyre.</div>
- <div class='line'>Mais mon courage, hélas! se pâmant comme mort,</div>
- <div class='line'>M’enseigna que le trait qui m’avait fait amant</div>
- <div class='line'>Ne fut pas de cet arc que courbe sans effort</div>
- <div class='line'>La Vénus qui naquit du mâle seulement,</div>
- <div class='line'><span class='pageno' id='Page_222'>222</span>Mais que j’avais souffert cette Vénus dernière,</div>
- <div class='line'>Qui a le cœur couard, né d’une faible mère.</div>
- <div class='line'>Et pourtant, ce mauvais garçon, chasseur habile,</div>
- <div class='line'>Qui charge son carquois de sagette subtile,</div>
- <div class='line'>Qui secoue en riant sa torche, pour un jour,</div>
- <div class='line'>Qui ne pose jamais que sur de tendres fleurs,</div>
- <div class='line'>C’est sur un teint charmant qu’il essuie les pleurs,</div>
- <div class='line'>Et c’est encore un Dieu, Enone, cet Amour.</div>
- <div class='line'>Mais, laisse, les oiseaux du printemps sont partis,</div>
- <div class='line'>Et je vois les rayons du soleil amortis.</div>
- <div class='line'>Enone, ma douleur, harmonieux visage,</div>
- <div class='line'>Superbe humilité, doux honnête langage,</div>
- <div class='line'>Hier me remirant dans cet étang glacé</div>
- <div class='line'>Qui au bout du jardin se couvre de feuillage,</div>
- <div class='line'>Sur ma face je vis que les jours ont passé.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>Jean Moréas.</span></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<h4 class='c015'>ENONE.</h4>
-<div class='lg-container-b c016'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Enone, in loving thy beauty, I thought,</div>
- <div class='line'>Where the soul and the body to union are brought,</div>
- <div class='line'>That mounting by steadying my heart and my mind,</div>
- <div class='line'>In that which can’t perish, myself I should find.</div>
- <div class='line'>For it ne’er was created, is not ugly and fair;</div>
- <div class='line'>Is not coldness in one part, while on fire it is there.</div>
- <div class='line'>Yes, I flattered myself that a harmony fine</div>
- <div class='line'>I’d succeed to compose of the worst and the best,</div>
- <div class='line'>Like the bard who adores Polyhymnia divine,</div>
- <div class='line'>And mingling sounds different from the nerves of his lyre,</div>
- <div class='line'>From the grave and the smart draws melodies higher.</div>
- <div class='line'>But, alas! my courage, so faint and nigh spent,</div>
- <div class='line'>The dart that has struck me proves without fail</div>
- <div class='line'>Not to be from that bow which is easily bent</div>
- <div class='line'>By the Venus that’s born alone of the male.</div>
- <div class='line'>No, ’twas that other Venus that caused me to smart,</div>
- <div class='line'>Born of frail mother with cowardly heart.</div>
- <div class='line'>And yet that naughty lad, that little hunter bold,</div>
- <div class='line'>Who laughs and shakes his flowery torch just for a day,</div>
- <div class='line'>Who never rests but upon tender flowers and gay,</div>
- <div class='line'><span class='pageno' id='Page_223'>223</span>On sweetest skin who dries the tears his eyes that fill,</div>
- <div class='line'>Yet oh, Enone mine, a God’s that Cupid still.</div>
- <div class='line'>Let it pass; for the birds of the Spring are away,</div>
- <div class='line'>And dying I see the sun’s lingering ray.</div>
- <div class='line'>Enone, my sorrow, oh, harmonious face,</div>
- <div class='line'>Humility grand, words of virtue and grace,</div>
- <div class='line'>I looked yestere’en in the pond frozen fast,</div>
- <div class='line'>Strewn with leaves at the end of the garden’s fair space,</div>
- <div class='line'>And I read in my face that those days are now past.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<h3 class='c013'>No. 4.</h3>
-<p class='c004'>And this is also from page 28 of a thick book, full of
-similar Poems, by M. Montesquiou.</p>
-<h4 class='c015'>BERCEUSE D’OMBRE.</h4>
-<div class='lg-container-b c016'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Des formes, des formes, des formes</div>
- <div class='line'>Blanche, bleue, et rose, et d’or</div>
- <div class='line'>Descendront du haut des ormes</div>
- <div class='line'>Sur l’enfant qui se rendort.</div>
- <div class='line in10'>Des formes!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Des plumes, des plumes, des plumes</div>
- <div class='line'>Pour composer un doux nid.</div>
- <div class='line'>Midi sonne: les enclumes</div>
- <div class='line'>Cessent; la rumeur finit ...</div>
- <div class='line in10'>Des plumes!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Des roses, des roses, des roses</div>
- <div class='line'>Pour embaumer son sommeil,</div>
- <div class='line'>Vos pétales sont moroses</div>
- <div class='line'>Près du sourire vermeil.</div>
- <div class='line in10'>O roses!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Des ailes, des ailes, des ailes</div>
- <div class='line'>Pour bourdonner à son front.</div>
- <div class='line'>Abeilles et demoiselles,</div>
- <div class='line'>Des rythmes qui berceront.</div>
- <div class='line in10'>Des ailes!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='pageno' id='Page_224'>224</span>Des branches, des branches, des branches</div>
- <div class='line'>Pour tresser un pavillon,</div>
- <div class='line'>Par où des clartés moins franches</div>
- <div class='line'>Descendront sur l’oisillon.</div>
- <div class='line in10'>Des branches!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Des songes, des songes, des songes</div>
- <div class='line'>Dans ses pensers entr’ ouverts</div>
- <div class='line'>Glissez un peu de mensonges</div>
- <div class='line'>A voir le vie au travers</div>
- <div class='line in10'>Des songes!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Des fées, des fées, des fées,</div>
- <div class='line'>Pour filer leurs écheveaux</div>
- <div class='line'>Des mirages, de bouffées</div>
- <div class='line'>Dans tous ces petits cerveaux.</div>
- <div class='line in10'>Des fées.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Des anges, des anges, des anges</div>
- <div class='line'>Pour emporter dans l’éther</div>
- <div class='line'>Les petits enfants étranges</div>
- <div class='line'>Qui ne veulent pas rester ...</div>
- <div class='line in10'>Nos anges!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>Comte Robert de Montesquiou-Fezensac</span>,</div>
- <div class='line'><i>Les Hortensias Bleus</i>.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<h4 class='c015'>THE SHADOW LULLABY.</h4>
-<div class='lg-container-b c016'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Oh forms, oh forms, oh forms</div>
- <div class='line'>White, blue, and gold, and red</div>
- <div class='line'>Descending from the elm trees,</div>
- <div class='line'>On sleeping baby’s head.</div>
- <div class='line in10'>Oh forms!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Oh feathers, feathers, feathers</div>
- <div class='line'>To make a cosy nest.</div>
- <div class='line'>Twelve striking: stops the clamour;</div>
- <div class='line'>The anvils are at rest ...</div>
- <div class='line in10'>Oh feathers!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='pageno' id='Page_225'>225</span>Oh roses, roses, roses</div>
- <div class='line'>To scent his sleep awhile,</div>
- <div class='line'>Pale are your fragrant petals</div>
- <div class='line'>Beside his ruby smile.</div>
- <div class='line in10'>Oh roses!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Oh wings, oh wings, oh wings</div>
- <div class='line'>Of bees and dragon-flies,</div>
- <div class='line'>To hum around his forehead,</div>
- <div class='line'>And lull him with your sighs.</div>
- <div class='line in10'>Oh wings!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Branches, branches, branches</div>
- <div class='line'>A shady bower to twine,</div>
- <div class='line'>Through which, oh daylight, family</div>
- <div class='line'>Descend on birdie mine.</div>
- <div class='line in10'>Branches!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Oh dreams, oh dreams, oh dreams</div>
- <div class='line'>Into his opening mind,</div>
- <div class='line'>Let in a little falsehood</div>
- <div class='line'>With sights of life behind.</div>
- <div class='line in10'>Dreams!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Oh fairies, fairies, fairies,</div>
- <div class='line'>To twine and twist their threads</div>
- <div class='line'>With puffs of phantom visions</div>
- <div class='line'>Into these little heads.</div>
- <div class='line in10'>Fairies!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Angels, angels, angels</div>
- <div class='line'>To the ether far away,</div>
- <div class='line'>Those children strange to carry</div>
- <div class='line'>That here don’t wish to stay ...</div>
- <div class='line in10'>Our angels!</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_226'>226</span>
- <h2 id='app3' class='c003'>APPENDIX III.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>These are the contents of <i>The Nibelung’s Ring</i>:—</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The first part tells that the nymphs, the daughters of the
-Rhine, for some reason guard gold in the Rhine, and sing:
-Weia, Waga, Woge du Welle, Walle zur Wiege, Wagalaweia,
-Wallala, Weiala, Weia, and so forth.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>These singing nymphs are pursued by a gnome (a
-nibelung) who desires to seize them. The gnome cannot
-catch any of them. Then the nymphs guarding the gold
-tell the gnome just what they ought to keep secret, namely,
-that whoever renounces love will be able to steal the gold
-they are guarding. And the gnome renounces love, and
-steals the gold. This ends the first scene.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>In the second scene a god and a goddess lie in a field in
-sight of a castle which giants have built for them. Presently
-they wake up and are pleased with the castle, and they
-relate that in payment for this work they must give the
-goddess Freia to the giants. The giants come for their pay.
-But the god Wotan objects to parting with Freia. The
-giants get angry. The gods hear that the gnome has stolen
-the gold, promise to confiscate it and to pay the giants with
-it. But the giants won’t trust them, and seize the goddess
-Freia in pledge.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The third scene takes place under ground. The gnome
-Alberich, who stole the gold, for some reason beats a gnome,
-Mime, and takes from him a helmet which has the power
-both of making people invisible and of turning them into
-other animals. The gods, Wotan and others, appear and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_227'>227</span>quarrel with one another and with the gnomes, and wish to
-take the gold, but Alberich won’t give it up, and (like everybody
-all through the piece) behaves in a way to ensure his
-own ruin. He puts on the helmet, and becomes first a
-dragon and then a toad. The gods catch the toad,
-take the helmet off it, and carry Alberich away with
-them.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Scene IV. The gods bring Alberich to their home, and
-order him to command his gnomes to bring them all the
-gold. The gnomes bring it. Alberich gives up the gold,
-but keeps a magic ring. The gods take the ring. So
-Alberich curses the ring, and says it is to bring misfortune
-on anyone who has it. The giants appear; they bring the
-goddess Freia, and demand her ransom. They stick up
-staves of Freia’s height, and gold is poured in between these
-staves: this is to be the ransom. There is not enough gold,
-so the helmet is thrown in, and they also demand the ring.
-Wotan refuses to give it up, but the goddess Erda appears
-and commands him to do so, because it brings misfortune.
-Wotan gives it up. Freia is released. The giants, having
-received the ring, fight, and one of them kills the other.
-This ends the Prelude, and we come to the First Day.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>The scene shows a house in a tree. Siegmund runs in
-tired, and lies down. Sieglinda, the mistress of the house
-(and wife of Hunding), gives him a drugged draught, and
-they fall in love with each other. Sieglinda’s husband
-comes home, learns that Siegmund belongs to a hostile race,
-and wishes to fight him next day; but Sieglinda drugs her
-husband, and comes to Siegmund. Siegmund discovers that
-Sieglinda is his sister, and that his father drove a sword into
-the tree so that no one can get it out. Siegmund pulls the
-sword out, and commits incest with his sister.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Act II. Siegmund is to fight with Hunding. The gods
-discuss the question to whom they shall award the victory.
-Wotan, approving of Siegmund’s incest with his sister,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_228'>228</span>wishes to spare him, but, under pressure from his wife,
-Fricka, he orders the Valkyrie Brünnhilda to kill Siegmund.
-Siegmund goes to fight; Sieglinda faints. Brünnhilda appears
-and wishes to slay Siegmund. Siegmund wishes to
-kill Sieglinda also, but Brünnhilda does not allow it; so he
-fights with Hunding. Brünnhilda defends Siegmund, but
-Wotan defends Hunding. Siegmund’s sword breaks, and
-he is killed. Sieglinda runs away.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Act III. The Valkyries (divine Amazons) are on the
-stage. The Valkyrie Brünnhilda arrives on horseback,
-bringing Siegmund’s body. She is flying from Wotan,
-who is chasing her for her disobedience. Wotan catches
-her, and as a punishment dismisses her from her post
-as a Valkyrie. He casts a spell on her, so that she has
-to go to sleep and to continue asleep until a man wakes
-her. When someone wakes her she will fall in love with
-him. Wotan kisses her; she falls asleep. He lets off fire,
-which surrounds her.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>We now come to the Second Day. The gnome Mime
-forges a sword in a wood. Siegfried appears. He is a son
-born from the incest of brother with sister (Siegmund with
-Sieglinda), and has been brought up in this wood by the
-gnome. In general the motives of the actions of everybody
-in this production are quite unintelligible. Siegfried learns
-his own origin, and that the broken sword was his father’s.
-He orders Mime to reforge it, and then goes off. Wotan
-comes in the guise of a wanderer, and relates what will
-happen: that he who has not learnt to fear will forge the
-sword, and will defeat everybody. The gnome conjectures
-that this is Siegfried, and wants to poison him. Siegfried
-returns, forges his father’s sword, and runs off, shouting,
-Heiho! heiho! heiho! Ho! ho! Aha! oho! aha!
-Heiaho! heiaho! heiaho! Ho! ho! Hahei! hoho!
-hahei!</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>And we get to Act II. Alberich sits guarding a giant,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_229'>229</span>who, in form of a dragon, guards the gold he has received.
-Wotan appears, and for some unknown reason foretells that
-Siegfried will come and kill the dragon. Alberich wakes
-the dragon, and asks him for the ring, promising to defend
-him from Siegfried. The dragon won’t give up the ring.
-Exit Alberich. Mime and Siegfried appear. Mime hopes
-the dragon will teach Siegfried to fear. But Siegfried
-does not fear. He drives Mime away and kills the dragon,
-after which he puts his finger, smeared with the dragon’s
-blood, to his lips. This enables him to know men’s secret
-thoughts, as well as the language of birds. The birds tell
-him where the treasure and the ring are, and also that Mime
-wishes to poison him. Mime returns, and says out loud
-that he wishes to poison Siegfried. This is meant to signify
-that Siegfried, having tasted dragon’s blood, understands
-people’s secret thoughts. Siegfried, having learnt Mime’s
-intentions, kills him. The birds tell Siegfried where Brünnhilda
-is, and he goes to find her.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Act III. Wotan calls up Erda. Erda prophesies to
-Wotan, and gives him advice. Siegfried appears, quarrels
-with Wotan, and they fight. Suddenly Siegfried’s sword
-breaks Wotan’s spear, which had been more powerful than
-anything else. Siegfried goes into the fire to Brünnhilda;
-kisses her; she wakes up, abandons her divinity, and throws
-herself into Siegfried’s arms.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Third Day. Prelude. Three Norns plait a golden rope,
-and talk about the future. They go away. Siegfried and
-Brünnhilda appear. Siegfried takes leave of her, gives her
-the ring, and goes away.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Act I. By the Rhine. A king wants to get married, and
-also to give his sister in marriage. Hagen, the king’s
-wicked brother, advises him to marry Brünnhilda, and to
-give his sister to Siegfried. Siegfried appears; they give
-him a drugged draught, which makes him forget all the past
-and fall in love with the king’s sister, Gutrune. So he rides
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_230'>230</span>off with Gunther, the king, to get Brünnhilda to be the
-king’s bride. The scene changes. Brünnhilda sits with the
-ring. A Valkyrie comes to her and tells her that Wotan’s
-spear is broken, and advises her to give the ring to the
-Rhine nymphs. Siegfried comes, and by means of the magic
-helmet turns himself into Gunther, demands the ring from
-Brünnhilda, seizes it, and drags her off to sleep with
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Act II. By the Rhine. Alberich and Hagen discuss how
-to get the ring. Siegfried comes, tells how he has obtained
-a bride for Gunther and spent the night with her, but
-put a sword between himself and her. Brünnhilda rides
-up, recognises the ring on Siegfried’s hand, and declares
-that it was he, and not Gunther, who was with her. Hagen
-stirs everybody up against Siegfried, and decides to kill him
-next day when hunting.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Act III. Again the nymphs in the Rhine relate what has
-happened. Siegfried, who has lost his way, appears. The
-nymphs ask him for the ring, but he won’t give it up. Hunters
-appear. Siegfried tells the story of his life. Hagen then
-gives him a draught, which causes his memory to return to
-him. Siegfried relates how he aroused and obtained Brünnhilda,
-and everyone is astonished. Hagen stabs him in the
-back, and the scene is changed. Gutrune meets the corpse
-of Siegfried. Gunther and Hagen quarrel about the ring, and
-Hagen kills Gunther. Brünnhilda cries. Hagen wishes to
-take the ring from Siegfried’s hand, but the hand of the corpse
-raises itself threateningly. Brünnhilda takes the ring from
-Siegfried’s hand, and when Siegfried’s corpse is carried to
-the pyre she gets on to a horse and leaps into the fire. The
-Rhine rises, and the waves reach the pyre. In the river are
-three nymphs. Hagen throws himself into the fire to get
-the ring, but the nymphs seize him and carry him off. One
-of them holds the ring; and that is the end of the
-matter.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_231'>231</span>The impression obtainable from my recapitulation is, of
-course, incomplete. But however incomplete it may be, it
-is certainly infinitely more favourable than the impression
-which results from reading the four booklets in which the
-work is printed.</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_232'>232</span>
- <h2 id='app4' class='c003'>APPENDIX IV. <br /> Translations of French poems and prose quoted in Chapter X.</h2>
-</div>
-<h3 class='c013'>BAUDELAIRE’S “FLOWERS OF EVIL.” <br /> No. XXIV.</h3>
-<div class='lg-container-b c016'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>I adore thee as much as the vaults of night,</div>
- <div class='line'>O vase full of grief, taciturnity great,</div>
- <div class='line'>And I love thee the more because of thy flight.</div>
- <div class='line'>It seemeth, my night’s beautifier, that you</div>
- <div class='line'>Still heap up those leagues—yes! ironically heap!—</div>
- <div class='line'>That divide from my arms the immensity blue.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>I advance to attack, I climb to assault,</div>
- <div class='line'>Like a choir of young worms at a corpse in the vault;</div>
- <div class='line'>Thy coldness, oh cruel, implacable beast!</div>
- <div class='line'>Yet heightens thy beauty, on which my eyes feast!</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<h3 class='c013'>BAUDELAIRE’S “FLOWERS OF EVIL.” <br /> No. XXXVI.</h3>
-<h4 class='c015'>DUELLUM.</h4>
-<div class='lg-container-b c016'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in2'>Two warriors come running, to fight they begin,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>With gleaming and blood they bespatter the air;</div>
- <div class='line'>These games, and this clatter of arms, is the din</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Of youth that’s a prey to the surgings of love.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in2'>The rapiers are broken! and so is our youth,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>But the dagger’s avenged, dear! and so is the sword,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>By the nail that is steeled and the hardened tooth.</div>
- <div class='line'>Oh, the fury of hearts aged and ulcered by love!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in2'>In the ditch, where the ounce and the pard have their lair,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Our heroes have rolled in an angry embrace;</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Their skin blooms on brambles that erewhile were bare.</div>
- <div class='line'><span class='pageno' id='Page_233'>233</span>That ravine is a friend-inhabited hell!</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Then let us roll in, oh woman inhuman,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>To immortalise hatred that nothing can quell!</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<h3 class='c013'>FROM BAUDELAIRE’S PROSE WORK ENTITLED “LITTLE POEMS.”</h3>
-<h4 class='c015'>THE STRANGER.</h4>
-<p class='c004'>Whom dost thou love best? say, enigmatical man—thy father,
-thy mother, thy brother, or thy sister?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“I have neither father, nor mother, nor sister, nor brother.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Thy friends?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“You there use an expression the meaning of which till now remains
-unknown to me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Thy country?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“I ignore in what latitude it is situated.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Beauty?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“I would gladly love her, goddess and immortal.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Gold?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“I hate it as you hate God.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Then what do you love, extraordinary stranger?</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“I love the clouds ... the clouds that pass ... there ... the
-marvellous clouds!”</p>
-<h3 class='c013'>BAUDELAIRE’S PROSE POEM, <br /> THE SOUP AND THE CLOUDS.</h3>
-<p class='c004'>My beloved little silly was giving me my dinner, and I was contemplating,
-through the open window of the dining-room, those moving
-architectures which God makes out of vapours, the marvellous constructions
-of the impalpable. And I said to myself, amid my
-contemplations, “All these phantasmagoria are almost as beautiful as
-the eyes of my beautiful beloved, the monstrous little silly with the
-green eyes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Suddenly I felt the violent blow of a fist on my back, and I heard
-a harsh, charming voice, an hysterical voice, as it were hoarse with
-brandy, the voice of my dear little well-beloved, saying, “Are you
-going to eat your soup soon, you d—— b—— of a dealer in clouds?”</p>
-<div>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_234'>234</span>
- <h3 class='c013'>BAUDELAIRE’S PROSE POEM, <br /> THE GALLANT MARKSMAN.</h3>
-</div>
-<p class='c004'>As the carriage was passing through the forest, he ordered it to be
-stopped near a shooting-gallery, saying that he wished to shoot off a
-few bullets to <i>kill</i> Time. To kill this monster, is it not the most
-ordinary and the most legitimate occupation of everyone? And he
-gallantly offered his arm to his dear, delicious, and execrable wife—that
-mysterious woman to whom he owed so much pleasure, so much
-pain, and perhaps also a large part of his genius.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Several bullets struck far from the intended mark—one even
-penetrated the ceiling; and as the charming creature laughed madly,
-mocking her husband’s awkwardness, he turned abruptly towards
-her and said, “Look at that doll there on the right with the haughty
-mien and her nose in the air; well, dear angel, <i>I imagine to myself
-that it is you</i>!” And he closed his eyes and pulled the trigger. The
-doll was neatly decapitated.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Then, bowing towards his dear one, his delightful, execrable wife,
-his inevitable, pitiless muse, and kissing her hand respectfully, he
-added, “Ah! my dear angel, how I thank you for my skill!”</p>
-<h3 class='c013'>VERLAINE’S “FORGOTTEN AIRS.” <br /> No. I.</h3>
-<div class='lg-container-b c016'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“The wind in the plain</div>
- <div class='line'>Suspends its breath.”—<span class='sc'>Favart.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>’Tis ecstasy languishing,</div>
- <div class='line'>Amorous fatigue,</div>
- <div class='line'>Of woods all the shudderings</div>
- <div class='line'>Embraced by the breeze,</div>
- <div class='line'>’Tis the choir of small voices</div>
- <div class='line'>Towards the grey trees.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Oh the frail and fresh murmuring!</div>
- <div class='line'>The twitter and buzz,</div>
- <div class='line'>The soft cry resembling</div>
- <div class='line'>That’s expired by the grass ...</div>
- <div class='line'>Oh, the roll of the pebbles</div>
- <div class='line'>’Neath waters that pass!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='pageno' id='Page_235'>235</span>Oh, this soul that is groaning</div>
- <div class='line'>In sleepy complaint!</div>
- <div class='line'>In us is it moaning?</div>
- <div class='line'>In me and in you?</div>
- <div class='line'>Low anthem exhaling</div>
- <div class='line'>While soft falls the dew.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<h3 class='c013'>VERLAINE’S “FORGOTTEN AIRS.” <br /> No. VIII.</h3>
-<div class='lg-container-b c016'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>In the unending</div>
- <div class='line'>Dulness of this land,</div>
- <div class='line'>Uncertain the snow</div>
- <div class='line'>Is gleaming like sand.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>No kind of brightness</div>
- <div class='line'>In copper-hued sky,</div>
- <div class='line'>The moon you might see</div>
- <div class='line'>Now live and now die.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Grey float the oak trees—</div>
- <div class='line'>Cloudlike they seem—</div>
- <div class='line'>Of neighbouring forests,</div>
- <div class='line'>The mists in between.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Wolves hungry and lean,</div>
- <div class='line'>And famishing crow,</div>
- <div class='line'>What happens to you</div>
- <div class='line'>When acid winds blow?</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>In the unending</div>
- <div class='line'>Dulness of this land,</div>
- <div class='line'>Uncertain the snow</div>
- <div class='line'>Is gleaming like sand.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<h3 class='c013'>SONG BY MAETERLINCK.</h3>
-<div class='lg-container-b c016'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in2'>When he went away,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>(Then I heard the door)</div>
- <div class='line in2'>When he went away,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>On her lips a smile there lay ...</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in2'><span class='pageno' id='Page_236'>236</span>Back he came to her,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>(Then I heard the lamp)</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Back he came to her,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Someone else was there ...</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in2'>It was death I met,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>(And I heard her soul)</div>
- <div class='line in2'>It was death I met,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>For her he’s waiting yet ...</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in2'>Someone came to say,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>(Child, I am afraid)</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Someone came to say</div>
- <div class='line in2'>That he would go away ...</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in2'>With my lamp alight,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>(Child, I am afraid)</div>
- <div class='line in2'>With my lamp alight,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Approached I in affright ...</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in2'>To one door I came,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>(Child, I am afraid)</div>
- <div class='line in2'>To one door I came,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>A shudder shook the flame ...</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in2'>At the second door,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>(Child, I am afraid)</div>
- <div class='line in2'>At the second door</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Forth words the flame did pour ...</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in2'>To the third I came,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>(Child, I am afraid)</div>
- <div class='line in2'>To the third I came,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Then died the little flame ...</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in2'>Should he one day return</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Then what shall we say?</div>
- <div class='line'>Waiting, tell him, one</div>
- <div class='line in2'>And dying for him lay ...</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in2'>If he asks for you,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Say what answer then?</div>
- <div class='line'>Give him my gold ring</div>
- <div class='line in2'>And answer not a thing ...</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in2'><span class='pageno' id='Page_237'>237</span>Should he question me</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Concerning the last hour?</div>
- <div class='line'>Say I smiled for fear</div>
- <div class='line in2'>That he should shed a tear ...</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in2'>Should he question more</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Without knowing me?</div>
- <div class='line'>Like a sister speak;</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Suffering he may be ...</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in2'>Should he question why</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Empty is the hall?</div>
- <div class='line'>Show the gaping door,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>The lamp alight no more ...</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c004'>PRINTED BY MORRISON AND GIBB LIMITED, EDINBURGH</p>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='large'>Footnotes</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='footnote' id='f1'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r1'>1</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Bolton Hall has recently published a little work, <i>Life, and Love,
-and Death</i>, with the object of making the philosophy contained in <i>On
-Life</i> more easily accessible in English.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f2'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r2'>2</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Tolstoy’s remarks on Church religion were re-worded so as to seem
-to relate only to the Western Church, and his disapproval of luxurious
-life was made to apply not, say, to Queen Victoria or Nicholas <span class='fss'>II.</span>,
-but to the Cæsars or the Pharaohs.—Trans.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f3'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r3'>3</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>The Russian peasant is usually a member of a village commune,
-and has therefore a right to a share in the land belonging to the
-village. Tolstoy disapproves of the order of society which allows
-less land for the support of a whole village full of people than is
-sometimes owned by a single landed proprietor. The “Censor” will
-not allow disapproval of this state of things to be expressed, but is
-prepared to admit that the laws and customs, say, of England—where
-a yet more extreme form of landed property exists, and the
-men who actually labour on the land usually possess none of it—deserve
-criticism.—Trans.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f4'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r4'>4</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Only two, or at most three, senses are generally held worthy to
-supply matter for artistic treatment, but I think this opinion is only
-conditionally correct. I will not lay too much stress on the fact that
-our common speech recognises many other arts, as, for instance, the
-art of cookery.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f5'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r5'>5</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>And yet it is certainly an æsthetic achievement when the art of
-cooking succeeds in making of an animal’s corpse an object in all respects
-tasteful. The principle of the Art of Taste (which goes beyond
-the so-called Art of Cookery) is therefore this: All that is eatable
-should be treated as the symbol of some Idea, and always in harmony
-with the Idea to be expressed.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f6'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r6'>6</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>If the sense of touch lacks colour, it gives us, on the other hand,
-a notion which the eye alone cannot afford, and one of considerable
-æsthetic value, namely, that of <i>softness</i>, <i>silkiness</i>, <i>polish</i>. The beauty
-of velvet is characterised not less by its softness to the touch than by
-its lustre. In the idea we form of a woman’s beauty, the softness of
-her skin enters as an essential element.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Each of us probably, with a little attention, can recall pleasures of
-taste which have been real æsthetic pleasures.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f7'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r7'>7</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>M. Schasler, <i>Kritische Geschichte der Aesthetik</i>, 1872, vol. i.
-p. 13.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f8'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r8'>8</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>There is no science which more than æsthetics has been handed
-over to the reveries of the metaphysicians. From Plato down to the
-received doctrines of our day, people have made of art a strange
-amalgam of quintessential fancies and transcendental mysteries, which
-find their supreme expression in the conception of an absolute ideal
-Beauty, immutable and divine prototype of actual things.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f9'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r9'>9</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>See on this matter Benard’s admirable book, <i>L’esthétique
-d’Aristote</i>, also Walter’s <i>Geschichte der Aesthetik im Altertum</i>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f10'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r10'>10</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, p. 361.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f11'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r11'>11</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, p. 369.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f12'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r12'>12</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, pp. 388-390.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f13'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r13'>13</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, <i>Philosophy of the Beautiful</i>, i. pp. 165, 166.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f14'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r14'>14</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, p. 289. Knight, pp. 168, 169.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f15'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r15'>15</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>R. Kralik, <i>Weltschönheit, Versuch einer allgemeinen Aesthetik</i>,
-pp. 304-306.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f16'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r16'>16</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, p. 101.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f17'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r17'>17</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, p. 316.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f18'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r18'>18</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, pp. 102-104.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f19'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r19'>19</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>R. Kralik, p. 124.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f20'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r20'>20</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Spaletti, Schasler, p. 328.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f21'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r21'>21</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, pp. 331-333.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f22'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r22'>22</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, pp. 525-528.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f23'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r23'>23</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, pp. 61-63.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f24'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r24'>24</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, pp. 740-743.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f25'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r25'>25</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, pp. 769-771.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f26'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r26'>26</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, pp. 786, 787.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f27'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r27'>27</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Kralik, p. 148.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f28'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r28'>28</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Kralik, p. 820.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f29'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r29'>29</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, pp. 828, 829, 834-841.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f30'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r30'>30</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, p. 891.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f31'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r31'>31</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, p. 917.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f32'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r32'>32</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, pp. 946, 1085, 984, 985, 990.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f33'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r33'>33</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, pp. 966, 655, 956.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f34'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r34'>34</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, p. 1017.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f35'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r35'>35</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, pp. 1065, 1066.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f36'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r36'>36</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, pp. 1097-1100.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f37'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r37'>37</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, pp. 1124, 1107.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f38'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r38'>38</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, pp. 81, 82.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f39'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r39'>39</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, p. 83.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f40'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r40'>40</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Schasler, p. 1121.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f41'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r41'>41</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, pp. 85, 86.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f42'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r42'>42</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, p. 88.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f43'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r43'>43</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, p. 88.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f44'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r44'>44</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, p. 112.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f45'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r45'>45</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, p. 116.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f46'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r46'>46</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, pp. 118, 119.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f47'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r47'>47</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, pp. 123, 124.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f48'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r48'>48</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>La philosophie en France</i>, p. 232.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f49'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r49'>49</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Du fondement de l’induction.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f50'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r50'>50</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Philosophie de l’art</i>, vol. i. 1893, p. 47.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f51'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r51'>51</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, p. 139-141.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f52'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r52'>52</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, pp. 134.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f53'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r53'>53</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>L’esthétique</i>, p. 106.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f54'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r54'>54</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, p. 238.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f55'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r55'>55</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, pp. 239, 240.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f56'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r56'>56</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, pp. 240-243.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f57'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r57'>57</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, pp. 250-252.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f58'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r58'>58</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, pp. 258, 259.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f59'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r59'>59</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Knight, p. 243.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f60'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r60'>60</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>“The foundling of Nuremberg,” found in the market-place of
-that town on 26th May 1828, apparently some sixteen years old.
-He spoke little, and was almost totally ignorant even of common
-objects. He subsequently explained that he had been brought up in
-confinement underground, and visited by only one man, whom he saw
-but seldom.—Trans.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f61'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r61'>61</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Eastern sects well known in early Church history, who rejected
-the Church’s rendering of Christ’s teaching and were cruelly persecuted.—Trans.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f62'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r62'>62</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Keltchitsky, a Bohemian of the fifteenth century, was the author
-of a remarkable book, <i>The Net of Faith</i>, directed against Church and
-State. It is mentioned in Tolstoy’s <i>The Kingdom of God is Within
-You</i>.—Trans.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f63'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r63'>63</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Any one examining closely may see that the theory of beauty and
-that of art are quite separated in Aristotle as they are in Plato and in
-all their successors.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f64'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r64'>64</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Die Lücke von fünf Jahrhunderten, welche zwischen den Kunstphilosophischen
-Betrachtungen des Plato und Aristoteles und die des
-Plotins fällt, kann zwar auffällig erscheinen; dennoch kann man
-eigentlich nicht sagen, dass in dieser Zwischenzeit überhaupt von
-ästhetischen Dingen nicht die Rede gewesen; oder dass gar ein völliger
-Mangel an Zusammenhang zwischen den Kunst-anscliauungen des
-letztgenannten Philosophen und denen der ersteren existire. Freilich
-wurde die von Aristoteles begründete Wissenschaft in Nichts dadurch
-gefördert; immerhin aber zeigt sich in jener Zwischenzeit noch
-ein gewisses Interesse für ästhetische Fragen. Nach Plotin aber, die
-wenigen, ihm in der Zeit nahestehenden Philosophen, wie Longin,
-Augustin, u. s. f. kommen, wie wir gesehen, kaum in Betracht und
-schliessen sich übrigens in ihrer Anschauungsweise an ihn an,—vergehen
-nicht fünf, sondern <i>fünfzehn Jahrhunderte</i>, in denen von
-irgend einer wissenschaftlichen Interesse für die Welt des Schönen und
-der Kunst nichts zu spüren ist.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Diese anderthalbtausend Jahre, innerhalb deren der Weltgeist
-durch die mannigfachsten Kämpfe hindurch zu einer völlig neuen
-Gestaltung des Lebens sich durcharbeitete, sind für die Aesthetik,
-hinsichtlich des weiteren Ausbaus dieser Wissenschaft verloren.—Max
-Schasler.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f65'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r65'>65</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>The contrast made is between the classes and the masses:
-between those who do not and those who do earn their bread by
-productive manual labour; the middle classes being taken as an
-offshoot of the upper classes.—Trans.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f66'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r66'>66</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Duelling is still customary among the higher circles in Russia, as
-in other Continental countries.—Trans.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f67'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r67'>67</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>It is the weariness of life, contempt for the present epoch, regret
-for another age seen through the illusion of art, a taste for paradox,
-a desire to be singular, a sentimental aspiration after simplicity, an
-infantine adoration of the marvellous, a sickly tendency towards
-reverie, a shattered condition of nerves, and, above all, the exasperated
-demand of sensuality.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f68'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r68'>68</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span></p>
-<div class='lg-container-b c010'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Music, music before all things</div>
- <div class='line'>The eccentric still prefer,</div>
- <div class='line'>Vague in air, and nothing weighty,</div>
- <div class='line'>Soluble. Yet do not err,</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Choosing words; still do it lightly,</div>
- <div class='line'>Do it too with some contempt;</div>
- <div class='line'>Dearest is the song that’s tipsy,</div>
- <div class='line'>Clearness, dimness not exempt.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line c012'>Music always, now and ever</div>
- <div class='line'>Be thy verse the thing that flies</div>
- <div class='line'>From a soul that’s gone, escaping,</div>
- <div class='line'>Gone to other loves and skies.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Gone to other loves and regions,</div>
- <div class='line'>Following fortunes that allure,</div>
- <div class='line'>Mint and thyme and morning crispness ...</div>
- <div class='line'>All the rest’s mere literature.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f69'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r69'>69</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>I think there should be nothing but allusions. The contemplation
-of objects, the flying image of reveries evoked by them, are the song.
-The Parnassiens state the thing completely, and show it, and thereby
-lack mystery; they deprive the mind of that delicious joy of imagining
-that it creates. To <i>name an object is to take three-quarters from the
-enjoyment of the poem, which consists in the happiness of guessing little
-by little: to suggest, that is the dream</i>. It is the perfect use of this
-mystery that constitutes the symbol: little by little, to evoke an
-object in order to show a state of the soul; or inversely, to choose an
-object, and from it to disengage a state of the soul by a series of
-decipherings.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>... If a being of mediocre intelligence and insufficient literary
-preparation chance to open a book made in this way and pretends to
-enjoy it, there is a misunderstanding—things must be returned to
-their places. <i>There should always be an enigma in poetry</i>, and the
-aim of literature—it has no other—is to evoke objects.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f70'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r70'>70</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>It were time also to have done with this famous “theory of
-obscurity,” which the new school have practically raised to the height
-of a dogma.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f71'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r71'>71</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>For translation, see <a href='#app4'>Appendix IV</a>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f72'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r72'>72</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>For translation, see <a href='#app4'>Appendix IV</a>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f73'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r73'>73</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>For translation, see <a href='#app4'>Appendix IV</a>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f74'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r74'>74</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>For translation, see <a href='#app4'>Appendix IV</a>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f75'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r75'>75</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>For translation, see <a href='#app4'>Appendix IV</a>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f76'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r76'>76</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>For translation, see <a href='#app4'>Appendix IV</a>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f77'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r77'>77</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span></p>
-<div class='lg-container-b c010'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>I do not wish to think any more, except about my mother Mary,</div>
- <div class='line'>Seat of wisdom and source of pardon,</div>
- <div class='line'>Also Mother of France, <i>from whom we</i></div>
- <div class='line'><i>Steadfastly expect the honour of our country</i>.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f78'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r78'>78</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>This sonnet seems too unintelligible for translation.—Trans.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f79'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r79'>79</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>For translation, see <a href='#app4'>Appendix IV</a>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f80'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r80'>80</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>The quicker it goes the longer it lasts.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f81'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r81'>81</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>All styles are good except the wearisome style.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f82'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r82'>82</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>All styles are good except that which is not understood, <i>or</i> which
-fails to produce its effect.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f83'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r83'>83</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>An apparatus exists by means of which a very sensitive arrow,
-in dependence on the tension of a muscle of the arm, will indicate
-the physiological action of music on the nerves and muscles.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f84'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r84'>84</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>There is in Moscow a magnificent “Cathedral of our Saviour,”
-erected to commemorate the defeat of the French in the war of 1812.—Trans.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f85'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r85'>85</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>“That they may be one; even as thou, Father, art in me, and I
-in thee, that they also may be in us.”</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f86'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r86'>86</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>In this picture the spectators in the Roman Amphitheatre are
-turning down their thumbs to show that they wish the vanquished
-gladiator to be killed.—Trans.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f87'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r87'>87</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>While offering as examples of art those that seem to me the best,
-I attach no special importance to my selection; for, besides being
-insufficiently informed in all branches of art, I belong to the class
-of people whose taste has, by false training, been perverted. And
-therefore my old, inured habits may cause me to err, and I may
-mistake for absolute merit the impression a work produced on me in
-my youth. My only purpose in mentioning examples of works of this
-or that class is to make my meaning clearer, and to show how,
-with my present views, I understand excellence in art in relation
-to its subject-matter. I must, moreover, mention that I consign my
-own artistic productions to the category of bad art, excepting the
-story <i>God sees the Truth</i>, which seeks a place in the first class, and
-<i>The Prisoner of the Caucasus</i>, which belongs to the second.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f88'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r88'>88</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>In Russian it is customary to make a distinction between literate
-and illiterate people, <i>i.e.</i> between those who can and those who cannot
-read. <i>Literate</i> in this sense does not imply that the man would
-speak or write correctly.—Trans.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f89'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r89'>89</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>The over-man (Uebermensch), in the Nietzschean philosophy, is
-that superior type of man whom the struggle for existence is to evolve,
-and who will seek only his own power and pleasure, will know nothing
-of pity, and will have the right, because he will possess the power, to
-make ordinary people serve him.—Trans.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f90'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r90'>90</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Stenka Razin was by origin a common Cossack. His brother was
-hung for a breach of military discipline, and to this event Stenka
-Razin’s hatred of the governing classes has been attributed. He
-formed a robber band, and subsequently headed a formidable rebellion,
-declaring himself in favour of freedom for the serfs, religious
-toleration, and the abolition of taxes. Like the Government he
-opposed, he relied on force, and, though he used it largely in defence
-of the poor against the rich, he still held to</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c010'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“The good old rule, the simple plan,</div>
- <div class='line'>That they should take who have the power,</div>
- <div class='line'>And they should keep who can.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Like Robin Hood he is favourably treated in popular legends.—Trans.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f91'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r91'>91</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Robert Macaire is a modern type of adroit and audacious rascality.
-He was the hero of a popular play produced in Paris in 1834.—Trans.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f92'>
-<p class='c005'><span class='label'><a href='#r92'>92</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>The translations in Appendices I., II., and IV., are by Louise
-Maude. The aim of these renderings has been to keep as close to the
-originals as the obscurity of meaning allowed. The sense (or absence
-of sense) has therefore been more considered than the form of the
-verses.</p>
-</div>
-<div>
-
- <ul class='ul_1 c002'>
- <li>Transcriber’s Notes:
- <ul class='ul_2'>
- <li>Footnotes have been collected at the end of the text, and are linked for ease of
- reference.
- </li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- </ul>
-
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WHAT IS ART? ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/64908-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/64908-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 13d68d3..0000000
--- a/old/64908-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ